Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n council_n faith_n trent_n 4,913 5 10.4664 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A19952 The reply of the most illustrious Cardinall of Perron, to the ansvveare of the most excellent King of Great Britaine the first tome. Translated into English.; Réplique à la response du sérénissime roy de la Grand Bretagne. Vol. 1. English Du Perron, Jacques Davy, 1556-1618.; Cary, Elizabeth, Lady, 1585 or 6-1639.; Du Perron, Jacques Davy, 1556-1618. Lettre de Mgr le Cal Du Perron, envoyée au sieur Casaubon en Angleterre. English.; Casaubon, Isaac, 1559-1614. Ad epistolam illustr. et reverendiss. Cardinalis Peronii, responsio. English. Selections. 1630 (1630) STC 6385; ESTC S107359 685,466 494

There are 133 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

without_o oblige_v himself_o to_o the_o doctrine_n whereof_o it_o make_v profession_n and_o therefore_o saint_n epiphan_n interpretes_n judicial_o these_o gate_n of_o hell_n that_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n to_o be_v heresy_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n say_v he_o be_v heresy_n and_o heresiemaster_n to_o the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o saint_n paul_n write_v you_o be_v arrive_v to_o heavenly_a 12._o jerusalem_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o firstborn_a which_o be_v enrol_v in_o heaven_n we_o answer_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a to_o which_o he_o write_v that_o we_o be_v arrive_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o he_o write_v our_o converfation_n be_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o say_v in_o hope_n as_o when_o a_o ship_n have_v cast_v his_o anchor_n on_o land_n which_o be_v say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o symbol_n of_o hope_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v arrive_v to_o 〈◊〉_d land_n though_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o let_v we_o add_v that_o the_o word_n firstborn_a signify_v there_o even_o by_o caluin_n own_o confession_n the_o holy_a father_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 2_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o if_o saint_n paul_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o that_o by_o the_o firstborn_a he_o intend_v the_o predestinate_a we_o 〈◊〉_d he_o call_v it_o the_o church_n of_o the_o firstborn_a not_o because_o it_o contain_v only_o the_o elect_a but_o because_o the_o elect_n be_v no_o where_o else_o i_o mean_v the_o elect_v invest_v in_o the_o temporal_a grace_n of_o their_o election_n as_o we_o call_v the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n the_o court_n of_o the_o peer_n not_o because_o it_o contain_v none_o but_o peer_n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o place_n else_o wherein_o the_o peer_n be_v invest_v in_o their_o quality_n of_o peer_n to_o the_o three_o which_o be_v take_v from_o this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n we_o say_v it_o suffice_v that_o faith_n be_v either_o of_o invisible_a thing_n or_o of_o thing_n apprehend_v under_o invisible_a condition_n as_o those_o be_v under_o which_o we_o consider_v the_o church_n when_o we_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n the_o mansion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n the_o treasuresse_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n otherwise_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n while_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o this_o world_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o say_v who_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o son_n be_v already_o 3._o judge_v and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n put_v this_o confession_n of_o faith_n among_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o church_n i_o believe_v one_o baptism_n in_o remission_n of_o sin_n they_o must_v conclude_v baptism_n to_o be_v invisible_a against_o the_o universal_a condition_n of_o sacrament_n which_o be_v to_o be_v visible_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n to_o the_o four_o objection_n to_o wit_n that_o saint_n augustinf_n write_v that_o only_o predestinate_a catholic_n be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o true_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o distinguish_v between_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o they_o which_o be_v of_o the_o house_n and_o between_o the_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n we_o have_v three_o solution_n the_o first_o solution_n be_v that_o saint_n augustine_n intend_v not_o that_o only_a catholic_n predestinate_a be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o formal_a be_v of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o that_o be_v call_v but_o according_a to_o the_o final_a be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o the_o end_n and_o in_o the_o fruit_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v institute_v i_o mean_v saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o intend_v in_o those_o place_n to_o define_v the_o church_n formal_o and_o by_o what_o she_o be_v in_o this_o world_n but_o final_o and_o by_o what_o she_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o other_o even_o as_o he_o that_o say_v only_o good_a citizen_n be_v true_a part_n of_o a_o common_a wealth_n do_v not_o define_v a_o common_a wealth_n formal_o and_o by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o but_o final_o and_o by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lawmaker_n and_o he_o that_o say_v a_o true_a harvest_n be_v only_o the_o corn_n that_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o straw_n and_o not_o the_o straw_n wherewth_n it_o be_v mingle_v define_v not_o a_o harvest_n formal_o and_o by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o field_n or_o in_o the_o barn_n but_o final_o and_o by_o what_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o garner_n we_o confess_v 6._o say_v saint_n august_a that_o whicked_a man_n be_v together_o with_o the_o good_a in_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o as_o corn_n and_o straw_n and_o again_o wicked_a man_n may_v be_v 119._o with_o we_o in_o the_o barn_n but_o they_o can_v be_v with_o we_o in_o the_o garner_n for_o that_o saint_n august_n do_v not_o esteem_v that_o the_o formal_a and_o precise_a condition_n that_o constitute_v man_n in_o the_o church_n be_v that_o of_o predestination_n internal_a to_o god_n and_o eternal_a but_o that_o of_o external_a and_o temporal_a vocation_n he_o show_v it_o 45._o when_o he_o say_v upon_o saint_n john_n none_o can_v enter_v by_o the_o gate_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n to_o life_n eternal_a which_o be_v in_o vision_n if_o by_o the_o same_o gate_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o same_o christ_n he_o be_v not_o first_o enter_v into_o his_o church_n which_o be_v his_o sheepefolde_a to_o the_o temporal_a life_n which_o be_v in_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o place_n already_o allege_v upon_o the_o 150._o psalm_n our_o predestination_n be_v make_v not_o in_o we_o but_o in_o god_n the_o other_o three_o thing_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o vocation_n justification_n and_o glorification_n and_o in_o his_o write_n 12._o against_o faustus_n man_n can_v be_v insert_v into_o no_o name_n of_o religion_n whether_o true_a or_o false_a but_o they_o must_v be_v tie_v by_o the_o common_a participation_n of_o some_o sign_n or_o visible_a sacrament_n contrariwise_o the_o very_a same_o saint_n august_n which_o distinguish_v between_o those_o in_o the_o house_n and_o those_o of_o the_o house_n teach_v we_o that_o all_o catholic_n both_o predestinate_a and_o reprobate_a be_v in_o the_o house_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o church_n those_o say_v he_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o 51._o that_o they_o be_v likewise_o in_o the_o house_n and_o than_o that_o the_o formal_a condition_n which_o 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n be_v vocation_n and_o not_o predestination_n but_o that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o predestinate_a catholic_n which_o be_v of_o the_o house_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v final_a piece_n inalienable_a and_o inseparable_a from_o the_o house_n or_o to_o speak_v in_o term_n of_o law_n that_o be_v good_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o family_n vouchsafe_v to_o put_v into_o the_o inventory_n of_o his_o house_n the_o other_o be_v there_o but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o as_o by_o way_n of_o loan_n and_o not_o to_o dwell_v there_o 〈◊〉_d ever_o for_o when_o the_o church_n shall_v pass_v from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n and_o from_o the_o state_n of_o mortality_n to_o immortality_n only_o predestinate_a catholic_n shall_v remain_v there_o and_o not_o the_o other_o the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o servant_n be_v the_o sinner_n now_o many_o sinner_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o 〈◊〉_d our_o lord_n do_v not_o say_v the_o servant_n enter_v not_o into_o the_o house_n but_o he_o dwell_v not_o for_o ever_o in_o the_o house_n and_o again_o none_o can_v blot_n from_o heaven_n the_o constitution_n 162._o of_o god_n nor_o can_v any_o blot_n from_o the_o earth_n the_o church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n she_o contain_v good_a and_o evil_a but_o she_o lose_v none_o on_o earth_n but_o the_o evil_a and_o admit_v none_o into_o heaven_n but_o the_o good_a the_o second_o solution_n be_v that_o this_o distinction_n of_o part_n of_o the_o church_n true_a and_o not_o true_a and_o of_o vessel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o not_o of_o the_o house_n and_o of_o people_n know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n and_o know_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n be_v not_o a_o distinction_n of_o religion_n but_o a_o simple_a distinction_n of_o manner_n which_o put_v difference_n between_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o formal_a be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o external_a mean_n of_o vocation_n which_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o adherence_n to_o lawful_a
although_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n forbid_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 8._o and_o likewise_o zozomenus_n a_o greek_a author_n alsoe_o and_o of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o socrates_n julius_n say_v he_o reprehend_v they_o that_o they_o have_v secret_o and_o privy_o 9_o alter_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o for_o that_o against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v not_o call_v he_o to_o the_o synod_n for_o there_o be_v a_o sacerdot_n all_o law_n which_o import_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v invalid_a and_o why_o then_o when_o eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n usurper_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o constantinople_n and_o firebrand_n of_o the_o arrian_n faction_n and_o the_o other_o arrian_n his_o complice_n see_v that_o the_o deposition_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n that_o they_o have_v pack_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v argue_v of_o nullity_n because_o the_o pope_n authority_n do_v not_o appear_v therein_o do_v they_o advise_v themselves_o to_o repair_v this_o defect_n to_o prevent_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o pray_v he_o to_o call_v the_o 11._o cause_n to_o his_o tribunal_n eusebius_n say_v socrates_n have_v do_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n what_o he_o list_v send_v a_o ambassador_n to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n require_v he_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o athanas_n and_o to_o call_v the_o cause_n before_o he_o and_o this_o not_o after_o the_o voyage_n of_o s._n athanas_n to_o rome_n as_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n and_o the_o protestant_n with_o they_o pretend_v but_o before_o as_o julius_n recite_v by_o s._n athanasius_n &_o saint_n athanasius_n himself_o and_o theodoret_n do_v writness_n athanasius_n say_v julius_n be_v 〈◊〉_d not_o come_v to_o rome_n of_o his_o own_o motion_n but_o have_v be_v call_v and_o have_v receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o us._n and_o saint_n athanasius_n eusebius_n and_o his_o party_n write_v to_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o pope_n they_o write_v alsoe_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o constant_a &_o c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o constantine_n emperor_n of_o the_o gaul_n who_o residence_n be_v at_o trever_n and_o to_o constant_a emperor_n of_o itali_fw-la and_o africa_n who_o residence_n be_v at_o millen_n but_o the_o emperor_n reject_v they_o and_o as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o answer_v that_o we_o shall_v keep_v a_o council_n where_o we_o will_v and_o 2._o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o eusebian_n write_v to_o julius_n and_o thinkinge_v to_o terrify_v we_o demand_v of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v call_v a_o council_n and_o that_o himself_o if_o he_o will_v shall_v be_v the_o judge_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o demand_v either_o that_o the_o pope_n will_v keep_v a_o council_n out_o of_o rome_n in_o which_o the_o cause_n may_v be_v judge_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o legate_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v judge_v it_o himself_o 2._o at_o rome_n if_o he_o please_v and_o a_o while_n after_o but_o when_o they_o hear_v the_o news_n of_o our_o arrivull_a at_o rome_n they_o be_v trouble_v not_o expect_v our_o come_n thither_o and_o theodoret_n assoon_o as_o athanasius_n receive_v the_o citatior_fw-la from_o 4._o julius_n he_o transport_v himself_o in_o diligence_n to_o rome_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o julius_n object_v to_o the_o arrian_n the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n do_v he_o reproach_n they_o that_o against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v depose_v saint_n athanasius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n without_o attend_v first_o for_o a_o decision_n from_o rome_n be_v you_o ignorant_a say_v pope_n julius_n in_o the_o second_o answer_n to_o the_o arrian_n 2._o recite_v by_o saint_n athanasius_n that_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v first_o write_v to_o and_o that_o from_o hence_o the_o just_a decision_n of_o thing_n shall_v proceed_v and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o your_o bishop_n there_o you_o must_v have_v write_v to_o this_o church_n a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o the_o request_n that_o the_o arrian_n a_o while_n after_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n have_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o fragm_n call_v the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n before_o he_o and_o to_o call_v a_o council_n to_o 36._o judge_v it_o or_o to_o judge_v it_o himself_o if_o he_o will_v be_v no_o new_a attribution_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n imagine_v but_o a_o truce_n of_o their_o rebellion_n to_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n for_o how_o can_v the_o pope_n have_v reproach_v to_o the_o arrian_n that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n against_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n have_v depose_v saint_n athanasius_n without_o stayinge_v for_o a_o decision_n from_o rome_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o have_v right_a to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n but_o since_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o how_o can_v the_o arrian_n themselves_o have_v insert_v 15._o year_n after_o these_o word_n in_o the_o false_a letter_n that_o they_o inforce_v pope_n liberius_n to_o write_v against_o saint_n athanasius_n i_o have_v follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_n send_v on_o my_o behalf_n lucius_n paul_n and_o aehanus_fw-la priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n into_o alexandria_n to_o athanasius_n to_o cause_v he_o to_o come_v to_o rome_n that_o we_o may_v ordain_v himself_o be_v present_a upon_o his_o person_n what_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n exact_v if_o this_o right_n have_v be_v from_o the_o new_a attribution_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o not_o from_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o even_o from_o that_o that_o julius_n new_o come_v from_o speak_v of_o for_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o bless_a peter_n i_o do_v signify_v they_o to_o you_o but_o let_v we_o again_o go_v forward_o with_o our_o interrogatory_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o article_n of_o the_o eusebian_n against_o s._n athanasius_n be_v bring_v to_o rome_n do_v the_o pope_n upon_o the_o accusation_n of_o one_o of_o the_o party_n as_o the_o common_a judge_n adjourn_v or_o give_v they_o both_o a_o day_n and_o that_o follow_v 4._o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n julius_n say_v theodoret_n follow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n commannd_v the_o eusebian_n to_o present_v themselves_o at_o rome_n and_o give_v assignation_n to_o the_o divine_a athanasius_n to_o appear_v in_o judgement_n and_o why_o then_o when_o those_o great_a prelate_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n lucius_n bishop_n of_o andrinopolis_n in_o thrace_n who_o have_v be_v accuse_v of_o diverse_a crime_n some_o secular_a as_o athanasius_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o manslanghter_n and_o rape_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a as_o the_o same_o athanasius_n to_o have_v cause_v a_o chalice_n to_o be_v break_v and_o asclepas_n to_o have_v overthrow_v a_o altar_n and_o have_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o seat_n by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o thrace_n and_o of_o asia_n and_o have_v be_v hear_v at_o rome_n do_v the_o 15._o author_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n restore_v they_o forasmuch_o as_o to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n ibid._n of_o all_o thing_n appartain_v julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v socrates_n because_o 15_o of_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o church_n arm_v they_o with_o courageous_a letter_n and_o send_v they_o back_o into_o the_o east_n and_o restore_v to_o each_o of_o they_o his_o place_n 〈◊〉_d rebukeinge_v those_o that_o have_v 〈◊〉_d depose_v they_o and_o sozomene_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o 8._o complaint_n and_o find_v that_o they_o agree_v touchinge_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d receive_v they_o into_o his_o communion_n as_o conformable_a and_o of_o the_o same_o belief_n and_o because_o that_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v he_o rester_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o his_o church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o out_o ragious_a letter_n that_o those_o 50._o of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarckship_n of_o antioch_n and_o their_o complice_n who_o be_v arrian_n write_v against_o julius_n in_o hate_n because_o he_o have_v break_v their_o council_n and_o restore_v saint_n athanasius_n i_o mean_v to_o confute_v they_o particular_o in_o a_o other_o place_n it_o shall_v suffice_v now_o that_o i_o say_v two_o thing_n one_o
it_o temporal_o executory_a they_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n that_o it_o have_v judge_v the_o cause_n of_o flavianus_n the_o synod_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v the_o law_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o 11._o the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n eternal_a in_o glory_n rome_n examine_v exact_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o strengthen_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n attribute_v to_o flavianus_n the_o reward_n of_o his_o past_a life_n and_o the_o palm_n of_o a_o glorious_a death_n now_o how_o be_v this_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o say_v that_o which_o pope_n gelasius_n write_v forty_o year_n after_o in_o these_o word_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a delegated_a the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n cull_v to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o common_a faith_n and_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a truth_n and_o again_o flavianus_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o greek_a bishop_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a alone_a because_o he_o have_v not_o consent_v thereunto_o absolve_v he_o and_o contrary_a wise_a by_o his_o authority_n condemn_v dioscorus_n prelate_n of_o the_o second_o sea_n who_o have_v there_o be_v approve_a and_o alone_o annul_v the_o wicked_a synod_n in_o not_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o alone_o by_o his_o authority_n ordain_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n shall_v be_v keep_v but_o thing_n incident_a carry_v we_o away_o let_v we_o again_o return_v to_o our_o career_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v open_a be_v the_o first_o complaint_n that_o be_v make_v against_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n that_o he_o have_v presume_v to_o undertake_v to_o keep_v a_o general_a council_n and_o to_o be_v precedent_n there_o without_o commission_n from_o the_o pope_n upon_o which_o complaint_n also_o dioscorus_n come_v down_o from_o this_o patriarkall_n seat_n wherein_o he_o be_v conc._n first_o set_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o place_n as_o a_o accuse_a party_n and_o 1._o not_o as_o judge_v we_o have_v in_o our_o hand_n say_v paschasinus_n bishop_n of_o lylibea_n in_o sicilia_n and_o legate_n from_o the_o pope_n speak_v to_o the_o council_n the_o commaundment_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o apostolic_a prelate_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n whereby_o he_o vouchsaff_v to_o ordain_v provisionallie_o that_o dioscorus_n sit_v not_o in_o the_o council_n and_o that_o if_o he_o attempt_v it_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o and_o lucentius_n ibid._n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d also_o the_o pope_n legate_n dioscorus_n say_v he_o must_v yield_v a_o account_n of_o judgement_n for_o as_o much_o as_o have_v no_o right_a to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n be_v attempt_v it_o and_o presume_v to_o hold_v a_o synod_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o never_o have_v be_v lawful_a nor_o never_o be_v do_v and_o euagrius_n in_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n the_o senate_n say_v he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o legate_n from_o leo_n what_o charge_v there_o be_v against_o dioscorus_n they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o must_v yield_v a_o account_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n because_o against_o might_n 〈◊〉_d have_v usurp_v the_o person_n of_o a_o judge_n without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n permission_n after_o which_o answer_n `_o dioscorus_n by_o the_o senate_n judgement_n stand_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o place_n and_o why_o then_o when_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z a_o city_n as_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o persia_n have_v be_v restore_v by_o pope_n leo_n from_o the_o deposition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n from_o whence_o he_o have_v appeal_v to_o he_o do_v the_o emperor_n officer_n who_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o cause_n 〈◊〉_d order_n to_o be_v observe_v proclaim_v let_v the_o right_n reverend_a bishop_n 〈◊〉_d come_v in_o that_o he_o may_v have_v part_n in_o the_o synod_n because_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n 〈◊〉_d bath_n 〈◊〉_d he_o to_o his_o `_o bishopric_n and_o that_o supply_v upon_o this_o restitution_n the_o most_o sacred_a and_o religious_a emperor_n have_v ordain_v that_o he_o shall_v assist_v in_o the_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v make_v himself_o the_o executor_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o this_o council_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o protestation_n he_o have_v make_v of_o it_o a_o little_a before_o in_o these_o word_n we_o conceive_v that_o we_o ought_v first_o to_o 〈◊〉_d address_n ourselves_o to_o thy_o holiness_n who_o have_v the_o superintendance_n and_o principality_n of_o faith_n and_o again_o our_o desire_n be_v that_o peace_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o church_n by_o this_o council_n celebrate_v under_o thy_o authority_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o priest_n and_o deacons_n of_o alexandria_n present_v their_o petition_n against_o dioscorus_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v they_o couch_v they_o in_o these_o term_n all_o the_o council_n see_v and_o approve_v it_o and_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v register_v in_o the_o act_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n and_o universal_a patriarcke_n leo_n and_o to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o 〈◊〉_d council_n for_o as_o for_o the_o instance_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n make_v afterward_o to_o participate_v in_o this_o title_n under_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o second_o place_n after_o the_o pope_n as_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n it_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o and_o why_o then_o when_o paschasinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n give_v his_o voice_n upon_o 14._o the_o deposition_n of_o dioscorus_n do_v he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v pardon_v all_o those_o who_o in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v by_o force_n consent_v to_o dioscorus_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o almost_o all_o the_o metropolitan_o and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o eastern_a empire_n the_o 〈◊〉_d apostolic_a say_v he_o grant_n they_o pardon_v for_o those_o thing_n that_o they_o commit_v 〈◊〉_d there_o against_o their_o will_n for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o have_v remain_v unto_o this_o time_n adhere_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n leo_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a and_o universal_a council_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n annul_v do_v anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n pronounce_v that_o of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n nothing_o ought_v to_o remain_v entire_a but_o the_o election_n of_o maximus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n for_o as_o much_o as_o that_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n my_o voice_n say_v he_o be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d none_o of_o the_o thing_n ordain_v by_o the_o pretend_a council_n of_o ephesus_n shall_v remain_v firm_a concept_n that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o maximus_n bishop_n of_o great_a antioch_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n of_o rome_n leo_n receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d who_o have_v be_v create_v archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n hold_v not_o his_o archbishopric_n from_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n but_o from_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d as_o pope_n leo_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n 〈◊〉_d in_o these_o word_n it_o shall_v have_v suffice_v he_o that_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o my_o favour_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o bishopric_n of_o so_o great_a a_o city_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n frame_v that_o famous_a relation_n to_o pope_n leo_n which_o be_v not_o only_o insert_v in_o all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o latin_a act_n of_o the_o western_a and_o eastern_a library_n but_o also_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o greek_a schismatickes_n and_o among_o other_o by_o nilus_n arch_a 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o tessalonica_fw-la in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o pope_n do_v they_o write_v to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v rule_v in_o the_o council_n as_o the_o head_n to_o the_o member_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v preside_v there_o to_o cause_v order_n to_o be_v observe_v that_o be_v to_o avoid_v such_o murder_n and_o tumult_n as_o happen_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o put_v a_o like_a difference_n between_o the_o pope_n presidencie_n and_o the_o emperor_n as_o between_o the_o presidencie_n of_o jesus_n the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o synagogue_n and_o that_o of_o zorobabel_n prince_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n in_o the_o build_n leon._n of_o the_o temple_n you_o preside_v the_o council_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o '_o this_o assembly_n as_o the_o head_n
of_o antioch_n have_v esteem_v that_o some_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o privilege_n of_o your_o church_n let_v it_o take_v care_n 60._o to_o explain_v it_o by_o letter_n that_o we_o may_v answer_v absolute_o and_o fit_o to_o thy_o consultation_n for_o the_o present_a it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o pronounce_v in_o general_a that_o if_o any_o thing_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v attempt_v or_o even_o for_o a_o time_n exhort_v by_o any_o one_o in_o what_o synod_n soever_o it_o be_v against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n it_o can_v do_v prejudice_n to_o the_o inviolable_a decree_n and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n jwenall_n the_o bishop_n ibid._n think_v to_o have_v find_v a_o sufficient_a advantage_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o schism_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o obtain_v the_o principality_n of_o palestina_n and_o to_o cause_v his_o insolent_a boldness_n to_o be_v confirm_v with_o surreptitious_a write_n which_o cyrillus_n of_o holy_a memory_n just_o abhor_v represent_v to_o i_o and_o entreat_v i_o with_o great_a instance_n and_o care_n that_o no_o consent_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o such_o lawless_a attempt_n the_o ten_o nullity_n be_v that_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n see_v this_o canon_n can_v not_o subsist_v if_o it_o be_v discover_v that_o it_o have_v be_v annul_v by_o the_o pope_n conceal_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o abrogation_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v of_o this_o decree_n and_o keep_v back_o the_o pope_n letter_n whereby_o he_o have_v annul_v and_o abolish_v it_o a_o fraud_n so_o perilous_a as_o it_o have_v like_a to_o have_v turn_v upsidowne_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n for_o the_o pope_n have_v join_v in_o one_o letter_n the_o abrogation_n of_o this_o decree_n with_o the_o confirmation_n that_o he_o make_v of_o the_o other_o act_n of_o the_o council_n anatolius_n because_o he_o will_v not_o show_v the_o censure_n of_o his_o ambition_n conceal_v the_o pope_n letter_n where_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o clause_n be_v contain_v which_o be_v the_o clause_n that_o the_o eastern_a church_n remain_v in_o such_o doubt_n whether_o or_o not_o the_o pope_n have_v confirm_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n as_o infinite_a people_n for_o this_o cause_n make_v difficulty_n to_o receive_v it_o the_o emperor_n be_v fain_o to_o request_v the_o pope_n to_o dispatch_v new_a letter_n confirmative_a of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v assist_v there_o and_o to_o send_v they_o to_o each_o one_o of_o they_o in_o their_o church_n this_o say_v pope_n leo_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a your_o clemency_n think_v will_v be_v more_o easy_o fufil_v if_o throughout_o all_o the_o church_n we_o 57_o signify_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v please_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a a_o thing_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o occasion_n of_o doubt_n etc._n etc._n see_v i_o have_v write_v to_o your_o glory_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n letter_n which_o evidentlie_o 〈◊〉_d that_o i_o approve_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v there_o define_v concern_v catholic_a faith_n but_o because_o by_o the_o same_o letter_n i_o have_v reprove_v those_o thing_n which_o under_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o synod_n have_v be_v evil_o attempt_v he_o rather_o choose_v to_o conceal_v my_o applause_n then_o to_o publish_v his_o ambition_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o empress_n pulcheria_n 58._o whereas_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n have_v will_v that_o i_o shall_v write_v letter_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n which_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n whereby_o i_o shall_v confirm_v what_o be_v then_o define_v concern_v faith_n i_o have_v willing_o accomplish_v it_o lest_o the_o deceitful_a dissimulation_n of_o some_o shall_v pretend_v to_o put_v people_n in_o doubt_n of_o my_o sentence_n although_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o who_o i_o have_v large_o testify_v my_o joy_n that_o which_o i_o have_v write_v may_v have_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o if_o he_o have_v not_o rather_o choose_v to_o conceal_v my_o contentment_n then_o to_o publish_v the_o rebuke_n of_o his_o ambition_n the_o eleaventh_o nullity_n be_v that_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n even_o he_o that_o have_v pack_v this_o canon_n he_o himself_o in_o who_o favour_n it_o have_v be_v particularise_v depart_v from_o it_o as_o be_v see_v by_o the_o text_n of_o the_o epistle_n that_o 59_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o write_v he_o which_o be_v such_o this_o thy_o fault_n which_o to_o increase_v thy_o power_n thou_o have_v commit_v as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o exhortation_n of_o other_o thy_o charity_n have_v better_a and_o more_o sincere_o blot_v out_o if_o that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v attempt_v without_o thy_o consent_n thou_o have_v not_o impute_v it_o to_o the_o only_a counsel_n of_o thy_o clergy_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o content_v i_o much_o dear_a brother_n that_o thy_o dilection_n protest_v to_o be_v aggrieve_v with_o that_o which_o even_o then_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v please_v thou_o it_o 〈◊〉_d to_o re-enter_v into_o common_a grace_n the_o profession_n of_o thy_o charity_n together_o with_o the_o attestation_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n prince_n and_o let_v not_o his_o correction_n seem_v tardy_a that_o have_v get_v so_o reverend_a a_o surety_n and_o vinc_fw-la by_o these_o word_n of_o pope_n gelasius_n write_v forty_o year_n after_o against_o acacius_n that_o which_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a consent_v not_o to_o nor_o do_v the_o emperor_n impose_v it_o nor_o anatolius_n usurp_v it_o and_o all_o be_v put_v into_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o therefore_o what_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a confirm_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v be_v in_o force_n what_o it_o refuse_v can_v not_o be_v steadfast_a the_o twelve_o nullity_n be_v that_o this_o canon_n have_v be_v false_o insert_v into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o latter_a greek_n which_o perchance_o make_v saint_n gregory_n to_o 14._o say_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v in_o one_o place_n be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n for_o during_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n this_o canon_n which_o have_v be_v but_o project_v and_o not_o confirm_v remain_v in_o the_o only_a history_n of_o the_o act_n and_o be_v not_o insert_v into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canon_n till_o a_o long_a time_n after_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a greek_a and_o latin_a copy_n in_o all_o which_o the_o rolle_n of_o the_o canon_n contain_v but_o twenty_o seven_o canon_n and_o by_o the_o collection_n of_o theodoret_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n in_o medicea_n which_o the_o list_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v but_o of_o twenty_o seven_o canon_n and_o by_o the_o edition_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la timefellow_n with_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n who_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n comprehend_v but_o twenty_o seven_o canon_n and_o can_v by_o the_o acknowledgement_n that_o theodoret_n anagnestes_n a_o greek_a author_n make_v thereof_o in_o these_o word_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n publish_v twenty_o seven_o canon_n eccl._n and_o the_o thirteen_o nullity_n be_v final_o that_o the_o number_n of_o thirty_o canon_n which_o the_o greek_n of_o follow_a age_n have_v attribute_v to_o the_o council_n 1._o of_o chalcedon_n to_o comprehend_v this_o and_o to_o make_v it_o come_v in_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o twenty_o eight_o be_v a_o suppose_a number_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o two_o last_o canon_n to_o wit_n the_o twenty_o nine_o and_o the_o thirtith_n be_v no_o canon_n but_o be_v the_o one_o of_o they_o a_o interlocution_n between_o paschasinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n and_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o other_o a_o prohibition_n provisorie_n to_o any_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n which_o have_v excuse_v themselves_o from_o sign_v the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n leo_n because_o they_o remain_v without_o a_o patriarch_n not_o to_o depart_v from_o constantinople_n before_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o news_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o a_o new_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o have_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n and_o transfer_v into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canon_n whereunto_o it_o serve_v not_o to_o allege_v for_o counterbattery_n that_o the_o council_n trullian_n which_o be_v hold_v two_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n cit_v this_o
be_v not_o pope_n silvester_n that_o send_v he_o lucif_fw-mi to_o the_o emperor_n into_o the_o east_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o trouble_n of_o arrius_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v write_v to_o the_o same_o silvester_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o emperor_n to_o interpose_v his_o authority_n and_o that_o what_o remain_v to_o we_o from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n more_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o emperor_n to_o note_v their_o action_n than_o those_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o end_n to_o strengthen_v the_o church_n with_o the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v not_o pass_v it_o over_o in_o 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o can_v 〈◊〉_d we_o that_o the_o same_o eusebius_n with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d malice_n as_o be_v a_o arrian_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o well_o as_o he_o dissemble_v that_o alexander_n 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o relation_n of_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d and_o a_o other_o relation_n 〈◊〉_d the_o circular_a letter_n address_v to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o the_o east_n as_o it_o appear_v from_o 6._o the_o number_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o those_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v where_o of_o there_o be_v mention_v 〈◊〉_d which_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o learn_v evident_o 〈◊〉_d pope_n 〈◊〉_d who_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n we_o have_v 5._o 〈◊〉_d in_o our_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o silvester_n of_o holy_a memory_n and_o 〈◊〉_d from_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d patriarch_n of_o the_o same_o sup_n place_n of_o 〈◊〉_d who_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pope_n celestine_n the_o long_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o to_o communicate_v those_o thing_n to_o your_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d general_a council_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o which_o live_v near_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o and_o have_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rob_v from_o we_o and_o in_o who_o care_n there_o sound_v yet_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d thorough_o 〈◊〉_d that_o not_o only_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n but_o also_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d wrought_v for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o council_n when_o they_o 〈◊〉_d the_o most_o sacred_a 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o famous_a 〈◊〉_d call_v the_o great_a and_o 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d council_n at_o nicaea_n and_o do_v not_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o history_n inform_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n before_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n must_v 〈◊〉_d have_v hold_v a_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o the_o western_a church_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d a_o council_n compound_v of_o the_o deputy_n from_o the_o particular_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d province_n to_o send_v by_o delegate_n carry_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o that_o council_n the_o sense_n of_o all_o the_o western_a church_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v do_v when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o hold_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d otherwise_o how_o have_v the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v compound_v but_o only_o of_o the_o eastern_a province_n and_o where_o there_o be_v but_o 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o all_o the_o west_n be_v originallie_o 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d i_o say_v original_o and_o not_o by_o accession_n as_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d if_o some_o one_o of_o they_o have_v not_o be_v depute_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o voice_n of_o all_o the_o western_a church_n and_o which_o of_o those_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d it_o 〈◊〉_d except_o osius_n who_o only_o have_v his_o 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o if_o the_o author_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d all_o history_n for_o the_o most_o part_n 〈◊〉_d which_o remain_v to_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o no_o council_n of_o the_o west_n preambulary_a to_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d what_o 〈◊〉_d be_v it_o 〈◊〉_d that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n that_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d general_a coucell_n and_o that_o saint_n ambrose_n 38._o describe_v as_o assemble_v from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o the_o affair_n 78._o of_o the_o east_n there_o be_v find_v no_o author_n of_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o speak_v a_o word_n and_o if_o eusebius_n and_o those_o that_o have_v follow_v he_o have_v make_v no_o memory_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n hold_v for_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o they_o have_v make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o deputation_n of_o the_o bishop_n send_v 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n to_o represent_v their_o person_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n we_o find_v indeed_o that_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o italy_n and_o lucifer_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o sardinia_n two_o bishop_n of_o 27._o the_o pope_n patriarkship_n where_o 〈◊〉_d into_o the_o east_n and_o that_o at_o the_o issue_n of_o their_o banishment_n one_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n lucifer_n create_v in_o syria_n 27._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o assist_v by_o one_o of_o his_o deacons_n at_o the_o ibid._n council_n of_o alexandria_n hold_v for_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ibid._n the_o other_o to_o wit_n eusebius_n assist_v there_o in_o person_n but_o that_o they_o bear_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n when_o they_o be_v banish_v into_o the_o east_n or_o since_o we_o find_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o grecian_a antiquity_n and_o nevertheless_o saint_n jerom_n describe_v the_o life_n of_o lucifer_n say_v lucifer_n bishop_n of_o calaris_n lucif_n send_v legate_n for_o the_o faith_n with_o pancratius_n and_o hyllarius_n clerk_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o bishop_n liberius_n to_o constantius_n because_o he_o will_v not_o under_o the_o name_n of_o athanasius_n condemn_v the_o faith_n of_o nicaea_n be_v banish_v into_o palestina_n and_o describe_v that_o of_o eusebius_n eusebius_n say_v he_o make_v from_o a_o lecturer_n euseb._n in_o the_o roman_a church_n bishop_n of_o vercelles_n be_v for_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n to_o scythopolis_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o cappadocia_n and_o saint_n hilary_n describe_v the_o council_n of_o milan_n from_o whence_o they_o where_o both_o send_v into_o the_o east_n by_o constantius_n eusebius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o be_v there_o with_o the_o clerk_n of_o rome_n and_o lucifer_n bishop_n of_o sardinia_n and_o liberius_n himself_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n 1._o which_o remain_v to_o we_o in_o the_o work_n of_o lucifer_n i_o have_v say_v he_o send_v to_o you_o my_o holy_a brother_n and_o fellow-bishop_n lucifer_n with_o pancratius_n my_o fellow-priest_n op_n and_o hillary_n deacon_n and_o nicetas_n a_o grave_a greek_a author_n and_o who_o have_v see_v many_o ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o time_n have_v envy_v to_o we_o expound_v fragm_n these_o word_n of_o saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n there_o be_v at_o caesarea_n in_o coppadocia_n bishop_n of_o the_o west_n which_o draw_v all_o that_o be_v orthodoxal_a to_o basil._n they_o add'_v these_o bishop_n be_v lucifer_n and_o eusebius_n who_o have_v be_v send_v from_o rome_n and_o why_o then_o as_o all_o the_o ancient_a greek_n conceal_v the_o deputation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d ibid._n and_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o uercelles_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n so_o can_v not_o eusebius_n and_o those_o that_o have_v follow_v he_o conceal_v the_o deputation_n of_o osius_n from_o the_o pope_n be_v it_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n or_o be_v it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o if_o from_o this_o that_o eusebius_n note_v not_o that_o osius_n who_o in_o hate_n to_o catholic_a doctrine_n he_o vouchsafe_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o name_v in_o all_o the_o history_n of_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n be_v send_v by_o the_o emperor_n into_o egypt_n as_o the_o pope_n legate_n or_o from_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o relate_v that_o osius_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o the_o pope_n legate_n 〈◊〉_d do_v ensue_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n that_o osius_n preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n must_v we_o not_o conclude_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n that_o he_o preside_v not_o there_o at_o all_o for_o eusebius_n say_v not_o that_o osius_n preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n he_o only_o 7._o say_v that_o he_o sit_v there_o with_o many_o other_o from_o spain_n itself_o say_v he_o there_o be_v one_o very_o famous_a bishop_n set_v with_o many_o other_o two_o only_a historian_n do_v inform_v we_o
that_o the_o bishop_n which_o judge_v 162._o at_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v good_a judge_n yet_o there_o remain_v the_o universal_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n do_v it_o not_o verisie_n that_o after_o the_o pope_n judgement_n suppose_v and_o not_o grant_v that_o it_o have_v be_v subject_a to_o appeal_v there_o remain_v no_o other_o judgement_n but_o that_o of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n from_o this_o council_n then_o the_o donatist_n have_v again_o recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o force_v he_o to_o examine_v the_o cause_n himself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o fowrth_a irregularity_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o protestation_n that_o the_o emperor_n make_v for_o which_o he_o will_v ask_v pardon_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o give_v way_n say_v saint_n augustine_n to_o their_o importunity_n to_o stop_n their_o mouth_n and_o yield_v 〈◊〉_d 162._o sarr_n as_o to_o judge_v this_o cause_n after_o the_o bishop_n but_o with_o a_o intent_n afterward_o to_o crave_v pardon_n of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n now_o how_o can_v a_o example_n for_o which_o the_o emperor_n protest_v that_o himself_o will_v crave_v the_o bishop_n pardon_n serve_v for_o a_o law_n to_o the_o bishop_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o the_o donatist_n do_v no_o more_o obey_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o emperor_n than_o they_o have_v do_v to_o that_o of_o the_o ibid._n council_n of_o rome_n hold_v in_o the_o pope_n presence_n or_o to_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n hold_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n but_o disavow_v the_o petition_n that_o they_o have_v present_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o say_v that_o that_o business_n be_v not_o for_o the_o emperor_n examination_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o solicitation_n that_o bring_v it_o before_o he_o and_o cast_v this_o imputation_n upon_o the_o catholic_n so_o as_o the_o last_o dispute_n be_v whether_o the_o catholic_n or_o the_o donatist_n have_v cause_v the_o emperór_n to_o intervene_v in_o this_o cause_n both_o disavow_v it_o if_o he_o be_v culpable_a say_v saint_n austin_n speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n felix_n who_o ordain_v cecllianus_fw-la who_o the_o emperor_n 162._o have_v cause_v to_o be_v hear_v before_o the_o proconsul_n of_o africa_n that_o have_v be_v absolve_v by_o a_o earthly_a judge_v not_o have_v demand_v it_o how_o much_o more_o be_v those_o 〈◊〉_d that_o wouldhave_v a_o earthly_a king_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o their_o cause_n for_o if_o it_o be_v no_o crime_n to_o have_v appeal_v to_o the_o empero_fw-la rit_n be_v no_o crime_n to_o have_v be_v hear_v by_o the_o emperor_n neither_o they_o by_o he_o to_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v delegated_a the_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o proconsul_n 166._o and_o again_o know_v that_o your_o superior_n have_v first_o bring_v cecilianus_n his_o cause_n before_o constantine_n oblige_v we_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o you_o and_o if_o we_o prove_v it_o not_o do_v with_o we_o what_o you_o can_v now_o let_v we_o recapitnlate_v all_o the_o head_n of_o this_o history_n the_o first_o head_n say_v the_o caluinist_n be_v that_o the_o donatist_n address_v themselves_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n to_o ask_v judge_n of_o he_o it_o be_v true_a but_o what_o consequence_n can_v you_o draw_v from_o this_o example_n for_o be_v not_o the_o donati_v already_o schismatickes_n 162._o and_o separate_v from_o the_o obedience_n and_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o beside_o have_v not_o they_o recourse_n afterward_o to_o the_o emperor_n julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la a_o pagan_a and_o insidell_n prince_n to_o recover_v their_o church_n that_o the_o christian_a and_o catholic_a prince_n have_v take_v from_o they_o and_o with_o this_o elegy_n that_o in_o he_o only_o all_o justice_n remain_v and_o 166_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n cry_v out_o to_o they_o if_o it_o be_v in_o your_o power_n you_o will_v not_o now_o call_v against_o we_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n because_o he_o favour_v the_o truth_n but_o you_o will_v rather_o call_v julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la out_o of_o hell_n the_o second_o head_n be_v that_o the_o emperor_n partly_o yield_v to_o their_o importunity_n grant_v they_o judge_n from_o the_o province_n that_o they_o have_v demand_v that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o gaul_n it_o be_v true_a but_o do_v not_o the_o emperor_n protest_v before_o he_o grant_v 1._o this_o to_o they_o that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o who_o attend_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n to_o meddle_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n minister_n and_o after_o he_o have_v grant_v they_o this_o do_v he_o not_o remit_v they_o to_o rome_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o under_o the_o presidencie_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o three_o head_n be_v that_o the_o donatist_n appeal_v from_o the_o pope_n judgement_n to_o the_o emperor_n judgement_n it_o be_v true_a but_o do_v not_o the_o emperor_n cry_v out_o that_o this_o appeal_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v speak_v or_o hear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o mad_a impudence_n of_o fury_n that_o it_o be_v a_o recourse_n from_o he_o avenlie_a to_o earthly_a judgement_n and_o a_o manifest_a contempt_n of_o christ_n authority_n the_o fowrth_a head_n be_v that_o notwithstanding_o this_o protestation_n the_o emperor_n grant_v they_o a_o council_n at_o ark_n it_o be_v true_a but_o do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n testify_v that_o it_o be_v a_o irregular_a action_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n do_v it_o give_v way_n to_o the_o perversue_v ibidem_fw-la of_o the_o donatist_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o assistant_n that_o be_v with_o he_o at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n be_v present_a at_o that_o of_o arles_n 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n bewail_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o assist_v there_o and_o say_v that_o if_o he_o have_v be_v there_o present_a they_o have_v pronounce_v a_o more_o severe_a sentence_n against_o the_o donatist_n do_v it_o not_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o judgement_n of_o appeal_n but_o a_o more_o ample_a review_v of_o the_o cause_n which_o the_o donatist_n say_v be_v not_o full_o hear_v the_o five_o head_n be_v that_o ibidem_fw-la the_o donatist_n have_v recourse_n again_o from_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o pray_v he_o to_o take_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o cause_n himself_o which_o he_o do_v it_o be_v true_a but_o do_v not_o saint_n augustin_n say_v that_o he_o protest_v the_o he_o will_v afterward_o crave_v pardon_n of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n and_o do_v he_o not_o further_o testify_v that_o the_o donatist_n do_v no_o more_o agree_v to_o the_o emperor_n ibidem_fw-la judgement_n then_o to_o the_o former_a the_o emperor_n say_v he_o be_v choose_v judge_n 162._o the_o emperor_n judge_v be_v despise_v with_o what_o ingenuity_n then_o can_v calvin_n and_o 7._o his_o disciple_n say_v that_o this_o history_n be_v enough_o to_o end_v the_o question_n and_o full_o to_o clear_v the_o business_n for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o these_o proceed_n not_o have_v be_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o catholic_a party_n and_o according_a to_o 8._o the_o ordinary_a form_n of_o the_o church_n but_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o heretical_a party_n and_o by_o extraordinary_a way_n and_o against_o which_o the_o emperor_n himself_o protest_v for_o injustice_n for_o fury_n for_o impiety_n and_o oblige_v himself_o to_o ask_v the_o prelate_n pardon_n and_o have_v final_o be_v reject_v and_o disavow_v even_o by_o those_o that_o have_v solicit_v for_o they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v snatch_v it_o out_o of_o the_o emperor_n hand_n there_o be_v no_o more_o justice_n in_o make_v use_n of_o they_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o ordinary_a law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o propound_v they_o for_o copy_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o ancient_a form_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n then_o to_o allege_v against_o the_o present_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n the_o audience_n and_o conference_n that_o king_n charles_n the_o nine_o grant_v at_o poissy_n to_o the_o protestant_n of_o his_o kingdom_n after_o the_o council_n of_o sens_n and_o trent_n to_o the_o end_n to_o prove_v to_o bring_v they_o back_o to_o the_o church_n by_o way_n of_o mildness_n and_o accommodation_n and_o to_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o conference_n of_o poissy_n be_v give_v above_o the_o counsel_n of_o sens_n and_o trent_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n concern_v the_o beyond_o sea_n appeal_v chapt_n v._o the_o fowrth_a instance_n of_o calvin_n be_v that_o in_o the_o milevitan_a council_n hold_v under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o the_o bishop_n
of_o africa_n forbid_v the_o clerk_n of_o their_o province_n the_o appeal_n beyond_o sea_n in_o the_o milevitan_n coweell_o say_v calvin_n where_o saint_n augustine_n assist_v 7._o those_o that_o shall_v appeal_v beyond_o sea_n be_v excommunicate_v it_o be_v true_a but_o to_o 22._o this_o instance_n we_o bring_v two_o sharp_a and_o decisive_a answer_n the_o first_o that_o the_o canon_n be_v mean_v but_o of_o appeal_n in_o minor_a and_o personal_a cause_n as_o be_v cause_n as_o well_o pecuniary_a as_o moral_a that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o well_o civil_a as_o criminal_a of_o clerk_n and_o not_o in_o mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o common_a and_o eclesiasticall_a cause_n as_o be_v cause_n of_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n or_o of_o the_o universal_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o second_o that_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o the_o appeal_v of_o priest_n deacons_n and_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n and_o not_o of_o the_o appeal_v of_o the_o clerk_n of_o superior_a order_n that_o be_v to_o sale_n of_o bishop_n for_o the_o clear_n then_o of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o doubt_n which_o be_v that_o the_o canon_n be_v mean_v but_o of_o appeal_v in_o minor_a cause_n it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o the_o eccelesiastical_a tribunal_n do_v then_o examine_v not_o only_o the_o spiritual_a and_o religious_a cause_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o all_o the_o temporal_a and_o secular_a cause_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n as_o well_o civil_a as_o criminal_a this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o ordain_v that_o if_o any_o one_o do_v begin_v a_o particular_a process_n against_o a_o bishop_n as_o have_v 6._o receive_v loss_n or_o injury_n from_o he_o the_o person_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o accuser_n shall_v not_o be_v examine_v but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a crime_n the_o accuser_n person_n shall_v be_v examine_v and_o first_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o heretic_n to_o accuse_v orthodox_n bishop_n for_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o by_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n celebrate_v ninteen_o year_n before_o the_o milevitan_a council_n which_o decree_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 7._o clerk_n that_o leave_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n will_v purge_v himself_o in_o the_o public_a judgement_n although_o the_o sentence_n be_v to_o his_o advantage_n if_o it_o be_v in_o a_o criminal_a judgement_n he_o shall_v loose_v his_o degree_n and_o if_o it_o be_v in_o civil_a judgement_n he_o shall_v loose_v that_o which_o have_v be_v adjudge_v to_o he_o and_o by_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n 1._o the_o second_o who_o to_o advance_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o nestorius_n impose_v truce_n to_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n of_o all_o pecuniary_a and_o criminal_a cause_n and_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v handle_v no_o cause_n neither_o ecclesiastical_a nor_o other_o till_o that_o of_o faith_n be_v determine_v now_o these_o different_a sort_n of_o cause_n be_v not_o repute_v to_o be_v all_o of_o a_o weight_n but_o the_o one_o to_o wit_n those_o that_o regard_n faith_n or_o the_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v mayor_n cause_n maior_fw-la business_n maior_fw-la affair_n and_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n those_o that_o regard_v the_o particular_a person_n of_o clergy_n man_n and_o consist_v in_o accusation_n of_o manner_n or_o pursuit_n of_o pecuniary_a interest_n be_v call_v minor_a cause_n minor_a business_n and_o minor_a affair_n and_o that_o by_o a_o distinction_n take_v from_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o 〈◊〉_d that_o jethro_n advise_v moses_n to_o suffer_v the_o minor_a cause_n of_o the_o israelite_n to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o inferior_a judge_n and_o to_o reserve_v to_o himself_o only_o 18._o the_o mayor_n cause_n those_o that_o shall_v be_v mayor_n cause_n say_v he_o let_v they_o bring_v to_o thou_o but_o let_v themselves_o judge_v the_o minor_a cause_n the_o use_n of_o this_o distinction_n may_v be_v see_v in_o a_o thousand_o place_n of_o antiquity_n it_o appear_v in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n innocent_a under_o who_o the_o milevitan_a council_n 〈◊〉_d be_v hold_v to_o uictricius_fw-la if_o they_o be_v mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v in_o question_n after_o the_o episcopal_a judgement_n let_v they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a as_o the_o synod_n and_o ancient_a custom_n vetus_fw-la and_o not_o beata_fw-la ordain_v which_o epistle_n i_o the_o rather_o allege_v because_o it_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o tours_n a_o thousand_o and_o seven_o hundred_o year_n ago_o it_o appear_v 21_o in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n saint_n leo_n the_o first_o to_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o thesalonica_n his_o vicar_n in_o macedonia_n and_o other_o province_n 〈◊〉_d constantinople_n if_o any_o mayor_n cause_n be_v move_v for_o which_o it_o may_v be_v reasonable_a 82_o and_o necessary_a to_o call_v a_o episcopal_a assembly_n let_v it_o suffice_v thou_o to_o cause_v two_o bishop_n to_o come_v to_o thou_o out_o of_o every_o province_n such_o as_o the_o metropolitan_o will_v choose_v and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o if_o their_o judgement_n be_v find_v differ_v from_o thy_o opinion_n let_v the_o act_n be_v send_v to_o we_o with_o authentical_a testimony_n that_o all_o dissension_n take_v away_o a_o sentence_n please_v to_o god_n may_v be_v decree_v it_o appear_v 2._o in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a to_o john_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n if_o any_o cause_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o crime_n or_o of_o pecuniary_a matter_n be_v object_v against_o our_o colleague_n adrian_n bishop_n of_o thebes_n let_v it_o be_v judge_v if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o light_a importance_n by_o our_o nuncios_fw-la which_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o royal_a city_n that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o constantinople_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o weight_n let_v it_o be_v refer_v hither_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o final_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o capitularie_n of_o 287._o our_o great_a emperor_n charlemagne_n where_o the_o word_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o be_v repeat_v by_o form_n of_o law_n in_o these_o word_n if_o they_o be_v mayor_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a as_o the_o synod_n and_o the_o bless_a or_o to_o read_v better_o the_o ancient_a custom_n ordain_v and_o from_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n write_v a_o little_a after_o that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o charles_n the_o bald_a to_o pope_n 3._o nicholas_n the_o first_o make_v he_o this_o protestation_n let_v it_o not_o please_v god_n that_o we_o shall_v so_o despise_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o first_o and_o sovereign_a sea_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n as_o to_o weary_a your_o sovereign_a authority_n with_o all_o the_o controversy_n and_o with_o all_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o of_o the_o superior_a as_o inferior_a order_n which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o innocent_a and_o of_o the_o other_o pope_n of_o the_o holy_a sea_n of_o rome_n command_v to_o be_v determine_v in_o their_o province_n and_o again_o we_o metropolitan_n travailinge_v in_o our_o provincial_a counsel_n decide_v carnal_a controversy_n and_o have_v care_n after_o judgement_n to_o refer_v the_o mayor_n cause_n and_o of_o mayor_n person_n to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o sovereign_n sea_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v alsoe_o that_o gerson_n declaim_v long_o time_n after_o against_o the_o disorder_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n during_o the_o schism_n of_o john_n the_o twenty_o three_o cry_v out_o if_o the_o judgement_n of_o minor_a cause_n be_v reprove_v in_o 8._o moses_n by_o jethro_n how_o will_v it_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o his_o court_n of_o so_o many_o continual_a and_o importune_a employment_n of_o most_o profane_a and_o unworthy_a process_n the_o first_o solution_n then_o that_o we_o bring_v to_o the_o prohibition_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n make_v to_o their_o clerk_n from_o appeal_n beyond_o sea_n be_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v intend_v not_o of_o appeal_n in_o mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o cause_n that_o concern_v faith_n or_o the_o universal_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o appeal_n in_o minor_a cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o cause_n moral_a or_o pecuniary_a of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o this_o solution_n beside_o the_o place_n already_o allege_v we_o draw_v first_o from_o the_o text_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o say_v preciselie_o in_o the_o cause_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o particular_a cause_n
the_o first_o protestant_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d publish_v and_o republish_v many_o time_n this_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o a_o storehouse_n repute_v by_o they_o very_o powerful_a to_o resist_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a but_o also_o have_v vomit_v &_o disgorge_v with_o so_o much_o impudence_n the_o venom_n of_o their_o invective_n against_o the_o pope_n under_o the_o which_o this_o matter_n have_v be_v treat_v of_o as_o the_o heaven_n abhor_v it_o call_v 1._o pope_n boniface_n who_o saint_n augus_n call_v reverend_a pope_n boniface_n &_o to_o who_o he_o dedicate_v one_o of_o his_o principal_a book_n and_o who_o prosper_n qualify_v pope_n of_o holy_a memory_n instead_o of_o boniface_n maleface_n and_o pope_n celestine_n collat._n who_o the_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n call_v new_a s._n peter_n in_o the_o 3._o steed_n of_o celestine_n infernal_n and_o yet_o since_o these_o two_o last_o year_n their_o successor_n dissemble_v the_o learned_a answer_n of_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n bellarmine_n and_o barronius_n have_v cause_v the_o same_o council_n to_o be_v twice_o new_o print_v once_o in_o france_n &_o a_o other_o time_n in_o germany_n as_o a_o insoluble_a piece_n against_o the_o pope_n authotity_n and_o therefore_o since_o the_o affairedeserue_v to_o be_v treat_v with_o much_o diligence_n and_o read_v with_o much_o attention_n it_o belong_v to_o i_o to_o contribute_v the_o one_o and_o to_o the_o reader_n to_o the_o lend_v the_o other_o to_o this_o instance_n then_o before_o i_o undertake_v to_o search_v this_o history_n to_o the_o bottomb_n i_o will_v bring_v eight_o observation_n in_o form_n of_o preseruative_n and_o antidote_n the_o first_o observation_n shall_v be_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o aim_n and_o success_n of_o this_o council_n be_v nothing_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o it_o to_o trouble_v &_o shake_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o regard_n of_o appeal_v for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v hold_v by_o six_o hundred_o thirty_o six_o bishop_n thirty_o year_n after_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o which_o be_v more_o famous_a &_o authentical_a than_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o be_v a_o general_a council_n &_o one_o of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n whereas_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n what_o but_o a_o national_n council_n the_o appeal_v of_o cause_n which_o concern_v either_o faith_n or_o the_o person_n of_o bishop_n continue_v to_o go_v to_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o form_n that_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o epistle_n of_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o annex_v to_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n as_o well_o greek_n as_o latin_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o this_o which_o say_v we_o onght_n to_o preserve_v 〈◊〉_d in_o our_o day_n the_o dignity_n of_o particular_a reverence_n to_o the_o bless_a apoctle_a péter_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o holy_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o antiquity_n have_v grant_v the_o priesthood_n 〈◊〉_d all_o may_v have_v place_n to_o judge_v of_o faith_n and_o of_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n for_o for_o this_o cause_n 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o counsel_n flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v chalc._n 〈◊〉_d to_o he_o in_o the_o controversy_n which_o be_v move_v concern_v faith_n the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n annex_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o same_o council_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o this_o which_o cry_v out_o the_o synod_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o authority_n 11_o of_o the_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n eternal_a in_o glory_n rome_n examine_v matter_n of_o faith_n exact_o and_o establish_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n give_v to_o flavianus_n the_o reward_n of_o his_o past_a life_n and_o the_o palm_n of_o a_o glorious_a death_n a_o testimony_n of_o this_o be_v the_o petition_n of_o appeal_n send_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o leon._n 〈◊〉_d a_o city_n confine_v upon_o persia_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n which_o say_v i_o attend_v sentence_n of_o your_o apostolic_a throne_n and_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n to_o succour_v i_o appeal_n to_o your_o right_n and_o just_a judgement_n a_o testimony_n 1._o of_o this_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o director_n of_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v let_v the_o most_o reverend_a bishop_n theodoret_n come_v in_o that_o he_o may_v partake_v of_o the_o council_n because_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n leo_n have_v restore_v his_o bishopric_n to_o he_o and_o that_o the_o most_o sacred_a and_o religious_a emperor_n have_v ordain_v that_o he_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n and_o final_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o same_o council_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o this_o which_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n approve_v the_o judgement_n of_o appeal_n that_o he_o have_v give_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o eutyches_n abbot_n of_o constantinople_n and_o condemn_v dioscorus_n and_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n for_o presume_v to_o meddle_v with_o it_o he_o have_v restore_v to_o eutyches_n the_o dignity_n whereof_o he_o be_v deprive_v by_o your_o holiness_n &c_n &c_n and_o after_o all_o this_o he_o have_v leon._n 〈◊〉_d his_o felony_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o vine_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o your_o apostolic_a holiness_n 2._o the_o second_o observation_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o controversy_n of_o appeal_n which_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v not_o of_o appeal_n in_o mayor_n and_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o cause_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o of_o discipline_n or_o of_o the_o custom_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o appeal_n in_o minor_a and_o personal_a cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o secular_a and_o temporal_a cause_n of_o person_n constitute_v in_o order_n as_o cause_n of_o adultery_n drunkenness_n battery_n theft_n debt_n and_o other_o cause_n as_o well_o moral_a as_o pecuniary_a and_o as_o well_o civil_a as_o criminal_a of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n which_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n and_o the_o law_n of_o emperor_n submit_v to_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o quality_n of_o apiarius_n his_o cause_n for_o which_o this_o 138._o question_n be_v move_v which_o be_v a_o moral_a cause_n and_o wherein_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o infamous_a crime_n handle_v and_o not_o a_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o by_o the_o remonstrance_n which_o the_o african_n make_v to_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d council_n that_o the_o beyond-sea_o judgment_n can_v not_o be_v assure_v for_o the_o difficulty_n of_o cause_v witness_n to_o pass_v out_o of_o africa_n into_o europe_n which_o often_o because_o of_o the_o weakness_n either_o of_o age_n or_o sex_n can_v not_o endure_v sea_n voyage_n and_o by_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n 93._o innocent_a the_o first_o which_o s._n augustine_n call_v worthy_a of_o the_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d wherein_o these_o word_n be_v contain_v and_o principal_o whensoever_o 〈◊〉_d of_o faith_n be_v handle_v i_o conceive_v that_o all_o our_o brethren_n and_o colleague_n ought_v not_o 〈◊〉_d they_o but_o to_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o author_n of_o their_o name_n and_o dignity_n and_o final_o by_o the_o very_a proceed_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthge_n hold_v under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n for_o not_o only_o the_o father_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n where_o the_o prohibition_n be_v make_v to_o inferior_a clerk_n not_o to_o appeal_v beyond_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d 22._o the_o final_a judgement_n of_o celestius_fw-la already_o hear_v and_o judge_v for_o a_o cause_n of_o faith_n in_o africa_n to_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o with_o this_o acknowledgement_n 106._o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n or_o to_o use_v their_o own_o own_o 92_o term_n draw_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o even_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o be_v dead_a before_o he_o can_v hear_v celestius_fw-la in_o person_n and_o have_v only_o condemn_v he_o in_o general_a upon_o the_o report_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n the_o african_a bishop_n reassembled_a in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n wherein_o the_o question_n of_o apiarius_n and_o the_o controversy_n of_o episcopal_a appeal_n begin_v cause_v their_o act_n concern_v celestius_fw-la to_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n and_o procure_v they_o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o pope_n zosimus_n successor_n to_o innocent_a the_o reverend_a bope_n zosimus_n say_v s._n augustine_n press_v celestius_fw-la to_o condemn_v those_o thing_n that_o the_o deacon_n paulinus_n
be_v approve_v in_o these_o word_n as_o for_o the_o tome_fw-mi of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n we_o receive_v it_o and_o also_o 5._o those_o that_o at_o antioch_n have_v confess_v one_o deity_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v in_o the_o dedication_n and_o under_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n that_o they_o speak_v as_o it_o appear_v as_o well_o because_o they_o set_v it_o after_o the_o tome_fw-mi of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n which_o be_v hold_v long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o dedication_n as_o because_o they_o say_v that_o this_o council_n confess_v one_o and_o the_o same_o deity_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o sonn_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereas_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o dedication_n call_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o unity_n of_o concord_n but_o of_o a_o other_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o jovian_a which_o conform_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o 25._o by_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n assemble_v the_o year_n after_o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o by_o socrates_n who_o report_v the_o whole_a history_n and_o by_o s._n gregory_n of_o nisea_n and_o by_o cassianus_n and_o many_o other_o to_o think_v also_o to_o escape_v by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v from_o this_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n jovian_a that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v take_v that_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n in_o our_o hand_n be_v a_o thing_n whole_o vain_a for_o these_o very_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n that_o we_o have_v be_v in_o use_n among_o the_o arrian_n and_o demy-arrians_a from_o before_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o constantius_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o reproach_n that_o sabinus_n the_o macedonian_a make_v to_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o against_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n he_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n to_o appeal_v to_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n it_o be_v yet_o more_o vain_a to_o say_v that_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la yuon_n gratian_n and_o other_o latin_a canonist_n have_v insert_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o dedication_n among_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n receive_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n jnnocent_a the_o first_o and_o of_o saint_n chrisostome_n the_o latin_a church_n receive_v they_o not_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n jnnocent_a to_o the_o constantinopolitan_o about_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v produce_v against_o saint_n chrisostome_n of_o which_o sozomene_n report_v these_o word_n above_o cite_v such_o canon_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n for_o we_o must_v not_o patch_v the_o invention_n of_o heretic_n with_o the_o canon_n of_o catholic_n and_o whereas_o afterward_o some_o latin_a collector_n have_v insert_v they_o into_o their_o copy_n it_o be_v in_o part_n because_o they_o be_v deceive_v about_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n not_o consider_v that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v there_o approve_v be_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n jovian_a and_o in_o part_n because_o in_o those_o canon_n there_o be_v nothing_o either_o against_o faith_n nor_o against_o the_o great_a part_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n contrariwise_o in_o regard_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n there_o be_v many_o good_a thing_n and_o which_o have_v be_v take_v from_o the_o custom_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o former_a church_n and_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o canon_n that_o hurt_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o church_n it_o have_v be_v correct_v and_o medicine_v by_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o above_o all_o it_o be_v a_o impertinent_a thing_n to_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n ordain_v by_o the_o first_o of_o their_o canon_n to_o observe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nicaea_n concern_v the_o day_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o pasch_fw-mi and_o so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o arrian_n for_o this_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v hold_v as_o eusebius_n testify_v for_o two_o cause_n the_o one_o to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o other_o to_o reconcile_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o pasch_fw-mi the_o arrian_n do_v embrace_v joint_o with_o the_o catholic_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n concern_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o pasch_fw-mi &_o reject_v only_o that_o of_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o minister_n of_o germany_n in_o the_o last_o greek_a impression_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n that_o they_o have_v make_v at_o wittenberg_n do_v justly_o note_v that_o although_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n approve_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n touch_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o pasch_fw-mi nevertheless_o that_o hinder_v it_o not_o from_o be_v arrian_n for_o behold_v what_o they_o say_v upon_o the_o first_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o antioch_n these_o antiochian_a father_n excomcommunicate_v arianos_fw-la and_o depose_v those_o that_o sin_v in_o indifferent_a thing_n so_o speak_v the_o minister_n ignorantlie_o follow_v socrates_n his_o error_n and_o the_o other_o novatian_n who_o put_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n concern_v the_o observation_n of_o pasch_fw-mi among_o indifferent_a thing_n and_o excommunicate_v not_o nor_o depose_v those_o that_o have_v presume_v to_o reverse_v the_o pious_a decree_n and_o ground_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n concern_v the_o eternal_a and_o consubstantial_a divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o the_o arrian_n will_v not_o condemn_v the_o arrian_n the_o three_o objection_n that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n make_v against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o greek_a code_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n compile_v and_o authorise_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n which_o objection_n as_o it_o contain_v two_o head_n the_o one_o that_o justinian_n compile_v and_o authorise_v a_o code_n of_o canon_n and_o the_o other_o that_o in_o this_o code_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o comprehend_v so_o they_o accompany_v it_o with_o two_o proof_n for_o that_o the_o first_o head_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n compile_v and_o authorise_v a_o code_n of_o canon_n contain_v the_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o produce_v the_o hundred_o thirtith_n one_o new_a constitution_n of_o justinian_n where_o he_o use_v these_o word_n we_o decree_v that_o the_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n which_o have_v be_v constitute_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o four_o holy_a counsel_n shall_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o a_o law_n and_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o second_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o in_o the_o code_n compile_v and_o authorise_v by_o justinian_n they_o allege_v the_o epistle_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la timefellowe_n with_o justinian_n who_o say_v that_o to_o the_o translation_n that_o he_o have_v make_v of_o the_o greek_a code_n he_o have_v add_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o sardica_n and_o africa_n which_o have_v be_v frame_v in_o latin_a to_o the_o first_o proof_n than_o we_o auswere_v that_o it_o be_v a_o proof_n weave_v with_o the_o thread_n of_o a_o cobwebb_n for_o juctinian_n speak_v not_o there_o of_o any_o volume_n of_o canon_n confirm_v by_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n and_o intend_v not_o to_o say_v that_o he_o authorise_v aswell_o the_o canon_n that_o be_v actual_o contain_v in_o the_o first_o counsel_n as_o those_o which_o be_v there_o contain_v but_o relativelie_o that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o confirmation_n which_o be_v there_o make_v in_o gross_a of_o the_o counsel_n where_o they_o be_v contain_v but_o that_o he_o authorise_v and_o erect_v into_o the_o title_n of_o a_o temporal_a law_n all_o the_o canon_n actuallie_o contain_v in_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n aswell_o those_o that_o be_v there_o first_o compose_v as_o those_o that_o have_v be_v before_o observe_v by_o a_o unwritten_a tradition_n have_v be_v there_o confirm_v and_o reduce_v into_o writing_n for_o so_o signify_v there_o this_o alternative_a constitute_v or_o confirm_v which_o be_v set_v
of_o the_o church_n his_o mother_n the_o curse_a and_o unclean_a bird_n shall_v peck_v it_o out_o of_o the_o exclusion_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n chapt_n vii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o roman_a church_n then_o the_o greek_a the_o antiochian_a the_o egyptian_a the_o abyssine_n the_o musco_n vite_o and_o many_o other_o be_v member_n more_o excellent_a in_o truth_n in_o doctrine_n and_o sincerity_n of_o faith_n the_o one_o than_o the_o other_o but_o yet_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n whereof_o the_o masseand_a contexture_n as_o for_o external_a form_n be_v already_o long_o ago_o dissolve_v and_o disassemble_v the_o reply_n and_o what_o shall_v then_o become_v of_o that_o his_o majesty_n late_o say_v that_o the_o specifical_a form_n and_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v truth_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o communion_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n and_o between_o christ_n and_o belial_n and_o that_o he_o that_o leave_v christ_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o leave_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o truth_n if_o not_o only_o the_o greek_n antiochian_o and_o muscovite_n 3_o who_o be_v heretic_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o processio_fw-la of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n do_v with_o we_o hold_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n &_o which_o in_o this_o quality_n be_v insert_v into_o athanasius_n his_o creed_n and_o into_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n as_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o western_a church_n which_o his_o majesty_n profess_v to_o embrace_v but_o also_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n which_o follow_v the_o sect_n of_o eutyches_n anathematise_v and_o cast_v out_o leo._n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n near_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ag_v oeand_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o whereof_o s._n paul_n say_v 3._o none_o can_v lay_v 〈◊〉_d other_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n be_v church_n and_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o lacedaemonian_a answer_v a_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o delphos_n who_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o woman_n be_v not_o deliver_v of_o child_n in_o their_o isle_n but_o travel_v out_o of_o it_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o bed_n and_o that_o their_o dead_a be_v not_o bury_v there_o but_o that_o they_o be_v carry_v forth_o of_o it_o to_o their_o sepulchre_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o your_o country_n say_v he_o if_o you_o be_v neither_o bear_v nor_o bury_v there_o so_o how_o be_v it_o that_o the_o sect_n of_o heretic_n and_o namely_o those_o of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n with_o who_o the_o council_n 12_o of_o chalcedon_n forbid_v we_o to_o communicate_v upon_o pain_n of_o anathema_n and_o of_o who_o saint_n john_n himself_o tell_v we_o if_o any_o one_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v a_o seducer_n and_o antichrist_n and_o again_o if_o any_o one_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n and_o say_v not_o to_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o for_o whosoever_o say_v unto_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o communicate_v in_o his_o wicked_a work_n shall_v obtain_v the_o be_v and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o faith_n of_o the_o spiritual_a country_n of_o the_o faithful_a if_o to_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o to_o breathe_v their_o first_o air_n of_o spiritual_a life_n we_o must_v first_o go_v forth_o of_o their_o society_n and_o if_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n and_o to_o rest_v in_o peace_n after_o death_n we_o must_v first_o renounce_v their_o communion_n god_n say_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o solomon_n thou_o be_v whole_o fair_a and_o there_o be_v no_o spott_n in_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o for_o doctrine_n and_o condition_n of_o communion_n and_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o esaie_n none_o incircumcised_a or_o unclean_a shall_v any_o more_o pass_v through_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v none_o that_o public_o profess_v a_o pollute_a or_o impure_a doctrine_n he_o say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o ezechiell_n describinge_v the_o future_a state_n of_o the_o christian_n church_n i_o will_v establish_v a_o alliance_n of_o peace_n 〈◊〉_d with_o my_o sheep_n and_o will_v cause_v the_o evil_a beast_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o cease_v which_o the_o contr_n sibilla_n seem_v to_o have_v express_v in_o these_o word_n repeat_v by_o virgil_n and_o 1._o that_o saint_n augustine_n say_v may_v fit_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n serpent_n shall_v cease_v swell_v up_o with_o th'impure_a blood_n of_o poisonous_a herb_n in_o their_o deceitful_a bud_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v the_o mock_v counsel_n of_o heretic_n which_o saint_n 7._o hierome_n call_v denens_fw-la of_o wilt_fw-ge beast_n &_o who_o doctrine_n he_o call_v the_o wine_n of_o 〈◊〉_d mingle_v witd_a the_o gall_n of_o asp_n be_v church_n &_o part_n of_o the_o church_n or_o how_o shall_v the_o church_n to_o who_o god_n have_v spiritual_o give_v the_o same_o prerogative_n thar_z the_o historian_n attribute_v corporal_o to_o the_o isle_n of_o crete_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o can_v suffer_v no_o venomous_a beast_n in_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v no_o 58._o dogmatize_v heretic_n communicate_v her_o name_n and_o society_n with_o the_o venomous_a sect_n of_o hetetick_n he_o say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o osea_n i_o will_v espouse_v 〈◊〉_d in_o faith_n and_o by_o that_o of_o saint_n paul_n the_o edification_n of_o god_n be_v in_o faith_n and_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n himself_o protest_v that_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v faith_n and_o how_o then_o can_v the_o sect_n not_o only_o of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n but_o of_o all_o the_o heretic_n which_o make_v as_o say_v s._n paul_n a_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n be_v church_n and_o in_o the_o church_n he_o say_v by_o his_o own_o mouth_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o have_v victory_n over_o the_o church_n and_o s._n epiphanius_n and_o s._n hierome_n ibid._n anacor_fw-la interpret_v those_o gate_n of_o hell_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o heretical_a society_n into_o who_o communion_n we_o can_v enter_v without_o yield_v ourselves_o tributary_n to_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v 16._o be_v church_n and_o part_n of_o the_o church_n for_o though_o vice_n in_o manner_n belong_v also_o to_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n nevertheless_o because_o the_o vice_n be_v but_o in_o the_o person_n of_o those_o that_o commit_v they_o and_o not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o church_n exact_v not_o from_o any_o of_o her_o member_n the_o condition_n of_o be_v vicious_a to_o receive_v they_o into_o her_o communion_n they_o shall_v but_o conquer_v those_o particular_a person_n that_o be_v spot_v therewith_o and_o not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o which_o god_n have_v say_v by_o the_o prophet_n jerusalem_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o city_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o sanctify_a hill_n and_o by_o a_o other_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n shall_v no_o more_o from_o 43._o 〈◊〉_d forward_o be_v foil_v whereas_o heresy_n infect_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o society_n where_o it_o remain_v none_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o any_o heretical_a society_n without_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o the_o doctrine_n where_o of_o she_o make_v profession_n and_o under_o who_o condition_n she_o receave_v man_n into_o her_o communion_n and_o by_o consequent_a make_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n victorious_a over_o the_o congregation_n wherein_o she_o remain_v he_o command_v we_o to_o hold_v those_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n for_o heathen_n and_o publican_n he_o forbid_v we_o then_o from_o account_v the_o society_n of_o heŕetick_n which_o hear_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o church_n and_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o society_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o heathen_n he_o say_v to_o we_o that_o whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o he_o scatters_z the_o heretic_n then_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o he_o gather_v not_o but_o scatteŕ_n and_o so_o their_o assembly_n be_v no_o more_o church_n but_o dispertion_n he_o cry_v out_o to_o we_o by_o the_o organ_n of_o saint_n paul_n that_o whosoever_o declare_v against_o what_o we_o have_v receive_v shall_v be_v a_o anathema_n he_o will_v then_o that_o heretic_n shall_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o church_n for_o anathema_n and_o consequent_o exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n both_o internal_a and_o external_a of_o the_o church_n he_o teach_v we_o by_o the_o same_o oracle_n that_o the_o church_n be_v our_o mother_n
without_o he_o in_o counsel_n and_o then_o when_o the_o condition_n requisite_a for_o the_o liberty_n of_o a_o council_n shall_v be_v resolve_v upon_o what_o fruit_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v before_o it_o be_v assemble_v that_o all_o that_o be_v decree_v there_o must_v be_v hold_v for_o infallible_a for_o if_o after_o such_o a_o council_n shall_v have_v be_v celebrate_v it_o rest_v still_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n to_o judge_v whether_o the_o council_n shall_v have_v judge_v conformablie_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o know_v not_o that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o a_o council_n but_o to_o submit_v a_o council_n to_o their_o judgement_n and_o so_o to_o 〈◊〉_d thing_n no_o further_o advance_v after_o the_o celebration_n of_o a_o council_n than_o before_o now_o how_o be_v it_o that_o those_o who_o hold_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v err_v shall_v hold_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v be_v infallible_a which_o have_v no_o authority_n of_o infallibillitie_n but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o represent_v the_o universal_a society_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n where_o of_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n and_o organ_n and_o of_o all_o the_o pastor_n where_o of_o it_o bear_v with_o it_o the_o tacit_n deputation_n and_o how_o can_v those_o hold_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v be_v infallible_a &_o can_v err_v that_o hold_v that_o indeed_o she_o have_v err_v and_o that_o after_o so_o many_o age_n there_o be_v no_o visible_a part_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v not_o be_v plunge_v in_o a_o pit_n of_o error_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o contrary_a to_o faith_n but_o whether_o his_o majesty_n offer_n aught_o to_o be_v examine_v in_o a_o formal_a council_n or_o in_o a_o verbal_a conference_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o assist_v at_o it_o and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o english_a church_n in_o point_n contest_v between_o we_o and_o she_o have_v neither_o succession_n nor_o similitude_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o counsel_n of_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o disputation_n to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n chap._n xxv_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v the_o english_a church_n be_v ready_a to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o her_o faith_n and_o to_o prove_v by_o effect_n that_o the_o design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o reformation_n undertake_v in_o this_o province_n have_v not_o be_v to_o build_v any_o new_a church_n as_o the_o ignorant_a and_o malicious_a have_v slander_v she_o but_o to_o re-establish_a she_o that_o be_v fall_v in_o the_o best_a manner_n that_o may_v be_v the_o reply_n it_o be_v not_o the_o question_n in_o the_o proceed_n that_o we_o have_v frame_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o aim_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o england_n have_v be_v to_o make_v a_o new_a church_n or_o to_o restore_v that_o which_o be_v fall_v and_o to_o set_v it_o up_o again_o in_o a_o better_a form_n although_o the_o subsequent_a word_n of_o his_o majesty_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o action_n of_o the_o english_a church_n have_v be_v a_o return_n to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n faith_n and_o a_o converfion_n to_o christ_n the_o only_o master_n of_o the_o church_n testify_v that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o new_a refection_n and_o re-edification_n of_o the_o church_n for_n no_o it_o have_v be_v a_o new_a refection_n and_o re-edification_n of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o society_n in_o who_o faith_n there_o be_v a_o aversion_n from_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a belief_n can_v possess_v the_o be_v and_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n but_o in_o sum_n howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o that_o that_o be_v the_o question_n in_o the_o proceed_n that_o we_o have_v frame_v but_o only_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o the_o english_a portion_n separate_v itself_o from_o she_o have_v so_o degenerate_v from_o the_o ancient_a carholicke_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n in_o thing_n import_v the_o ruin_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o she_o be_v no_o more_o the_o same_o church_n as_o she_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o age_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o necessary_a to_o obtain_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a and_o the_o participation_n of_o salvation_n to_o communicate_v with_o she_o but_o contrariwise_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o and_o not_o to_o commnnicate_v with_o she_o it_o be_v that_o that_o be_v the_o question_n it_o be_v that_o whereabout_o we_o must_v combat_v and_o to_o show_v some_o condition_n some_o doctrine_n or_o custom_n hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o this_o day_n that_o may_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o which_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o order_n in_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o reformation_n before_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o deformation_n chap._n xxvi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n now_o they_o have_v judge_v among_o the_o best_a that_o which_o have_v bane_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o breed_a church_n and_o which_o have_v be_v in_o practice_n in_o the_o age_n near_o they_o the_o reply_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o question_n of_o what_o they_o have_v judge_v but_o of_o the_o change_n that_o be_v happen_v between_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o the_o morderne_a and_o of_o the_o importance_n of_o this_o change_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o there_o be_v happen_v any_o change_n between_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n &_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o last_o age_n of_o such_o importance_n as_o for_o that_o people_n may_v be_v permit_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o her_o communion_n which_o can_v be_v if_o some_o thing_n have_v not_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o add_v thereto_o which_o be_v rèpugnant_a to_o salvation_n for_o if_o the_o modern_a catholic_a church_n be_v yet_o the_o same_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n whatsoever_o reformation_n they_o have_v pretend_v to_o make_v have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o she_o they_o can_v possess_v the_o title_n of_o 62._o catholic_a whereof_o the_o question_n be_v nor_o obtain_v salvation_n for_o as_o much_o as_o say_v s._n ireneus_n no_o reformation_n can_v be_v make_v that_o be_v of_o such_o importance_n as_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n be_v 〈◊〉_d beside_o it_o must_v be_v first_o determine_v whether_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v deform_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n before_o the_o english_a church_n can_v be_v think_v to_o be_v reform_v in_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o for_o the_o english_a church_n can_v not_o separate_v herself_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n whereunto_o before_o she_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n if_o first_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o she_o by_o proof_n necessatie_fw-mi and_o demonstrative_a that_o salvation_n can_v not_o be_v obtain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v she_o can_v not_o proceed_v to_o reform_v herself_o in_o separate_v herself_o from_o her_o whole_a till_o it_o must_v first_o appear_v to_o she_o that_o the_o whole_a from_o whence_o she_o separate_v herself_o be_v deform_v and_o with_o a_o deformation_n incompatible_a with_o salvation_n now_o that_o can_v not_o appear_v that_o between_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n which_o we_o on_o both_o side_n grant_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o whereof_o there_o remain_v to_o we_o monument_n sufficient_a to_o instruct_v we_o of_o the_o integrity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o of_o her_o sacrament_n and_o ceremony_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o this_o time_n there_o have_v happen_v opposition_n in_o matter_n import_v gain_n or_o loss_n of_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o that_o time_n that_o we_o must_v confront_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o time_n and_o not_o leave_v the_o age_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n of_o who_o estate_n we_o have_v more_o light_n and_o monument_n then_o of_o the_o precede_a age_n to_o go_v up_o to_o those_o of_o who_o estate_n we_o 〈◊〉_d recourse_n not_o to_o find_v therein_o more_o conformity_n but_o to_o find_v therein_o less_o instruction_n for_o as_o for_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n
in_o as_o high_a fame_n as_o be_v the_o first_o inventour_n of_o the_o same_o nor_o can_v your_o work_n be_v any_o whit_n disgrace_v by_o those_o who_o think_v it_o do_v with_o too_o much_o 〈◊〉_d for_o have_v it_o be_v in_o michael_n angel_n power_n to_o perfect_v his_o great_a judgement_n in_o one_o hour_n he_o who_o for_o that_o shall_v value_n it_o the_o less_o his_o own_o weak_a judgement_n will_v therein_o express_v and_o though_o we_o in_o a_o common_a proverb_n faith_n that_o rome_n be_v not_o build_v all_o up_o in_o one_o day_n yet_o can_v we_o see_v a_o city_n great_a as_o rome_n in_o all_o her_o 〈◊〉_d in_o one_o minute_n come_v to_o such_o perfection_n we_o may_v more_o express_v our_o wonder_n and_o not_o make_v the_o glory_n less_o so_o i_o conclude_v with_o modest_a truth_n and_o dare_v all_o their_o free_a censure_n who_o can_v but_o compare_v and_o whosoever_o shall_v try_v may_v spend_v his_o age_n ere_o in_o your_o whole_a work_n he_o shall_v mend_v one_o page_n a_o table_n of_o the_o title_n and_o summary_n of_o the_o chapter_n contain_v in_o these_o four_o first_o book_n of_o the_o reply_n to_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n of_o great_a britain_n the_o first_o book_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n cathòlicke_fw-mi fol._n 13._o ii_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 17_o iii_o of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n 21_o iu._n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n 23_o v._o of_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 25_o vi_o from_o what_o place_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v 32_o vii_o of_o the_o example_n which_o we_o have_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n 35_o viii_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o what_o union_n it_o consist_v 36_o ix_o of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o predestinate_a and_o by_o way_n of_o adiunction_n of_o the_o visibilitie_n or_o invisibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n 39_o x._o of_o the_o unity_n of_o eternal_a faith_n 48_o xi_o of_o other_o invisible_a union_n 51_o xii_o of_o the_o knowledge_n that_o the_o predestinate_a have_v of_o their_o predestination_n 52_o xiii_o of_o the_o inequality_n of_o these_o two_o phrase_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o some_o member_n of_o the_o church_n depart_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 55_o fourteen_o how_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n there_o be_v a_o sacred_a war_n 57_o xv._n of_o the_o pretend_a precept_n to_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n 58_o xvi_o of_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o place_n allege_v by_o the_o father_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 68_o xuii_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n 69_o xviii_o of_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n with_o the_o modern_a 70_o xix_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o word_n catholic_n have_v be_v common_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n and_o to_o the_o modern_a 74_o xx_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n 76_o xxi_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o protestant_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n 77_o xxii_o of_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n and_o the_o modern_a 78_o 78_o xxiii_o of_o the_o communion_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n have_v by_o letter_n with_o those_o of_o the_o west_n 79_o xxiv_o of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o s._n clement_n the_o universal_a episcopate_n be_v commit_v to_o bishop_n 80_o xxv_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o other_o bishop_n 81_o xxvi_o of_o form_v letter_n 113_o xxvii_o of_o pretend_a excommunication_n attempt_v against_o the_o pope_n 116_o the_o second_o book_n chap._n i._o of_o counsel_n 125_o ii_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o counsel_n for_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n 127_o iii_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n 128_o iu._n of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o s._n peter_n 〈◊〉_d at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n 137_o v._o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o patriarch_n 147_o vi_o of_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o word_n church_n suburbicarie_n make_v by_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 161_o vii_o of_o the_o claim_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 178_o viii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 204_o ix_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 217_o x._o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 219_o xi_o of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 220_o xii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n of_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 222_o xiii_o of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n 229_o fourteen_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n 231_o xv._n of_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n 232_o the_o three_o book_n chap._n i._o of_o appeal_v 244_o ii_o of_o the_o opposition_n of_o saint_n ireneus_fw-la to_o pope_n victor_n 249_o iii_o of_o the_o opposition_n of_o s._n cyprian_n 251_o iu._n of_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a for_o the_o judgement_n of_o cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n 264_o v._o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n concern_v the_o beyond-sea_o appeal_v 273_o vi_o of_o the_o order_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n 281_o vii_o of_o the_o african_a council_n 309_o viii_o whether_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n be_v more_o faithful_a than_o the_o greek_a rapsodie_n 315_o ix_o of_o the_o difficulty_n touch_v the_o epistle_n that_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o african_a council_n 326_o x._o of_o the_o question_n of_o appeal_v treat_v off_o in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n 329_o xi_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 348_o the_o four_o book_n chap._n i._n the_o estate_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n 376_o ii_o what_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v wrought_v to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n 378_o iii_o of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 379_o iu._n of_o the_o indivisibility_n of_o the_o church_n 398_o u._n of_o the_o effect_n that_o division_n bring_v to_o the_o church_n 399_o vi_o of_o the_o pretend_a corruption_n of_o the_o church_n 400_o vii_o of_o the_o exclusion_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 402_o viii_o of_o the_o quality_n wherein_o the_o catholic_a church_n attribute_n to_o herself_o the_o name_n of_o whole_a 410_o ix_o of_o the_o sense_n where_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n 411_o x._o of_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v cut_v off_o the_o rest_n from_o her_o communion_n 413_o xi_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o heretic_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n ibid._n xii_o of_o the_o proceed_n of_o other_o sect_n 414_o xiii_o of_o the_o persuasion_n that_o other_o sect_n pretend_v to_o have_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o church_n by_o scripture_n ibid._n fourteen_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o heretic_n have_v dispute_v the_o word_n catholic_a 415_o xv._n of_o the_o case_n wherein_o the_o communion_n in_o vow_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v be_v impute_v as_o actual_a 417_o xvi_o of_o the_o equivocation_n of_o term_n diminutive_n employ_v for_o negative_n 419_o xvii_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o work_n iutitule_v imperfect_a 422_o xviii_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n 423_o xix_o of_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n in_o the_o thirty_o third_n homely_a upon_o the_o acts._n 427_o xx._n of_o the_o rule_n to_o judge_v admit_v by_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o saint_n augustine_n 429_o xxi_o of_o the_o application_n of_o the_o thesis_n of_o this_o observation_n to_o his_o hipothesis_n 430_o xxii_o of_o the_o personal_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n 431_o xxiii_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n 434_o xxiv_o of_o the_o hold_n of_o a_o council_n 436_o xxv_o of_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o disputation_n to_o
of_o catholic_n to_o the_o donatist_n because_o of_o the_o separation_n of_o communion_n and_o yet_o grant_v it_o to_o those_o from_o who_o the_o donatist_n have_v take_v their_o doctrine_n because_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o communion_n cyprian_n people_n say_v s._n pacian_n have_v never_o be_v call_v otherwise_o then_o catholic_a and_o saint_n vincentius_n lerinensis_n o_o admirable_a change_n the_o author_n of_o oneself_o same_o opinion_n be_v adjudge_v catholic_n and_o the_o 95_o sectary_n heretic_n and_o s._n augustin_n dissension_n and_o division_n say_v he_o make_v you_o heretic_n and_o peace_n and_o unitìe_n make_v catholic_n and_o that_o in_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n this_o article_n be_v insert_v into_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o promotion_n of_o bishop_n whither_o they_o believe_v that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o that_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o cyrtha_n it_o be_v repeat_v by_o s._n augustin_n who_o be_v secretary_n thereto_o in_o thesis_n word_n whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o this_o catholic_a church_n how_o praise-worthie_a soever_o he_o conceive_v his_o life_n 52_o to_o be_v by_o this_o only_o crime_n that_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v remain_v upon_o he_o and_o after_o by_o fulgentius_n in_o these_o word_n believe_v firm_o and_o doubt_v it_o not_o at_o all_o that_o no_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o only_a ghost_n if_o he_o be_v not_o reconcile_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o alm_n soever_o he_o may_v give_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v in_o any_o sort_n be_v save_v that_o i_o say_v be_v 39_o against_o or_o principal_o against_o the_o donatist_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o donatist_n agree_v in_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n with_o the_o catholic_n you_o be_v with_o we_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o baptism_n in_o the_o creed_n and_o 48._o in_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o final_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o and_o yet_o they_o differ_v only_o in_o one_o point_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o as_o s._n augustin_n himself_o who_o principal_o triumph_v over_o this_o heresy_n confess_v can_v not_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o scripture_n this_o say_v he_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o 29._o church_n neither_o thou_o nor_o i_o do_v evidentlie_o read_v and_o in_o the_o first_o book_n against_o 33._o cresconius_n though_o for_o this_o there_o be_v no_o example_n in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o even_o in_o this_o we_o follow_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o have_v please_v the_o universal_a church_n which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n do_v recommend_v and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o ourselves_o say_v he_o dare_v 4._o affirm_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o we_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o unanimous_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o five_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o this_o prescribe_v we_o nothing_o but_o this_o custom_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o cyprian_a aught_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v its_o original_n 23._o from_o their_o tradition_n as_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v with_o good_a right_n believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o have_v not_o be_v write_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o to_o obtain_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a it_o suffice_v not_o to_o hold_v or_o rather_o to_o suppose_v to_o hold_v the_o same_o belief_n that_o the_o father_n hold_v unless_o they_o communicate_v with_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n wherewith_o the_o father_n do_v communicate_v and_o which_o by_o succession_n of_o person_n and_o as_o we_o pretend_v of_o doctrine_n be_v derive_v down_o to_o we_o and_o if_o she_o have_v lose_v any_o thing_n of_o her_o extent_n in_o our_o hemisphere_n she_o recover_v as_o much_o and_o more_o daily_o in_o the_o other_o hemisphere_n that_o these_o prophecy_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 26._o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v 3_o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o mountain_n of_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o mountain_n and_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o all_o the_o high_a 2._o hill_n and_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v up_o to_o she_o 14._o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n must_v be_v preach_v over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o then_o the_o end_n shall_v come_v and_o such_o like_a in_o right_a unit_fw-la whereof_o the_o church_n as_o say_v s._n augustin_n have_v obtain_v the_o title_n and_o the_o alibi_fw-la mark_n of_o catholic_a the_o second_o observation_n be_v upon_o the_o restriction_n in_o case_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o beside_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n there_o be_v two_o other_o degree_n of_o thing_n the_o one_o sort_n profitable_a to_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o your_o own_o minister_n to_o sell_v all_o our_o good_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o poor_a to_o fast_o in_o affliction_n to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o pray_v our_o brother_n in_o the_o faith_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o the_o other_o sort_n lawful_a and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n as_o to_o fly_v from_o persecution_n to_o live_v by_o the_o altar_n since_o we_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n to_o put_v away_o our_o wife_n for_o adultery_n and_o other_o the_o like_a for_o i_o allege_v these_o for_o example_n and_o not_o for_o instance_n now_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v comformable_a to_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o father_n to_o believe_v all_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v believe_v according_a to_o that_o degree_n wherein_o they_o have_v believe_v they_o to_o wit_n to_o believe_v for_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v esteem_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n and_o for_o thing_n profitable_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v esteem_v to_o be_v profitable_a to_o salvation_n and_o for_o thing_n lawful_a and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n those_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v hold_v to_o be_v lawful_a and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n and_o not_o under_o colour_n that_o the_o two_o last_o kind_n be_v not_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o only_o profitable_a or_o lawful_a to_o condemn_v they_o and_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o for_o their_o occasion_n from_o the_o church_n which_o then_o have_v they_o in_o practice_n and_o still_o practise_v they_o to_o this_o day_n the_o three_o observation_n be_v upon_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o because_o of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o necessity_n which_o have_v place_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v capable_a of_o diverse_a sense_n for_o there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o a_o conditional_a necessity_n a_o necessity_n of_o mean_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o precept_n a_o necessity_n of_o special_a belief_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o general_a belief_n a_o necessity_n of_o act_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o approbatio_fw-la i_o call_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n not_o simple_o but_o by_o virtue_n of_o god_n institution_n that_o which_o receive_v no_o excuse_n of_o impossibility_n nor_o any_o exception_n of_o place_n time_n or_o person_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v of_o age_n capable_a of_o knowledge_n the_o belief_n in_o christ_n mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n for_o neither_o the_o circumstance_n of_o be_v in_o a_o place_n where_o we_o can_v be_v instruct_v in_o that_o article_n nor_o the_o prevention_n of_o time_n in_o die_v before_o we_o be_v inform_v thereof_o nor_o the_o condition_n of_o be_v a_o ignorant_a person_n unlearned_a dull_v not_o apt_a to_o comprehend_v a_o sheep_n and_o not_o a_o shepherd_n can_v warrant_v those_o from_o damnation_n that_o believe_v it_o not_o actual_o for_o as_o much_o as_o who_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o only_o sonn_n of_o god_n be_v already_o judge_v and_o in_o regard_n of_o little_a child_n baptism_n only_o according_a to_o our_o doctrine_n may_v supply_v the_o defect_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n in_o their_o behalf_n agree_v with_o that_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustin_n do_v not_o believe_v do_v not_o say_v do_v not_o teach_v if_o thou_o will_v be_v a_o catholic_n that_o little_a child_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o death_n from_o be_v
the_o catholic_n church_n with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n we_o shall_v look_v to_o take_v such_o a_o time_n wherein_o not_o only_o our_o competitor_n may_v agree_v with_o we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o father_n be_v still_o the_o true_a church_n the_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n she_o in_o who_o reside_v the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o judge_v question_n in_o religion_n but_o also_o those_o monument_n do_v sufficient_o remain_v to_o we_o to_o manifest_v thorough_o all_o her_o doctrine_n and_o all_o her_o observation_n which_o can_v never_o be_v better_o choose_v for_o both_o part_n then_o in_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n be_v hold_v that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n who_o be_v the_o first_o emperor_n that_o be_v publicklie_o a_o christian_n to_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o his_o majesty_n have_v yield_v to_o this_o and_o also_o more_o liberal_o in_o some_o of_o his_o write_n have_v extend_v this_o space_n to_o the_o first_o five_o age_n for_o beside_o that_o the_o delivery_n from_o the_o yoke_n and_o subjection_n of_o the_o pagan_n than_o give_v the_o church_n mean_v to_o speak_v loud_o and_o to_o have_v more_o communication_n with_o all_o her_o part_n situate_v in_o so_o many_o different_a region_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o flourish_v in_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o learned_a and_o excellent_a writer_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o there_o remain_v to_o we_o without_o comparison_n more_o monument_n of_o those_o age_n wherein_o to_o view_v the_o entire_a form_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_a religion_n then_o of_o the_o former_a age_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o church_n which_o nurse_v up_o the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n which_o root_v out_o the_o temple_n and_o service_n of_o the_o false_a god_n which_o exercise_v the_o sove_o reign_v tribunal_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n upon_o earth_n by_o the_o condemnation_n which_o she_o denounce_v upon_o the_o four_o most_o famous_a heresy_n in_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n which_o be_v the_o four_o first_o parliament_n and_o estate_n general_a of_o christ_n kingdom_n must_v be_v she_o of_o who_o it_o have_v 54._o be_v foretell_v that_o king_n shall_v be_v she_o nurse_v father_n that_o the_o nation_n shall_v walk_v in_o her_o light_n and_o king_n in_o the_o brightness_n of_o her_o rise_n that_o every_o engine_n set_v up_o against_o she_o shall_v be_v destroy_v that_o she_o shall_v judge_v every_o tongue_n that_o shall_v resist_v she_o in_o judgement_n that_o god_n have_v set_v watchman_n upon_o her_o wall_n which_o never_o shall_v be_v silent_a by_o day_n or_o night_n 18._o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v not_o obey_v she_o shall_v be_v hold_v for_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n 3._o and_o in_o brief_a that_o she_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n shall_v we_o loubt_v say_v s._n augustin_n who_o live_v in_o the_o betweene-time_n of_o these_o first_o 〈◊〉_d four_o counsel_n to_o set_v our-selnes_a in_o the_o lap_n of_o that_o church_n which_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o apostle_n even_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o all_o mankind_n the_o heretic_n in_o vain_a bark_n about_o she_o and_o be_v condemn_v partly_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n themselves_o part_n lie_v by_o the_o gravity_n of_o counsel_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o majesty_n of_o miracle_n have_v obtain_v full_a authority_n to_o who_o not_o to_o give_v the_o pre-eminence_n must_v be_v a_o act_n of_o extreme_a impiety_n or_o of_o a_o heady_a arrogancy_n and_o again_o 5._o the_o catholic_n church_n fight_v against_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overthrow_v all_o heresy_n be_v come_v forth_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v from_o their_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o charity_n let_v that_o then_o be_v hold_v for_o true_o ancient_a and_o mark_v with_o the_o character_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o practise_v universallie_o by_o the_o father_n which_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n and_o principal_o when_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o we_o that_o the_o thing_n testify_v to_o we_o by_o the_o author_n of_o those_o age_n be_v not_o hold_v by_o they_o for_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n spring_v up_o in_o their_o time_n but_o for_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n which_o have_v be_v perpetuallie_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n although_o perchance_o there_o can_v not_o be_v find_v for_o every_o of_o they_o in_o particular_a so_o express_v testimony_n in_o the_o former_a age_n as_o in_o those_o of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n because_o of_o the_o few_o write_n which_o the_o persecution_n of_o those_o time_n have_v suffer_v to_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n for_o it_o suffice_v to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o perpetual_a use_n of_o such_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n who_o have_v more_o knowledge_n of_o the_o age_n before_o they_o than_o we_o can_v have_v do_v testify_v to_o we_o to_o have_v believe_v and_o practise_v they_o not_o as_o thing_n institute_v in_o their_o age_n but_o as_o thing_n that_o have_v always_o have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v come_v to_o they_o by_o a_o succession_n of_o observation_n from_o the_o apostle_n down_o to_o their_o time_n and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o former_a author_n any_o testimony_n against_o they_o but_o contrariwise_o in_o all_o place_n where_o there_o be_v occasion_n to_o mention_v they_o agreeable_a and_o favourable_a testimony_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o brief_a that_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v ancient_a by_o we_o which_o those_o who_o we_o account_v ancient_a have_v themselves_o hold_v to_o be_v ancient_a the_o five_o observation_n be_v upon_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o father_n which_o some_o contentious_a spirit_n will_v have_v to_o be_v when_o one_o selfesame_a thing_n be_v actuallie_o find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o all_o the_o father_n which_o be_v a_o unjust_a and_o impertinent_a pretence_n for_o to_o have_v a_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n to_o be_v true_o hold_v by_o the_o father_n for_o universal_a and_o catholic_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o write_n of_o all_o the_o father_n who_o have_v not_o all_o write_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o of_o who_o write_n all_o have_v not_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n but_o there_o be_v two_o other_o lawful_a way_n to_o secure_v ourselves_o of_o they_o the_o one_o be_v when_o the_o most_o eminent_a father_n of_o every_o country_n agree_v in_o the_o affirmation_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n and_o that_o none_o of_o the_o other_o that_o have_v be_v without_o note_n of_o dissension_n from_o the_o church_n have_v oppose_v it_o as_o when_o s._n augustin_n have_v cite_v against_o the_o pelagian_n the_o 2._o testimony_n of_o eleven_o eminent_a father_n all_o consent_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o doctrine_n he_o suppose_v he_o have_v sufficient_o produce_v against_o they_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v produce_v ten_o father_n of_o former_a age_n they_o conceive_v they_o have_v sufficient_o express_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o former_a church_n against_o nestorius_n vincent_n his_o doctrine_n because_o none_o say_v vincentius_n lerinensis_n doubtetb_v but_o 42_o that_o those_o ten_o do_v true_o hold_v the_o same_o with_o all_o their_o other_o brother_n the_o other_o be_v when_o the_o father_n speak_v not_o as_o doctor_n but_o as_o witness_n of_o the_o custom_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o curch_n of_o their_o time_n and_o do_v not_o say_v i_o believe_v this_o shall_v be_v so_o hold_v or_o so_o understand_v or_o so_o observe_v but_o that_o the_o church_n from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o other_o believe_v it_o so_o or_o observe_v it_o so_o for_o than_o we_o no_o long_o hold_v what_o they_o say_v for_o a_o thing_n say_v by_o they_o but_o as_o a_o thing_n say_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o principal_o when_o it_o be_v in_o point_n whereof_o they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a either_o because_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o because_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o person_n and_o in_o this_o case_n we_o argue_v no_o more_o upon_o their_o word_n probable_o as_o we_o do_v when_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o particular_a doctor_n but_o we_o argue_v thereupon_o demonstrativelie_a that_o then_o
shall_v remain_v true_o universal_a and_o catholic_a that_o the_o most_o eminent_a father_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n have_v teach_v in_o several_a region_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o against_o which_o none_o except_o some_o person_n note_v for_o dissension_n from_o the_o church_n have_v resist_v or_o that_o the_o father_n of_o those_o age_n do_v testify_v to_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o their_o time_n and_o that_o shall_v remain_v true_o ancient_a and_o apostolic_a that_o the_o father_n of_o those_o age_n do_v testisie_n to_o have_v be_v observe_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o as_o a_o thing_n spring_v up_o in_o their_o time_n but_o as_o a_o thing_n derive_v down_o to_o they_o either_o from_o the_o immemorial_n succession_n of_o former_a age_n or_o from_o the_o express_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v hold_v universallie_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o original_n but_o from_o a_o universal_a authority_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o do_v then_o so_o strict_o observe_v the_o rule_n mention_v by_o saint_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n of_o oppose_a universality_n to_o particularity_n a_o doctrine_n or_o observation_n from_o a_o particular_a beginning_n can_v not_o be_v slip_v in_o and_o spread_v into_o a_o uniform_a and_o universal_a belief_n and_o custom_n through_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o principal_o so_o as_o the_o father_n that_o be_v next_o after_o these_o universal_a innovation_n can_v not_o perceive_v it_o but_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o that_o be_v then_o universallie_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n must_v have_v come_v from_o a_o universal_a beginning_n now_o there_o be_v in_o those_o age_n according_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o your_o minister_n but_o two_o beginning_n of_o universal_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n either_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o general_a counsel_n for_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v that_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v then_o any_o universal_a authority_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o be_v universallie_o and_o uniform_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n by_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n and_o have_v not_o begin_v in_o that_o time_n but_o have_v be_v before_o practise_v that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o there_o have_v be_v any_o general_a council_n in_o the_o church_n must_v necessary_o have_v be_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n follow_v these_o rule_n of_o s._n augustin_n those_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o we_o observe_v 118._o not_o by_o write_v but_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v keep_v over_o all_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o earth_n must_v be_v understand_v to_o have_v be_v retain_v from_o the_o appointement_n and_o institution_n either_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o from_o the_o general_a counsel_n who_o authority_n be_v most_o wholesome_a in_o the_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o what_o custom_n soever_o man_n look_v upward_o can_v 6._o not_o discern_v to_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o those_o of_o late_a time_n be_v right_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o there_o be_v many_o such_o which_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o repeat_v and_o again_o if_o any_o one_o herein_o seek_v for_o divine_a authority_n that_o which_o the_o universal_a 24._o church_n observe_v and_o which_o have_v not_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o counsel_n but_o have_v always_o be_v hold_v be_v just_o believe_v not_o to_o have_v be_v give_v by_o tradition_n but_o by_o apostolical_a authority_n etc._n etc._n which_o rule_v of_o s._n augustin_n if_o they_o have_v place_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n testify_v to_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v they_o to_o have_v it_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o same_o father_n affirm_v not_o in_o term_n equivalent_a but_o expresslie_o to_o have_v be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n these_o five_o observation_n then_o make_v upon_o the_o thesis_n i_o will_v say_v to_o pass_v unto_o the_o hypothesis_n that_o your_o minister_n to_o who_o society_n his_o majesty_n outward_o adhere_v be_v so_o far_o from_o hold_v all_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v believe_v and_o practise_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o in_o the_o only_a synaxis_n or_o church_n lirurgie_n which_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n the_o four_o principal_a thing_n for_o which_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o we_o which_o be_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o father_n have_v all_o universallie_n and_o uniform_o believe_v hold_v and_o practise_v as_o thing_n necessary_a but_o in_o different_a kind_n of_o necessity_n unto_o salvation_n by_o which_o mean_n if_o your_o minister_n have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o father_n as_o 〈◊〉_d have_v for_o these_o thing_n renounce_v our_o service_n and_o our_o communion_n so_o must_v they_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n have_v renounce_v the_o service_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o consequent_o the_o title_n and_o society_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o have_v say_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n not_o but_o that_o i_o can_v have_v go_v far_o and_o say_v the_o substantial_a transition_n of_o the_o sacrament_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o call_v transubstantiation_n but_o i_o have_v be_v content_a to_o say_v the_o real_a presence_n because_o it_o be_v not_o precise_o and_o particular_o upon_o the_o transubstantiation_n but_o upon_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o we_o ground_n the_o importance_n and_o necessity_n of_o this_o sacrament_n to_o salvation_n to_o wit_n the_o communion_n and_o substantial_a union_n to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o s._n cyrill_n 27._o call_v the_o knot_n of_o our_o union_n with_o god_n nor_o be_v it_o particular_o and_o precise_o upon_o transubstantiation_n but_o upon_o the_o real_a presence_n that_o the_o two_o inconvenience_n depend_v for_o which_o your_o minister_n in_o this_o article_n separate_v themselves_o from_o our_o liturgy_n which_o be_v one_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v only_o seek_v and_o adore_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o other_o the_o pretend_a distraction_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o existence_n in_o many_o place_n in_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o have_v i_o spocken_v of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o all_o the_o father_n have_v hold_v for_o the_o centre_n and_o root_n of_o episcopal_a unity_n and_o of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n because_o i_o will_v believe_v you_o be_v sufficient_o read_v in_o antiquity_n to_o know_v that_o the_o first_o father_n counsel_n and_o christian_n emperor_n have_v perpetuallie_o grant_v thereunto_o the_o primacy_n and_o supereminent_a oversight_n over_o all_o religion_n and_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n which_o be_v all_o that_o the_o church_n exact_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n from_o their_o confession_n that_o enter_v into_o her_o communion_n to_o the_o end_n to_o discern_v her_o society_n from_o that_o of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o complice_n of_o their_o sect_n which_o have_v divide_v themselves_o for_o some_o age_n from_o the_o visible_a and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n these_o four_o point_n then_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a spring_n of_o our_o dissension_n and_o which_o be_v agree_v upon_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a for_o we_o to_o agree_v upon_o the_o rest_n i_o say_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n have_v all_o hold_v and_o practise_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n though_o with_o diverse_a kind_n of_o necessity_n the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n they_o have_v hold_v as_o necessary_a with_o necessity_n of_o mean_n for_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n absolute_o and_o for_o every_o particular_a person_n conditionnallie_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a they_o have_v hold_v as_o necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o mean_n for_o those_o for_o who_o it_o be_v do_v that_o so_o their_o deliverace_n from_o temporal_a pain_n which_o remain_v after_o this_o life_n for_o sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n and_o for_o which_o thy_o have_n not_o do_v such_o penance_n
as_o it_o have_v please_v god_n whole_o to_o accept_v may_v be_v hasten_v by_o the_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o necessary_a with_o necessity_n of_o precept_n and_o to_o exercise_n christian_n charity_n and_o piety_n both_o to_o the_o church_n that_o offer_v they_o and_o to_o the_o minister_n and_o pastor_n by_o who_o she_o offer_v they_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n they_o have_v hold_v as_o necessary_a to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o minister_n by_o who_o they_o be_v make_v with_o necessity_n of_o precept_n to_o exercise_v the_o commerce_n between_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o to_o particular_a person_n out_o of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o their_o private_a devotion_n not_o neeessary_a with_o necessity_n of_o act_n but_o only_o profitable_a that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o concourse_n of_o their_o prayer_n who_o be_v already_o in_o the_o per_fw-la fect_n and_o assure_v possession_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o necessary_a to_o they_o and_o all_o other_o with_o nessitie_n of_o approbation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o contradict_v they_o and_o not_o to_o condemn_v the_o custom_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o article_n and_o not_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o she_o upon_o this_o occasion_n under_o pain_n of_o fall_v into_o anathema_n and_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o heretic_n all_o which_o thing_n i_o will_v not_o now_o stand_v to_o prove_v lest_o i_o make_v a_o book_n of_o a_o letter_n but_o i_o do_v oblige_v myself_o to_o justify_v they_o when_o soever_o you_o shall_v desire_v it_o and_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n that_o have_v flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o council'_v and_o by_o the_o form_n which_o remain_v to_o we_o in_o their_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n service_n that_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o their_o time_n have_v uninersallie_o and_o uniform_o believe_v hold_v and_o practise_v they_o throughout_o all_o the_o region_n and_o province_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o oblige_v myself_o i_o say_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v to_o you_o that_o she_o have_v hold_v these_o four_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o in_o the_o same_o form_n and_o for_o the_o same_o end_n as_o our_o liturgy_n be_v and_o not_o as_o observation_n that_o then_o spring_v up_o but_o as_o thing_n that_o the_o same_o father_n testify_v to_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o practise_v from_o all_o antiquity_n and_o to_o be_v derive_v to_o they_o by_o a_o uninterrupt_a continuance_n from_o the_o tradition_n or_o approbation_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o as_o they_o can_v renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o our_o church_n under_o pretence_n of_o any_o of_o these_o four_o point_n without_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o consequent_o the_o inheritance_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o by_o author_n and_o testimony_n all_o able_a to_o abide_v the_o touch_n as_o you_o know_v i_o be_o curious_a to_o make_v use_n of_o no_o other_o and_o with_o clear_a and_o ingenuous_a answer_n to_o all_o objection_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o age_n or_o of_o age_n before_o they_o a_o thing_n that_o will_v be_v the_o more_o easy_a for_o i_o because_o the_o proof_n that_o we_o will_v avouch_v out_o of_o the_o father_n be_v proof_n which_o contain_v in_o express_a term_n the_o affirmative_a of_o what_o we_o say_v whereas_o our_o adversary_n can_v find_v one_o only_a passage_n which_o contain_v in_o express_a term_n the_o negative_a but_o only_o in_o term_n from_o whence_o they_o pretend_v to_o infer_v it_o by_o consequence_n and_o which_o at_o a_o just_a tribunal_n will_v not_o merit_v so_o much_o as_o to_o be_v hear_v for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v too_o great_a a_o injustice_n to_o allege_v consequence_n from_o passage_n and_o even_o those_o evil_n interpret_v and_o misunderstand_v and_o in_o who_o illation_n there_o be_v always_o some_o paralogism_n hide_v against_o the_o express_a word_n and_o the_o lively_a and_o actual_a practice_n of_o the_o same_o father_n from_o who_o they_o be_v collect_v and_o that_o may_v be_v good_a to_o take_v the_o father_n for_o adversary_n and_o to_o accuse_v they_o for_o want_n of_o sense_n or_o memory_n but_o not_o to_o take_v they_o for_o judge_n and_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o what_o they_o have_v believe_v and_o practise_v to_o this_o i_o will_v also_o add_v whensoever_o you_o shall_v desire_v it_o the_o present_a conformity_n of_o all_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a church_n in_o these_o four_o case_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o of_o all_o those_o which_o have_v remain_v even_o to_o this_o day_n under_o their_o jurisdiction_n to_o wit_n those_o that_o be_v under_o the_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n as_o the_o grecian_n russian_n muscovite_n and_o asian_o of_o asia-minor_a separate_a from_o we_o near_o eight_o hundred_o year_n of_o those_o that_o be_v unde_fw-la the_o greek_a patriarch_n of_o antioch_n as_o the_o syrian_n mesopotamian_n and_o other_o yet_o more_o eastern_a nation_n for_o those_o that_o obey_v the_o syrian_a patriarch_n as_o the_o maronites_n persevere_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o those_o that_o rely_v upon_o the_o egyptian_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n as_o the_o egyptian_n who_o they_o call_v cophtite_n and_o the_o ethiopian_n which_o have_v be_v divide_v both_o from_o we_o and_o from_o the_o greek_n more_a than_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o one_o of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o all_o these_o hold_v these_o four_o point_n yea_o with_o more_o jealousy_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a than_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o particular_o the_o article_n of_o the_o sacrament_n where_o of_o they_o do_v not_o only_o believe_v transubstantiation_n which_o the_o greek_n at_o this_o day_n call_v in_o the_o very_a self_n same_o sense_n and_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o also_o exercise_v the_o adoration_n with_o external_a gesture_n more_o full_a of_o humility_n than_o we_o a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o these_o four_o point_n be_v uniform_o hold_v and_o observe_v by_o the_o ancient_a cahtholicke_a church_n since_o all_o the_o part_n whereinto_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n be_v dismember_v do_v retain_v they_o uniform_o to_o this_o day_n notwithstanding_o so_o many_o distance_n separation_n and_o division_n through_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o earth_n these_o be_v in_o general_a the_o cause_n that_o have_v move_v i_o to_o use_v that_o exception_n in_o my_o letter_n that_o you_o object_n to_o i_o in_o you_o whereof_o if_o the_o excellent_a king_n of_o great_a britain_n have_v as_o well_o leisure_n to_o hear_v the_o particularity_n as_o he_o have_v capacity_n to_o comprehend_v they_o i_o assure_v myself_o he_o will_v not_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o i_o shall_v desire_v in_o he_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a but_o he_o will_v desire_v it_o himself_o and_o put_v himself_o in_o state_n to_o obtain_v it_o and_o to_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v obtain_v by_o those_o that_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o will_v add_v yet_o to_o be_v other_o crown_n that_o of_o make_v himself_o a_o mediator_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n which_o will_v be_v to_o he_o a_o more_o triumphant_a glory_n then_o that_o of_o all_o the_o alexander_n and_o of_o all_o the_o caesar_n and_o which_o will_v gain_v to_o his_o isle_n no_o less_o a_o honour_n in_o have_v breed_v he_o they_o to_o have_v breed_v great_a constantine_n the_o first_o deliverer_n and_o pacifier_n of_o the_o christian_n church_n i_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v one_o day_n crown_n all_o the_o other_o grace_n wherewith_o he_o have_v endow_v he_o with_o that_o and_o hear_v to_o this_o effect_n the_o prayer_n of_o his_o late_a queen_n mother_n who_o tear_n like_o those_o of_o s._n augustins_n mother_n do_v not_o only_o intercede_v for_o he_o in_o heaven_n but_o her_o blood_n also_o and_o likewise_o keep_v you_o sr._n in_o his_o safe_a and_o holy_a protection_n from_o paris_n 15._o julij_fw-la 1611._o a_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n this_o letter_n to_o mons._n casaubon_n occasion_v the_o whole_a discourse_n ensue_v for_o the_o letter_n be_v show_v to_o his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n our_o sowerain_a lord_n king_n james_n of_o glorious_a memory_n it_o please_v he_o not_o only_o to_o read_v it_o but_o to_o take_v pain_n to_o answer_v it_o as_o he_o think_v most_o convenient_a to_o which_o answer_n of_o his_o majesty_n the_o cardinal_n reply_v
he_o father_n who_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n 〈◊〉_d that_o christ_n be_v not_o with_o those_o that_o assemble_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d that_o although_o they_o shall_v be_v slay_v for_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n this_o spot_n be_v not_o wash_v away_o even_o with_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o can_v be_v à_fw-fr martyr_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n one_o may_v have_v faith_n sacrament_n order_n and_o in_o sum_n every_o thing_n except_o salvation_n 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o that_o communicate_v not_o with_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n 19_o that_o no_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n that_o be_v not_o restore_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n can_v be_v save_v if_o they_o have_v believe_v that_o all_o the_o sect_n that_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n both_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n have_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n three_o by_o the_o word_n catholic_a church_n they_o do_v not_o intend_v a_o church_n interrupt_v and_o intermit_a as_o that_o of_o the_o protestants_n which_o be_v bear_v 5_o and_o die_v by_o fit_n like_o the_o tyndaride_n but_o such_o a_o church_n as_o these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n describe_v 54._o as_o in_o in_o the_o day_n of_o no_n i_o swear_v that_o i_o will_v no_o more_o bring_v the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n upon_o the_o earth_n so_o have_v i_o swear_v i_o will_v no_o more_o be_v angry_a against_o thou_o 92_o thou_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v call_v the_o forsake_a 37_o i_o will_v place_v my_o sanctification_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o 8._o i_o will_v no_o more_o do_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o people_n as_o in_o time_n past_a and_o these_o of_o our_o lord_n 16._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o with_o you_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o age_n 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v dwell_v with_o you_o eternal_o 〈◊〉_d let_v the_o one_o grow_v with_o the_o other_o until_o the_o harvest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o church_n permanent_a eternal_a and_o not_o capable_a of_o ruin_n 〈◊〉_d we_o acknowledge_v say_v that_o great_a alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n one_o only_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n which_o eulex_n as_o she_o can_v never_o be_v root_v out_o though_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v undertake_v to_o oppose_v she_o so_o she_o outhrowe_v disperse_v all_o the_o wicked_a assaulth_n of_o heretic_n and_o saint_n athanasius_n orat_fw-la the_o church_n be_v invincible_a though_o hell_n itself_o shall_v arise_v with_o all_o the_o power_n thereof_o against_o she_o and_o theophilus_n hierom._n god_n in_o all_o time_n grant_v oneself_o grace_n to_o his_o church_n to_o wit_n that_o that_o body_n shall_v be_v keep_v entire_a and_o that_o the_o venom_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o heretic_n shall_v have_v no_o power_n over_o she_o and_o saint_n augustine_n in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 47._o psalm_n 67._o god_n say_v he_o have_v found_v she_o eternal_o let_v not_o heretic_n divide_v into_o faction_n boast_n let_v they_o not_o lift_v themselves_o up_o that_o say_v here_o be_v christ_n and_o there_o be_v christ._n and_o again_o but_o perchance_o this_o city_n that_o have_v possess_v the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v one_o day_n ruin_v never_o may_v it_o happen_v god_n have_v found_v she_o eternal_o if_o then_o god_n have_v found_v she_o eternal_o wherefore_o fear_v thou_o that_o 101._o her_o foundation_n shall_v fall_v and_o in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 101._o psalm_n but_o his_o church_n which_o have_v be_v of_o all_o nation_n be_v no_o more_o she_o be_v perish_v so_o say_v they_o that_o be_v not_o in_o she_o o_o impudent_a voice_n and_o a_o little_a after_o this_o voice_n so_o abominable_a so_o detestable_a so_o full_a of_o presumption_n and_o falsehood_n which_o be_v sustain_v with_o no_o truth_n illuminate_v with_o no_o wisdom_n season_v with_o no_o salt_n vain_a rash_a heady_a pernicious_a the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v foresee_v it_o and_o in_o the_o treaty_n of_o the_o christian_a combat_n they_o say_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v perish_v and_o 29._o the_o relic_n remain_v only_o on_o donatus_n his_o side_n o_o proud_a and_o impious_a tongue_n and_o in_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n if_o the_o church_n veer_v perish_v in_o cyprian_n time_n from_o whence_o do_v donatus_n appear_v from_o what_o earth_n be_v he_o spring_v up_o from_o what_o sea_n be_v he_o come_v forth_o from_o what_o heaven_n be_v he_o fall_v and_o in_o the_o three_o book_n against_o parmenian_n how_o can_v they_o vaunt_v to_o have_v any_o church_n if_o she_o have_v cease_v from_o those_o time_n and_o in_o the_o explication_n 2._o of_o the_o creed_n to_o the_o cathecumeniste_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v she_o that_o sight_v with_o all_o heresy_n may_v be_v oppose_v but_o can_v be_v overthrow_v 3._o all_o heresy_n be_v come_v out_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v from_o the_o vine_n but_o she_o stay_v in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o charity_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n 5._o shall_v never_o overthrow_v she_o behold_v without_o colour_n or_o fraud_n what_o the_o father_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n a_o church_n visible_a and_o eminent_a above_o all_o other_o christian_a society_n a_o church_n pure_a from_o all_o contagion_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n a_o church_n perpetual_a and_o which_o have_v never_o suffer_v nor_o never_o can_v suffer_v any_o interruption_n neither_o in_o her_o faith_n in_o her_o communion_n nor_o in_o her_o visibilitie_n this_o church_n if_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n have_v let_v hin_n give_v she_o to_o we_o if_o not_o let_v he_o receive_v 6._o she_o from_o we_o aut_fw-la det_fw-la as_o saint_n austin_n say_v to_o the_o donatist_n aut_fw-la accipiat_fw-la of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n iii_o the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n the_o king_n commend_v also_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o religious_a bishop_n who_o in_o the_o 4_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o it_o be_v here_o true_o observe_v add_v to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o examination_n of_o bishop_n a_o particular_a interrogatory_n upon_o this_o point_n and_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v oftentimes_o do_v many_o thing_n by_o form_n of_o accommodation_n for_o the_o good_a of_o peace_n and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o prevent_v the_o breach_n of_o unity_n and_o mutual_a communion_n who_o example_n he_o protest_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o imitate_v and_o to_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o those_o that_o procure_v peace_n even_o to_o the_o altar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o present_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o integrity_n of_o his_o conscience_n will_v permit_v he_o for_o he_o will_v give_v place_n to_o none_o either_o in_o extreme_a grief_n he_o suffer_v for_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o churdh_n which_o the_o good_a father_n have_v so_o much_o detest_v or_o in_o his_o dosire_n to_o communicate_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o with_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n the_o reply_n it_o be_v not_o by_o way_n of_o prudence_n as_o prudence_n signify_v a_o human_a virtue_n that_o the_o father_n pronounce_v this_o decree_n that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n salvation_n can_v not_o be_v obtain_v but_o by_o way_n of_o decision_n and_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o this_o cause_n say_v saint_n augustine_n upon_o the_o creed_n 10._o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v determine_v by_o the_o holy_a church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o if_o any_o one_o be_v find_v on_o it_o of_o it_o he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n and_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n and_o it_o shall_v serve_v he_o for_o nothing_o to_o have_v believe_v or_o do_v so_o many_o and_o so_o many_o good_a work_n without_o the_o true_a end_n or_o butt_n of_o the_o sooner_o aigne_v good_a and_o saint_n fulgentius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n hold_v this_o firm_o and_o doubt_v it_o not_o that_o every_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n haptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o before_o the_o end_n 39_o of_o this_o life_n he_o be_v not_o reunite_v to_o the_o church_n catholic_a whatsoever_o alm_n he_o distribute_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n
to_o confer_v it_o 〈◊〉_d marriage_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d penance_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d and_o vocal_a confession_n to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o of_o the_o condition_n 24._o necessary_a to_o this_o sacrament_n 8_o order_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n and_o extreme_a onction_n for_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o sacrament_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n acknowledge_v and_o 7._o the_o greek_a communion_n alsoe_o make_v profession_n to_o embrace_v with_o us._n a_o church_n which_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n use_v 70._o oil_n 5._o salt_n bapt_v wax_n light_n 101_o exorcism_n 8._o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 1_o the_o word_n epheta_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o accompany_v it_o to_o testify_v by_o oil_n that_o in_o baptism_n we_o be_v make_v christian_n that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o unction_n of_o christ_n by_o salt_n that_o god_n contract_v with_o we_o in_o baptism_n a_o alliance_n for_o ever_o follow_v the_o stile_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o call_v eternal_a alliance_n alliance_n of_o salt_n by_o the_o light_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o light_n that_o enlighten_v all_o man_n commeinge_v into_o the_o world_n 205._o by_o exorcism_n that_o baptism_n put_v we_o out_o of_o the_o devil_n possession_n 8_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o it_o be_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n that_o give_v strength_n to_o all_o sacrament_n 1._o by_o the_o word_n epheta_n that_o god_n accomplish_v spiritual_o in_o we_o by_o baptism_n what_o he_o wrought_v corporal_o in_o the_o deaf_a and_o dumb_a man_n a_o church_n that_o esteem_a baptism_n for_o person_n of_o full_a age_n necessary_a with_o a_o conditional_a necessity_n 15._o and_o for_o child_n necessary_a with_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n permit_v bapt_a lay_v man_n to_o baptise_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n a_o church_n that_o use_v holy_a water_n consecrate_v by_o certain_a word_n and_o ceremony_n and_o make_v use_v of_o it_o 27._o both_o for_o baptism_n 30_o and_o against_o enchantment_n 23._o and_o to_o make_v exorcism_n and_o conjuration_n against_o evil_a spirit_n fron_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o 71._o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o though_o he_o be_v after_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n yet_o not_o to_o be_v except_v against_o by_o english_a man_n who_o take_v the_o original_n of_o their_o mission_n from_o he_o ordain_v when_o englad_n return_v back_o from_o paganism_n to_o christian_a religion_n that_o the_o temple_n shall_v not_o be_v demolish_v but_o expiate_v by_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o holy_a water_n a_o church_n that_o in_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n hold_v diverse_a degree_n 3._o the_o bishop_n the_o priest_n the_o deacon_n the_o acolite_a the_o exorcist_n the_o reader_n and_o the_o porter_n and_o consecrate_v and_o bless_v they_o with_o diverse_a form_n and_o ceremony_n and_o in_o the_o order_n episcopal_a acknowledge_v diverse_a seat_n of_o iurisdictino_fw-la of_o positive_a right_n to_o wit_n archbishop_n primate_fw-la patriarch_n leon_n and_o one_o supereminent_a by_o divine_a law_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n without_o who_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v appertain_v to_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o the_o want_n of_o who_o presence_n either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o legate_n 10_o or_o his_o confirmation_n make_v all_o counsel_n pretend_v to_o be_v universal_a unlawful_a a_o church_n which_o hold_v a_o 11._o succession_n of_o bishop_n not_o interrupt_v since_o the_o first_o mission_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o essential_a condition_n of_o she_o &_o repute_v those_o who_o have_v it_o not_o or_o that_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o have_v it_o not_o for_o schismatic_o and_o cull_v pable_z of_o the_o same_o curse_n with_o core_n dathan_n and_o 〈◊〉_d a_o church_n that_o hold_v the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o namely_o in_o the_o act_n of_o ordination_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o divine_a law_n fine_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n 53._o and_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n those_o that_o hold_v it_o not_o a_o church_n 46._o that_o hold_v free_a will_n for_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 76._o that_o hold_v that_o faith_n only_o without_o evangelicall_a work_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o salvation_n impo_n that_o wicked_a man_n persevere_v to_o the_o end_n be_v reprobate_n but_o not_o predestinate_a to_o evil_a 13._o that_o the_o certainty_n that_o particular_a man_n presume_v to_o have_v of_o their_o predestination_n be_v a_o rash_a boldness_n a_o church_n wherein_o their_o service_n be_v say_v throughout_o the_o east_n in_o greek_a and_o through_o the_o west_n aswell_o in_o africa_n as_o in_o europe_n 〈◊〉_d in_o latin_a although_o that_o in_o none_o of_o the_o province_n neither_o of_o europe_n nor_o africa_n except_o in_o italy_n &_o in_o the_o city_n where_o the_o roman_a colony_n reside_v the_o latin_a be_v understand_v by_o the_o simple_a people_n but_o only_o by_o the_o learned_a in_o brief_a a_o church_n that_o use_v either_o in_o gender_n or_o in_o species_n either_o inform_v or_o in_o analogy_n the_o very_a same_o ceremony_n which_o be_v the_o word_n well_o know_v the_o all_o man_n which_o the_o catholic_n use_v universal_o at_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 88_o observe_v the_o distinctino_fw-it of_o the_o feast_n and_o ordinary_a day_n the_o distinction_n 27_o of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o lay_v habit_n 1._o the_o reverence_n of_o sacred_a vessel_n the_o custom_n 4._o of_o shave_v 1._o and_o unction_n for_o the_o collation_n of_o order_n the_o ceremony_n of_o 5._o wash_v their_o hand_n at_o the_o altar_n before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n 19_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n before_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ibid._n pronounce_v a_o part_n of_o the_o service_n at_o the_o altar_n with_o a_o low_a voice_n and_o wheard_n 8._o make_v procession_n with_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o martyr_n accompany_v the_o dead_a to_o their_o 〈◊〉_d with_o 2._o wax_n taper_n in_o sign_n of_o joy_n and_o future_a certainty_n of_o their_o resurrection_n have_v the_o picture_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saînt_n both_o 3_o out_o of_o church_n and_o theod_n in_o church_n and_o cassian_n upon_o the_o very_a altar_n of_o martyr_n not_o to_o adore_v they_o as_o adoration_n signify_v di_o nine_o worship_n but_o to_o reverence_v by_o they_o the_o soldier_n and_o champion_n of_o christ_n milit_fw-la use_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o all_o their_o conversation_n 2._o imprint_v it_o on_o the_o forehead_n of_o their_o catechumenist_n 6._o paint_v it_o on_o the_o portal_n of_o all_o the_o house_n of_o the_o faithful_a hil._n give_v the_o blessing_n to_o the_o people_n with_o their_o hand_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n 〈◊〉_d employ_v it_o to_o drive_v away_o evil_a spirit_n 11._o propose_v in_o jerusalem_fw-la the_o very_a cross_n to_o be_v adore_v on_o good_a friday_n 〈◊〉_d use_v incense_n in_o their_o synax_n not_o particular_o incense_v of_o arabia_n but_o indifferent_o odoriferous_a gum_n for_o they_o hold_v not_o incense_v for_o sacrifice_v as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n but_o for_o a_o simple_a ceremony_n design_v to_o represent_v the_o effect_n of_o prayer_n describe_v by_o these_o word_n of_o david_n let_v my_o prayer_n arise_v even_o as_o incense_v into_o thy_o presence_n and_o 〈◊〉_d by_o these_o of_o the_o revelation_n the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n before_o god_n and_o final_o a_o church_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v the_o infallible_a promise_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d perpetual_o visible_a and_o eminent_a in_o her_o communion_n perpetual_o pure_a and_o uncorrupted_a in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o in_o her_o sacrament_n and_o perpetual_o bind_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o succession_n of_o her_o ministry_n and_o that_o 6._o to_o she_o only_o belong_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o succession_n 16._o of_o her_o communion_n 38_o of_o her_o doctrine_n 37._o and_o of_o her_o ministry_n there_o be_v neither_o church_n nor_o salvation_n behold_v what_o the_o excellent_a king_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o to_o consider_v it_o at_o sufficient_a leisure_n shall_v find_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n aug._n and_o of_o the_o 4_o first_o council_n let_v his_o majesty_n see_v whether_o by_o these_o feature_n he_o can_v know_v the_o face_n of_o caluines_n church_n or_o of_o we_o of_o the_o conformity_n or_o inconformitie_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o word_n catholic_a have_v be_v common_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o to_o the_o modern_a
be_v derive_v and_o in_o virtue_n of_o what_o power_n do_v he_o solicit_v pope_n stephen_n to_o write_v letter_n to_o the_o gaul_n whereby_o he_o shall_v depose_v martian_a bishop_n of_o arles_n thou_o 43._o shall_v say_v he_o write_v letter_n into_o the_o province_n and_o to_o the_o people_n inhibit_v in_o arles_n by_o which_o martian_a being_n depose_v a_o other_o may_v be_v substitute_v in_o his_o place_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o saint_n cyprian_n and_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n have_v embrace_v the_o error_n of_o rebaptise_v heretic_n which_o since_o the_o 9_o donatist_n have_v convert_v into_o a_o heresy_n do_v saint_n vincentius_n 〈◊〉_d say_v then_o pope_n stephen_n of_o happy_a memory_n prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n with_o 〈◊〉_d before_o his_o other_o colleague_n resist_v it_o esteem_v it_o a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o he_o to_o surpass_v all_o other_o as_o well_o in_o devotion_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o surmount_v they_o by_o authority_n of_o place_n for_o as_o for_o the_o angry_a word_n that_o saint_n cyprian_n let_v slip_v against_o pope_n stephen_n which_o saint_n austin_n judge_n unworthy_a to_o be_v report_v 42._o they_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o and_o why_o then_o the_o same_o pope_n stephen_n have_v deprive_v of_o his_o communion_n firmilianus_n archbishop_n of_o cappadocia_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o cappadocia_n cilicia_n 5._o and_o galatia_n for_o the_o same_o error_n of_o s._n cyprian_n but_o more_o obstinate_o defend_v do_v firmilianus_n among_o his_o other_o word_n of_o fury_n which_o bear_v with_o they_o their_o own_o confutation_n that_o he_o spew_v up_o against_o the_o pope_n reproach_n to_o he_o that_o he_o be_v so_o senseless_a he_o that_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o bishop_n sea_n and_o glory_v that_o he_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o peter_n upon_o which_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v establish_v as_o to_o introduce_v many_o other_o peter_n and_o to_o constitute_v a_o plurality_n of_o church_n 75._o i_o be_o angry_a say_v he_o not_o without_o cause_n with_o so_o manifest_a and_o evident_a a_o folly_n in_o stephen_n that_o he_o that_o glorify_v himself_o so_o much_o for_o the_o place_n of_o his_o bishop_n sea_n and_o maintain_v that_o he_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o peter_n upon_o which_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v set_v have_v introduce_v many_o other_o peter_n and_o constitute_v new_a building_n of_o many_o church_n in_o sustain_v by_o his_o authority_n that_o baptism_n be_v among_o heretic_n and_o why_o then_o when_o dionysius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v see_v that_o pope_n stephen_n have_v shut_v the_o gate_n of_o his_o communion_n from_o firmilianus_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n cilicia_n galatia_n and_o the_o other_o neighbour_a nation_n do_v he_o write_v to_o he_o letter_n of_o intercession_n 5._o and_o of_o entreaty_n upon_o this_o subject_n i_o write_v to_o he_o say_v he_o beseech_v he_o for_o they_o all_o or_o pray_v he_o concern_v all_o these_o thing_n for_o as_o for_o that_o that_o saint_n basill_n archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o cappadocia_n omit_v not_o to_o reckon_v firmilianus_n among_o his_o catholic_a predecessor_n notwithstanding_o his_o stain_n it_o be_v because_o he_o repent_v afterwards_o as_o saint_n lucif_n augustine_n witness_v in_o these_o word_n those_o of_o the_o east_n that_o have_v hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o cyprian_n correct_v their_o judgement_n and_o saint_n jerom_n in_o these_o final_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o that_o have_v conceive_v with_o cyprian_a that_o heretic_n shall_v be_v rebaptise_v return_v to_o their_o ancient_a custom_n publish_v a_o new_a decree_n say_v what_o do_v we_o so_o to_o they_o and_o to_o we_o their_o elder_n and_o we_o have_v give_v it_o by_o tradition_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o dionysius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v fall_v into_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n do_v the_o catholic_n of_o alexandria_n in_o steed_n of_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o their_o province_n dion_n come_v to_o accuse_v he_o at_o rome_n before_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o go_v up_o say_v saint_n athanasius_n to_o rome_n to_o accuse_v he_o before_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o his_o own_o name_n and_o a_o while_n after_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ibid._n the_o translator_n have_v false_o report_v the_o surname_n to_o that_o of_o alexandria_n send_v to_o dionysius_n that_o he_o shall_v clear_v himself_o from_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o have_v accuse_v he_o and_o sudden_o he_o answer_v and_o send_v his_o book_n of_o defence_n and_o apology_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n some_o have_v accuse_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n before_o sel._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o hold_v the_o son_n for_o a_o creature_n and_o not_o consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n the_o synod_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o consistory_z of_o rome_n compound_v of_o the_o bishop_n neighbour_a upon_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n without_o who_o the_o pope_n judge_v nothing_o of_o importance_n and_o of_o the_o principal_a church_n man_n of_o rome_n be_v offend_v with_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n write_v to_o he_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o assistant_n and_o he_o justify_v himself_o address_v to_o he_o 30._o a_o book_n of_o defence_n and_o apology_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n twice_o call_v from_o the_o province_n of_o pontus_n capadocia_n cyria_n cilicia_n lycaonia_n palestina_n arabia_n and_o from_o all_o the_o other_o province_n of_o the_o east_n have_v depose_v paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o substitute_v domnus_n in_o his_o steed_n and_o that_o paulus_n will_v not_o quit_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n do_v the_o emperor_n aurelian_a though_o a_o pagan_a ordain_v and_o that_o say_v eusebius_n very_o fit_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o he_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n assemble_v with_o the_o pope_n shall_v direct_v it_o to_o by_o write_v for_o for_o what_o cause_n shall_v eusebius_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o beside_o as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d not_o well_o affect_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o this_o word_n very_a 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v in_o this_o action_n follow_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n fit_a for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n shall_v judge_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o east_n even_o after_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o east_n and_o synod_n compound_v of_o a_o far_o great_a number_n of_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n and_o province_n when_o paul_n say_v eusebius_n will_v not_o quit_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n the_o emperor_n aurelian_a be_v call_v to_o this_o business_n ordain_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o he_o to_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o rome_n of_o the_o same_o law_n shall_v write_v back_o and_o the_o greek_a manuscript_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o counsel_n keep_v in_o the_o private_a library_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n the_o emperor_n aurelian_a although_o a_o pagan_a send_v back_o the_o question_n of_o paul_n 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o those_o that_o be_v by_o he_o that_o when_o they_o have_v examine_v whether_o he_o be_v justly_o depose_v he_o may_v be_v dispossess_v of_o the_o church_n and_o zonaras_n and_o after_o he_o balsomon_n not_o only_a grecian_n but_o schismatickes_n the_o emperor_n aurelian_a enjoin_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v with_o 〈◊〉_d he_o to_o examine_v those_o thing_n wherewith_o `_o paul_n be_v charge_v and_o if_o he_o be_v just_o depose_v to_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o christian_n which_o alsoe_o since_o the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v imitate_v when_o it_o reserve_v as_o shall_v also_o appear_v hereafter_o the_o judgement_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o iwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d tradition_n bare_a that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v always_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o roman_a and_o after_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o six_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o constantinople_n when_o they_o send_v back_o the_o cause_n of_o macarius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o arrian_n hold_v their_o false_a council_n at_o antioch_n 1270._o year_n ago_o do_v socrates_n a_o 8._o ancient_a greek_a author_n of_o 1200_o year_n stand_v write_v julius_n bishop_n of_o great_a rome_n be_v not_o there_o nor_o send_v he_o any_o in_o his_o steed_n
of_o the_o string_n of_o eunomius_n lyre_n be_v break_v the_o greek_a fable_n say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d a_o grasshopper_n come_v and_o set_v herself_o upon_o the_o lyre_n and_o supply_v with_o her_o song_n the_o defect_n of_o the_o string_n that_o want_v so_o when_o liberius_n banish_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o his_o seat_n by_o the_o arrian_n begin_v to_o be_v want_v to_o the_o consort_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n felix_n one_o of_o the_o deacon_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o arrian_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v substitute_v in_o his_o place_n supply_v against_o their_o expectation_n the_o defect_n of_o liberius_n and_o so_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n 〈◊〉_d sor_n the_o innocence_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o be_v for_o this_o cause_n drive_v out_o of_o rome_n by_o the_o arrian_n and_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v the_o ancient_a inscription_n martyr_v the_o second_o that_o when_o the_o emperor_n have_v draw_v by_o force_n from_o liberius_n what_o he_o will_v he_o send_v he_o back_o to_o rome_n to_o exercise_v joinct_o with_o felix_n the_o gowerment_n of_o the_o church_n liberius_n in_o steed_n of_o persi_v in_o the_o condition_n that_o the_o arrian_n have_v wrest_v from_o he_o take_v up_o again_o such_o a_o zeal_n for_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o he_o despise_v from_o thence_o forward_o all_o the_o threaten_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o do_v no_o less_o imitate_v saint_n peter_n in_o repair_v the_o offence_n of_o his_o fall_n than_o he_o do_v before_o in_o committinge_n it_o and_o the_o three_o that_o when_o liberius_n be_v arrive_v at_o rome_n 〈◊〉_d if_o we_o will_v believe_v sozomene_n die_v which_o be_v say_v the_o same_o 15._o sozomene_n a_o notable_a care_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o s._n peter_n sea_n a_o while_n after_o say_v sozomene_n fellix_fw-la decease_v and_o liberius_n alone_o rule_v the_o church_n which_o be_v dispose_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n lest_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n shall_v be_v dishonour_v be_v govern_v by_o two_o ruler_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o our_o interrogatory_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o arriar_n have_v cause_v liberius_n to_o be_v remove_v from_o rome_n do_v saint_n 〈◊〉_d aihanasius_n cry_v they_o have_v not_o have_v a_o reverend_a memory_n that_o rome_n be_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o metropolitan_a of_o romania_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o first_o that_o saint_n athanasius_n by_o the_o word_n romania_n mean_v all_o the_o roman_a empire_n we_o learn_v from_o saint_n epiphanius_n who_o say_v manes_n pass_v out_o of_o persia_n into_o romania_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o fire_n of_o 46._o arius_n take_v possession_n of_o almost_o all_o romania_n and_o again_o constantine_n send_v letter_n 49._o against_o arius_n throughout_o all_o romania_n and_o from_o possidius_n who_o call_v the_o vandal_n that_o sack_v africa_n the_o destroyer_n of_o romania_n and_o second_o 〈◊〉_d that_o by_o the_o word_n metropolitan_a he_o mean_v a_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a 30_o metropolitan_a and_o not_o simple_o a_o secular_a and_o temporal_a metropolitan_a a_o metropolitan_a of_o religion_n and_o not_o simple_o a_o metropolitan_a of_o state_n and_o policy_n we_o learn_v it_o from_o the_o allusion_n to_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o arrian_n that_o he_o cue_n in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o which_o the_o arrian_n though_o scornful_o and_o ironical_o have_v call_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o school_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o 〈◊〉_d metropolitan_a of_o religion_n and_o from_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n jerom_n against_o john_n by_o hop_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n ordain_v 61_o that_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v the_o metropolitan_a of_o all_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a metropolitan_a of_o all_o the_o east_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o macedonian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o lampsacus_n in_o 〈◊〉_d resolve_v to_o reunite_v themselves_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v they_o send_v eustathius_n bishop_n of_o sebaste_n in_o armenia_n theophil_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o asian_a bishop_n to_o rome_n who_o after_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n subscribe_v with_o their_o hand_n add_v these_o word_n to_o pope_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d any_o one_o after_o this_o confession_n of_o faith_n expound_v by_o we_o will_v attempt_v any_o accusation_n against_o we_o or_o against_o these_o that_o send_v we_o let_v he_o come_v with_o letter_n from_o thy_o holiness_n before_o such_o orthodoxal_a bishop_n as_o thy_o holiness_n shall_v please_v to_o appoint_v and_o contest_v with_o we_o in_o judgement_n and_o if_o there_o do_v a_o crime_n appear_v let_v the_o author_n thereof_o be_v punish_v and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o eustathius_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o sebaste_n in_o armenia_n by_o the_o council_n of_o militine_n in_o armenia_n and_o show_v to_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n in_o cappadocia_n the_o letter_n of_o restitution_n that_o he_o obtain_v from_o pope_n liberius_n be_v reestablish_v in_o his_o bishopric_n eustathius_n write_v s._n basile_n to_o those_o of_o the_o west_n 〈◊〉_d 74._o be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n because_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o militive_n advise_v himself_o to_o find_v mean_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o travail_v to_o you_o now_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o where_o propound_v to_o he_o by_o the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n liberius_n and_o to_o what_o he_o submit_v himself_o we_o be_v ignorant_a only_o he_o bring_v a_o letter_n which_o restore_v he_o which_o be_v show_v to_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n he_o be_v reestablish_v in_o his_o bishop_n seat_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la be_v in_o question_n do_v saint_n basile_n write_v to_o s._n athanasius_n it_o seem_v to_o 52._o we_o to_o be_v to_o good_a purpose_n to_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v watchful_a over_o these_o part_n and_o give_v his_o judgement_n to_o the_o end_n that_o since_o there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o send_v from_o thence_o person_n in_o behalf_n of_o a_o common_a and_o synodical_a decree_n he_o may_v use_v his_o authority_n in_o the_o business_n and_o choose_v man_n capable_a of_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o way_n etc._n etc._n and_o have_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimini_fw-la that_o they_o may_v disannul_v those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v do_v by_o force_n for_o whereas_o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o same_o saint_n basile_n sting_v with_o the_o intermission_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n have_v make_v in_o communicatinge_v by_o ecclesiastical_a letter_n with_o he_o upon_o a_o advertisement_n 8._o that_o have_v be_v give_v at_o rome_n that_o he_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n cry_n against_o the_o pride_n of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n and_o say_v that_o they_o know_v not_o 10._o the_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o eastern_a affair_n neither_o have_v prtience_n to_o learn_v it_o and_o again_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o by_o affliction_n add_v pain_n 77._o to_o those_o that_o be_v oppress_v and_o humble_v nor_o esteem_v that_o dignity_n consist_v in_o disdain_n it_o be_v not_o to_o tax_v those_o of_o the_o west_n that_o they_o stretch_v their_o jurisdiction_n to_o far_o that_o he_o speak_v this_o langage_fw-fr but_o contrariwise_o to_o tax_v they_o that_o they_o take_v not_o sufficient_a notice_n of_o the_o asian_a affair_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o letter_n he_o write_v to_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n who_o metropolitan_a he_o be_v which_o 77._o contain_v these_o word_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v judge_v by_o you_o provide_v that_o those_o which_o slander_v we_o may_v appear_v face_n to_o face_n with_o we_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o your_o reverence_n and_o again_o comfort_v we_o with_o your_o peaceable_a letter_n and_o with_o your_o charitable_a communication_n easinge_v as_o by_o a_o sweet_a somentation_n the_o wound_n which_o your_o former_a negligence_n have_v make_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o which_o he_o 10._o add_v to_o the_o first_o complaint_n that_o those_o of_o the_o west_n prevent_v with_o false_a suspicion_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o his_o behalf_n as_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o marcellus_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o take_v they_o for_o adversary_n that_o report_v the_o truth_n to_o they_o and_o establish_a heresy_n in_o trustinge_v too_o much_o in_o their_o own_o opinion_n not_o that_o he_o pretend_v the_o pope_n have_v ever_o approve_v the_o heresy_n of_o marcellus_n only_o he_o mean_v
reverence_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n it_o shall_v turn_v you_o to_o great_a honour_n and_o a_o while_n after_o but_o what_o need_n be_v there_o to_o exact_v from_o i_o the_o deposition_n of_o timothy_n since_o he_o be_v long_o since_o depose_v here_o with_o his_o master_n apollinarius_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o peter_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n for_o whereas_o the_o demand_n of_o this_o confirmation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n report_v by_o theodoret_n it_o be_v because_o that_o epistle_n be_v not_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o one_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o father_n but_o of_o a_o other_o council_n celebrate_v the_o year_n follow_v at_o constantinople_n by_o some_o of_o the_o same_o father_n either_o call_v back_o again_o as_o theodoret_n pretend_v or_o remain_v of_o the_o former_a council_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o tenor_n of_o that_o letter_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o council_n have_v confirm_v the_o election_n that_o the_o syrian_n have_v make_v of_o flavianus_n instead_o of_o miletius_n competitor_n of_o paulinus_n to_o the_o patriarkshipp_n of_o antioch_n and_o have_v reunite_v in_o flavianus_n person_n both_o their_o right_n do_v the_o pope_n call_v the_o cause_n to_o rome_n before_o a_o council_n that_o he_o assemble_v there_o and_o by_o his_o letter_n accompany_v with_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n send_v for_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o have_v confirm_v this_o election_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o come_v and_o put_v it_o again_o to_o trial_n at_o rome_n and_o give_v assignation_n to_o both_o party_n to_o appear_v there_o whereof_o one_o to_o wit_n paulinus_n appear_v but_o flavianus_n distrust_v the_o equity_n of_o his_o cause_n have_v recourse_n to_o excuse_n and_o delay_n the_o ecclesiastical_a 〈◊〉_d necessity_n say_v saint_n jerom_n draw_v i_o to_o rome_n with_o the_o holy_a bishop_n paulinus_n and_o epiphanius_n whereof_o the_o one_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n in_o syria_n and_o the_o other_o the_o church_n of_o salamina_n in_o cypress_n and_o again_o when_o the_o imperial_a letter_n have_v draw_v to_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n 17._o paul_n see_v there_o the_o admirable_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o christ_n paulinus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n 11._o and_o epiphanius_n bishop_n of_o salamina_n in_o cypress_n and_o sozomene_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o and_o all_o the_o western_a praelate_n bear_v the_o ordination_n of_o flavianus_n very_o impatient_o and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o therefore_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d ibid._n they_o together_o with_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d write_v and_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o 9_o east_n into_o the_o west_n and_o the_o same_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n excuse_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o rome_n move_v say_v they_o with_o brotherly_a charity_n you_o have_v call_v we_o as_o your_o member_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n etc._n etc._n but_o beside_o that_o our_o church_n but_o a_o while_n before_o beginning_n to_o be_v restore_v if_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v this_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d abandon_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o many_o of_o we_o can_v no_o way_n put_v in_o execution_n for_o asmuch_o as_o we_o travel_v to_o constantinople_n upon_o the_o letter_n of_o ibid._n your_o reverence_n send_v the_o last_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n to_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n have_v prepare_v we_o for_o none_o but_o that_o only_a yourney_n of_o constantinople_n and_o have_v get_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n remain_v in_o the_o province_n for_o none_o but_o that_o and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o epistle_n speak_v of_o paulinus_n who_o they_o believe_v pope_n damasus_n favour_v as_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d create_v patriarcke_o of_o antioch_n by_o lucifer_n legate_n to_o the_o pope_n liberius_n his_o predecessor_n we_o 〈◊〉_d you_o not_o to_o prefer_v the_o favour_n or_o friendship_n to_o one_o particular_a ibid._n man_n before_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n of_o say_v and_o christian_n charity_n be_v confirm_v among_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n among_o themselves_o we_o may_v cease_v to_o have_v in_o our_o mouth_n these_o word_n condemn_v by_o the_o apostle_n i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o of_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o shall_v cease_v from_o say_v i_o be_o a_o miletian_a i_o be_o a_o paulinist_n i_o be_o a_o appolinarist_n for_o that_o it_o be_v which_o those_o signify_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n i_o be_o of_o apollo_n i_o be_o of_o cephas_n which_o do_v not_o design_n as_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o haste_n but_o the_o three_o faction_n whereinto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o eastern_a asia_n have_v be_v divide_v and_o rend_v under_o paulinus_n miletius_n and_o appollinarius_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v those_o of_o the_o east_n mean_v by_o those_o word_n among_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n and_o themselves_o they_o that_o be_v so_o tie_v in_o communion_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o they_o have_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o seat_n as_o theodoret_n say_v 2_o but_o even_o now_o but_o under_o condition_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n but_o that_o be_v so_o clear_a as_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n let_v we_o go_v on_o and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o evasion_n of_o flavianus_n who_o withdraw_v himself_o because_o he_o know_v he_o have_v be_v order_v against_o the_o oath_n make_v 〈◊〉_d between_o miletius_n his_o predecessor_n and_o paulinus_n that_o the_o long_a liver_n of_o they_o two_o shall_v remain_v the_o sole_a patriarch_n have_v be_v discover_v and_o 23._o that_o the_o complaint_n thereof_o be_v arrive_v to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_fw-la then_o only_a emperor_n who_o reside_v at_o constantinople_n do_v the_o emperor_n make_v he_o come_v from_o antioch_n to_o constantinople_n and_o press_v he_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n even_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n the_o emperor_n say_v theodoret_n often_o call_v upon_o make_v flavianus_n come_v to_o constantinople_n ibid._n and_o command_v he_o to_o travail_v to_o rome_n but_o flavianus_n answer_v it_o be_v winter_n and_o promisinge_v to_o perform_v his_o command_n in_o the_o return_n of_o the_o spring_n return_v into_o his_o country_n and_o a_o while_n after_o the_o emperor_n have_v again_o make_v he_o come_v to_o he_o again_o command_v he_o to_o transport_v himself_o to_o rome_n for_o that_o theodoret_n suffragan_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o creature_n to_o one_o of_o flavianus_n successor_n add_v that_o the_o emperor_n touch_v with_o the_o second_o answer_n of_o flavianus_n send_v he_o back_o to_o his_o province_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o protection_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v a_o testimony_n that_o have_v more_o relation_n to_o favour_n then_o to_o truth_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n write_v after_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o pope_n siricius_n successor_n to_o damasus_n flavianus_n have_v cause_n to_o fear_v 78._o and_o therefore_o he_o fly_v a_o trial_n and_o again_o one_o only_a flavianus_n not_o subject_a to_o law_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o appear_v not_o when_o we_o be_v all_o assemble_v and_o a_o while_n after_o flavianus_n only_o be_v exempt_v as_o he_o pretende_v from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a college_n who_o will_v neither_o exhibit_v his_o presence_n to_o the_o sacerdotal_a assembly_n nor_o to_o the_o imperial_a decree_n and_o why_o then_o when_o paulinus_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o euagrius_n be_v substitute_v in_o his_o steed_n do_v the_o same_o council_n of_o capua_n which_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n call_v a_o universal_a council_n and_o that_o s._n ambrose_n 38._o describe_v as_o assemble_v from_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o province_n continue_v the_o first_o proceed_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o see_v that_o euagrius_n have_v appear_v and_o that_o flavianus_n persevere_v in_o his_o contempt_n delegated_a theophilus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n who_o patriarkship_n border_v upon_o that_o of_o 78._o antioch_n to_o examine_v it_o the_o sacred_a synod_n say_v saint_n ambrose_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o theophilus_n have_v commit_v the_o right_a of_o examine_v this_o affair_n to_o your_o unanimity_n and_o to_o our_o other_o colleague_n of_o egypt_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o you_o cite_v again_o our_o brother_n flavianus_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n have_v give_v this_o commission_n to_o theophilus_n patriarch_n
in_o the_o east_n will_v frame_v such_o a_o judgement_n where_o at_o we_o shall_v all_o rejoice_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o god_n and_o why_o do_v the_o milevitan_a council_n to_o which_o s._n austin_n be_v secretary_n write_v these_o word_n to_o pope_n innocent_a for_o as_o much_o as_o 92._o god_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o principal_a grace_n have_v place_v you_o in_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o have_v grant_v you_o to_o be_v such_o in_o our_o day_n as_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o fear_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v impute_v to_o we_o for_o a_o crime_n of_o negligence_n if_o we_o shall_v conceal_v from_o your_o reverence_n those_o thing_n which_o for_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v represent_v to_o you_o then_o to_o imagine_v that_o you_o can_v receive_v they_o disdainful_o or_o negligent_o we_o beseech_v you_o to_o apply_v your_o pastoral_a diligence_n to_o the_o great_a peril_n of_o the_o weak_a member_n of_o christ_n and_o towards_o the_o end_n but_o we_o believe_v with_o the_o help_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o god_n jesus_n christ_n who_o vouchsafe_v to_o direct_v you_o consult_v with_o he_o and_o to_o heart_n you_o pray_v to_o he_o that_o those_o that_o hold_v these_o opinion_n so_o perverse_a and_o pernicious_a will_v more_o casilie_o yield_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o holiness_n draw_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o pope_n innocent_a answer_v both_o the_o counsel_n do_v he_o testify_v to_o they_o that_o they_o have_v behave_v 4._o themselves_o towards_o he_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o all_o the_o other_o province_n have_v do_v to_o his_o predecessor_n it_o be_v not_o by_o human_a sentence_n but_o divine_a say_v that_o great_a pope_n in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o milevitan_n council_n insert_v among_o saint_n augustine_n epistle_n and_o cite_v by_o saint_n austin_n himself_o in_o his_o write_n against_o the_o pelagian_n that_o the_o father_n have_v ordain_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v treat_v in_o province_n distant_a and_o far_o of_o shall_v not_o be_v determine_v till_o first_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o sentence_n that_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o be_v just_a may_v the_o confirm_v by_o the_o entire_a authority_n of_o the_o same_o sea_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o the_o other_o church_n as_o spring_n all_o proceed_n from_o their_o mother_n source_n and_o run_v with_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o original_n through_o the_o diverse_a region_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v take_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o ordain_v and_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o milevitan_a council_n which_o be_v alsoe_o insert_v among_o saint_n augustine_n epistle_n you_o provide_v say_v he_o diligent_o 93_o and_o worthy_o for_o the_o apostolic_a honour_n for_o the_o honour_n i_o say_v of_o he_o that_o beside_o assault_n from_o without_o sustain_v the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n follow_v in_o the_o consultation_n of_o difficult_a thing_n the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a rule_n which_o you_o know_v have_v always_o be_v practise_v by_o all_o the_o world_n with_o i_o and_o a_o while_n after_o &_o princippal_o as_o often_o as_o there_o be_v question_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n i_o conceive_v all_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n in_o the_o bishop_n sea_n ought_v not_o to_o refer_v what_o may_v profitt_a in_o common_a to_o all_o the_o church_n to_o any_o but_o to_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o author_n of_o their_o name_n and_o dignity_n and_o why_o then_o to_o take_v away_o all_o occasion_n from_o reply_v that_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n do_v saint_n austin_n so_o high_o 106._o praise_v both_o these_o answer_n upon_o this_o affair_n say_v saint_n austin_n be_v send_v the_o relation_n of_o the_o two_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n to_o the_o apostobick_a sea_n etc._n etc._n to_o all_o these_o thing_n pope_n innocent_a answer_v we_o as_o be_v convenient_a and_o as_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n shall_v answer_v us._n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o optatus_n of_o this_o new_a heresy_n pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la have_v be_v author_n 〈◊〉_d or_o most_o violent_a and_o famous_a promoter_n they_o alsoe_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o two_o episcopal_a counsel_n with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n who_o undertake_v the_o protection_n of_o his_o church_n have_v also_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n by_o the_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o catholic_a sea_n yea_o even_o by_o the_o number_n of_o two_o of_o they_o pope_n innocent_a and_o pope_n zozimus_n if_o they_o correct_v not_o themselves_o and_o beside_o do_v not_o penance_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o african_n have_v hold_v their_o last_o council_n against_o celestius_fw-la do_v prosper_n write_v under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o chron._n honorius_n &_o theodosius_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n of_o 214-bishop_n be_v carry_v to_o pope_n zozimus_n which_o have_v be_v approve_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n be_v condemn_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o again_o pope_n zozimus_n of_o happy_a collat._n memory_n add_v the_o power_n of_o his_o sentence_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o african_a counsel_n and_o to_o cut_v of_o the_o wicked_a arm_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n with_o peter_n sword_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o general_a the_o 6._o principallitie_n of_o the_o apostolical_a priesthood_n have_v make_v rome_n great_a by_o the_o tribunal_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o that_o of_o the_o empire_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n be_v assemble_v at_o caesarea_n in_o mauritania_n do_v saint_n austin_n 157._o say_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n enjoin_v to_o we_o by_o the_o reverend_a pope_n zozimus_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n have_v draw_v we_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o why_o then_o when_o brixius_n bishop_n of_o tours_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o seat_n and_o justinian_n create_v bishop_n in_o his_o steed_n and_o armenius_n after_o he_o have_v brixius_n recourse_n to_o rome_n to_o the_o same_o pope_n zozimus_n that_o give_v he_o letter_n of_o re-establishment_n upon_o which_o he_o be_v receive_v and_o restore_v brixius_n say_v saint_n gcegorie_n of_o tours_n transport_v himself_o to_o rome_n relate_v to_o the_o pope_n all_o his_o suffering_n and_o a_o little_a after_o return_v 2._o then_o from_o rome_n the_o seven_o 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o have_v he_o dispose_v his_o way_n to_o tours_n and_o why_o then_o when_o socrates_n a_o greek_a author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n with_o zozimus_n produce_v example_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o bishop_n do_v he_o allege_v in_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o other_o example_n the_o translation_n of_o perigenes_n bishop_n of_o patras_n one_o of_o the_o city_n of_o peloponesus_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n command_v to_o be_v make_v archbishop_n of_o corinth_n and_o who_o alsoe_o in_o his_o quality_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n perigenes_n say_v socrates_n have_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o patras_n but_o because_o the_o citizen_n of_o patras_n have_v not_o receive_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n command_v 36._o that_o he_o shall_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a church_n of_o corinth_n the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n be_v dead_a in_o which_o church_n also_o he_o govern_v all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n and_o why_o then_o when_o pope_n boniface_n successor_n to_o zozimus_n be_v raise_v to_o the_o popedom_n do_v s._n austin_n write_v to_o he_o thou_o disdain_v not_o to_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o humble_a though_o thou_o rule_a more_o high_o and_o again_o the_o pastoral_a watch_n be_v common_a to_o we_o all_o that_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n although_o thou_o be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o more_o high_a degree_n and_o why_o then_o when_o pope_n celestine_n have_v succeed_v in_o the_o pontifical_a dignity_n to_o pope_n boniface_n do_v prosper_n report_n that_o he_o send_v 〈◊〉_d german_a the_o bishop_n of_o auxerra_n into_o great_a brittany_n and_o make_v he_o his_o legate_n there_o and_o institute_v palladius_n first_o bishop_n of_o scotland_n pope_n celestine_n say_v prosper_n at_o the_o instance_n of_o palladius_n send_v german_a bishop_n of_o auxerra_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d that_o cast_v out_o the_o heretic_n he_o may_v address_v the_o briton_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d say_v and_o again_o palladius_n be_v order_v and_o send_v first_o bishop_n by_o pope_n celestine_n to_o the_o scot_n believe_v in_o christ._n and_o why_o then_o when_o nestorius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n begin_v to_o trouble_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n do_v the_o same_o pope_n
celestine_n make_v s._n cyrill_n patriark_n of_o alexandria_n his_o vicar_n in_o the_o east_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o nestorius_n and_o appoint_v he_o to_o excommunicate_v nestorius_n if_o within_o ten_o day_n after_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o letter_n from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n he_o do_v not_o anathematise_v his_o error_n the_o authority_n of_o our_o sea_n say_v he_o be_v add_v to_o thou_o and_o use_v with_o power_n the_o representation_n of_o our_o 〈◊〉_d place_n thou_o shall_v execute_v exact_o and_o severelie_o this_o sentence_n to_o wit_n that_o if_o within_o ten_o 〈◊〉_d tell_v aster_n signification_n make_v to_o he_o of_o this_o admonition_n nestorius_n 〈◊〉_d not_o his_o naughty_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n thy_o holiness_n provide_v without_o delay_n for_o that_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v declare_v he_o whole_o cut_v of_o from_o our_o body_n and_o prosper_v touch_v the_o 〈◊〉_d same_o history_n celestine_n to_o cut_v of_o the_o nestorian_a impiety_n aid_v cyrill_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n most_o glorious_a defendor_n of_o the_o faith_n with_o the_o apostolic_a sword_n and_o why_o then_o when_o s._n cyrill_n have_v receive_v the_o pope_n admonition_n do_v he_o send_v to_o signify_v it_o to_o nestorius_n and_o to_o the_o constantinopolitan_o in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d be_v constrain_v to_o signify_v to_o he_o by_o synodic_n all_o letter_n that_o if_o very_o speedy_o and_o 17._o within_o the_o time_n set_v down_o by_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n celestine_n he_o renounce_v not_o his_o novelty_n and_o anathematise_v they_o by_o writing_n etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v no_o more_o have_v any_o part_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o for_o what_o cause_n when_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d be_v come_v in_o the_o age_n follow_v to_o constantinople_n do_v the_o religious_a man_n of_o syria_n pray_v he_o to_o do_v the_o same_o to_o anthimus_n archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d we_o pray_v you_o say_v they_o to_o do_v to_o anthimus_n as_o celestine_n do_v to_o nestorius_n men._n assign_v he_o a_o 〈◊〉_d as_o celestine_n do_v to_o nestorius_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n proceed_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o nestorius_n do_v they_o couch_v it_o in_o these_o term_n constrain_v necessary_o 1._o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o canon_n and_o by_o the_o letter_n of_o our_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o fellow_n minister_v 〈◊〉_d we_o be_v come_v not_o without_o many_o tear_n to_o pronounce_v this_o sad_a sentence_n against_o he_o and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v arrive_v to_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v they_o thank_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n for_o have_v show_v themselves_o true_a and_o holy_a member_n of_o the_o pope_n we_o give_v thanks_n say_v they_o to_o this_o reverend_a synod_n that_o the_o letter_n of_o our_o 2_o most_o holy_a and_o hlessed_a pope_n have_v be_v recite_v to_o you_o you_o have_v by_o your_o holy_a and_o religious_a voice_n show_v yourselve_n holy_a member_n to_o your_o holy_a head_n for_o your_o 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o saint_n peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o all_o the_o ibid._n apostle_n and_o again_o none_o doubt_v for_o it_o have_v be_v notorious_a in_o all_o age_n that_o the_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a peter_n prince_n and_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n pillar_n of_o the_o faith_n foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v receive_v from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v sin_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o decide_v cause_n yet_o unto_o this_o day_n and_o for_o all_o eternity_n by_o his_o successor_n of_o 〈◊〉_d than_o the_o holy_a successor_n and_o ordinary_a vicar_n and_o most_o bless_a pope_n and_o bishop_n celestine_n have_v send_v we_o for_o he_o as_o his_o lieutenant_n to_o this_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d and_o why_o then_o when_o there_o be_v a_o question_n to_o pass_v from_o the_o cause_n of_o nestorius_n to_o that_o of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n do_v iwenall_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d say_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n have_v be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o roman_a it_o be_v fit_a say_v he_o that_o the_o right_a 〈◊〉_d 4._o bishop_n of_o antioch_n john_n honour_v this_o great_a holy_a and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o council_n shall_v have_v recourse_n hither_o to_o justify_v himself_o of_o what_o be_v object_v against_o he_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v obey_v and_o honour_v the_o apostolic_a throne_n of_o great_a rome_n sittinge_n with_o we_o and_o with_o the_o apostolic_a throne_n of_o jerusalem_n before_o which_o principal_o it_o be_v accustom_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n and_o practice_n that_o the_o seat_n of_o antioch_n be_v to_o be_v rule_v and_o judge_v for_o that_o we_o must_v refer_v the_o last_o clause_n of_o the_o period_n of_o iwenall_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o 〈◊〉_d have_v do_v deceive_a himself_o with_o this_o that_o the_o word_n to_o obey_v govern_v the_o dative_a and_o not_o consider_v 29_o that_o the_o verb_n to_o honour_v which_o be_v there_o add_v change_v the_o rule_n it_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o by_o seven_o necessary_a and_o undoubted_a proof_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o council_n proceed_v indeed_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n do_v they_o reserve_v the_o decision_n to_o the_o pope_n 5._o be_v move_v write_v the_o council_n to_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o indignity_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o will_v pronounce_v against_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n the_o same_o sentence_n that_o he_o have_v unlawfullie_o pronounce_v against_o those_o which_o be_v convince_v of_o no_o crime_n but_o to_o the_o end_n to_o conquerr_v his_o rashness_n with_o meekness_n although_o he_o have_v most_o justly_o deserve_v to_o suffer_v such_o a_o sentence_n yet_o we_o have_v reserve_v he_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o thy_o piety_n which_o afterward_o the_o three_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o constantinople_n do_v imitate_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o macarius_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n as_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonat_a 18._o report_n in_o these_o word_n macarius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o his_o adherent_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o remit_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n and_o why_o then_o when_o hilary_n bishop_n of_o arles_n undertake_v to_o ordain_v prelate_n in_o the_o province_n of_o vienna_n without_o the_o pope_n leave_n do_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o make_v a_o law_n which_o afterward_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o second_o insert_v into_o his_o new_a constitution_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o law_n of_o theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n by_o which_o he_o forbadd_a that_o any_o invocation_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o pope_n licence_n nou._n whereas_o say_v the_o law_n the_o merit_n of_o peter_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o episcopal_a society_n and_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sacred_a synod_n 24._o have_v so_o establish_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n as_o presumption_n shall_v attempt_v nothing_o unlawful_a against_o the_o authority_n thereof_o for_o so_o the_o peace_n of_o church_n shall_v be_v maintain_v by_o all_o if_o the_o universality_n acknowledge_v her_o rector_n and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o decree_v by_o a_o perpetual_a ordinance_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a either_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n or_o those_o of_o other_o province_n to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o ancient_a custom_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o reverend_a pope_n of_o the_o eternal_a city_n but_o to_o they_o and_o to_o all_o those_o thing_n shall_v be_v law_n which_o have_v be_v ordain_v or_o shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o whatsoever_o bishop_n be_v call_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n shall_v neglect_v to_o present_v himself_o he_o shall_v be_v constrain_v by_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o province_n to_o appear_v for_o to_o object_n that_o prosper_v for_o all_o this_o attempt_n do_v call_v hilary_n bishop_n of_o arles_n a_o saint_n it_o have_v be_v somewhat_o if_o between_o hilary_n attempt_v and_o his_o death_n there_o have_v be_v no_o penance_n interpose_v but_o so_o far_o be_v hilary_n from_o persist_v in_o this_o crime_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o day_n that_o he_o go_v himself_o to_o make_v personal_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o pope_n he_o undertake_v 38._o say_v the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n report_v by_o cuias_fw-la a_o journey_n to_o `_o rome_n on_o foot_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o
town_n without_o a_o horse_n or_o any_o beast_n of_o carriage_n and_o present_v himself_o to_o pope_n leo_n reverentlie_o offer_v he_o obedience_n and_o require_v with_o humility_n that_o he_o may_v ordain_v of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o accustom_a manner_n etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n he_o will_v not_o importune_v he_o and_o again_o he_o apply_v himself_o whole_o to_o appease_v the_o spirit_n of_o leo_n with_o a_o prostrate_a humility_n and_o why_o then_o when_o eutyches_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n pretend_v that_o he_o have_v appeal_v from_o flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o pope_n leo_n do_v not_o flavianus_n dispute_v that_o he_o can_v not_o appeal_v but_o that_o he_o have_v not_o appeal_v eutyches_n say_v pope_n leo_n write_v to_o 8._o 〈◊〉_d affirm_v that_o in_o full_a judgement_n he_o pretend_v you_o a_o request_n of_o appeal_n and_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v by_o which_o mean_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o make_v act_n of_o protestation_n in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n and_o flavianus_n answer_v leo_n eutyches_n 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o have_v inform_v you_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o judgement_n he_o pretend_v to_o we_o and_o to_o the_o holy_a council_n here_o assemble_v libel_n of_o appeal_n and_o that_o he_o appeal_v to_o your_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v never_o do_v by_o he_o and_o again_o move_v then_o most_o holy_a father_n with_o all_o these_o attempt_n of_o he_o and_o with_o those_o which_o have_v be_v do_v and_o be_v do_v against_o we_o and_o against_o the_o holy_a church_n do_v you_o work_v confident_o according_a to_o your_o wont_a courage_n as_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o priesthood_n and_o make_v the_o common_a cause_n and_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n your_o own_o vouchsafe_v to_o confirm_v by_o your_o write_n the_o condemnation_n which_o have_v be_v regularlie_o make_v against_o he_o and_o for_o what_o 〈◊〉_d cause_n do_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n embrace_v the_o judgement_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v against_o eutyches_n after_o the_o sentence_n of_o flavianus_n his_o own_o bishop_n as_o give_v by_o a_o competent_a judge_n and_o attribute_v the_o final_a deposition_n of_o eutyches_n to_o the_o pope_n judgement_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o his_o tyranny_n say_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o speak_v pf_o the_o attempt_n that_o dioscorus_n have_v make_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d innocent_a and_o bathe_v restore_v to_o he_o the_o dignity_n whereof_o he_o be_v deprive_v by_o your_o holiness_n and_o why_o then_o when_o peter_n chrissologus_fw-la bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d write_v to_o the_o same_o eutyches_n the_o epistle_n which_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o front_n of_o all_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v 〈◊〉_d he_o say_v we_o exhort_v thou_o in_o these_o thing_n reverend_a brother_n to_o lend_v a_o obedient_a attention_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o bless_a peter_n who_o live_v and_o rule_n in_o his_o own_o seat_n exhibit_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o for_o we_o for_o the_o desire_n we_o have_v of_o peace_n and_o faith_n can_v hear_v matter_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o why_o then_o when_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o tire_n a_o town_n near_o persia_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v he_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n i_o attend_v say_v theodoret_n in_o his_o letter_n leon._n to_o pope_n leo_n the_o sentence_n of_o your_o apostolic_a throne_n and_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n to_o succour_v i_o appeal_n to_o your_o right_n and_o just_a judgement_n and_o command_v that_o i_o transport_v myself_o to_o you_o and_o verify_v that_o my_o doctrine_n follow_v the_o apostolic_a step_n and_o for_o what_o cause_n do_v flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o same_o council_n appeal_v to_o the_o same_o pope_n we_o ought_v say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o write_v to_o theodosius_n the_o second_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n to_o preserve_v inviolable_a in_o our_o day_n the_o dignity_n of_o particular_a reverence_n to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n that_o the_o holy_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o antiquity_n 〈◊〉_d have_v attribute_v the_o priesthood_n above_o all_o may_v have_v place_n to_o judge_v in_o matter_n of_o say_v and_o of_o the_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n for_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v appeal_v to_o he_o in_o the_o contention_n which_o be_v riser_n 12._o about_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o liberatus_n archdeacon_n of_o carthage_n flavianus_n say_v he_o the_o sentence_n have_v be_v pronounce_v against_o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n by_o petition_n present_v to_o his_o legate_n for_o to_o say_v as_o the_o pope_n adversary_n do_v that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v read_v again_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n only_o bare_a that_o flavianus_n say_v to_o dioscorus_n i_o appeal_v from_o thou_o without_o say_v i_o appeal_v from_o thou_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o know_v not_o that_o those_o act_n as_o it_o be_v represent_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v be_v all_o falsify_v by_o dioscorus_n who_o have_v put_v in_o and_o put_v out_o 〈◊〉_d what_o he_o list_v make_v the_o bishop_n sign_n by_o force_n to_o blank_n they_o have_v 〈◊〉_d we_o violence_n with_o wound_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n we_o have_v sign_v blank_n and_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o dorilaus_n report_v conc._n the_o same_o history_n to_o the_o council_n of_o cbalcedon_n dioscorus_n say_v he_o insert_v in_o the_o act_n thing_n that_o be_v never_o speak_v and_o constrain_v the_o bishop_n to_o sign_n to_o blank_n 3._o and_o beside_o the_o exhibition_n that_o flavianus_n make_v of_o his_o petition_n of_o apppeale_n 12._o to_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o opposition_n that_o the_o pope_n legate_n make_v for_o he_o against_o dioscorus_n and_o against_o all_o the_o council_n as_o soon_o as_o synod_n he_o have_v appeal_v and_o the_o appeal_n that_o theodoret_n the_o neighbour_a bishop_n to_o persia_n and_o companion_n in_o flavianus_n condemnation_n putin_n from_o the_o same_o 1._o council_n to_o the_o pope_n resist_v and_o make_v his_o appeal_n be_v judge_v of_o before_o the_o pope_n do_v it_o not_o sufficient_o manifest_a that_o it_o be_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o flavianus_n appeal_v 1._o moreoner_n how_o have_v flavianus_n in_o say_v simple_o i_o appeal_v from_o thou_o make_v it_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v to_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n that_o he_o apeal_v since_o the_o council_n wherein_o dioscorus_n condemn_v he_o take_v alsoe_o in_o condemn_v 1._o he_o the_o little_a of_o ecumenical_a and_o have_v be_v assemble_v by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_fw-la the_o second_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o ecumenical_a and_o after_o confirm_v as_o ecumenical_a and_o that_o to_o be_v true_o ecumenical_a there_o 19_o want_v nothing_o of_o the_o number_n and_o plenitude_n of_o bishop_n but_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v distract_v from_o it_o by_o the_o separation_n of_o his_o legate_n whereof_o some_o be_v flee_v and_o the_o rest_n remain_v out_o of_o their_o rank_n and_o among_o the_o press_n contrariwise_o that_o all_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o principal_a metropolitan_n and_o bishop_n of_o their_o patriarkshipp_n be_v there_o and_o that_o there_o want_v of_o the_o patriarch_n none_o but_o the_o pope_n alone_o be_v it_o not_o a_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o flavianus_n say_v i_o appeal_v and_o present_v his_o libel_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n protest_v at_o the_o same_o tymt_v a_o opposition_n against_o the_o sentence_n from_o which_o he_o appeal_v that_o it_o be_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o appeal_v though_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n have_v not_o also_o say_v these_o express_a word_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o liberatus_n these_o flavianus_n sentence_n have_v be_v pronounce_v against_o idem_fw-la he_o appeal_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a for_o to_o object_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o retain_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o cause_n entire_o but_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v judge_v in_o a_o 19_o general_a council_n have_v we_o not_o already_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n custom_n after_o appeal_n be_v to_o do_v two_o thing_n one_o to_o judge_v of_o
the_o validity_n or_o invalidity_n of_o the_o appeal_n and_o in_o case_n of_o validity_n to_o annul_v the_o first_o judgement_n and_o restore_v by_o provision_n the_o appellant_n to_o his_o former_a estate_n the_o other_o after_o he_o have_v annul_v the_o first_o sentence_n to_o ordain_v to_o proceed_v to_o a_o second_o judgement_n and_o in_o case_n that_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o examine_v it_o himself_o than_o not_o to_o vex_v party_n to_o give_v they_o judge_n either_o send_v from_o rome_n or_o take_v by_o commission_n from_o rome_n out_o of_o those_o part_n or_o in_o case_n of_o danger_n of_o schism_n between_o the_o two_o empire_n to_o decree_v that_o the_o cause_n shall_v be_v judge_v his_o legate_n be_v present_a in_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n now_o do_v not_o pope_n leo_n do_v this_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o flavianus_n for_o first_o do_v he_o not_o declare_v the_o appeal_n to_o be_v lawful_a abrogate_a and_o annul_v the_o judgement_n of_o dioscorus_n and_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n against_o flavianus_n and_o set_v thing_n in_o the_o same_o estate_n they_o where_o before_o that_o be_v to_o say_v restore_v flavianus_n even_o after_o his_o title_n of_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o excommunicate_v all_o those_o that_o do_v not_o communicate_v to_o his_o memory_n and_o that_o without_o stay_v till_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v hold_v and_o second_o do_v he_o not_o ordain_v that_o to_o pass_v to_o a_o new_a judgement_n where_o all_o the_o proceed_n of_o dioscorus_n and_o of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n against_o flavianus_n may_v again_o be_v put_v to_o the_o trial_n and_o when_o dioscorus_n if_o he_o persist_v in_o his_o contumacy_n may_v be_v use_v according_a to_o his_o desert_n the_o hold_v a_o general_a council_n shall_v be_v procure_v that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v judge_v under_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o legate_n with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o the_o world_n for_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n pray_v 23._o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n to_o command_v that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v set_v in_o the_o same_o state_n wherein_o they_o be_v before_o judgement_n till_o a_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v call_v together_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v 37._o in_o regard_n of_o the_o temporal_a law_n for_o as_o much_o as_o a_o little_a while_n before_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n a_o prince_n that_o sign_v as_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o dispatch_n without_o read_v they_o and_o who_o favour_n chrisaphius_fw-la the_o eutychian_a 3._o abuse_v have_v make_v a_o law_n in_o his_o empire_n by_o which_o he_o confirm_v the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o he_o believe_v to_o be_v oecumenicke_n and_o the_o deposition_n of_o flavianus_n and_o ordain_v that_o all_o those_o that_o in_o the_o easte_n shall_v hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o flavianus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o eutyches_n heresy_n shall_v be_v either_o exclude_v or_o dispossess_v from_o their_o bishopricke_n and_o their_o book_n public_o burn_v and_o their_o adherent_n punish_v with_o confiscation_n of_o good_n and_o perpetual_a banishment_n for_o these_o cause_n then_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n pray_v the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n to_o revoke_v this_o law_n and_o to_o command_v that_o all_o thing_n in_o regard_n of_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n may_v be_v set_v in_o the_o same_o state_n as_o they_o be_v before_o but_o not_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v already_o disannul_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o disannul_v as_o anatolius_n that_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v fain_o to_o renounce_v the_o doctrine_n of_o eutyches_n and_o of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o dioscorus_n and_o to_o restore_v the_o memory_n of_o flaviannus_fw-la into_o the_o record_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o east_n that_o chal●_n will_v return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v fain_o to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o this_o before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n anatolius_n say_v the_o empress_n pulcheria_n write_v to_o pope_n leo_n long_o before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v embrace_v the_o apostolic_a confession_n of_o your_o letter_n reject_v the_o error_n that_o be_v late_o advance_v by_o some_o as_o your_o holiness_n may_v see_v by_o his_o answer_n and_o pope_n leo_n himself_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o anatholius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n write_v six_o month_n before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n your_o charity_n 38_o must_v say_v he_o observe_v in_o regard_n of_o silence_v the_o name_n of_o dioscorus_n iwenall_n and_o ●●●●athius_n at_o the_o holy_a altar_n that_o which_o our_o legate_n in_o those_o place_n tell_v you_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v and_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o honourable_a memory_n of_o saint_n flavianus_n and_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o anatolius_n write_v four_o month_n before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n remember_v say_v he_o to_o keep_v this_o 44._o rule_n that_o all_o those_o that_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o ephesus_n which_o neither_o can_v obtain_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o synod_n and_o wherein_o dioscorus_n show_v his_o corrupt_a will_n and_o juu●nall_n his_o ignorance_n &c_n &c_n be_v grieve_v for_o have_v be_v overcome_v with_o fear_n and_o for_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v force_v to_o consent_v to_o that_o most_o abominable_a judgement_n and_o desire_v to_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o catholic_a communion_n let_v brotherly_a peace_n be_v restore_v to_o they_o after_o competent_a satisfaction_n provide_v that_o they_o condemn_v and_o anathematise_v by_o a_o undoubted_a able_a eutiche_n with_o his_o doctrine_n and_o his_o sect._n but_o as_o for_o those_o that_o have_v more_o grievous_o offend_v in_o this_o case_n &c._n &c._n he_o mean_v dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o jwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o their_o complice_n if_o they_o perchance_o come_v to_o a_o acknowledgement_n and_o abandon_v their_o own_o defence_n convert_v themselves_o to_o condemn_v their_o own_o error_n and_o that_o their_o satisfaction_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o it_o shall_v not_o seem_v fit_a to_o be_v reject_v let_v that_o be_v reserve_v to_o the_o more_o mature_a deliberation_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d apostolic_a and_o indeed_o that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o appeal_n of_o flavianus_n to_o the_o council_n that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o likewise_o have_v never_o be_v hold_v but_o for_o the_o pope_n judge_v of_o flavianus_n cause_n but_o in_o virtue_n of_o flavianus_n appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n commission_n to_o the_o council_n for_o the_o complete_a review_v of_o the_o cause_n three_o thing_n show_v it_o first_o the_o canon_n upon_o which_o pope_n leo_n ground_v his_o procure_v a_o council_n after_o a_o appeal_n be_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n concern_v appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o decree_n say_v he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n 23._o theodosius_n of_o the_o canon_n make_v at_o nicaea_n which_o have_v be_v decree_v by_o the_o prolate_v of_o the_o universal_a world_n and_o who_o copy_n be_v hereunto_o annex_v witness_v that_o after_o the_o put_n in_o of_o a_o appeal_n the_o seek_v a_o synod_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o canon_n annex_v to_o that_o letter_n in_o the_o greek_a act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v 4._o a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n though_o incorrect_o transcribe_v by_o those_o that_o copy_v it_o which_o canon_n pope_n leo_n call_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v be_v as_o a_o seal_n and_o a_o appendix_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o second_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n pronounce_v their_o judgement_n upon_o the_o punishment_n that_o dioscorus_n shall_v incur_v they_o pronounce_v it_o in_o these_o word_n and_o therefore_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a rome_n leo_n have_v by_o we_o and_o by_o this_o present_a synod_n together_o with_o the_o thrice_o bless_a and_o worthy_a of_o all_o praise_n the_o apostle_n peter_n who_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o right_a faith_n depose_v dioscorus_n from_o all_o dignity_n as_o well_o episcopal_a as_o sacerdotal_a and_o the_o three_o that_o when_o the_o emperor_n confirm_v in_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n the_o same_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o make_v
do_v to_o the_o member_n contribute_v your_o good_a pleasure_n by_o those_o that_o 〈◊〉_d your_o place_n and_o the_o faithful_a emperor_n preside_v to_o cause_v order_n to_o be_v observe_v strive_v joint_o with_o you_o as_o zorobabel_n with_o jesus_n to_o renew_v in_o the_o doctrine_n the_o build_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jerusalem_n and_o why_o then_o when_o they_o come_v to_o touch_v in_o their_o relation_n the_o fact_n of_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n do_v they_o call_v the_o presidencie_n which_o he_o have_v usurp_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n without_o the_o pope_n commission_n tyranny_n and_o accuse_v he_o to_o have_v attempt_v even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n have_v be_v commit_v that_o be_v against_o the_o ibid._n pope_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o his_o tyranny_n say_v the_o relation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o the_o pope_n he_o have_v declare_v eutiche_n innocent_a and_o that_o dignity_n which_o have_v be_v take_v from_o he_o by_o your_o holiness_n as_o from_o a_o man_n unworthy_a of_o such_o grace_n he_o have_v restore_v it_o to_o he_o and_o again_o and_o after_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v extend_v his_o felony_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o wit_n against_o your_o holiness_n and_o why_o then_o when_o they_o pray_v the_o pope_n to_o approve_v the_o decree_n by_o which_o they_o give_v the_o second_o rank_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n do_v they_o beseech_v he_o that_o as_o they_o have_v correspond_v with_o he_o that_o be_v their_o head_n when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o faith_n so_o his_o sovereignty_n will_v gratify_v they_o in_o what_o concern_v discipline_n use_v to_o express_v the_o spiritual_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o have_v be_v use_v to_o express_v the_o temporal_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o emperor_n we_o have_v alsoe_o say_v 14._o they_o confirm_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o 150._o father_n assemble_v at_o constantinople_n under_o the_o great_a theodosius_n of_o religious_a memory_n which_o ordain_v that_o after_o your_o most_o holy_a and_o apostolical_a throne_n that_o of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o order_n of_o honour_n move_v with_o this_o that_o the_o apostolic_a beam_n reign_v among_o you_o you_o according_a leon._n to_o your_o ordinary_a government_n do_v often_o spread_v it_o towards_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n because_o you_o have_v accustom_v to_o enrich_v without_o envy_n your_o posterity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v extract_v from_o the_o blood_n and_o lineage_n of_o that_o of_o rome_n with_o the_o participation_n of_o your_o good_n and_o again_o we_o beseech_v you_o then_o to_o honour_v our_o judgement_n with_o your_o decree_n and_o that_o as_o in_o what_o concern_v the_o weal_n we_o have_v bring_v correspondency_n to_o our_o head_n so_o your_o sovereignty_n will_v perform_v ibid._n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o your_o child_n that_o which_o concern_v comeliness_n and_o why_o then_o when_o pope_n leo_n refuse_v to_o approve_v this_o decree_n be_v the_o emperor_n marcian_n and_o anatolius_n patriarch_n constantinople_n in_o who_o favour_n it_o have_v be_v propound_v constrain_v to_o forbear_v it_o and_o to_o leave_v the_o business_n then_o without_o effect_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o pope_n 96._o leo_n to_o anatolius_n this_o thy_o fault_n which_o to_o augment_v thy_o power_n thou_o have_v commit_v as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o exhortation_n of_o other_o thy_o charity_n have_v blot_v out_o better_a and_o more_o sincere_o if_o thou_o 〈◊〉_d not_o impute_v to_o the_o only_a council_n of_o thy_o clergy_n that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v attempt_v without_o thy_o goodwill_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o be_o glad_a dear_a brother_n that_o thy_o charity_n protest_v thou_o be_v now_o displease_v with_o that_o which_o even_o then_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v please_v thou_o it_o suffice_v to_o re-enter_v into_o common_a grace_n the_o profession_n of_o thy_o love_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o christian_a prince_n and_o let_v not_o his_o correction_n seem_v slow_a that_o have_v get_v so_o reverend_a a_o surety_n and_o why_o then_o when_o anastasius_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n and_o the_o pope_n vicar_n in_o macedanico_fw-la achaia_n and_o other_o greek_a province_n near_o constantinople_n have_v abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o his_o vicarship_n against_o atticus_n bishop_n of_o nicopolis_n and_o metropolitan_a of_o the_o aunciét_v fpirus_fw-la do_v pope_n leo_n write_v to_o he_o we_o have_v in_o such_o sort_n commit_v our_o 82._o vicarship_n to_o thy_o charity_n as_o thou_o be_v call_v to_o a_o part_n of_o the_o care_n and_o not_o to_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o power_n and_o towards_o the_o end_n it_o have_v be_v `provided_a by_o a_o grand_a order_n that_o all_o shall_v not_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o all_o thing_n but_o that_o in_o every_o province_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o who_o sentence_n may_v hold_v first_o rank_n and_o again_o that_o some_o other_o constitute_v in_o the_o great_a city_n may_v use_v the_o more_o diligence_n that_o by_o they_o the_o care_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v flow_v to_o the_o only_a seat_n of_o peter_n and_o why_o then_o when_o ceretius_fw-la and_o the_o other_o french-bishop_n congratulate_v pope_n leo_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o he_o have_v send_v into_o the_o 49._o east_n do_v they_o write_v to_o he_o by_o good_a right_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v be_v constitute_v in_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o there_o springe_n forth_o still_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o apostolical_a spirit_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o maioranus_n have_v succeed_v the_o emperor_n marcian_n under_o who_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v keep_v do_v the_o emperor_n maioranus_n reside_v among_o the_o gaul_n decree_v by_o a_o express_a law_n that_o every_o bishop_n that_o shall_v ordain_v a_o clerk_n against_o his_o 〈◊〉_d will_n shall_v be_v call_v before_o the_o pope_n if_o any_o bishop_n say_v the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d dispense_v with_o himself_o in_o this_o respect_n let_v he_o be_v call_v before_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a that_o in_o that_o reverend_a seat_n he_o may_v incur_v the_o note_n of_o his_o lawless_a presumption_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n leo_n successor_n have_v cause_v john_n surname_v talaia_n to_o be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o alexandrian_a sea_n and_o set_v peter_n surname_v mongu_n in_o his_o place_n do_v john_n appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n who_o depose_v peter_n his_o adversary_n and_o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n that_o adhere_v to_o he_o john_n say_v liberatus_n a_o african_a author_n and_o of_o near_o eleven_o 16._o hundred_o year_n antiquity_n address_v bimselfe_n to_o calandion_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o have_v take_v from_o he_o synodical_a letter_n of_o intercession_n appeal_v to_o the_o zen._n pope_n of_o rome_n simplicius_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o time_n and_o country_n after_o the_o consulship_n of_o the_o most_o noble_a longinus_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o constantinople_n peter_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o peter_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v condemn_v by_o felix_n 18._o prelate_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o by_o a_o synod_n hold_v in_o italy_n and_o the_o condemnation_n send_v to_o constantinople_n to_o acacius_n and_o euagrius_n a_o greek_a author_n somewhat_o late_a john_n have_v take_v his_o flight_n and_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n represent_v to_o felix_n the_o successor_n of_o simplicius_n the_o thing_n that_o peter_n have_v do_v and_o persuade_v felix_n to_o send_v a_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n to_o acacius_n for_o the_o communion_n he_o have_v with_o peter_n for_o though_o zacharie_n a_o eutychian_a author_n write_v that_o acacius_n who_o be_v support_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n a_o complice_n of_o his_o heresy_n despise_v zen._n this_o deposition_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o victor_n of_o tunes_n say_v that_o peter_n and_o acacius_n die_v in_o condemnation_n nevertheless_o the_o pope_n sentence_n have_v in_o the_o end_n such_o effect_n as_o both_o their_o name_n to_o wit_n peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o acacius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n they_o be_v already_o dead_a be_v race_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o their_o church_n and_o out_o of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n and_o exclude_v from_o recital_n in_o the_o mystery_n and_o why_o then_o when_o hunericus_n king_n of_o the_o vandal_n will_v needs_o press_v eugenius_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n to_o enter_v into_o conference_n with_o the_o arrian_n do_v eugenius_n report_v by_o
victor_n of_o utica_n answer_v he_o that_o 〈◊〉_d he_o may_v not_o enter_v into_o those_o list_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o other_o church_n and_o namely_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n let_v the_o king_n say_v eugenius_n write_v to_o his_o friend_n and_o i_o will_v write_v my_o 〈◊〉_d that_o our_o colleague_n may_v come_v who_o with_o we_o may_v show_v you_o our_o common_a faith_n and_o principal_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o why_o then_o when_o fulgentius_n a_o african_a bishop_n of_o the_o same_o time_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n assemble_v with_o he_o make_v their_o answer_n to_o peter_n a_o deacon_n and_o deputy_n of_o the_o east_n do_v they_o say_v to_o he_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o top_n of_o the_o world_n enlighten_v with_o two_o great_a light_n peter_n and_o 〈◊〉_d paul_n 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v so_o and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o emperor_n anast_n asius_fw-la zeno_n successor_n solicit_v macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o suppress_v in_o the_o service_n of_o his_o church_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v macedonius_n answer_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o general_a council_n steph_n preside_v by_o the_o pope_n the_o fmperor_n anast_n asius_a say_v theodorus_n anagnostes_n press_v macedonius_n to_o abrogate_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o macedonius_n answer_v he_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o general_a council_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n must_v be_v precedent_n and_o why_o they_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n band_v themselves_o against_o the_o prevarication_n of_o their_o patriarch_n acacius_n do_v they_o write_v to_o 2._o pope_n symachus_fw-la thou_o be_v every_o day_n teach_v by_o thy_o sacred_a doctor_n peter_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o throughout_o the_o habit_n able_a earth_n not_o constrain_v by_o force_n but_o willing_o thou_o that_o with_o the_o most_o learned_a paul_n cry_v out_o to_o all_o thy_o subject_n we_o do_v not_o rule_v over_o you_o in_o faith_n but_o cooperate_v with_o you_o in_o joy_n and_o why_o then_o when_o vitalianus_n a_o scythian_a have_v rebel_v against_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n because_o he_o persecute_v the_o catholic_n &_o have_v bear_v arm_n at_o the_o gate_n of_o constantinople_n do_v victor_n of_o tune_n say_v he_o will_v never_o promise_v an_a peace_n to_o the_o emperor_n but_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v restore_v to_o their_o seat_n those_o that_o have_v be_v banish_v for_o defend_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o shall_v unite_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o why_o then_o when_o justin_n a_o catholic_a prince_n have_v succeed_v the_o emperor_n anastasius_n do_v he_o cause_n pope_n felix_n sentence_n to_o be_v execute_v against_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o make_v their_o name_n be_v raze_v even_o after_o their_o death_n out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o their_o church_n and_o hormis_n from_o the_o recital_n in_o the_o mystery_n we_o anathematise_v say_v john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o pope_n hormisdas_n timothy_n the_o parricide_n surname_v aelurus_n and_o we_o condemn_v likewise_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n his_o disciple_n and_o partaker_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o we_o alsoe_o anathematise_v acacius_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o this_o city_n of_o constantinople_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o promise_v here_o after_o not_o to_o recite_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o consent_v not_o full_o with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o the_o emperor_n hormisd_v justin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o pope_n we_o have_v give_v order_n that_o the_o reverend_a church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o many_o other_o shall_v accomplish_v your_o desire_n not_o only_o in_o other_o thing_n but_o also_o in_o raze_v the_o name_n that_o you_o have_v require_v to_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o sacred_a record_n and_o a_o while_n after_o pray_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v be_v content_a that_o the_o name_n of_o those_o only_a which_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o name_n by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a shall_v be_v blot_v out_o without_o exact_v the_o race_v of_o those_o that_o have_v communicate_v with_o they_o for_o the_o difficulty_n that_o there_o will_v be_v in_o raze_v the_o name_n of_o so_o many_o bishop_n to_o be_v take_v away_o out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o their_o church_n we_o ask_v no_o grace_n say_v he_o for_o the_o name_n of_o acacius_n nor_o for_o either_o the_o one_o peter_n or_o the_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v peter_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n nor_o for_o dioscorus_n nor_o timothy_n of_o who_o your_o holiness_n letter_n address_v to_o we_o make_v special_a mention_n but_o of_o those_o that_o the_o episcopal_a reucrence_n have_v celebrate_v in_o other_o city_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n the_o iust._n emperor_n justin_n say_v he_o reunite_v those_o of_o the_o east_n under_o worthy_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o west_n except_o the_o evil_a bishop_n for_o it_o must_v be_v read_v pravos_fw-la and_o not_o paruos_fw-la which_o die_v blind_v with_o their_o ancient_a error_n to_o wit_n acacius_n late_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n peter_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o peter_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o cause_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o be_v reviue_v that_o have_v be_v banish_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n and_o anastasius_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n nephew_n and_o successor_n to_o justine_n be_v come_v to_o the_o empire_n near_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n ago_o do_v he_o make_v profession_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o he_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n we_o preserve_v say_v he_o in_o the_o law_n to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 7._o the_o estate_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a church_n in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o moct_n holy_a pope_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n to_o who_o we_o have_v write_v the_o like_a because_o we_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o thing_n to_o pass_v concern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v alsoe_o refer_v to_o his_o blessedness_n for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a prelate_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la where_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o expedition_n of_o hipatius_fw-la and_o demetrius_n his_o legate_n to_o the_o pope_n against_o cirus_n and_o eulogius_n legate_n for_o the_o acaemite_n so_o be_v certain_a religious_a man_n of_o constantinople_n call_v because_o of_o their_o long_a watch_n be_v insert_v we_o will_v not_o suffer_v say_v he_o that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v treat_v of_o belong_v to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o though_o 〈◊〉_d and_o manifest_a which_o shall_v not_o alsoe_o be_v refer_v to_o your_o holiness_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o shift_n of_o those_o that_o not_o be_v able_a to_o avoid_v the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la strive_v to_o make_v it_o suspect_v for_o false_a i_o will_v not_o stay_v to_o confute_v they_o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o defence_n of_o those_o two_o great_a oracle_n of_o themis_n alciat_fw-la and_o cuias_fw-la have_v make_v of_o this_o law_n and_o 23._o the_o authentical_a copy_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o greek_a basilique_n begin_v with_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o 16._o history_n that_o liberatus_n a_o african_a author_n of_o the_o same_o time_n report_v of_o it_o when_o he_o say_v hypatius_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o demetrius_z bishop_n of_o 20._o philippi_n be_v send_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n to_o pope_n john_n surname_v mercury_n to_o consult_v with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a against_o cyrus_n and_o eulogius_n depute_v by_o the_o acaemite_n etc._n etc._n but_o pope_n john_n we_o be_v then_o present_a at_o rome_n confirm_v the_o imperial_a confession_n by_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o and_o address_v it_o to_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o testimony_n that_o justinian_n himself_o give_v it_o in_o the_o 7._o law_n to_o epiphanius_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o pope_n agapet_n and_o the_o old_a greek_a rom._n paratitle_v translate_v and_o publish_v by_o leunclavius_n a_o protestant_n lawyer_n which_o reckon_v for_o the_o eight_o law_n of_o the_o code_n the_o emperor_n justinian_o epistle_n 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n answer_n to_o he_o stop_n
their_o mouth_n that_o 〈◊〉_d think_v to_o call_v it_o in_o question_n and_o yet_o less_o will_v i_o stand_v to_o solve_v this_o that_o justinian_n in_o the_o law_n constautinopolitana_n write_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o other_o church_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v 〈◊〉_d hereafter_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v treaetd_a of_o in_o the_o law_n and_o not_o of_o the_o other_o patriarkall_fw-mi church_n among_o which_o justinian_n never_o attribute_v but_o the_o second_o rank_n to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o novel_a 〈◊〉_d where_o he_o say_v we_o ordain_v follow_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n that_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n be_v to_o be_v first_o of_o all_o prelate_n and_o that_o the_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n or_o new_a rome_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o holy_a sea_n apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n and_o shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o other_o sea_n and_o why_o then_o when_o epiphanius_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o anthymus_n bishop_n of_o trebisond_n have_v be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o his_o steed_n do_v anthymus_n oblige_v himself_o by_o protestation_n write_v to_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n 4._o to_o obey_v the_o pope_n anthymus_n say_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n promise_v to_o do_v all_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o great_a sea_n apostolic_a shall_v ordain_v and_o write_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a patriarch_n that_o he_o will_v in_o all_o thing_n follow_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o why_o they_o when_o pope_n agapet_n be_v a_o while_n after_o arrive_v at_o constantinople_n do_v he_o depose_v the_o same_o anthymus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o then_o even_o in_o constantinople_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n that_o favour_v he_o and_o excommunicate_v the_o empress_n theodora_n his_o wife_n who_o do_v obstinate_o maintain_v he_o and_o ordain_v menas_n priest_n of_o constantinople_n patriarch_n in_o his_o steed_n agapet_n say_v marcellinus_n come_v a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o chron_n time_n be_v come_v from_o rome_n to_o constantinople_n drive_v away_o anthymus_n soon_o after_o his_o arrival_n from_o the_o church_n say_v that_o according_a to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d rule_v he_o be_v a_o adulterer_n because_o he_o have_v leave_v his_o church_n and_o have_v unlawful_o procure_v another_o and_o ordain_v the_o priest_n menas_n bishop_n in_o his_o room_n and_o liberatus_n one_o 12._o likewise_o of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o marcellinus_n come_v say_v the_o empress_n in_o secret_a promise_a great_a present_n to_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o will_v leave_v anthymus_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n prove_v he_o with_o threat_n the_o pope_n persist_v not_o to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o her_o demand_n and_o anthymus_n see_v he_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o seat_n give_v up_o his_o mantle_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o retire_v himself_o where_o the_o empress_n take_v he_o into_o her_o protection_n and_o then_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o emperor_n sake_n ordain_v menas_n bishop_n in_o his_o steed_n consecrate_v he_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n of_o the_o same_o eus_n time_n with_o liberatus_n publish_v by_o joseph_n scaliger_n agapet_n say_v he_o archbishop_n of_o rome_n come_v to_o constantinople_n and_o depose_v anthymus_n `_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n usurper_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o must_v be_v read_v pervasorem_fw-la and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d versorem_fw-la and_o enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o excommunicate_v the_o empress_n theodora_n his_o patroness_n and_o make_v at_o the_o same_o time_n menas_n bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n himself_o we_o know_v say_v he_o 42._o that_o the_o like_a thing_n have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o anthymus_n who_o be_v depose_v from_o the_o seat_n of_o this_o royal_a city_n by_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n of_o the_o ancient_n rome_n agapet_n of_o sacred_a and_o glorious_a memory_n for_o those_o that_o from_o these_o ensue_a word_n of_o justinian_o but_o he_o have_v be_v also_o depose_v and_o condemn_v first_o by_o the_o sentence_n of_o this_o prelate_n of_o holy_a memory_n and_o after_o of_o the_o sacred_a synod_n here_o celebrate_v do_v inserre_v that_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o anthymus_n be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n do_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o first_o clause_n of_o justinian_n speak_v as_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o of_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n from_o 39_o the_o patriarkall_n seat_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v do_v and_o perfect_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o second_o speak_v of_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n from_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o trebisond_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o have_v be_v tie_v to_o certain_a condition_n which_o the_o continuance_n of_o ibid._n the_o pope_n life_n do_v not_o permit_v he_o to_o clear_v it_o be_v finish_v after_o his_o death_n by_o the_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n but_o time_n press_v we_o let_v we_o hasten_v and_o why_o then_o when_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n give_v his_o voice_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n upon_o the_o second_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n 2._o that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o his_o deposition_n from_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o trebisond_n do_v he_o say_v we_o follow_v as_o you_o know_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o obey_v he_o and_o have_v his_o communicant_n for_o we_o and_o condemn_v those_o that_o be_v condemn_v by_o he_o and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n form_v a_o sentence_n against_o the_o same_o anthymus_n be_v it_o couch_v in_o these_o term_n we_o ordain_v follow_v thing_n well_o examine_v by_o the_o holy_a and_o bless_a pope_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o shall_v be_v cut_n of_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o archbishop_n seat_n of_o trebisond_n and_o deprive_v from_o all_o dignity_n and_o sacerdotal_a action_n and_o according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n strip_v from_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n will_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o empress_n theodora_n his_o wise_a who_o be_v a_o eutychian_a persecute_v pope_n siluerius_n agapit_v successor_n do_v liberatus_n archdeacon_n of_o carthage_n a_o african_a author_n and_o of_o the_o same_o time_n and_o that_o hinemarus_fw-la a_o ancient_a archbishop_n of_o rheims_n cite_v under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o saint_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o patara_n in_o 〈◊〉_d one_o of_o the_o province_n of_o asia_n dissuade_v he_o from_o it_o by_o the_o remonstrance_n that_o he_o make_v he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o temporal_a monarchy_n which_o be_v equal_a in_o extent_n to_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o represent_v to_o he_o say_v liberatus_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o expulsion_n of_o the_o bishop_n 22_o of_o so_o great_a a_o sea_n admonish_v he_o that_o there_o be_v many_o king_n in_o the_o world_n but_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o as_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o have_v be_v dispossess_v of_o his_o seat_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o same_o emperor_n justinian_n will_v erect_v the_o first_o justinianea_n of_o bulgaria_n the_o city_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v into_o the_o form_n of_o a_o supernumerarie_a patriarkship_n do_v he_o ground_v his_o ordinance_n upon_o the_o 131._o vicarship_n and_o concession_n of_o the_o pope_n we_o ordain_v say_v he_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n shall_v always_o have_v under_o his_o jurisdiction_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o the_o mediterranean_a dacia_n of_o dacia_n ripensis_n of_o triballea_n of_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o upper_a misia_n and_o of_o pannonia_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o in_o all_o province_n subject_a to_o he_o he_o shall_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o rome_n according_a as_o thing_n be_v define_v by_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n vigilius_n and_o why_o then_o when_o rusticus_n deacon_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o cont_n justinian_n write_v his_o book_n against_o the_o ascephales_n do_v he_o make_v this_o grave_a impress_n exhortation_n to_o himself_o remember_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o deacon_n and_o that_o of_o the_o most_o sovereign_a church_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o why_o then_o when_o the_o 21._o bishop_n of_o france_n celebrate_v the_o second_o council_n of_o tours_n 1048._o year_n ago_o do_v they_o say_v our_o father_n
be_v i_o miletius_n vitalis_n paulinus_n so_o be_v the_o 3._o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n call_v say_v that_o they_o communicate_v with_o thou_o if_o but_o one_o of_o they_o have_v say_v so_o i_o have_v believe_v it_o but_o now_o either_o two_o or_o all_o three_o do_v lie_n and_o therefore_o i_o coviure_v thy_o blessedness_n by_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o necessary_a ornament_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n that_o thou_o signify_v to_o i_o by_o thy_o letter_n with_o who_o in_o syria_n i_o ought_v to_o communicate_v this_o appear_v by_o optatus_n bishop_n of_o milevis_n in_o africa_n 2._o who_o say_v at_o rome_n have_v be_v settle_v for_o peter_n first_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n in_o which_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apoctles_a peter_n have_v sit_v etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o that_o only_a chair_n unity_n may_v be_v observe_v by_o all_o lest_o the_o other_o apostle_n shall_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o sever_n all_o chair_n but_o that_o be_v may_v be_v a_o sinner_n and_o a_o schismatic_n that_o against_o that_o only_a chair_n shall_v erect_v a_o other_o and_o a_o little_a after_o to_z peter_z then_o succeed_v linus_n to_o linus_n clement_n to_o clement_n anacletus_fw-la to_o anacletus_fw-la euaristus_n etc._n etc._n to_o damasus_n syricius_n who_o be_v at_o this_o day_n our_o colleague_n by_o which_o mean_v all_o the_o world_n communicate_v with_o we_o by_o the_o commerce_n of_o form_a letter_n this_o appear_v by_o 1._o saint_n chrysostome_n who_o write_v to_o pope_n innocent_a let_v we_o enjoy_v the_o continuance_n of_o your_o letter_n and_o of_o your_o charity_n and_o those_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o we_o enjoy_v before_o this_o appear_v by_o saint_n austin_n who_o say_v cecilianus_n may_v well_o despise_v 162_o the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n see_v himself_o unite_v by_o communicatorie_a letter_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v always_o sllorisht_v &_o with_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v into_o asrica_n this_o appear_v by_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n who_o a_o while_n after_o s._n augustine_n death_n dissuade_v fulgentius_n a_o asrican_a afterward_o bishop_n of_o ruspa_n in_o asrica_n from_o go_v to_o inhabit_v with_o the_o monk_n of_o egypt_n in_o the_o desert_n of_o thebaidis_n 〈◊〉_d because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o country_n say_v he_o whither_o thou_o desire_v to_o travail_v a_o perfidious_a dissension_n have_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bless_a peter_n all_o those_o religious_a man_n who_o admirable_a abstinence_n be_v celebrate_v shall_v not_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o common_a with_o thou_o this_o appear_v by_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o write_v to_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d in_o abjuration_n of_o acacius_n memory_n follow_v say_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o apostolic_a chair_n we_o declare_v all_o that_o have_v be_v thereby_o decree_v and_o therefore_o hope_v to_o be_v in_o one_o communion_n with_o you_o declare_v by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a in_o which_o there_o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o perfect_a solidity_n promise_v hereafter_o not_o to_o 〈◊〉_d amid_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n their_o name_n that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o consent_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a this_o appear_v by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n who_o write_v in_o the_o law_n address_v to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n we_o preserve_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o estate_n of_o the_o 7._o unity_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n with_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n and_o in_o the_o law_n address_v to_o the_o pope_n we_o have_v have_v care_n to_o unite_v and_o submit_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o your_o holiness_n 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a church_n 4._o this_o appear_v by_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o say_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n we_o follow_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o obey_v it_o and_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o communicate_v therewith_o and_o condemn_v those_o that_o it_o condemn_v this_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n that_o saint_n gregory_n leave_v we_o of_o the_o abjuration_n that_o the_o bishope_n return_v from_o schism_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o 31._o the_o church_n make_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostolic_a procurator_n which_o have_v these_o word_n i_o bishop_n of_o such_o a_o city_n have_v discern_v the_o trapp_v of_o division_n wherein_o i_o be_v catch_v after_o a_o long_a and_o mature_a deliberation_n i_o be_o return_v by_o god_n grace_n with_o my_o pure_a and_o free_a will_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v esteem_v to_o return_v malicious_o or_o sained_o i_o vow_v and_o promise_v under_o pain_n of_o fall_v from_o my_o order_n and_o under_o obligation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o thou_o and_o by_o thou_o to_o the_o holy_a prince_n of_o apostle_n peter_n and_o to_o his_o vicar_n the_o most_o bless_a gregory_n or_o to_o his_o successor_n that_o by_o any_o persuasion_n whatsoever_o or_o in_o any_o other_o manner_n i_o will_v never_o return_v to_o schism_n from_o whence_o by_o our_o redeemer_n mercy_n i_o have_v be_v deliver_v but_o that_o i_o will_v always_o remain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o final_o appear_v by_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o composition_n manuse_n of_o form_a letter_n make_v by_o atticus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n but_o some_o conc._n manuscript_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n testify_v they_o be_v send_v into_o champigny_n the_o west_n by_o the_o same_o atticus_n with_o the_o other_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n when_o the_o asrican_a bishop_n request_v they_o of_o he_o for_o this_o extract_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v the_o number_n of_o the_o first_o greek_n letter_n of_o chalc._n the_o name_n father_n sonn_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o number_n of_o the_o first_o letter_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n name_n and_o of_o the_o author_n that_o write_v and_o of_o he_o to_o who_o he_o write_v and_o of_o the_o bearer_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o of_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v write_v and_o the_o day_n of_o paske_n and_o add_v they_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o indiction_n which_o then_o be_v currant_n they_o shall_v thereof_o make_v a_o sum_n who_o cipher_n shall_v be_v add_v to_o the_o epistle_n to_o serve_v it_o for_o a_o form_n and_o character_n by_o mean_n whereof_o when_o there_o be_v no_o more_o occasion_n to_o doubt_v who_o be_v either_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o saint_n peter_n sea_n or_o out_o of_o it_o as_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n and_o king_n have_v in_o the_o west_n leave_v no_o subject_n of_o that_o doubt_v this_o many_o age_n the_o necessity_n of_o these_o kind_n of_o letter_n have_v cease_v and_o therefore_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o letter_n form_v or_o communicatory_a whereof_o antiquity_n make_v use_v be_v a_o mark_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o more_o manifest_a than_o now_o as_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v a_o testimony_n that_o she_o be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v discern_v than_o she_o be_v at_o this_o present_a for_o that_o which_o constrain_v they_o to_o use_v this_o mean_n be_v the_o multitude_n and_o confusion_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v then_o in_o so_o great_a number_n and_o so_o mingle_v in_o abode_n and_o habitation_n amid_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o there_o be_v almost_o no_o town_n where_o there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v beside_o the_o true_a church_n a_o dozen_o sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o the_o most_o of_o they_o agree_v in_o form_n and_o outward_a worship_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n arian_n donatist_n pelagian_n novatian_n macedonian_n appolinaristes_n and_o other_o such_o like_a plague_n of_o the_o pretend_a excommunication_n attempt_v against_o the_o pope_n chap._n xxvii_o but_o against_o this_o thesis_fw-la to_o wit_n that_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a be_v the_o centre_n and_o beginning_n of_o all_o the_o form_v and_o communicatory_a letter_n the_o pope_n adversary_n object_n three_o instance_n first_o that_o stephen_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o false_a
council_n of_o sardica_n excommunicate_v 〈◊〉_d pope_n julius_n because_o he_o have_v admit_v saint_n athanasius_n into_o his_o communion_n the_o second_o that_o saint_n hilary_n proclaim_v anathema_n against_o pope_n liberius_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o arian_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o the_o three_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n saint_n leo_n the_o first_o because_o he_o have_v condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n and_o from_o hence_o they_o 〈◊〉_d conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o then_o the_o centre_n and_o original_a of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n since_o that_o as_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v the_o other_o patriarch_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n so_o the_o other_o reciprocal_o excommunicate_v he_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v best_o to_o block_n up_o their_o objection_n before_o we_o pass_v further_o to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o these_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o stephen_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n excommunicate_v pope_n julius_n because_o he_o have_v receive_v saint_n athanasius_n into_o his_o communication_n we_o bring_v three_o answer_n the_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o stephen_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n that_o make_v this_o excommunication_n but_o it_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o whole_a ecumenical_a 16._o council_n of_o sardica_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o say_v the_o three_o hundred_o catholic_a bishop_n which_o constitute_v the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o marcellus_n who_o they_o hold_v a_o heretic_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o sabellius_n and_o of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o therefore_o imagine_v that_o the_o true_a and_o inty_a authority_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o sardica_n be_v devolue_v to_o they_o now_o there_o be_v greatdifference_n between_o say_v that_o a_o council_n that_o pretende_v to_o be_v ecumenical_a and_o conceive_v itself_o to_o represent_v the_o universal_a body_n of_o ihe_a church_n shall_v undertake_v to_o excommunicate_v a_o pope_n that_o they_o suppose_v to_o have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o that_o a_o particular_a bishop_n archbishop_n or_o patriarch_n shall_v undertake_v it_o the_o second_o that_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o commit_v this_o 〈◊〉_d presumption_n be_v a_o arian_n council_n and_o who_o entreprise_n consequent_o can_v be_v draw_v into_o example_n nor_o make_v any_o precedent_n against_o the_o discipline_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n for_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o that_o the_o arian_n who_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o invisible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v likewise_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o authority_n of_o his_o principal_a lieutenant_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o three_o that_o in_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n spit_n in_o the_o face_n of_o heaven_n and_o excommunicate_v not_o only_o the_o pope_n but_o 〈◊〉_d sus-christ_n himself_o and_o all_o his_o church_n in_o reject_v the_o communion_n 16._o of_o they_o that_o hold_v he_o to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n compound_v of_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o catholic_a bishop_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o write_v 48._o to_o he_o it_o seem_v very_o good_a and_o convenient_a that_o the_o prelate_n of_o all_o the_o province_n shall_v refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o peter_n to_o the_o second_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o after_o that_o liberius_n be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o arian_n and_o overcome_v with_o the_o endure_v a_o far_a banishment_n and_o many_o corporal_a persecution_n &_o vexation_n sorgott_v himself_o so_o far_o as_o to_o subscribe_v the_o condemnation_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o arrian_n into_o his_o communion_n saint_n hilary_n recite_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o liberius_n insertes_fw-la these_o clause_n this_o be_v the_o arrian_n treachery_n this_o i_o have_v note_v i_o that_o be_o no_o apostata_fw-la and_o again_o anathema_n for_o my_o part_n to_o thou_o o_o liberius_n &_o to_o thy_o complice_n and_o a_o while_n after_o anathema_n to_o thou_o the_o second_o &_o three_o time_n o_o wicked_a liberius_n we_o bring_v four_o answer_n the_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o though_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o this_o be_v write_v by_o a_o ancient_a author_n and_o of_o saint_n hillary_n time_n as_o beside_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o manuscripte_n which_o be_v to_o be_v sound_a in_o sundry_a library_n it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o that_o stile_n which_o full_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o saint_n hillary_n age_n and_o by_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o recite_v which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o author_n of_o saint_n hillary_n age_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o equal_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v saint_n hillary_n contrariwise_o there_o be_v four_o conjecture_n which_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o either_o it_o shall_v be_v hillary_n the_o luciserian_a deacon_n of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o saint_n hilary_n or_o some_o other_o author_n of_o the_o same_o sect_n and_o age_n which_o have_v suppose_v it_o and_o make_v it_o pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n hilary_n or_o that_o the_o parenthesis_n which_o be_v insert_v into_o liberius_n his_o epistle_n that_o he_o cite_v which_o also_o be_v insert_v in_o form_n of_o note_n and_o mark_v with_o sign_n of_o a_o cross_n at_o the_o head_n and_o environ_v with_o semye-circle_n and_o write_v in_o a_o other_o character_n be_v not_o saint_n hillary_n but_o some_o exemplariste_n of_o that_o age_n the_o first_o conjecture_n be_v that_o these_o parenthesis_n condemn_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n which_o demophilus_n cause_v liberius_n to_o sign_n that_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o sirmium_n which_o do_v not_o err_v but_o in_o the_o omission_n of_o the_o word_n homoousion_n for_o demophilus_n as_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n 357._o baronius_n have_v observe_v abhor_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o second_o which_o deny_v both_o homoousion_n and_o homoeusion_n and_o call_v it_o a_o arrian_n treachery_n syn._n where_o saint_n hillary_n contrariwise_o to_o spare_v and_o husband_n the_o demi_a arrian_n which_o hold_v the_o first_o confession_n and_o to_o oblige_v they_o to_o bandy_v against_o ibid_fw-la the_o complete_a arrian_n which_o hold_v the_o second_o style_v in_o his_o work_n of_o the_o synod_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o sirmium_n or_o rather_o the_o first_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a and_o say_v speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n eleusius_n bishop_n of_o cyrica_fw-la and_o of_o the_o other_o demi_a arrian_n which_o embrace_v it_o except_o the_o bishop_n eleusius_n and_o a_o few_o other_o with_o he_o the_o ten_o asian_a province_n wherein_o i_o dwell_v for_o the_o more_o part_n do_v not_o know_v god_n true_o and_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v for_o a_o antidote_n for_o this_o that_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr feure_z who_o hilar._n publish_v that_o work_n say_v that_o the_o arrian_n yet_o make_v another_o profession_n of_o faith_n compose_v at_o sirmium_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o year_n 2._o of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la where_o they_o abolish_v the_o word_n substance_n for_o this_o last_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v after_o liberius_n his_o fall_n and_o not_o before_o as_o some_o have_v think_v not_o consider_v that_o liberius_n suffer_v two_o banishement_n confound_v by_o socrates_n but_o distinguish_v by_o sozomene_n the_o one_o when_o he_o be_v confine_v into_o beroe_n in_o thrace_n which_o begin_v according_a to_o amianus_n marcellinus_n account_n and_o that_o of_o sulpitius_n severus_n the_o year_n wherein_o arbitio_n and_o lollianus_n be_v consul_n that_o be_v four_o year_n before_o the_o consulate_a of_o eusebius_n and_o hypatius_n under_o which_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v hold_v and_o last_v according_a to_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 17._o two_o year_n and_o the_o other_o by_o which_o he_o be_v simple_o cast_v out_o of_o rome_n which_o sell_v out_o after_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la because_o liberius_n refuse_v to_o consent_v to_o it_o they_o report_v say_v sozomene_n speak_v of_o those_o who_o describe_v more_o true_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la that_o the_o arrian_n constain_v 18._o the_o bishop_n to_o sign_n their_o confession_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n many_o which_o resist_v it_o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n liberius_n bishop_n
of_o rome_n now_o liberius_n fall_n be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o first_o banishement_n as_o saint_n hillary_n insinuat_v when_o he_o syn._n reproach_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n that_o he_o have_v pluck_v liberius_n out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o he_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o he_o have_v show_v more_o impiety_n in_o his_o banishement_n or_o in_o his_o repeal_n and_o as_o saint_n jerom_n affirm_v when_o 〈◊〉_d he_o say_v liberius_n overcome_v with_o the_o weariness_n of_o his_o banishment_n and_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o arrian_n impiety_n be_v enter_v into_o rome_n in_o manner_n of_o a_o conqueror_n and_o therefore_o the_o faith_n of_o sirmium_n which_o liberius_n have_v sign_v before_o his_o fall_n which_o happen_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o first_o exile_n that_o be_v to_o say_v two_o year_n before_o 14._o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la can_v not_o be_v that_o which_o be_v forge_v at_o 〈◊〉_d the_o year_n of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la but_o it_o be_v the_o first_o of_o sirmium_n which_o 〈◊〉_d also_o ratify_v when_o he_o say_v that_o those_o of_o the_o east_n bring_v a_o form_n of_o faith_n that_o they_o have_v draw_v from_o liberius_n by_o which_o he_o condemn_v those_o that_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o the_o son_n be_v like_a to_o the_o father_n in_o substance_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o that_o be_v the_o first_o creed_n popose_v to_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n and_o embrace_v by_o the_o demy_fw-fr arrian_n which_o conceal_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d and_o instead_o thereof_o substitute_v like_v in_o substance_n the_o second_o conjecture_n be_v that_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o writing_n which_o mounseur_fw-fr le_fw-fr 27._o feure_z will_v have_v to_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o same_o author_n be_v so_o differ_v not_o in_o sense_n but_o in_o word_n from_o that_o which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o saint_n hillary_n that_o it_o seem_v they_o can_v not_o both_o come_v from_o one_o pen_n and_o beside_o it_o be_v note_v with_o this_o title_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o arrian_n whereas_o saint_n hillary_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o synod_n to_o spare_v the_o demy-arrians_a which_o hold_v the_o symbol_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n and_o to_o oblige_v they_o to_o bandy_v against_o the_o complete_a arrian_n who_o impiety_n be_v proceed_v much_o far_o in_o their_o latter_a profession_n reckon_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n among_o the_o orthodoxal_a belief_n supply_v by_o interpretation_n that_o it_o may_v receive_v a_o orthodoxal_a interpretation_n and_o be_v not_o heretical_a by_o expression_n but_o by_o omission_n the_o three_o conjecture_n be_v that_o in_o the_o time_n this_o writing_n entitle_v from_o saint_n hillary_n be_v compose_v that_o be_v to_o say_v after_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la neither_o saint_n hilary_n not_o any_o other_o catholic_a can_v say_v 〈◊〉_d to_o liberius_n whosefault_n and_o repentance_n be_v both_o arrive_v before_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la but_o only_o the_o luciferian_o who_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o liberius_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n after_o the_o death_n of_o constantius_n because_o that_o when_o constantius_n be_v dead_a liberius_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o catholic_n receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o episcopal_a order_n those_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v induce_v by_o fraud_n or_o force_n to_o sign_n the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la protest_v to_o repent_v it_o for_o when_o this_o writing_n be_v make_v that_o be_v to_o say_v after_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la liberius_n be_v acknowledge_v for_o a_o catholic_a by_o all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v so_o ever_o after_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n celebrate_v under_o damasus_n immediate_a successor_n to_o liberius_n which_o disannul_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la allege_v among_o other_o nullity_n that_o the_o 22._o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o sentence_n shall_v be_v attend_v before_o all_o other_o never_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n basile_n who_o solicit_v saint_n athanasius_n to_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v watchful_a over_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o east_n athan._n and_o send_v some_o to_o disannul_v the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la and_o testify_v that_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o east_n and_o namely_o the_o counsel_n of_o militina_fw-la and_o tyana_n communicate_v with_o liberius_n and_o himself_o call_v he_o the_o bless_a bishop_n liberius_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n epiphanius_n who_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 75._o bishop_n of_o sebaste_n in_o armenia_n the_o less_o seem_v to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o legate_n with_o many_o other_o bishop_n to_o the_o bless_a liberius_n of_o rome_n and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o orthodoxal_a faith_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n who_o entitle_v liberius_n after_o his_o death_n himer_n liberius_n of_o happy_a memory_n and_o final_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o siricius_n immediate_a successor_n to_o damasus_n who_o say_v the_o general_a decree_n of_o my_o predecessor_n liberius_n of_o reverend_a memory_n send_v through_o all_o the_o province_n after_o the_o disannul_v the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o arimini_fw-la forbid_v to_o rebaptise_v the_o arrian_n when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n by_o mean_n whereof_o either_o this_o writing_n which_o anathematize_v liberius_n after_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la be_v not_o saint_n hillary_n but_o of_o some_o luciferian_a author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n or_o these_o parenthesise_n insert_v by_o form_n of_o note_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o liberius_n inviron_v with_o semycircle_n and_o write_v in_o other_o character_n this_o be_v the_o arrian_n treachery_n this_o i_o have_v note_v i_o that_o be_o no_o apostata_fw-la and_o a_o while_n after_o i_o for_o my_o part_n say_v anathema_n to_o thou_o liberius_n and_o to_o thy_o complice_n and_o again_o anathema_n to_o thou_o for_o the_o second_o &_o three_o time_n o_o wicked_a liberius_n have_v be_v interlace_v by_o the_o luciferian_o or_o saint_n hilary_n insert_v the_o parenthesis_n into_o the_o epistle_n of_o liberius_n before_o he_o make_v this_o writing_n and_o have_v in_o this_o write_n leave_v the_o place_n void_a to_o put_v in_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o cite_v who_o collection_n be_v a_o part_n in_o his_o paper_n those_o that_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v publish_v after_o his_o death_n set_v into_o the_o void_a blank_a place_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o copy_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o be_v among_o his_o paper_n as_o they_o be_v there_o find_v and_o the_o fowrth_n conjecture_v final_o be_v that_o this_o writing_n be_v not_o a_o complete_a and_o entire_a writing_n of_o saint_n hillary_n but_o a_o collection_n of_o diverse_a fragment_n of_o the_o inty_a work_n of_o saint_n hillary_n put_v together_o in_o a_o heap_n and_o without_o order_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o transposition_n of_o the_o 36_o epistle_n there_o insert_v and_o particular_o of_o one_o of_o liberius_n epistle_n which_o be_v set_v in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o constantius_n shall_v have_v be_v by_o occasion_n whereof_o it_o remain_v uncertain_a whether_o these_o parenthesis_n be_v of_o the_o author_n or_o of_o the_o collector_n that_o be_v either_o of_o saint_n hilary_n or_o of_o some_o luciferian_a compiler_n who_o to_o favour_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o luciferian_o and_o to_o make_v the_o memory_n of_o liberius_n odious_a and_o adhominable_a have_v thrust_v in_o these_o parenthesis_n and_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o answer_n the_o second_o answer_n against_o saint_n hillary_n pretend_v anathema_n against_o liberius_n be_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o a_o excommunication_n and_o a_o anathema_n for_o asmuch_o as_o every_o formal_a excommunication_n import_v jurisdiction_n and_o every_o anathema_n do_v not_o so_o for_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o anathema_n the_o one_o judiciary_n the_o other_o executory_a applicatory_a and_o adiuratory_n judiciary_n anathema_n be_v those_o which_o be_v pronounce_v by_o person_n constitute_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n and_o which_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o who_o decree_n what_o kind_n of_o thing_n or_o person_n ought_v to_o be_v anathematise_v and_o these_o anathemas_n import_n jurisdiction_n
as_o when_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n pronounce_v anathema_n against_o the_o 5._o arrian_n in_o these_o word_n they_o that_o say_v there_o be_v a_o time_n wherein_o the_o sonn_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n anathematize_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v decide_v that_o their_o communion_n ought_v to_o be_v renounce_v and_o abhor_v and_o hold_v sore_a anathema_n the_o anathemas_n executory_a applicatory_a and_o abiuratory_n be_v those_o by_o which_o every_o particular_a person_n do_v protest_v and_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v practice_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n decree_v against_o those_o person_n or_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v by_o she_o iudiciary_o anathematise_v and_o to_o abiute_v and_o hold_v they_o for_o anathema_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n judiciary_n anathema_n can_v 〈◊〉_d be_v pronounce_v but_o by_o person_n ground_v upon_o jurisdiction_n but_o executory_a 6._o and_o abiuratory_n anathema_n may_v be_v make_v not_o only_o by_o person_n destitute_a of_o jurisdiction_n but_o by_o mere_a lie_v man_n as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n when_o cordanepius_fw-la a_o lay_v man_n return_v from_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o church_n he_o anathematise_v all_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d i_o anathematise_v say_v he_o all_o heresy_n and_o namely_o that_o of_o the_o quartodecumans_n and_o to_o this_o day_n when_o any_o one_o return_n from_o 〈◊〉_d heresy_n into_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o be_v cause_v to_o anathematise_v that_o heresy_n from_o whence_o he_o depart_v but_o these_o anathema_n be_v but_o simple_a abiuratory_n anathema_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v but_o bare_a execution_n and_o application_n of_o judiciary_n anathema_n and_o the_o word_n to_o anathematise_v in_o such_o a_o case_n signify_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o abjure_v abhor_v and_o hold_v they_o for_o anathematise_v now_o it_o be_v in_o this_o second_o sort_n that_o saint_n hilary_n anathematise_v liberius_n for_o have_v sign_v and_o subscribe_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n but_o with_o a_o abiuratory_n anathema_n for_o the_o judiciary_n anathema_n have_v be_v already_o pronounce_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n and_o of_o sardica_n against_o the_o arrian_n into_o who_o coummunion_n liberius_n be_v enter_v so_o as_o there_o be_v no_o more_o question_n to_o decree_v the_o 6._o sentence_n of_o anathema_n against_o he_o but_o to_o execute_v it_o in_o abiur_v and_o abhor_v he_o as_o fall_v into_o the_o sentence_n of_o anathema_n pronounce_v against_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n and_o sardica_n and_o therefore_o saint_n hillary_n add_v to_o his_o anathema_n this_o word_n for_o my_o part_n and_o say_v for_o my_o part_n anathema_n to_o thou_o o_o liberius_n to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n anathema_n but_o with_o a_o anathema_n abiuratory_n and_o abnegatory_n whereby_o he_o do_v not_o separate_v liberius_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v already_o separate_v himself_o in_o depart_v from_o she_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d but_o whereby_o he_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o liberius_n the_o three_o answer_n contain_v two_o branch_n the_o one_o be_v that_o this_o anathema_n 14_o be_v not_o pronounce_v by_o saint_n hillarius_n in_o the_o time_n of_o unity_n and_o agreement_n of_o pope_n but_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o duplicitie_n of_o pope_n to_o wit_n when_o liberius_n and_o felix_n sit_v concurrent_o in_o the_o pontifical_a chair_n of_o rome_n now_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o a_o doubtful_a pope_n and_o sit_v in_o schism_n with_o another_o pope_n and_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o one_o only_a certain_a and_o peaceble_a pope_n for_o in_o the_o first_o case_n to_o wit_n in_o case_n of_o schism_n between_o two_o pope_n it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a thing_n that_o those_o that_o take_v part_n with_o the_o one_o do_v pronounce_v abjuration_n and_o anathema_n against_o the_o other_o as_o during_o the_o schism_n of_o john_n 23_o the_o and_o of_o gregory_n the_o twelve_o and_o of_o bennet_n the_o 13_o the_o for_o who_o extinction_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n be_v keep_v those_o that_o take_v part_n with_o any_o one_o of_o these_o three_o pope_n pronounce_v abjuration_n and_o anathema_n against_o the_o other_o two_o without_o pretend_v notwithstanding_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o therefore_o during_o the_o schism_n of_o liberius_n and_o felix_n saint_n hillary_n may_v pronounce_v anathema_n against_o liberius_n and_o separate_v himself_o from_o his_o communion_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o pope_n without_o separate_a himself_n ever_o the_o more_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a the_o other_o be_v that_o this_o anathema_n be_v not_o pronounce_v by_o s._n hillary_n in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n acknowledge_v he_o for_o pope_n but_o in_o the_o time_n that_o liberius_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o papacy_n and_o that_o even_o the_o roman_a church_n abjure_v renounce_v and_o disavow_v he_o for_o pope_n and_o have_v withdraw_v herself_o from_o his_o communion_n and_o from_o his_o obedience_n and_o have_v range_v herself_o with_o felix_n his_o competitor_n for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o we_o must_v distinguish_v the_o time_n of_o pope_n liberius_n popedom_n into_o thou_o part_n the_o first_o before_o his_o fall_n the_o second_o during_o his_o fall_n the_o three_o after_o his_o fall_n now_o during_o the_o first_o part_n to_o wit_n before_o his_o fall_n he_o be_v so_o firm_a a_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o of_o saint_n athanasius_n innocence_n and_o so_o great_a a_o enemy_n to_o the_o heresy_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o arrian_n as_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n 16._o for_o that_o cause_n make_v he_o be_v tiranòus_o carry_v away_o and_o transport_v by_o way_n of_o banishment_n into_o the_o city_n of_o beroe_n in_o the_o border_n of_o thrace_n and_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o arrian_n cause_v felix_n the_o deacon_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v ordain_v in_o his_o steed_n during_o the_o second_o part_n which_o begin_v at_o his_o banishment_n he_o overcome_v with_o the_o length_n of_o two_o year_n exile_n and_o other_o corporal_a vexation_n and_o persecution_n he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v draw_v to_o sign_n the_o condemnation_n of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o to_o admit_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o enter_v into_o rome_n with_o a_o promise_n to_o continue_v in_o that_o resolution_n 〈◊〉_d &_o then_o the_o roman_a church_n cease_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o pope_n for_o pope_n that_o fall_v visible_o and_o by_o their_o own_o coufession_n or_o not_o contest_v signature_n into_o a_o heresy_n notorious_a &_o condemn_v by_o a_o precedent_a sentence_n of_o the_o church_n or_o into_o communion_n with_o a_o heretical_a society_n as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o arrian_n fall_v from_o the_o papacy_n from_o that_o time_n cease_v from_o their_o right_n of_o be_v pope_n and_o felix_n on_o the_o other_o side_n who_o be_v enter_v by_o the_o pack_n of_o the_o arrian_n into_o his_o place_n make_v himself_o so_o firm_a a_o protector_n alij_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o communion_n and_o so_o constant_a a_o adversary_n of_o the_o arrian_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o ancient_a inscription_n and_o the_o ancient_a martirologe_n where_o felix_n be_v entitle_v pope_n and_o martyr_n and_o the_o ancient_a catalogue_n of_o the_o pope_n where_o he_o be_v put_v into_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o name_n of_o felix_n the_o second_o make_v valid_a by_o a_o new_a election_n or_o a_o acceptation_n equivalent_a to_o a_o new_a election_n the_o ordination_n of_o felix_n receive_v he_o for_o pope_n in_o liberius_n steed_n i_o have_v say_v if_o we_o believe_v the_o ancient_a inscription_n and_o martyrologe_n and_o the_o ancient_a catalogue_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o many_o modern_a author_n and_o onuphrius_n among_o the_o rest_n hold_v that_o felix_n be_v never_o true_a pope_n and_o that_o liberius_n never_o fall_v from_o the_o papacy_n nor_o ever_o receive_v the_o arrian_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o they_o believe_v that_o all_o that_o saint_n athanasius_n saint_n hilary_n and_o other_o ancient_a writer_n have_v write_v be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a rumour_n that_o the_o arrian_n have_v spread_v and_o they_o allege_v for_o this_o 27._o purpose_n ruffinus_n that_o say_v he_o can_v never_o discover_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o i_o can_v discover_v say_v ruffinus_n certain_o whether_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n send_v back_o liberius_n to_o rome_n because_o he_o have_v yield_v to_o his_o will_n or_o because_o he_o be_v press_v to_o it_o by_o the_o roman_n and_o sozomene_n who_o report_v
condemn_v the_o orthodoxal_a doctrine_n and_o have_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o only_o excommunicate_v but_o put_v to_o death_n flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o maintain_v the_o true_a faith_n nevertheless_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o set_v among_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o deposition_n but_o the_o presumption_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v in_o undertake_v he_o and_o his_o false_a council_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o contempt_n that_o he_o have_v add_v to_o it_o in_o not_o come_v to_o yield_v reason_n for_o this_o presumption_n to_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 18._o dioscorus_n say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n speak_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v not_o be_v depose_v for_o the_o faith_n but_o because_o 5._o he_o have_v excommunicate_v my_o lord_n the_o archbishop_n leo_n and_o that_o have_v be_v thrice_o cite_v he_o will_v not_o appear_v and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o leon._n epistle_n to_o pope_n leo_n say_v after_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v extend_v his_o 〈◊〉_d even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o your_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thy_o holiness_n and_o have_v mediate_v a_o excommunication_n against_o he_o that_o strive_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o according_a to_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d against_o thou_o who_o make_v haste_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thou_o that_o hold_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o unity_n for_o with_o the_o greek_n it_o be_v a_o common_a phrase_n to_o say_v to_o haste_v themselves_o to_o do_v some_o thing_n in_o steed_n of_o say_v to_o do_v some_o thing_n as_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n 〈◊〉_d write_v to_o pope_n john_n surname_v mercury_n we_o have_v make_v haste_n to_o submit_v and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n country_n to_o your_o sea_n instead_o of_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n to_o your_o sea_n and_o as_o when_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d say_v anthymus_n make_v haste_n to_o cast_v we_o into_o a_o worse_a tempest_n instead_o of_o say_v anthymus_n have_v cast_v we_o into_o a_o worse_a tempest_n card_n perron_n reply_v to_o the_o king_n of_o great_a brittany_n the_o second_o book_n chap._n i._n of_o counsel_n the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n to_o this_o be_v add_v always_o and_o as_o often_o as_o they_o be_v needful_a counsel_n true_o ecumenical_a and_o not_o as_o we_o see_v they_o have_v be_v often_o since_o ecumenical_a by_o name_n but_o indeed_o assemble_v only_o out_o of_o some_o province_n of_o europe_n the_o reply_n and_o even_o this_o also_o very_a often_o when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o they_o as_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la compound_v of_o more_o than_o 400._o 12._o bishop_n the_o second_o council_n of_o ephefus_fw-la call_v from_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o world_n but_o assemble_v by_o heretical_a emperor_n or_o govern_v by_o the_o abettor_n of_o heretic_n and_o from_o the_o unlawful_a celebration_n whereof_o the_o one_o hold_v without_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o the_o other_o against_o 22._o it_o the_o success_n teach_v we_o that_o as_o much_o as_o counsel_n be_v profitable_a when_o the_o temporal_a authority_n second_v the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o much_o be_v they_o pernicious_a 1._o when_o temporal_a authority_n undertake_v to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n joint_o that_o as_o in_o human_a body_n the_o multitude_n of_o medicine_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o health_n so_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a body_n the_o multitude_n of_o counsel_n be_v not_o a_o sign_n of_o well_o be_v witness_v the_o complaint_n of_o s._n gregory_n nazianz._n upon_o the_o multitude_n of_o counsel_n hold_v 42._o after_o that_o of_o nicaea_n of_o which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o never_o see_v good_a come_v of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n as_o much_o because_o when_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n meddle_v with_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ambition_n to_o please_v they_o which_o be_v creep_v in_o among_o the_o bishop_n thwart_v the_o judgment_n of_o the_o synod_n as_o because_o the_o hold_v subsequent_a counsel_n upon_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o those_o precede_v they_o be_v to_o wound_v and_o to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o precede_a counsel_n and_o then_o how_o can_v the_o celebration_n of_o counsel_n have_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o make_v man_n assure_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o general_a counsel_n lawful_o assemble_v that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o external_a solemn_a and_o usual_a way_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n as_o the_o protestant_n pretend_v and_o have_v not_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o a_o particular_a man_n esteem_v his_o opinion_n agreeable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o of_o the_o council_n differ_v from_o it_o might_n yea_o ought_v to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o that_o of_o the_o council_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n say_v that_o the_o counsel_n hold_v in_o the_o last_o age_n have_v be_v ecumenical_a in_o name_n but_o in_o effect_n assemble_v only_o from_o some_o province_n of_o europe_n he_o may_v observe_v if_o he_o please_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n the_o one_o ecumenical_a indeed_o the_o other_o ecumenical_a in_o right_n i_o call_v those_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o deed_n which_o have_v be_v assemble_v from_o all_o part_n wherein_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n be_v preserve_v whether_o those_o part_n have_v remain_v within_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o whether_o they_o have_v be_v cut_n of_o from_o it_o i_o call_v those_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o right_n which_o be_v compound_v only_o of_o those_o part_n which_o have_v remain_v within_o the_o body_n and_o society_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o who_o only_o as_o such_o belong_v the_o right_a to_o judge_v 〈◊〉_d in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n at_o the_o which_o there_o assist_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkeshipp_n of_o antioch_n because_o they_o be_v arrian_n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n at_o which_o the_o cophte_n that_o be_v the_o natural_a egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n assist_v not_o because_o they_o be_v eutychian_o now_o both_o these_o kind_n of_o counsel_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n as_o concern_v certainty_n in_o decision_n of_o religion_n for_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v there_o representative_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v there_o equal_o infallible_a but_o in_o regard_n of_o evidence_n the_o authority_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n in_o deed_n be_v more_o powerful_a and_o eminent_a in_o the_o behalf_n of_o those_o man_n which_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n in_o right_a for_o in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o right_n there_o be_v none_o but_o catholic_n that_o be_v assure_v that_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o assemble_v whereas_o in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a in_o deed_n each_o of_o the_o party_n contest_v be_v of_o agreement_n that_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o represent_v and_o the_o medley_n of_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a bishop_n that_o be_v provide_v with_o the_o only_a succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n but_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n hinder_v not_o but_o that_o in_o such_o counsel_n the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v work_v by_o the_o common_a note_n of_o the_o assembly_n because_o the_o true_a church_n receive_v those_o bishop_n there_o for_o the_o effect_n then_o present_a into_o her_o charity_n and_o into_o her_o communion_n while_o they_o be_v join_v with_o she_o to_o the_o end_n to_o seek_v mean_n to_o assemblish_v unity_n she_o re-enables_a and_o restore_v to_o they_o for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o assembly_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o exercise_n and_o of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o order_n whereof_o before_o there_o remain_v to_o they_o nothing_o but_o the_o character_n to_o say_v then_o that_o some_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o latter_a age_n have_v not_o be_v ecumenical_a because_o the_o greek_n or_o ethiopian_n do_v not_o assist_v there_o be_v not_o a_o valuable_a exception_n unless_o it_o first_o appear_v that_o the_o greek_n or_o ethiopian_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v not_o be_v just_o cut_v off_o and_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a communion_n for_o it_o suffice_v to_o make_v a_o council_n general_a and_o universal_a in_o right_n that_o all_o the_o part_n that_o remain_v actual_a within_o the_o body_n &_o
communion_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n do_v concur_v to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v not_o requisite_a that_o those_o that_o be_v lawful_o separate_v from_o her_o either_o for_o schism_n or_o heresy_n as_o be_v the_o greek_n who_o err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o his_o majesty_n himself_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n &_o the_o natural_a egyptian_n &_o ethiopian_n who_o 〈◊〉_d err_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o hipostaticall_a union_n &_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o eutichian_o and_o monophysites_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o before_o the_o five_o council_n shall_v assist_v to_o it_o and_o notwithstanding_o yet_o even_o in_o these_o last_o age_n there_o have_v be_v counsel_n ecumenical_a indeed_o and_o in_o the_o sense_n whereto_o his_o majesty_n employ_v this_o term_n when_o the_o part_n separate_v froth_n body_n of_o the_o church_n whould_v have_v conspire_v to_o some_o reunion_n as_o that_o of_o lateran_n under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o where_o there_o where_o with_o the_o pope_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o more_o than_o 400._o bishop_n and_o 70._o archbishop_n from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o greek_a as_o latin_a and_o that_o of_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o where_o assist_v the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_n with_o their_o emperor_n and_o their_o patriarch_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o three_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o armenian_n and_o the_o deputy_n also_o of_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o in_o both_o these_o they_o be_v agree_v of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o in_o these_o day_n be_v again_o put_v to_o question_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o want_n of_o general_n counsel_n can_v not_o make_v the_o church_n to_o be_v less_o acknowledgeable_a in_o the_o last_o day_n than_o she_o be_v in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o counsel_n for_o the_o visibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n chapt_n ii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a time_n it_o be_v a_o firm_a bond_n by_o which_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v bind_v in_o the_o frame_n of_o oneself_o body_n which_o body_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v meruailous_o noble_a and_o eminent_a be_v so_o constitute_v in_o the_o view_n and_o knowledge_n of_o all_o that_o none_o think_v they_o will_v can_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o one_o faith_n one_o policy_n one_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o frequent_a visitation_n of_o the_o part_n among_o themselves_o a_o marvellous_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o member_n a_o admirable_a sim_fw-la pathie_n the_o reply_n rather_o some_o time_n these_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o heretic_n or_o those_o emperor_n that_o favour_v they_o make_v use_n of_o to_o shake_v and_o dissolve_v the_o mass_n and_o frame_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o proceed_v the_o complaint_n of_o the_o father_n that_o after_o thing_n have_v be_v once_o resolve_v of_o in_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v no_o more_o hold_v other_o new_a counsel_n that_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n every_o other_o council_n be_v superfluous_a and_o that_o they_o never_o see_v any_o good_a effect_n of_o all_o those_o counsel_n as_o be_v by_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n above_o say_v and_o therefore_o these_o rich_a and_o magnificent_a amplification_n of_o eloquence_n be_v no_o impediment_n but_o that_o the_o church_n when_o luther_n begin_v may_v have_v be_v not_o only_o as_o much_o but_o more_o visible_a illustrious_a and_o eminent_a than_o she_o be_v many_o time_n in_o those_o age_n witness_v the_o objection_n that_o the_o donatist_n 48._o make_v to_o saint_n austin_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n principal_o in_o the_o east_n in_o saint_n hillarys_n time_n such_o be_v say_v saint_n aus_n the_o time_n whereof_o hillary_n have_v write_v from_o whence_o thou_o think_v to_o set_v ambush_n for_o so_o many_o divine_a witness_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v they_o perish_v from_o the_o globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o 57_o saint_n jerom_n because_o the_o east_n strike_v against_o herself_o by_o the_o ancient_a fury_n of_o her_o people_n tear_v in_o little_a piece_n the_o unseam_v coat_n of_o our_o lord_n weave_v from_o above_o and_o that_o the_o fox_n destroy_v the_o vine_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v difficult_a among_o the_o dry_a pond_n and_o which_o have_v no_o water_n to_o discern_v the_o seal_a fountain_n and_o the_o enclose_a garden_n therefore_o i_o think_v i_o ought_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o whereas_o his_o majesty_n add_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v then_o set_v in_o such_o a_o eminence_n of_o view_n and_o knowledge_n that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v unknown_a no_o not_o by_o those_o that_o will_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o this_o be_v very_o true_a if_o you_o take_v all_o catholic_a province_n together_o and_o compare_v they_o with_o every_o particular_a sect_n and_o it_o have_v place_n in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v within_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o neither_o then_o nor_o since_o can_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o body_n and_o society_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o hypothesis_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v discern_v by_o inimitable_a and_o indisputable_a mark_n and_o that_o those_o that_o have_v they_o not_o can_v not_o fain_o to_o have_v they_o as_o the_o communion_n 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o continue_a and_o not_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o ministry_n and_o doctrine_n the_o eminency_n and_o universality_n above_o all_o other_o christian_a sect_n take_v every_o one_o a_o part_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o as_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n who_o will_v discern_v the_o church_n by_o mark_n more_o obscure_a than_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o such_o as_o all_o sect_n persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o conformity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o less_o evident_a for_o to_o those_o the_o church_n how_o eminent_a soever_o she_o have_v be_v have_v always_o be_v obscure_a &_o hide_v not_o for_o the_o want_n of_o her_o light_n &_o eminency_n but_o because_o of_o their_o darkness_n and_o blindness_n this_o say_v saint_n aus_n be_v common_a to_o all_o heretic_n to_o be_v unable_a to_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o in_o the_o world_n be_v 〈◊〉_d most_o manifest_a and_o constitute_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o who_o unity_n whatsoever_o they_o work_v although_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n can_v no_o more_o profitt_a they_o against_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n against_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a and_o again_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hide_v for_o she_o be_v not_o under_o a_o 〈◊〉_d bushel_n but_o upon_o a_o candlestick_n to_o give_v light_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o of_o she_o it_o be_v say_v the_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hide_v but_o she_o be_v as_o hide_a to_o the_o donatist_n who_o hear_v so_o clear_a and_o manifest_a testimony_n which_o demonstrate_v she_o to_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o yet_o have_v rather_o blindfold_o strike_v against_o the_o mountain_n then_o ascend_v it_o and_o other_o where_o how_o can_v i_o call_v those_o but_o blind_a 2._o that_o see_v not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o lamp_n set_v upon_o the_o candlestick_n of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n chap._n iii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n if_o anio_fw-la one_o be_v fall_v for_o heresy_n or_o schism_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o one_o of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v not_o one_o of_o the_o first_o which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o fower_n patriarch_n but_o of_o any_o other_o of_o those_o which_o be_v much_o less_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v know_v he_o be_v repute_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n austin_n there_o be_v yet_o but_o three_o true_a 〈◊〉_d seat_n in_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v invest_v with_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n to_o wit_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n jerusalem_n have_v obtain_v no_o patriarchall_a division_n till_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o before_o it_o be_v
but_o a_o simple_a bishopric_n subject_n itself_o in_o the_o first_o instance_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o by_o appeal_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o not_o bear_v the_o title_n of_o a_o patiarcke_n but_o only_o as_o a_o name_n of_o honour_n to_o have_v place_n in_o the_o counsel_n after_o the_o true_a patriarch_n but_o not_o to_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n over_o any_o other_o diocese_n this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o perserue_v the_o title_n 7._o of_o honour_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o elia_n that_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n always_o save_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o own_o metropolitan_a mean_v the_o archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o by_o saint_n jerom_n who_o ask_v john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n why_o he_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n since_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o rosol_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n be_v the_o archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o in_o the_o second_o he_o of_o antioch_n thou_o say_v he_o which_o search_v out_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n and_o make_v use_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n etc._n etc._n answer_v i_o wherein_o do_v palestina_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n it_o be_v ordain_v if_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v that_o caesarea_n shall_v be_v metropolitan_a of_o palestina_n and_o antioch_n of_o all_o the_o east_n then_o either_o thou_o ought_v to_o have_v refer_v they_o cause_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o caesarea_n etc._n etc._n or_o if_o there_o be_v cause_n to_o seek_v a_o judgement_n far_o thou_o shall_v rather_o have_v write_v to_o antioch_n and_o a_o while_n after_o but_o thou_o have_v rather_o choose_v to_o importune_v ear_n already_o possess_v then_o to_o yield_v due_a honour_n to_o thy_o metropolitan_a and_o final_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o assign_v to_o 7._o iwenall_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o his_o first_o patriarchall_a territory_n the_o three_o palestina_n for_o that_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v call_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o church_n it_o be_v mother_n in_o antiquity_n and_o not_o mother_n 9_o in_o authority_n and_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n iwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v according_a to_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v a_o mistake_n of_o the_o translator_n of_o rome_n who_o instead_o of_o say_v the_o roman_a as_o peltanus_n have_v 4._o it_o have_v say_v the_o jerosolomitan_n for_o that_o the_o last_o clause_n of_o the_o period_n be_v to_o have_v reference_n to_o the_o roman_a sea_n as_o be_v do_v by_o peltanus_n and_o not_o to_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n as_o the_o interpreter_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v abuse_v himself_o with_o this_o that_o the_o word_n to_o obey_v govern_v the_o dative_a and_o not_o consider_v that_o the_o word_n to_o honour_n which_o be_v there_o add_v alter_v the_o rule_n be_v verify_v by_o seven_o undoubted_a profess_v first_o it_o be_v verify_v by_o this_o that_o the_o greek_a text_n shall_v also_o have_v no_o construction_n there_o be_v no_o verb_n within_o the_o period_n to_o govern_v this_o accusative_a the_o throne_n apostolic_a of_o great_a rome_n but_o the_o verb_n to_o honour_n it_o be_v second_o prove_v because_o always_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o those_o of_o jerusalem_n have_v judge_v of_o the_o counsel_n of_o antioch_n as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o specify_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o paul_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o of_o of_o saint_n athanasius_n it_o be_v thirdlie_o verify_v because_o the_o nullity_n propound_v against_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o saint_n athanasius_n time_n be_v ground_v not_o upon_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o yet_o be_v no_o more_o there_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o socrates_n note_n but_o upon_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o 8._o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n it_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o fowrth_a place_n because_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o of_o jerusalem_n that_o contrariwise_o 7._o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o have_v late_o be_v show_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o by_o that_o of_o saint_n jerom_n error_n be_v subject_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o by_o appeal_n hierosol_n to_o he_o of_o antioch_n it_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o five_o place_n because_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o same_o iwenall_n send_v back_o the_o cele_a cause_n of_o john_n patriarcke_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o six_o place_n because_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n where_o iwenall_n be_v also_o present_a the_o sentence_n of_o anatholius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v that_o maximus_n 10._o bishop_n of_o antioch_n shall_v remain_v for_o as_o much_o as_o pope_n leo_n have_v receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o shall_v rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o final_o it_o be_v verify_v because_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n against_o the_o monothelite_n the_o cause_n of_o macarius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n be_v send_v back_o not_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o to_o the_o pope_n macarius_n and_o 18._o his_o adherent_n say_v the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonat_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o remit_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o most_o 〈◊〉_d pope_n the_o same_o may_v be_v also_o say_v of_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o constantinople_n for_o as_o much_o as_o although_o that_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o nectarius_n have_v desire_v to_o erect_v it_o into_o a_o patriarckship_n nevertheless_o this_o desire_n have_v no_o place_n till_o after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o church_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n austin_n any_o more_o than_o the_o three_o patriarchall_a chair_n which_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o wit_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n 8._o for_o whereas_o socrates_n putt_v among_o the_o patriarchip_n of_o the_o eastern_a empire_n the_o primacy_n of_o pontus_n and_o that_o of_o asia-minor_a from_o whence_o some_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o impertinent_a thing_n to_o go_v about_o to_o restrain_v the_o number_n of_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n to_o the_o only_a sea_n mention_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicean_a council_n they_o show_v their_o own_o impertinency_n not_o to_o see_v that_o socrates_n there_o extende_v by_o confusion_n of_o language_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d patriarch_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o primate_fw-la and_o employ_v it_o not_o univocallie_o and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n whereto_o we_o employ_v it_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o patriarch_n proper_o take_v no_o more_o than_o when_o cassiodorus_n call_v the_o primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_o of_o italy_n patriarck_n or_o when_o gregory_n of_o tours_n call_v nicetius_n 〈◊〉_d of_o lion_n patriarcke_n they_o intend_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o patriarch_n proper_o and_o strict_o take_v but_o of_o patriarch_n take_v large_o and_o general_o now_o these_o thing_n be_v manifest_o distinct_a as_o cuias_fw-la have_v plain_o note_v in_o these_o term_n the_o imperial_a law_n separate_v the_o privilege_n patriarchall_a and_o metropoliticke_a for_o not_o to_o touch_v other_o diversity_n which_o be_v between_o the_o patriarch_n special_o take_v that_o antiquity_n otherwise_o call_v archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n general_o take_v that_o be_v between_o patriarch_n and_o those_o that_o be_v but_o simple_o primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o they_o that_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o patriarch_n proper_o and_o especial_o take_v be_v fix_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o sea_n and_o never_o vary_v for_o any_o respect_n of_o anterioritie_fw-la of_o posterioritie_n of_o promotion_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o patriarch_n proper_o take_v never_o precede_v by_o any_o primate_fw-la or_o motropolitans_n whatsoever_o anterioritie_fw-la of_o promotion_n the_o simple_a primate_fw-la or_o metropolitan_n have_v before_o they_o nor_o among_o the_o patriarch_n proper_o take_v the_o three_o never_o precede_v the_o second_o whatsoever_o antiquity_n of_o promotion_n he_o have_v above_o he_o but_o their_o seat_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o order_n of_o their_o sea_n and_o not_o to_o that_o of_o their_o promotion_n where_o patriarch_n general_o and_o inproperlie_o take_v that_o be_v to_o say_v primate_fw-la or_o metropolitans_fw-la have_v among_o they_o
no_o seat_n annex_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o sea_n but_o the_o ancient_a primate_n or_o metropolitan_a precede_v the_o other_o and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o extension_n and_o communication_n that_o the_o less_o curious_a author_n have_v make_v of_o the_o name_n patriark_n 123._o to_o other_o primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_n yet_o when_o there_o harh_n be_v question_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o patriarch_n proper_o so_o call_v the_o church_n never_o acknowledge_v more_o than_o five_o patriarch_n three_o ancient_a and_o originarie_a rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o two_o accessory_n and_o supernumerarie_a 〈◊〉_d and_o constantinople_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n who_o write_v the_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n which_o be_v he_o of_o ancient_a rome_n he_o of_o constantinople_n he_o of_o alexandria_n he_o of_o antioch_n and_o he_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o reckon_v four_o patriarch_n 37._o beside_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o say_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o natalis_n bishop_n of_o salona_n if_o one_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n have_v commit_v such_o a_o disobedience_n it_o can_v not_o have_v pass_v without_o a_o grievous_a scandal_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o say_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonat_n we_o pray_v your_o imperial_a wisdom_n that_o the_o copy_n of_o this_o decree_n clau_fw-mi may_v be_v send_v to_o the_o five_o patriarchall_a throne_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o balsamon_n who_o compare_v the_o patriarch_n to_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o affirm_v that_o as_o there_o be_v five_o sense_n in_o the_o human_a body_n so_o there_o be_v five_o patriarch_n in_o the_o church_n the_o patriarch_n say_v salsamon_n be_v as_o the_o five_o sense_n in_o one_o only_a and_o self-same_a head_n and_o again_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o five_o most_o sacred_a patriarch_n for_o the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o body_n of_o all_o the_o church_n 7._o of_o god_n and_o indeed_o the_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n in_o say_v because_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o tradition_n bear_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v honour_v the_o council_n or_o dain_v that_o he_o have_v the_o next_o place_n of_o honour_n save_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o own_o metropolitan_a do_v it_o not_o evident_o show_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o the_o sea_n whereof_o the_o council_n speak_v before_o this_o canon_n have_v a_o preeminent_a rank_n of_o honour_n both_o before_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o before_o all_o the_o other_o sea_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v the_o next_o place_n of_o honour_n after_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v follow_v they_o in_o order_n of_o rank_n and_o precedency_n and_o have_v place_n of_o all_o the_o metropolitan_n even_o his_o own_o to_o wit_n the_o arbishop_n of_o caesarea_n who_o be_v metropolitan_a of_o palestina_n but_o without_o any_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n but_o contrariwise_o with_o a_o obligation_n to_o remain_v subject_a in_o the_o first_o instance_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o palestina_n and_o by_o appeal_n to_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n now_o there_o be_v but_o three_o sea_n which_o precede_v that_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o after_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n there_o be_v no_o more_o sea_n which_o have_v fix_v place_n but_o all_o the_o other_o primate_fw-la and_o metropolitans_fw-la change_v their_o seat_n according_a to_o the_o anterioritie_fw-la or_o posterioritie_n of_o their_o promotion_n and_o consequent_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v not_o to_o place_n in_o the_o rank_n of_o sea_n true_o patriarchall_a that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o have_v patriarchall_a place_n and_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o the_o three_o sea_n before_o name_v there_o and_o 51._o in_o the_o same_o rank_n as_o they_o be_v there_o name_v to_o wit_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n as_o saint_n leo_n the_o first_o protest_v to_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o these_o word_n i_o be_o sorry_a that_o thy_o charity_n be_v fall_v into_o this_o fault_n to_o assay_v to_o infringe_v the_o most_o sacred_a constitution_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o nicaea_n as_o if_o thou_o have_v watch_v a_o time_n on_o purpose_n to_o make_v the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n lose_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o second_o 6._o honour_n and_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n the_o propriety_n of_o the_o three_o dignity_n and_o to_o this_o it_o contradict_v not_o that_o the_o same_o council_n of_o nicaea_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o sea_n of_o antioch_n likewise_o both_o in_o antioch_n and_o in_o other_o province_n the_o privilege_n to_o be_v preserve_v to_o the_o church_n for_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o other_o province_n the_o 16._o eastern_a province_n which_o he_o will_v shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n save_v the_o right_a of_o those_o who_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o too_o great_a distance_n or_o incommoditie_n of_o the_o way_n have_v accustom_v to_o take_v the_o ordination_n conterror_n of_o their_o metropolitan_o from_o their_o synod_n which_o have_v give_v subject_a to_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o to_o write_v that_o by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o bishop_n joann_n of_o antioch_n be_v establish_v not_o over_o a_o province_n but_o over_o a_o diocese_n that_o 77._o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o ancient_a lawyer_n over_o a_o body_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o province_n and_o to_o saint_n jerom_n to_o say_v that_o the_o eph._n council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v decree_v that_o antioch_n shall_v be_v the_o metropolitan_a of_o all_o the_o east_n and_o to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o complain_v that_o the_o cyprian_n against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n ordain_v their_o 7._o bishop_n without_o his_o permission_n and_o to_o the_o cyprian_n contrariwise_o to_o protest_n that_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o right_a of_o the_o ordination_n of_o their_o bishop_n have_v be_v preserve_v to_o they_o the_o true_a patriarch_n then_o ancient_a and_o originarie_a in_o regard_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v the_o only_a three_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n rome_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n which_o be_v all_o three_o in_o some_o sort_n one_o sea_n as_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a 30._o witness_v to_o eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n in_o these_o word_n although_o say_v he_o there_o be_v many_o apostle_n yet_o for_o principality_n the_o only_a sea_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v obtain_v the_o authority_n which_o be_v in_o three_o place_n from_o one_o only_a for_o he_o exalt_v the_o sea_n wherein_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o set_v up_o his_o rect_a and_o end_v his_o present_a life_n he_o have_v adorn_v the_o sea_n to_o which_o he_o ordain_v the_o evangelist_n his_o disciple_n and_o he_o have_v establish_v the_o sea_n wherein_o he_o be_v resident_a seven_o year_n although_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v from_o it_o which_o our_o hincmarus_n long_o after_o repeat_v in_o these_o 6._o term_n the_o sea_n of_o the_o roman_a alexandrian_n and_o antiochian_a church_n be_v one_o same_o sea_n of_o the_o great_a prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o of_o this_o ternary_a number_n the_o reason_n be_v that_o saint_n peter_n of_o 57_o who_o authority_n and_o superintendencie_n we_o will_v treat_v else_o where_o will_v in_o his_o life_n time_n to_o cast_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v after_o he_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n judge_v that_o the_o easy_a mean_n to_o establish_v it_o be_v to_o settle_v the_o principal_a seat_n in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o principal_a tribunal_n of_o the_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n be_v constitute_v because_o of_o the_o correspondency_n which_o the_o inferior_a city_n already_o have_v to_o those_o seat_n now_o there_o be_v then_o three_o principal_a city_n metropolitan_a and_o capital_a in_o the_o empire_n breed_v from_o 32._o the_o union_n of_o the_o eastern_a empire_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o monarchy_n of_o alexander_n &_o of_o his_o successor_n with_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n that_o of_o alexandria_n which_o dion_n chrisostome_n call_v the_o second_o city_n beneath_o the_o sun_n which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o the_o other_o neighbour-region_n 3._o after_o convert_v into_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n that_o of_o antioch_n which_o josephus_n call_v the_o three_o city_n of_o the_o roman_a world_n and_o which_o be_v entitle_v by_o 〈◊〉_d saint_n chrisostome_n the_o head_n and_o mother-cittie_n of_o the_o east_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o particular_a empire_n of_o
the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o asian_a east_n after_o convert_v into_o the_o government_a of_o syria_n and_o other_o eastern_a province_n and_o that_o of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o western_a empire_n from_o whence_o the_o ancient_a jew_n call_v rome_n the_o empire_n of_o edom_n that_o be_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n by_o allusion_n to_o idumea_n which_o be_v situate_a towards_o the_o west_n from_o the_o southern_a judea_n and_o they_o call_v titus_n who_o sack_v jerusalem_n titus_n the_o idumean_n a_o thing_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o latter_a rabbi_n to_o derive_v the_o race_n of_o titus_n from_o idumea_n and_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d paraphra_v turn_n these_o word_n of_o jeremias_n he_o will_v visit_v thou_o daughter_n of_o edom_n into_o these_o i_o will_v visit_v thou_o impious_a rome_n for_o the_o division_n of_o alexander_n 〈◊〉_d empire_n have_v be_v final_o reduce_v to_o two_o principal_a empire_n the_o one_o the_o empire_n of_o egypt_n hold_v by_o the_o posterity_n of_o ptolomeus_n son_n of_o lagus_n whereof_o alexandria_n be_v the_o head_n the_o other_o the_o empire_n of_o asia_n possess_v by_o the_o successor_n of_o seleucus_n who_o after_o he_o have_v conquer_v demetrius_n king_n of_o asia_n make_v say_v eusebius_n and_o saint_n jerom_n of_o the_o two_o 〈◊〉_d kingdom_n of_o syria_n and_o asia_n one_o empire_n who_o capital_a city_n be_v antioch_n then_o when_o those_o two_o empire_n come_v to_o be_v unite_v with_o that_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o rome_n which_o before_o hold_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n there_o where_o three_o principal_a city_n metropolitan_a and_o capital_a in_o the_o empire_n two_o subaltern_a to_o wit_n alexandria_n which_o be_v head_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o south_n that_o be_v the_o empire_n of_o egypt_n and_o antioch_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v the_o empire_n of_o asia_n and_o one_o 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n rome_n which_o be_v particular_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n and_o beside_o have_v the_o superintendencie_n over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o other_o two_o empire_n for_o i_o do_v not_o reckon_v carthage_n for_o so_o much_o as_o she_o be_v long_o before_o make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o western_a empire_n for_o these_o cause_n then_o as_o the_o church_n cast_v she_o first_o root_n in_o asia_n saint_n peter_n also_o first_o plant_v his_o episcopal_a sea_n at_o antioch_n the_o capital_a city_n 36._o of_o the_o east_n where_o he_o be_v resident_a comprehend_v his_o voyage_n into_o the_o neighbour_n province_n seven_o year_n and_o there_o found_v a_o successor_n or_o rather_o a_o succession_n which_o be_v after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n head_n of_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o eastern_a asia_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o 7._o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n intitle_v his_o sea_n the_o sea_n of_o s._n peter_n of_o the_o great_a city_n of_o the_o antiochian_o &_o that_o s._n chrysost_o ignat._n citizen_v of_o antioch_n cry_v god_n show_v by_o the_o effect_n that_o he_o have_v great_a care_n of_o the_o city_n of_o antioch_n for_o he_o ordain_v that_o peter_n the_o superintendent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n he_o to_o who_o he_o have_v consign_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o disposition_n of_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v a_o long_a time_n resident_a there_o &_o that_o s._n innocent_a the_o first_o of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o s._n chrysostome_n 18._o write_v to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n the_o sea_n of_o antioch_n have_v not_o give_v place_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n but_o what_o that_o obtain_v only_o by_o the_o way_n this_o obtain_v absolute_o and_o final_o from_o whence_o the_o same_o saint_n peter_n see_v that_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o grow_v further_o and_o to_o spread_v her_o root_n through_o all_o the_o world_n he_o transport_v himself_o to_o rome_n which_o be_v both_o in_o particular_a head_n of_o the_o west_n &_o in_o general_a head_n of_o the_o world_n &_o hold_v there_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n comprehend_v many_o voyage_n 25._o year_n simon_n peter_n say_v saint_n eccl_n jerom_n son_n of_o jona_n of_o the_o province_n of_o galilee_n of_o the_o borough_n of_o bethsaida_n brother_n to_o andrew_n the_o apostle_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o episcopate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o dispersion_n of_o those_o of_o the_o circumcision_n who_o have_v believe_v in_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o bithynia_n come_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n to_o overthrow_n simon_n the_o magician_n and_o there_o hold_v 25._o year_n the_o episcopal_a chair_n and_o s._n leo_n the_o first_o addressing_z 2._o his_o speech_n in_o the_o form_n of_o apostrophe_n to_o the_o same_o s._n peter_n thou_o have_v say_v he_o already_o found_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n in_o which_o the_o word_n christian_n first_o receive_v birth_n thou_o have_v already_o replenish_v pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o bithynia_n with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o evangelicall_a preach_n then_o final_o have_v establish_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n at_o antioch_n and_o of_o that_o of_o the_o west_n at_o rome_n and_o consider_v he_o have_v still_o one_o of_o the_o three_o capital_a city_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o provide_v for_o to_o wit_n that_o of_o alexandria_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o egypt_n he_o appoint_v &_o place_v there_o his_o second_o self_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o ghostly_a child_n and_o well-beloved_a disciple_n s._n mark_v the_o evangelist_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o julius_n the_o first_o report_v by_o s._n athanasius_n write_v of_o alexandria_n it_o be_v not_o a_o common_a church_n but_o of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v institute_v and_o s._n jerom_n the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n do_v glory_n that_o 78._o she_o partake_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o again_o that_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n confirm_v by_o his_o preach_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o chair_n of_o mark_n the_o evangelist_n and_o saint_n leo_n the_o first_o write_v to_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n since_o that_o the_o most_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n have_v receive_v from_o our_o lord_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostleship_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n remain_v in_o his_o institution_n it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o believe_v that_o his_o holy_a disciple_n mark_v who_o first_o govern_v 79._o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n have_v form_v his_o decree_n upon_o any_o other_o rule_v of_o tradition_n and_o from_o thence_o take_v begin_v these_o three_o patriarchall_a sea_n correspondent_a to_o the_o three_o imperial_a seat_n under_o which_o the_o general_a union_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v make_v but_o not_o so_o yet_o equal_a but_o that_o among_o these_o three_o first_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v first_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o division_n there_o be_v one_o first_o of_o the_o first_o &_o exalt_v &_o superintendent_n over_o both_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o roman_a from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d os_fw-la sardica_n &_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n &_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a call_v she_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n &_o that_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n entitle_v the_o pope_n the_o rector_n of_o the_o univer_n salitie_n of_o church_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n qualify_v he_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d constantine_n pogonat_n and_o the_o six_o council_n of_o constantinople_n call_v he_o the_o agath_fw-mi protothrone_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n of_o the_o apostolical_a height_n ibid._n the_o soucraigne_a pope_n 〈◊〉_d the_o capitaine_n of_o the_o sacred_a warfare_n and_o the_o universal_a patriarch_n and_o arch-pastor_n and_o call_v the_o other_o patriarch_n sinthrone_n of_o the_o pope_n aster_n the_o pope_n for_o i_o will_v not_o add_v that_o which_o some_o catholic_n use_v to_o allege_v of_o cassiodorus_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n of_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarch_n as_o well_o because_o cassiodorus_n there_o speak_v not_o of_o patriarch_n proper_o take_v but_o extend_v the_o word_n to_o primate_fw-la and_o metropolitan_o as_o because_o i_o doubt_v it_o must_v be_v read_v disiunctivelie_a papam_fw-la vel_fw-la patriarchalem_fw-la episcopum_fw-la and_o not_o explicative_o papam_fw-la vel_fw-la patriarcharum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la it_o suffice_v i_o to_o say_v that_o as_o
thou_o scatter_v and_o s._n au_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o 〈◊〉_d the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o prosper_v who_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d 6._o repute_v his_o second_o self_n and_o who_o joseph_n scalager_n call_v the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o his_o age_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o apostolic_a priesthood_n have_v make_v 〈◊〉_d great_a by_o the_o tribunal_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o that_o of_o the_o empire_n &_o else_o where_o change_v his_o prose_n into_o verse_n 〈◊〉_d rome_n great_a apostle_n peter_n sacred_a seat_n head_n of_o the_o churches-bodie_n here_o below_o have_v by_o faith_n empire_n make_v herself_o more_o great_a then_o she_o by_o all_o her_o arm_a power_n can_v grow_v and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o anastasius_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n 〈◊〉_d it_o have_v be_v provide_v by_o a_o grand_a order_n that_o all_o shall_v not_o attribute_v all_o thing_n to_o themselves_o but_o that_o in_o every_o province_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o who_o sentence_n may_v hold_v the_o first_o place_n among_o their_o brother_n and_o again_o that_o there_o may_v be_v other_o constitute_v in_o the_o great_a city_n who_o may_v use_v a_o great_a diligence_n by_o who_o the_o care_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v flow_v to_o the_o only_a seat_n of_o peter_n and_o therefore_o 〈◊〉_d the_o allexandrians_n will_v accuse_v dionysius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n their_o bishop_n they_o go_v up_o to_o rome_n say_v s._n athanasius_n &_o accuse_v he_o 〈◊〉_d before_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o when_o the_o same_o athanasius_n likewise_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constautinople_n and_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o aneyra_n in_o galatia_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v sozomene_n restore_v to_o each_o one_o his_o 〈◊〉_d church_n because_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v and_o when_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v propound_v to_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o council_n remit_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o iwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v that_o the_o anoient_fw-fr custom_n and_o 〈◊〉_d tradition_n bare_a that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n shall_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o roman_a and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n disannul_v the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n they_o except_v the_o creation_n of_o maximus_n patriark_n 〈◊〉_d of_o antioch_n because_o say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o shall_v rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o when_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z in_o the_o border_n of_o persia_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o patriarkhip_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d of_o chalcedon_n receive_v he_o because_o say_v the_o senate_n the_o pope_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o dignity_n and_o when_o flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o by_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o appeal_v likewise_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o counsel_n 〈◊〉_d and_o when_o john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v be_v drive_v from_o his_o sea_n by_o the_o plot_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d zeno_n he_o also_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o that_o with_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n as_o liberatus_n archdeacon_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o writer_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o one_o hundred_o year_n antiquity_n report_v in_o these_o word_n john_n say_v liberatus_n have_v take_v synodical_a letter_n of_o intercession_n 2._o from_o calendian_a patriarch_n of_o antioch_n appeal_v to_o pope_n simplicius_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n for_o 〈◊〉_d as_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o seem_v to_o rule_v the_o bishop_n 32_o of_o alexandria_n &_o antioch_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o s._n peter_n stay_n at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n chapt_n iv._o but_o against_o this_o that_o we_o have_v affirm_v of_o the_o sit_v of_o saint_n pfter_o at_o antioch_n and_o at_o rome_n caluine_n and_o the_o other_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n form_n twelve_o principal_a objection_n eight_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o four_o from_o the_o father_n the_o first_o objection_n be_v that_o s._n paul_n find_v s._n peter_n in_o jerusalem_n the_o two_o first_o voyage_n that_o he_o make_v thither_o the_o one_o three_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n &_o the_o other_o when_o ibid._n he_o carry_v the_o alm_n for_o the_o famine_n foretell_v by_o agabus_n &_o then_o that_o the_o episcopal_a stay_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o antioch_n which_o after_o s._n jeroms_n computation_n between_o these_o two_o voyage_n can_v not_o be_v seven_o year_n as_o s._n gregory_n affirm_v it_o &_o as_o we_o suppose_v it_o for_o asmuch_o as_o s._n paul_n conversionhappen_v at_o the_o soon_o three_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n &_o s._n peter_n depart_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o go_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n which_o be_v the_o eleaventh_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o 15._o christ._n the_o second_o objection_n be_v that_o s._n peter_n still_o assist_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o council_n hold_v for_o the_o legal_a cause_n about_o twenty_o year_n say_v they_o after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o be_v crucify_v as_o we_o say_v the_o fourteen_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o nero_n that_o be_v the_o seven_o &_o thirtith_v year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o then_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v 25_o year_n at_o rome_n as_o we_o say_v the_o three_o that_o s._n paul_n address_v the_o principal_a of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o there_o salute_v s._n peter_n who_o he_o will_v not_o 16._o have_v forget_v if_o he_o have_v be_v there_o the_o four_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n write_v 2._o from_o rome_n to_o the_o philippian_n complain_v that_o every_o one_o seek_v his_o own_o &_o not_o that_o which_o be_v of_o christ._n and_o to_o timothy_n that_o all_o have_v abandon_v he_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o s._n petfr_n have_v be_v there_o the_o 4._o fist_n that_o when_o s._n paul_n come_v to_o rome_n the_o brother_n go_v to_o meet_v he_o 28._o among_o who_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o s._n petfr_n and_o the_o jew_n pray_v he_o to_o declare_v to_o they_o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o christian_n a_o thing_n they_o will_v not_o have_v require_v if_o s._n peter_n have_v preach_v at_o rome_n before_o he_o the_o six_o that_o s._n luke_n who_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o s._n peter_n voyage_n to_o rome_n the_o seven_o that_o s._n paul_n who_o have_v describe_v the_o interview_n between_o s._n 2._o peter_n and_o he_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n speak_v not_o of_o their_o interview_n at_o 21._o rome_n which_o be_v the_o most_o famous_a city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o eigth_n that_o s._n john_n make_v mention_v of_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n by_o which_o s._n peter_n shall_v glorify_v god_n but_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o death_n now_o let_v we_o first_o dispatch_v the_o objection_n take_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o after_o we_o will_v proceed_v to_o those_o take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o first_o objection_n then_o from_o scripture_n which_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n still_o 6._o find_v saint_n peter_n in_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o two_o first_o voyage_n that_o he_o make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o three_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n and_o the_o other_o when_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o alm_n for_o the_o famine_n foretell_v by_o agabus_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o episcopal_a stay_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o antioch_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o two_o voyage_n can_v not_o be_v of_o seven_o year_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d paul_n happen_v not_o in_o the_o three_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o 〈◊〉_d as_o they_o pretend_v a_o thing_n which_o trouble_v all_o the_o harmony_n of_o the_o history_n but_o the_o first_o and_o this_o i_o prove_v in_o this_o manner_n between_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o s._n 〈◊〉_d departure_n to_o go_v to_o rome_n s._n paul_n remain_v
of_o our_o lord_n and_o caius_n of_o one_o time_n with_o tertulian_n if_o thou_o will_v gue_z to_o the_o vatican_n or_o to_o the_o way_n of_o hostia_fw-la thou_o shall_v find_v the_o trophy_n that_o be_v the_o sepulcher_n of_o those_o which_o have_v found_v this_o church_n and_o clement_n alexandrius_n &_o before_o he_o papias_n the_o hearer_n of_o s._n john_n mark_v 〈◊〉_d be_v entreat_v at_o roman_a by_o the_o brother_n write_v a_o brief_a gospel_n which_o peter_n have_v read_v approve_v and_o origen_n peter_n be_v crucify_v at_o rome_n with_o his_o head_n downward_o and_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o rome_n ā_o church_n be_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o proceed_v the_o sacerdotal_a unity_n 14._o and_o eusebius_n under_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n bring_v the_o great_a apostle_n saint_n peter_n to_o rome_n and_o again_o the_o history_n bear_v that_o paul_n be_v behead_v and_o peter_n crucify_v at_o rome_n under_o nero_n and_o the_o title_n 21._o of_o peter_n and_o paul_n preserve_v to_o this_o day_n in_o their_o sepulchre_n confirm_v it_o and_o lactantius_n peter_n and_o paul_n preach_v at_o rome_n and_o their_o 〈◊〉_d remain_v write_v for_o memory_n and_o s._n athanasius_n though_o it_o be_v declare_v 2._o to_o peter_n and_o paul_n that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v 〈◊〉_d doom_n at_o rome_n yet_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 6._o not_o to_o travel_v thither_o and_o s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n peter_n and_o paul_n precedent_n of_o the_o church_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o saint_n epiphanius_n at_o rome_n be_v first_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n peter_z and_o `_o paul_n and_o then_o linus_n and_o then_o cletus_n and_o then_o clement_n and_o saint_n ambrose_n peter_n be_v our_o warrant_n for_o this_o custom_n who_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o again_o christ_n 1._o have_v answer_v peter_n i_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v crucify_v again_o peter_n understand_v that_o this_o answer_n belong_v to_o his_o cross_n and_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n and_o valentinian_n and_o theodosius_fw-la we_o will_v that_o all_o the_o people_n rule_v by_o the_o empire_n of_o our_o clemency_n live_v in_o such_o religion_n as_o the_o religion_n insinuate_v hitherto_a by_o the_o diviue_v apostle_n peter_n declare_v that_o he_o give_v to_o the_o roman_n 2._o and_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la thou_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o thou_o know_v that_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o episcopal_a chair_n be_v first_o confer_v to_o peter_n wherein_z peter_z head_n of_o the_o apostle_n sit_v and_o saint_n jerom_n simon_n peter_n son_n of_o petr._n jona_n of_o the_o province_n of_o galilee_n of_o the_o borough_n of_o bethsaida_n brother_n to_o the_o apostle_n andrew_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o episcopat_v of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o dispersion_n of_o those_o of_o the_o circumcision_n which_o have_v believe_v in_o hegesippo_n pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n and_o 〈◊〉_d come_v to_o rome_n the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n to_o overthrow_n simon_n magus_n and_o hold_v the_o sacerdotal_a chair_n twenty_o five_o year_n there_o and_o again_o hegesippus_n affirm_v that_o he_o lucis_fw-la come_v to_o rome_n under_o anicetus_n who_o be_v ten_o bishop_n of_o rome_n after_o peter_n and_o else_o where_o cyprian_n address_v the_o council_n of_o affrica_fw-la to_o steven_n bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a invect_n church_n who_o be_v the_o twenty_o six_o after_o the_o bless_a peter_n and_o ruffinus_n 2._o peter_n rule_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o twenty_o four_o year_n and_o sulpitius_n severus_n the_o christian_a religion_n have_v then_o take_v root_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n peter_n be_v 32._o bishop_n there_o and_o s._n chrisostome_n what_o spectacle_n shall_v rome_n see_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgemeut_n paul_n come_v forth_o of_o his_o grave_n rise_v again_o with_o peter_n and_o orosius_n nero_n 〈◊〉_d peter_n to_o death_n by_o the_o cross_n and_o paul_n by_o the_o sword_n 7._o and_o saint_n augustin_n we_o see_v the_o most_o eminent_a height_n of_o the_o thrice_o noble_a empire_n 51._o submit_v his_o diadem_n bend_v his_o knee_n to_o the_o supulcher_n of_o the_o fisherman_n peter_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n i_o think_v this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o suffice_v thou_o wherein_o our_o lord_n will_v crown_v with_o a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n doom_n the_o first_o of_o his_o apostle_n and_o else_o where_o what_o have_v the_o chair_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v to_o thou_o wherein_z 165._o peter_z have_v be_v set_v and_o wherein_o now_o anastasius_n sit_v and_o again_o to_o peter_n have_v succeed_v linus_n to_o linus_n clement_n to_o clement_n anacletus_fw-la to_o anacletus_fw-la euaristus_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o patriarch_n chapt_n v._o have_v dispatch_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o father_n concern_v s._n peter_n stay_n at_o antioch_n &_o rome_n there_o remain_v to_o solve_v the_o objection_n that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n make_v against_o what_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o pope_n superioritle_n over_o the_o other_o patriarch_n whereof_o the_o principal_a be_v take_v from_o one_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n observe_v in_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n shall_v go_v on_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v have_v the_o power_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v also_o so_o accustom_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n now_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n do_v more_o willing_a lie_n make_v use_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n in_o 6._o such_o like_a case_n then_o of_o any_o other_o because_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o if_o we_o have_v they_o may_v clear_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n be_v lose_v &_o that_o there_o remain_v to_o we_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n no_o more_o but_o those_o of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v supply_v what_o want_v in_o the_o brevity_n and_o omission_n of_o this_o canon_n by_o confer_v it_o with_o the_o act_n of_o the_o other_o counsel_n or_o by_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o history_n of_o their_o age_n to_o this_o objection_n than_o we_o bring_v two_o answer_n the_o first_o be_v that_o it_o have_v already_o be_v above_o show_v in_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o patriarch_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v two_o distinct_a quality_n the_o one_o of_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n &_o the_o other_o of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a as_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o city_n presecture_n by_o which_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n will_v measure_v the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v 2._o distinct_a quality_n the_o one_o of_o pray_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d fect_v of_o the_o city_n prefecture_n in_o which_o he_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o other_o province_n &_o the_o other_o of_o head_n of_o the_o senate_n &_o vicar_n of_o the_o emperor_n 1._o in_o which_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o prefect_n of_o province_n and_o judge_v by_o appeal_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o their_o jurisdiction_n by_o mean_n whereof_o although_o in_o thing_n that_o concern_v but_o the_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n as_o be_v the_o celebration_n of_o provincial_a or_o national_a counsel_n the_o correction_n of_o manner_n of_o the_o simple_a priest_n or_o deacons_n the_o confirmation_n either_o mediate_a or_o immediate_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n and_o the_o subaltern_a judgement_n of_o the_o cause_n even_o of_o bishop_n all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v square_v out_o by_o the_o model_n and_o pattern_n of_o that_o of_o rome_n nevertheless_o when_o there_o question_n of_o thing_n that_o go_v beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d of_o mayor_n cause_n and_o which_o convern_v the_o universal_a church_n as_o be_v cause_n of_o faith_n or_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n or_o those_o of_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o bishop_n or_o that_o of_o the_o judgement_n even_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o patriarch_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o superintendent_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n exercise_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o and_o judge_v of_o their_o judgement_n and_o person_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n ordain_v that_o in_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v remain_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o authority_n he_o have_v for_o all_o the_o cause_n whereof_o the_o council_n they_o speak_v that_o be_v
to_o say_v for_o the_o celebration_n of_o provincial_n and_o national_a synod_n for_o the_o correction_n of_o minor_a and_o particular_a cause_n &_o for_o the_o confirmation_n either_o mediate_v or_o immediate_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n &_o add_v for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o also_o be_v accustom_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o by_o 6._o that_o to_o square_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n by_o he_o of_o rome_n in_o thing_n that_o wét_v beyond_o the_o limit_n and_o authority_n of_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n and_o concern_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a society_n but_o in_o those_o thing_n only_o that_o be_v withim_v the_o bound_n and_o within_o the_o faculty_n of_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n no_o more_o than_o when_o they_o measure_v the_o power_n that_o the_o other_o prefect_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o province_n by_o the_o power_n that_o the_o prefect_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n have_v within_o the_o province_n of_o his_o prefecture_n they_o pretend_v not_o by_o that_o that_o in_o matter_n that_o when_o forth_o by_o appeal_n from_o the_o other_o province_n the_o city_n prefecte_n as_o head_n of_o the_o senate_n and_o vicar_n to_o the_o prince_n be_v not_o superior_a to_o all_o the_o other_o nor_o that_o when_o in_o a_o national_a council_n they_o square_v out_o the_o power_n that_o the_o archbishop_n have_v over_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o province_n to_o the_o model_n of_o that_o which_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o nation_n have_v as_o particular_a archbishop_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o quarter_n they_o pretend_v not_o by_o that_o that_o in_o thing_n which_o go_v beyond_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o province_n &_o regard_v the_o general_a interest_n of_o the_o nation_n the_o primate_n shall_v not_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o other_o archbishop_n nor_o final_o when_o in_o a_o regiment_n of_o man_n of_o war_n they_o measure_v the_o power_n that_o every_o particular_a captain_n have_v to_o command_v his_o company_n by_o the_o pattern_n and_o model_n that_o the_o campe-master_n of_o the_o regiment_n have_v over_o he_o they_o intend_v not_o by_o that_o in_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o particular_a command_z of_o every_o company_n but_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o order_n the_o disposition_n and_o government_n of_o the_o regiment_n in_o general_a the_o campe-master_n shall_v not_o be_v superior_a to_o all_o the_o other_o captain_n for_o both_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n when_o the_o churchman_n of_o alexandria_n will_v accuse_v dionysius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n their_o bishop_n who_o be_v the_o first_o patriarch_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o pope_n they_o transport_v themselves_o 25._o say_v athanasius_n to_o rome_n &_o accuse_v he_o before_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o present_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n when_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n sea_n of_o the_o three_o patriarkeship_n have_v be_v celebrate_v it_o be_v argue_v of_o nullity_n because_o say_v socrates_n the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n forbid_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n without_o 8._o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o when_o the_o same_o council_n of_o antioch_n &_o the_o other_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n have_v depose_v s._n athanas_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n and_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n a_o city_n of_o the_o patriarkeship_n of_o antioch_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 7._o say_v sozomene_n restore_v they_o every_o one_o to_o his_o church_n because_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n appertain_v the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n within_o twenty_o year_n of_o that_o of_o nicaea_n and_o hold_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o that_o of_o nicaea_n and_o compose_v of_o the_o like_a or_o a_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n they_o that_o of_o nicaea_n and_o at_o which_o assist_v the_o same_o osius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n the_o same_o saint_n a_o thanasius_n then_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n &_o the_o same_o protogenes_n bishop_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v assist_v at_o that_o of_o nicaea_n proceed_v to_o the_o direction_n of_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n it_o do_v not_o only_o authorise_v the_o appeal_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a good_a and_o convenient_a thing_n that_o from_o all_o canon_n the_o province_n the_o bishop_n shall_v refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n which_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n call_v a_o general_a council_n depute_a theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n because_o of_o the_o neighbourhood_n of_o his_o hilar_n patriarkship_n to_o examine_v the_o cause_n of_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n saint_n ambrose_n write_v to_o he_o that_o after_o he_o have_v judge_v it_o he_o must_v get_v the_o pope_n 78_o to_o confirm_v his_o judgement_n and_o when_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n pass_v to_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n iwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la say_v that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n bare_a that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v always_o govern_v by_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o council_n in_o the_o body_n of_o it_o remit_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o dioscorus_n caelest_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n condemn_v and_o depose_v flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n flavianus_n appeal_v from_o he_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n follow_v the_o custom_n chalc_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n disannul_v the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n it_o be_v vote_v by_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n that_o of_o all_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n none_o shall_v remain_v in_o force_n except_o the_o creation_n of_o maximus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v 10._o receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o shall_v govern_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n &_o when_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z neighbour_n to_o persia_n and_o one_o of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n &_o have_v from_o it_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n present_v himself_o at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o senator_n to_o cause_v order_n 1._o to_o be_v observe_v there_o command_v he_o shall_v come_v in_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n legate_n bear_v the_o first_o word_n in_o the_o council_n not_o only_o they_o entitle_v 4._o the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n but_o also_o when_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n in_o their_o body_n send_v their_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n they_o entreat_v he_o as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n thou_o have_v guide_v we_o say_v 〈◊〉_d they_o by_o the_o legate_n as_o the_o head_n do_v the_o member_n and_o again_o as_o in_o this_o which_o be_v for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d we_o have_v bring_v correspondency_n to_o our_o head_n so_o thy_o sovereignty_n may_v fulfil_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o thy_o child_n that_o which_o concern_v decency_n and_o they_o treat_v dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n as_o ghostly_a vassal_n to_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d say_v they_o have_v extend_v his_o felony_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o vine_n have_v by_o our_o saviour_n be_v commit_v that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thy_o holiness_n evident_a and_o manifest_a argument_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v two_o quality_n distinct_a the_o one_o of_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o other_o of_o sovereign_a vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o when_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v compare_v to_o he_o it_o be_v in_o quality_n of_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o not_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o sovereign_a vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o second_o solution_n be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n speak_v of_o the_o 6._o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n with_o restriction_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n without_o restriction_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o senator_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o cause_v order_n to_o be_v observe_v there_o after_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o lecture_n of_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o
nicaea_n and_o of_o the_o three_o canon_n 16._o of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n infer_v thereupon_o thus_o it_o appear_v from_o hence_o that_o all_o primacy_n and_o principal_a honour_n have_v always_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o thing_n that_o amaze_v i_o that_o the_o greek_a schismatickes_n and_o 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o perceive_v it_o for_o nilus_n 〈◊〉_d archbishop_n of_o thesalonica_n dispute_v against_o the_o pope_n say_v if_o the_o canon_n of_o 2._o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v distribute_v the_o climate_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o bishops-generall_n so_o he_o call_v the_o patriarch_n and_o have_v determinate_o settle_v nothing_o upon_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o have_v content_v itself_o with_o say_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o primacy_n there_o have_v be_v some_o reason_n to_o esteem_v that_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v under_o he_o and_o nevertheless_o not_o only_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o exceed_v their_o limit_n but_o that_o 2._o according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n govern_v only_o the_o affair_n of_o egypt_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n only_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n ordain_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o three_o palestina_n and_o to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n asia_n minor_fw-la pontus_n and_o thracia_n and_o the_o 7._o barbarous_a province_n that_o be_v to_o say_v russia_n and_o muscovia_n without_o ever_o go_v about_o either_o that_o or_o any_o other_o council_n to_o set_v out_o a_o part_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o prescribe_v limit_n out_o of_o which_o he_o may_v not_o exercise_v his_o authority_n but_o even_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n with_o restriction_n assign_v he_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n without_o restriction_n leave_v he_o the_o way_n free_a 6._o and_o assign_v he_o no_o limit_n nor_o any_o determinate_a number_n of_o province_n the_o custom_n say_v the_o canon_n observe_v from_o antiquity_n in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n be_v to_o be_v maintain_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v the_o power_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o reader_n to_o supply_v the_o word_n over_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o express_v the_o canon_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o custom_n observe_v from_o antiquity_n in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n shall_v be_v maintain_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v the_o power_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o the_o church_n for_o what_o be_v this_o 〈◊〉_d custom_n practise_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o whereof_o saint_n ireneus_n 3._o speak_v when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o 262._o mighty_a principality_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o the_o church_n shall_v agree_v and_o saint_n austin_n when_o he_o write_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o socrates_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n bare_a that_o vo_o decree_n may_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o 8._o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o sozomene_n when_o he_o note_n that_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o seat_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n apportain_v and_o so_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v net_n to_o compare_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n with_o the_o pope_n formal_o but_o anological_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o to_o compare_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n over_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o any_o determinate_a territory_n but_o to_o compare_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n over_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o this_o clause_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o bishopof_n rome_n there_o be_v a_o omission_n 6._o which_o shall_v be_v supply_v either_o by_o the_o extent_n of_o a_o universal_a word_n of_o particular_a restriction_n now_o that_o the_o design_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o to_o compare_v the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n as_o head_n of_o the_o particular_a prefecture_n of_o egypt_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o head_n of_o a_o other_o particular_a prefecture_n but_o to_o compare_v the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n as_o head_n of_o the_o particular_a prefecture_n of_o egypt_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n as_o head_n of_o all_o the_o empire_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o hereafter_o show_v it_o 34_o when_o it_o say_v design_v the_o temporal_a cause_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o father_n yield_v the_o privilege_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n for_o as_o much_o as_o that_o city_n hold_v the_o empire_n and_o the_o confront_v of_o these_o 18._o word_n of_o socrates_n the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n bare_a that_o no_o law_n shall_v be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o these_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n permit_v we_o to_o attend_v the_o 4._o ordination_n of_o our_o archbishop_n to_o the_o end_n that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n we_o may_v follow_v his_o sentence_n and_o again_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o the_o province_n of_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n to_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n without_o the_o sentence_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o archbishop_n ib._n of_o alexandria_n confirm_v it_o for_o to_o say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o establish_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o say_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o establish_v in_o the_o province_n of_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v it_o not_o to_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o in_o the_o prefecture_n of_o egypt_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o council_n say_v simple_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o accustom_a to_o the_o 6._o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o specify_v where_o nor_o bring_v in_o 〈◊〉_d restriction_n what_o shall_v hinder_v we_o from_o supply_v over_o all_o the_o church_n and_o from_o answer_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v to_o ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n who_o in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n be_v as_o vicar_n breed_v from_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n who_o have_v there_o establish_v his_o second_o self_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o son_n and_o well-beloved_a disciple_n the_o evangelist_n saint_n mark_n shall_v have_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n in_o all_o these_o province_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o 8_o as_o sozomene_n say_v because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o seat_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n appertain_v have_v it_o general_o over_o all_o the_o church_n or_o if_o they_o will_v press_v we_o to_o reduce_v the_o enthymeme_n of_o the_o council_n into_o the_o form_n of_o a_o complete_a sillogisme_n what_o can_v hinder_v we_o from_o reduce_v it_o into_o this_o the_o same_o privilege_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o whole_a ibid._n church_n the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v proportionable_o every_o one_o in_o rearguard_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n now_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o privilege_n that_o to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n pertain_v and_o that_o without_o he_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v of_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n then_o ought_v to_o enjoy_v by_o proportion_n the_o same_o privilege_n in_o the_o province_n 8_o of_o his_o patriarkship_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n
to_o wit_n that_o to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n appertain_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o same_o province_n and_o that_o without_o he_o nothing_o shall_v be_v decide_v in_o cause_n which_o concern_v they_o for_o that_o the_o patriarch_n in_o their_o division_n be_v as_o image_n and_o model_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o as_o vicar_n bear_v from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v every_o one_o in_o the_o extent_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n that_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v universallie_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o then_o that_o as_o the_o river_n melas_n in_o greece_n produce_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o animal_n and_o plant_n as_o nilus_n in_o egypt_n but_o lesser_a and_o proportionable_a to_o the_o quantity_n of_o his_o course_n so_o the_o same_o authority_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v over_o all_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n that_o without_o he_o nothing_o may_v be_v decide_v in_o thing_n which_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v it_o proportionable_o in_o his_o division_n to_o wit_n that_o without_o he_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o all_o the_o division_n of_o alexandria_n it_o appear_v by_o ten_o mean_n beside_o many_o other_o it_o appear_v first_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o condition_n under_o which_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n participate_v to_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n who_o be_v the_o head_n and_o superintendent_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o pope_n only_o bear_v the_o title_n of_o absolute_a successor_n and_o ordinary_a vicar_n to_o saint_n peter_n as_o be_v constitute_v in_o the_o tribunal_n where_o saint_n peter_n have_v establish_v his_o final_a and_o absolute_a sea_n &_o where_o he_o have_v plant_v the_o stock_n of_o his_o direct_a succession_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n cyprian_n call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o the_o original_n of_o the_o sacer_n dot_v all_o unity_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n exhorte_v the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o province_n to_o refer_v the_o cause_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 15._o say_v that_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n felix_n be_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n lest_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n may_v be_v dishonour_v be_v govern_v by_o two_o 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o saint_n jerom_n write_v to_o pope_n damasus_n i_o be_o join_v 〈◊〉_d in_o communion_n with_o thy_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o report_v and_o approve_v by_o saint_n austin_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n i_o conceive_v that_o all_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n can_v refer_v cause_n and_o principal_o concern_v faith_n to_o none_o but_o to_o peter_n that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o author_n of_o their_o name_n and_o dignity_n and_o that_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o oration_n that_o they_o make_v to_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o which_o be_v confess_v and_o register_v by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o council_n call_v the_o pope_n the_o successor_n 〈◊〉_d and_o ordinary_a vicar_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n entitle_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n saint_n leo_n the_o first_o the_o sermon_n of_o saint_n peter_n 〈◊〉_d sea_n whereas_o the_o part_n that_o the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v to_o the_o successjoin_n of_o saint_n peter_n be_v a_o oblique_a and_o collateral_a part_n and_o found_v upon_o subaltern_a and_o particular_a cause_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n upon_o the_o pass_a and_o transitory_a sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n at_o antioch_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v peter_n the_o superintendet_fw-la 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o whole_a world_n he_o to_o who_o christ_n have_v consign_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o disposition_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v a_o long_a time_n resident_a at_o antioch_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o time_n sellow_n to_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d saint_n 〈◊〉_d write_v to_o alexander_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n the_o sea_n of_o antioch_n have_v not_o give_v place_n to_o rome_n have_v it_o not_o be_v that_o what_o that_o 〈◊〉_d but_o by_o the_o way_n this_o have_v obtain_v absolute_o and_o final_o and_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n upon_o the_o commission_n that_o saint_n peter_n give_v to_o his_o second-selfe_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o his_o dear_a and_o well-beloved_a disciple_n saint_n mark_n to_o go_v find_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o the_o province_n adjacent_a from_o whence_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a cry_n out_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n in_o three_o place_n be_v of_o one_o alone_a for_o he_o greg._n have_v exalt_v the_o sea_n wherein_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o stay_v and_o finish_v his_o present_a life_n he_o 37._o have_v adorn_v the_o sea_n to_o which_o he_o have_v ordain_v the_o euaugelist_n his_o disciple_n he_o have_v establish_v the_o sea_n wherein_o he_o be_v resident_a seven_o year_n though_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v from_o it_o by_o which_o mean_n as_o the_o pope_n represent_v the_o stock_n of_o the_o direct_a succession_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n represent_v the_o branch_n of_o the_o oblique_a and_o collateral_a succession_n of_o saint_n peter_n so_o what_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o particular_a patriarckship_n and_o reciprocal_o what_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o particular_a patriarkship_n the_o pope_n be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n it_o appear_v second_o by_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o ancient_a order_n of_o the_o church_n which_o bear_v that_o the_o same_o privilege_n that_o the_o patriarch_n primat_n and_o metropolitan_o have_v to_o wit_n that_o without_o they_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o devision_n and_o that_o the_o provincial_n national_a or_o patriarchall_a counsel_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o their_o territory_n can_v not_o be_v esteem_v perfect_a if_o they_o assist_v not_o there_o the_o pope_n have_v they_o for_o the_o affair_n which_o regard_v the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o for_o the_o celebration_n of_o general_a counsel_n and_o reciprocallie_o that_o the_o same_o privilege_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v as_o that_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n pertain_v to_o they_o and_o that_o without_o they_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v of_o point_n concern_v the_o universal_a church_n nor_o general_a counsel_n be_v celebrate_v the_o patriarch_n primat_n and_o metropolitan_o have_v they_o proportionable_o in_o their_o limit_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o devision_n belong_v to_o they_o and_o without_o they_o nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n nor_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o territory_n be_v celebrate_v for_o as_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o i_o allege_v because_o it_o borrow_v this_o decree_n not_o from_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o arrian_n 9_o but_o from_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o the_o church_n say_v that_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o province_n belong_v to_o the_o metropolitan_a so_o sozomen_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n restore_v athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o const_n antinople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n for_o that_o to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o 7_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n appertain_v and_o as_o the_o same_o council_n of_o antioch_n say_v speak_v of_o particular_a counsel_n that_o synod_n be_v perfect_a at_o 16._o which_o the_o metropolitan_a assist_v so_o socrates_n witness_v that_o general_n counsel_n and_o which_o be_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o general_n law_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v celebrate_v without_o the_o pope_n julius_n say_v he_o have_v not_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n nor_o have_v send_v any_o in_o his_o place_n although_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n forbid_v to_o make_v 8._o ecclesiastical_a law_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o according_a to_o the_o translation_n of_o epiphanius_n follow_v by_o cassiodorus_n to_o celebrate_v 8._o counsel_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o sozomene_n there_o be_v a_o eccclesiastic_a all_o law_n which_o annul_v all_o thing_n
that_o be_v institute_v in_o the_o church_n 24._o without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n we_o decree_v that_o accord_v to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n nothing_o shall_v be_v innovate_v in_o the_o church_n without_o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o reverend_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o ibid._n rome_n now_o how_o be_v this_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n what_o leon_n the_o same_o law_n of_o theodosius_n and_o valectinian_n call_v he_o to_o wit_n the_o rector_n of_o fragm_n the_o univer_n salitie_n of_o church_n and_o what_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedom_n entitle_v he_o to_o wit_n the_o guardian_n of_o the_o lord_n vine_n and_o what_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 7._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n qualify_v he_o to_o wit_n the_o head_n of_o bishop_n for_o if_o as_o the_o provincial_n national_n or_o patriarchall_a counsel_n can_v not_o be_v repute_v perfect_a nor_o decide_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d or_o of_o the_o nation_n or_o of_o the_o province_n without_o the_o metropolitan_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o general_a counsel_n can_v not_o be_v general_a nor_o decide_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o concern_v the_o universal_a church_n without_o the_o assistance_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o as_o s._n jerom_n say_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d have_v ordain_v that_o antioch_n shall_v be_v the_o metropolitan_a 〈◊〉_d spiritual_a of_o all_o the_o east_n so_o not_o only_a saint_n athanasius_n call_v rome_n the_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d and_o metropolitan_a of_o romania_n that_o be_v of_o all_o the_o roman_a empire_n &_o beat_v the_o arrian_n with_o the_o epistle_n which_o they_o have_v write_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o which_o though_o fained_o irronical_o they_o have_v call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o school_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o religion_n but_o also_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n cry_v out_o the_o ancient_a rome_n march_v right_a in_o the_o say_v 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o west_n tie_v by_o the_o healthful_a word_n as_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v do_v which_o rule_v all_o the_o world_n and_o if_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n protest_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o the_o province_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o egypt_n to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o sentence_n &_o ordinance_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n so_o socrates_n say_v that_o the_o coucell_n of_o antioch_n be_v argue_v of_o nullity_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a law_n bare_a that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v rule_v without_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n how_o be_v it_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o metropolita_fw-la of_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o such_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d patriark_n &_o metropolitan_a be_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o division_n and_o if_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n reciprocallie_o as_o heir_n to_o the_o principal_a sea_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o metropolitan_a of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v rector_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o church_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o original_a patriarch_n which_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d chair_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o the_o metropolitan_o of_o the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o empire_n be_v not_o by_o proportion_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o division_n that_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v over_o the_o whole_a extent_n of_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v thirdlie_o by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o in_o the_o same_o canon_n for_o what_o cause_n have_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o repress_v the_o rebellion_n of_o meletius_n bishop_n of_o sycopolis_n in_o egypt_n who_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n his_o patriarch_n allege_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o not_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v in_o person_n at_o the_o council_n which_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o he_o be_v near_o both_o to_o the_o city_n of_o nicaea_n wherein_o the_o council_n woe_fw-la hold_v &_o to_o the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n in_o who_o favour_n this_o canon_n be_v make_v than_o the_o pope_n he_o have_v the_o 〈◊〉_d over_o fifteen_o great_a province_n where_o of_o the_o least_o contain_v more_o country_n than_o the_o protestant_n attribute_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o what_o cause_n do_v the_o council_n to_o suppress_v meletius_n allege_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n but_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n his_o authority_n be_v of_o positive_a right_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n by_o which_o mean_n the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d that_o carry_v meletius_n to_o deny_v the_o one_o may_v likewise_o have_v carry_v he_o to_o deny_v the_o other_o where_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o s._n austin_n &_o the_o mileu_n council_n speak_v draw_v 92_o 〈◊〉_d the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n moreover_o for_o what_o cause_n do_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n confirm_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n &_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n &_o not_o confirm_v that_o of_o the_o pope_n but_o because_o the_o pope_n authority_n depend_v not_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n but_o proceed_v 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o very_a mouth_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o pope_n gelasius_n who_o s._n 〈◊〉_d the_o second_o s._n aus_n or_o rather_o the_o second_o oracle_n of_o the_o african_a church_n call_v the_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v since_o express_v it_o in_o 〈◊〉_d there_o word_n the_o holy_a roman_a catholic_a apostolic_a church_n have_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o church_n by_o any_o synodical_a constitution_n but_o have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n evangelicall_a voice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n now_o this_o be_v so_o how_o be_v it_o not_o manifest_a that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o to_o restrain_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o limit_n of_o a_o simple_a particular_a patriarkship_n as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n but_o to_o propound_v the_o authority_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o a_o type_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o patriarkship_n for_o either_o the_o law_n divine_a give_v nothing_o to_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o other_o bishop_n or_o if_o it_o give_v he_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v give_v he_o over_o all_o the_o earth_n although_o for_o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o universal_a government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n abstain_v from_o the_o immediate_a administration_n of_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n &_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o only_a immediate_a government_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o west_n and_o with_o the_o mediate_a &_o general_a superintendencie_n over_o the_o rest_n it_o appear_v fowthly_a by_o the_o possession_n wherein_o the_o pope_n remain_v after_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n of_o judge_v the_o person_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o that_o in_o the_o view_n &_o with_o the_o applause_n even_o of_o those_o that_o have_v make_v the_o canon_n &_o of_o their_o successor_n &_o without_o that_o any_o ever_o murmur_v that_o this_o practice_n contradict_v it_o for_o how_o have_v pope_n julius_n the_o first_o who_o be_v create_v pope_n five_o year_n after_o the_o coúcell_n of_o nicaea_n restore_v those_o great_a champion_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n &_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n because_o to_o he_o say_v sozomen_n 7._o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n apperteyn_v if_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v to_o restrain_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n into_o the_o only_a limit_n of_o a_o particular_a patriarkship_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o how_o have_v those_o great_a champion_n &_o defendor_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n make_v use_v of_o the_o pope_n restitution_n to_o re-enter_v their_o sea_n if_o it_o have_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o which_o themselves_o have_v help_v to_o compose_v &_o s._n athanasius_n among_o the_o rest_n who_o have_v be_v the_o soul_n and_o pen_n thereof_o &_o be_v then_o heir_n &_o
successor_n to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n in_o who_o favour_n and_o upon_o who_o particular_a the_o article_n have_v be_v set_v down_o and_o how_o can_v pope_n julius_n have_v reproach_v the_o arrian_n that_o they_o have_v alter_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n if_o himself_o in_o restore_v s._n athanasius_n patriark_n of_o alexandria_n ibid._n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n lucius_n bishop_n of_o andrinopolis_n in_o thrace_n &_o in_o disannul_v the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n antioch_n &_o constantinople_n which_o have_v be_v hold_v against_o they_o have_v violate_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o why_o do_v not_o the_o arrian_n reply_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v himself_o that_o infringe_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n if_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v to_o restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o the_o only_a limit_n of_o a_o particular_a patriarkship_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o how_o have_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n wherein_o the_o council_n of_o 5._o nicaea_n be_v again_o put_v to_o the_o trial_n &_o which_o be_v hold_v twenty_o two_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n &_o to_o defend_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n 15._o of_o nicaea_n &_o by_o many_o of_o the_o same_o father_n that_o have_v assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n reduce_v into_o a_o write_a law_n that_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o province_n may_v appeal_v from_o they_o to_o the_o pope_n &_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a good_a &_o fit_a thing_n that_o from_o all_o the_o province_n the_o bishop_n shall_v refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o s._n peter_n if_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v to_o restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n into_o the_o only_a limit_n of_o a_o particular_a patriarkship_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o how_o have_v the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n reserve_v the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o how_o have_v flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n after_o he_o have_v beme_fw-mi depose_v by_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n &_o by_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n appeal_v from_o they_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o how_o 〈◊〉_d final_o have_v theodoret_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o same_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o have_v thence_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n if_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v not_o to_o propose_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o type_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o patriarkship_n but_o to_o restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n into_o the_o only_a limit_n of_o a_o particular_a patriarkship_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n it_o appear_v in_o the_o five_o place_n by_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n and_o universal_a pope_n that_o the_o churchman_n of_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n and_o particular_o those_o of_o alexandria_n who_o have_v more_o interest_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n than_o any_o other_o as_o have_v be_v make_v in_o favour_n of_o their_o church_n yield_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o when_o the_o priest_n and_o deacons_n of_o the_o patriarchall_a church_n of_o alexandria_n present_v their_o request_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n from_o which_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v as_o far_o distant_a as_o it_o be_v between_o rome_n and_o asia_n they_o couch_v they_o in_o these_o term_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a universal_a patriarch_n of_o 3._o great_a rome_n 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o the_o holy_a and_o universal_a council_n and_o this_o they_o do_v all_o the_o council_n see_v and_o approve_v it_o and_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v insert_v into_o the_o act_n and_o consequent_o not_o hold_v they_o for_o strange_a new_a and_o unwonted_a thing_n and_o when_o the_o religious_a man_n of_o antioch_n present_v in_o constantinople_n their_o request_n to_o pope_n agapet_n they_o couch_v they_o and_o make_v they_o to_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v against_o anthymus_n and_o celebrate_v under_o the_o emperor_n 80._o justinian_n in_o these_o word_n to_o our_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a lord_n agapet_n archbishop_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n and_o universal_a pairiark_n and_o when_o the_o great_a scourge_n of_o the_o novatian_n eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o right_n confer_v upon_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n set_v hand_n to_o pen_n he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v dispute_v against_o the_o nova●ians_n that_o peter_n only_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n that_o be_v to_o say_v original_o but_o also_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n s_o gregory_n he_o call_v he_o 〈◊〉_d universal_a pope_n now_o how_o be_v this_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o protest_v that_o what_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v every_o one_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o own_o patriarkship_n the_o pope_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o 7._o for_o the_o part_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n challenge_v in_o this_o title_n afterward_o it_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o show_v that_o it_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v communicate_v to_o he_o by_o the_o erection_n of_o constantinople_n into_o the_o title_n of_o the_o second_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o the_o refusal_n that_o the_o pope_n s_o gregory_n make_v of_o the_o use_n thereof_o it_o shall_v be_v answer_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n it_o appear_v in_o the_o six_o place_n by_o the_o proceed_n of_o theodosius_n the_o second_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n who_o resolve_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o atticus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o make_v the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n enjoy_v the_o title_n 6._o of_o patriarkship_n which_o he_o pretend_v have_v be_v attribute_v to_o he_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n publish_v a_o law_n which_o have_v always_o as_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v remain_v without_o effect_n by_o which_o he_o allege_v that_o constantinople_n have_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n and_o ordain_v that_o she_o shall_v exercise_v they_o not_o only_o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o pontus_n asia_n minor_fw-la and_o thracia_n but_o also_o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o illiria_n the_o one_o of_o the_o head_n of_o this_o law_n we_o learn_v from_o socrates_n who_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o cyzica_n be_v dead_a sisinnius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n ordain_v proclus_n bishop_n of_o cyzica_n but_o the_o cyzicenian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o division_n 28._o of_o cyzica_n see_v he_o go_v about_o it_o prevent_v he_o and_o ordain_v a_o religious_a mancalled_a dalmatius_n and_o this_o they_o execute_v despise_v the_o law_n which_o forbid_v to_o ordain_v bishop_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n allege_v it_o have_v be_v make_v only_o for_o the_o person_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o other_o we_o learn_v from_o the_o law_n omni_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v a_o fragment_n of_o that_o where_o of_o socrates_n make_v mention_v which_o forbid_v that_o even_a in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o eastern_a illyria_n any_o thing_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d but_o with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o 〈◊〉_d law_n that_o all_o innovation_n cease_v so_o speak_v the_o emperor_n because_o 〈◊〉_d abuse_v the_o simplicity_n of_o his_o youth_n have_v ginen_n he_o to_o understand_v false_o that_o the_o refusal_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o illeria_n make_v to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o patriarch_n have_v begin_v but_o since_o the_o schism_n of_o arsacius_n his_o 〈◊〉_d the_o antiquity_n and_o the_o precedent_n ecclesiastical_a canon_n which_o have_v be_v observe_v hitherto_o he_o mean_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o nectarius_n which_o have_v attribute_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n even_o in_o spiritual_a cause_n the_o title_n of_o the_o second_o rome_n and_o
it_o have_v be_v admitt_v in_o some_o province_n of_o pontus_n asia_n minor_n and_o thracia_n shall_v also_o have_v place_n through_o all_o the_o province_n of_o illiria_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o eastern_a illiria_n to_o wit_n thae_fw-la if_o there_o do_v any_o controversy_n arise_v it_o may_v not_o be_v reser_v to_o the_o holy_a judgement_n and_o sacerdotal_a council_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o right_a reverend_a the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n which_o have_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n and_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n report_v the_o same_o 8._o law_n the_o six_o constitution_n say_v he_o of_o the_o second_o title_n of_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o code_n ordain_v that_o all_o the_o canonical_a question_n that_o shall_v arise_v in_o all_o illiria_n may_v not_o be_v decide_v without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o his_o synod_n which_o have_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n now_o what_o be_v this_o privilege_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n to_o who_o imitation_n nothing_o can_v be_v decide_v not_o only_o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o thracia_n pontus_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o also_o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o eastern_a illiria_n without_o the_o knowledge_n or_o according_a to_o the_o text_n of_o socrates_n and_o of_o photius_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantidople_n and_o of_o his_o synod_n but_o that_o which_o we_o now_o come_v from_o speak_v of_o with_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a 8._o law_n give_v the_o pope_n through_o the_o whole_a earth_n to_o wit_n that_o without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o may_v be_v make_v no_o new_a definition_n 24._o in_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n soever_o and_o which_o the_o law_n of_o valentinian_n insert_v into_o the_o new_a constitution_n of_o the_o same_o theodosius_n renew_v in_o these_o word_n we_o decree_v that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n nothing_o shall_v be_v innovate_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o grant_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n the_o privilege_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o make_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n particular_o in_o his_o division_n what_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n it_o appeaae_n in_o the_o seven_o place_n by_o the_o possession_n wherein_o the_o pope_n continue_v notwithstanding_o the_o erection_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o judge_v of_o the_o judgement_n and_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o appeal_n in_o mayor_n cause_n from_o their_o division_n for_o not_o only_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o after_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n wherein_o the_o erection_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n be_v attempt_v as_o after_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n where_o it_o be_v again_o set_v upon_o remain_v in_o perpetual_a possession_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o judgement_n &_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o appeal_n of_o the_o mayor_n cause_v from_o their_o division_n but_o also_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n remain_v in_o perpetual_a profession_n of_o obedience_n and_o of_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o one_o of_o these_o point_n shall_v be_v see_v hereafter_o both_o by_o the_o appeal_n that_o schrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n cast_v in_o from_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o and_o by_o the_o appeal_n that_o eutiches_n abbot_n of_o constantinople_n cast_v in_o from_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o &_o by_o the_o appeal_n that_o the_o same_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n cast_v in_o from_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n to_o the_o same_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o &_o that_o say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o 3_o rd_o according_a theod._n to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n &_o by_o the_o condemnation_n that_o pope_n felix_n the_o three_o make_v of_o acacius_n patriark_n of_o constantinople_n in_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o be_v race_v yea_o after_o his_o death_n out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n 7._o and_o by_o the_o deposition_n that_o pope_n agapet_n make_v of_o anthymus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n &_o by_o the_o judgement_n that_o the_o pope_n s_o gregory_n the_o great_a give_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n priest_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o athanasius_n a_o regular_a of_o lycaonia_n appeal_n to_o he_o from_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o other_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n by_o the_o protestation_n that_o horm_n john_n the_o second_o 4_o anthimus_n ibid._n menas_n &_o 63._o john_n the_o fowrth_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n every_o one_o in_o his_o time_n make_v to_o acknowledge_v themselves_o submit_v &_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n &_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o how_o be_v this_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o perpetual_a testimony_n that_o the_o patriarch_n all_o dignity_n exempt_v not_o those_o that_o be_v thereof_o provide_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n &_o superiority_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o then_o that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v never_o be_v to_o restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n within_o the_o simple_a limit_n of_o a_o particular_a patriarkship_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o other_o patriarch_n but_o to_o propose_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o a_o type_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o patriarkship_n it_o appear_v in_o the_o eight_o place_n by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o first_o who_o desire_v to_o erect_v the_o first_o justinianea_n of_o bulgaria_n the_o city_n of_o his_o birth_n into_o the_o form_n of_o a_o supernumerary_a patriarkship_n over_o the_o six_o archbishopricke_n of_o the_o six_o province_n near_o to_o that_o town_n ordain_v that_o in_o those_o six_o province_n she_o shall_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o rome_n follow_v the_o definition_n of_o pope_n vigilius_n 131._o we_o decree_v say_v the_o emperor_n that_o the_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n shall_v have_v under_o his_o proper_a jurisdiction_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o mediterranean_a dacia_n of_o dacia_n rypensis_fw-la of_o triballea_n of_o dardania_n of_o upper_a misia_n and_o of_o pannonia_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o he_o and_o by_o his_o proper_a synod_n and_o that_o in_o the_o province_n subiest_n to_o he_o he_o shall_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o rome_n follow_v the_o thing_n define_v by_o the_o holy_a pope_n vigilius_n for_o that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n be_v to_o erect_v by_o this_o law_n the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n of_o bulgaria_n into_o the_o form_n of_o a_o patriarkship_n of_o honour_n although_o this_o honour_n remain_v to_o he_o but_o in_o shadow_n and_o smoke_n we_o learn_v from_o two_o case_n the_o one_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v trullian_n hold_v under_o justinian_n the_o second_o before_o bulgaria_n be_v possess_v by_o the_o infidel_n john_n bishop_n of_o justinianopolis_n sign_v in_o trull_n the_o rank_n of_o the_o patriarch_n in_o this_o order_n paul_n of_o constantinople_n peter_n of_o alexandria_n anastasius_n of_o jerusalem_n george_n of_o antioch_n and_o john_n of_o justinianopolis_n and_o the_o other_o that_o ever_o after_o the_o return_n of_o bulgaria_n to_o be_v christian_a the_o latter_a greek_n do_v in_o some_o sort_n continue_v this_o title_n to_o he_o as_o curopalates_n a_o greek_a author_n acknowledge_v when_o he_o couple_v the_o archbishop_n of_o bulgaria_n with_o the_o patriarch_n in_o these_o term_n the_o designation_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v make_v without_o any_o diversity_n as_o well_o of_o he_o of_o alexandria_n of_o he_o of_o antioch_n of_o he_o of_o jerusalem_n as_o also_o of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinia_n 1._o nea_fw-la call_v achrida_n and_o of_o all_o bulgaria_n and_o as_o barlaam_n a_o greek_a author_n native_a of_o peloponosus_fw-la confirm_v it_o in_o his_o disputation_n against_o the_o greek_a schismatics_n when_o he_o write_v that_o in_o the_o part_n separate_v from_o the_o pope_n there_o be_v five_o patriarch_n on_o the_o other_o part_n say_v he_o the_o be_v five_o patriarch_n reckon_v he_o of_o bulgaria_n and_o that_o this_o privilege_n to_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a in_o the_o six_o province_n near_o the_o first_o
justinianea_n be_v not_o by_o co-ordination_a with_o the_o pope_n but_o by_o subordination_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v not_o by_o form_n of_o exemption_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o by_o form_n of_o submission_n and_o substitution_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n we_o learn_v from_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a which_o testify_v as_o it_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o the_o same_o s._n gregory_n 15._o confirm_v yet_o fifty_o year_n after_o this_o law_n the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n 6._o of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n send_v he_o the_o archiepiscopall_a mantle_n renew_v to_o he_o the_o vicarship_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a judge_v by_o appeal_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o division_n &_o chastice_v himself_o when_o he_o have_v judge_v amiss_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o nine_o place_n by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o have_v obtain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o theodosius_n the_o great_a a_o decree_n which_o ordain_v that_o his_o sea_n shall_v be_v the_o second_o after_o rome_n because_o constantinople_n be_v the_o second_o rome_n and_o have_v make_v this_o decree_n to_o be_v explain_v by_o a_o surreptitious_a canon_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o enjoy_v the_o 28._o same_o privilege_n with_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o pope_n attempt_v to_o participate_v with_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n and_o to_o inscribe_v himself_o universal_a patriarch_n not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o under_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o to_o this_o the_o other_o patriarch_n &_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o and_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n consent_v &_o communicate_v to_o he_o this_o nomination_n for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v against_o anthimus_n not_o only_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n be_v 1._o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o law_n of_o the_o code_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n call_v epiphanius_n patriarch_n 5._o of_o constantinople_n oecumenic_n all_o patriarch_n but_o under_o the_o pope_n who_o he_o 7._o call_v in_o the_o same_o law_n the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a minister_n of_o god_n and_o in_o 7._o the_o six_o general_a council_n not_o only_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonat_n entitle_v the_o pope_n general_n arch-pastor_n and_o the_o protothrone_v of_o all_o patriarch_n but_o also_o the_o epistle_n of_o cyrus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n read_v in_o the_o same_o agath_fw-mi council_n qualify_v sergius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o title_n of_o oecumenic_n all_o patriarch_n now_o how_o be_v this_o any_o other_o then_o to_o presuppose_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v always_o be_v universal_a &_o oecumenic_n all_o patriarch_n for_o if_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o erection_n of_o constantinople_n into_o the_o title_n of_o second_o rome_n make_v as_o he_o pretend_v for_o spiritual_a right_n in_o 13._o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n attribute_v to_o himself_o joint_o with_o the_o pope_n though_o under_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n &_o that_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n &_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o &_o the_o council_n of_o the_o east_n consent_v to_o it_o &_o communicate_v to_o he_o this_o nomination_n how_o do_v it_o not_o appear_v manifest_o that_o they_o then_o acknowledge_v that_o before_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v universal_a and_o oecumenic_n all_o patriarch_n and_o by_o consequent_a that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v not_o be_v to_o restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o the_o only_a limit_n of_o a_o particular_a patriarkship_n as_o that_o of_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n but_o to_o propound_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o a_o type_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o patriarkship_n it_o appear_v in_o the_o ten_o place_n by_o the_o epistle_n of_o innocent_a the_o first_o who_o 106._o s._n austin_n call_v pope_n of_o happy_a memory_n to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n wherein_o he_o write_v to_o he_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v establish_v ibid._n the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n not_o over_o a_o province_n but_o over_o a_o body_n and_o a_o mass_n of_o province_n and_o add_v that_o antioch_n have_v not_o yield_v to_o rome_n but_o that_o what_o antioch_n have_v transitorilie_o to_o wit_n s._n peter_n sea_n rome_n have_v it_o final_o and_o absolute_o and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n jerom_n priest_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n who_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v 58._o ordain_v that_o antioch_n shall_v be_v the_o metropolitan_a of_o all_o the_o east_n and_o nevertheless_o cry_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n communión_n and_o upon_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n but_o while_o they_o communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n from_o whence_o it_o arise_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v not_o be_v to_o make_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n equal_a and_o final_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o difference_n that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n where_o this_o very_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v read_v put_v between_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o possess_v the_o sea_n in_o who_o favour_n the_o canon_n have_v be_v make_v and_o the_o pope_n account_v the_o pope_n for_o guardian_n of_o our_o lord_n vine_n &_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n for_o one_o of_o his_o subguardian_n for_o not_o only_o the_o coucell_n of_o chalcedon_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n call_v he_o the_o head_n of_o bishop_n we_o beseech_v thou_o say_v the_o council_n to_o 〈◊〉_d 2_o our_o judgement_n with_o thy_o decree_n that_o as_o we_o have_v bring_v consent_n in_o matter_n of_o weal_n to_o our_o head_n so_o thy_o sovereignty_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o according_a to_o the_o other_o copy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sovereignty_n may_v fulfil_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o thy_o child_n that_o which_o be_v for_o decency_n but_o also_o speak_v of_o the_o presumption_n of_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o 〈◊〉_d add_v for_o the_o last_o to_o make_v his_o insolence_n complete_a that_o he_o 〈◊〉_d set_v upon_o the_o proper_a person_n of_o he_o to_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v commit_v the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n he_o have_v say_v they_o extend_v his_o felony_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o ibid._n guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v add_v they_o against_o thy_o holiness_n now_o be_v not_o this_o to_o protest_v that_o what_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n the_o pope_n be_v the_o same_o over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o authorise_v what_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o have_v say_v but_o a_o while_n before_o that_o the_o pope_n 22_o be_v rector_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o church_n and_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o patara_n in_o lycia_n one_o of_o the_o province_n of_o asia_n say_v afterward_o to_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n that_o there_o be_v no_o king_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o the_o pope_n be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n for_o this_o occasion_n then_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o patriarkship_n and_o namely_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n which_o have_v be_v found_v from_o the_o time_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o by_o s._n peter_n himself_o be_v as_o vicarship_n i_o mean_v vicarship_n bear_v and_o perpetual_a and_o not_o vicarship_n delegate_v and_o arbitrary_a of_o the_o sea_n of_o s._n peter_n or_o rather_o to_o repeat_v s._n gregory_n word_n one_o same_o sea_n of_o s._n peter_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n when_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n confirm_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n trouble_v by_o meletius_n head_n of_o the_o schismatic_n of_o egypt_n they_o decree_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o province_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n shall_v evioy_v the_o right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n be_v a_o originarie_a and_o perpetual_a vicarship_n of_o s._n peter_n sea_n but_o not_o that_o they_o thereby_o pretend_v in_o thing_n
that_o exceed_v patriarchall_a authority_n either_o to_o equal_v he_o with_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o exempt_v he_o from_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n otherwise_o how_o can_v pope_n 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o nicaea_n who_o be_v still_o for_o the_o most_o part_n live_v &_o breatihng_v have_v reestablish_v s._n athanas_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o galatia_n and_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n prelate_n who_o have_v all_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o canon_n thereof_o since_o they_o help_v to_o compose_v they_o for_o that_o say_v 8_o sozomene_n to_o he_o because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n appertain_v 2._o and_o how_o can_v s._n athanasius_n have_v allege_v for_o his_o 〈◊〉_d these_o word_n of_o the_o same_o julius_n be_v you_o ignorant_a that_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o you_o first_o write_v to_o we_o and_o so_o from_o hence_o must_v proceed_v the_o just_a decision_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n raise_v against_o the_o bishop_n there_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o alexandria_n you_o must_v have_v write_v of_o it_o to_o the_o church_n here_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o how_o can_v peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o s._n athanasius_n successor_n have_v be_v drive_v from_o his_o sea_n have_v be_v restore_v upon_o the_o letter_n that_o he_o bring_v from_o pope_n damasus_n which_o confirm_v say_v socrates_n the_o say_v of_o 37._o moses_n and_o the_o ordination_n of_o peter_n and_o how_o when_o flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n by_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n can_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n 〈◊〉_d have_v say_v antiquity_n have_v yield_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o priesthood_n over_o all_o etc._n etc._n for_o this_o cause_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o counsel_n have_v appeal_v to_o he_o and_o how_o can_v pope_n leo_n the_o first_o have_v write_v to_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n that_o if_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o iwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n and_o accompany_v their_o conversion_n with_o such_o satisfaction_n 44._o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v the_o thing_n shall_v be_v reserve_v to_o the_o more_o mature_a deliberation_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o how_o can_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n address_v their_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o speak_v of_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v say_v he_o have_v extend_v his_o frenzy_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thy_o holiness_n and_o when_o a_o little_a after_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o same_o council_n peter_n surname_v mongus_n and_o john_n surname_v talaia_n have_v be_v create_v by_o diverse_a faction_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n how_o can_v the_o dardan_n pope_n have_v commit_v the_o care_n of_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n to_o acasius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o how_o can_v john_n have_v be_v depose_v from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n by_o the_o synod_n of_o egypt_n and_o by_o the_o complot_n of_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n and_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o take_v with_o he_o synodical_a letter_n of_o intercession_n from_o calendion_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 12._o to_o favour_v his_o appeal_n and_o the_o same_o john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n how_o can_v the_o pope_n have_v depose_v peter_n his_o adversary_n and_o with_o he_o acacius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o adhere_v to_o 15._o he_o &_o that_o with_o such_o effect_n that_o even_o after_o their_o death_n they_o be_v race_v hormisd_v in_o constantinople_n &_o in_o alexandria_n out_o of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n and_o their_o name_n blot_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o their_o church_n and_o exclude_v from_o the_o recital_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o word_n church_n suburbicary_n make_v by_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n chap._n vi_o against_o these_o thing_n nevertheless_o the_o pope_n adversary_n object_n the_o translation_n of_o ruffinus_n priest_n of_o aquilea_n who_o add_v to_o the_o epilogue_n that_o he_o have_v make_v of_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o word_n church_n suburbicary_n which_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o greek_a text_n nor_o in_o the_o ancient_a complete_a and_o formal_a latin_a edition_n &_o turn_v the_o article_n in_o these_o term_n that_o the_o bishop_n 2._o of_o alexandria_n shall_v have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o egypt_n and_o he_o of_o rome_n of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d from_o whence_o they_o draw_v this_o impertinent_a conclusion_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v there_o no_o jurisdiction_n but_o over_o the_o church_n neighbour_a to_o this_o 〈◊〉_d and_o they_o triumph_v so_o upon_o it_o as_o after_o a_o thousand_o write_n which_o they_o have_v publish_v upon_o this_o subject_n they_o have_v even_o this_o last_o year_n cause_v to_o be_v imprint_v a_o topographicall_a map_n of_o the_o ancient_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pope_n &_o have_v accompany_v it_o with_o a_o discourse_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d suburbicarie_n where_o they_o have_v assign_v he_o for_o all_o jurisdiction_n 8._o a_o 〈◊〉_d thousand_o pace_n about_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v about_o as_o much_o ground_n as_o be_v between_o paris_n and_o orleans_n but_o i_o hope_v soon_o to_o set_v a_o catastrophe_n to_o their_o tragedy_n and_o to_o turn_v their_o triumph_n into_o obsequy_n superbos_fw-la 35._o vertere_fw-la funeribus_fw-la triumphos_fw-la for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wilful_a blindness_n have_v the_o greek_a text_n and_o the_o ancient_a latin_a edition_n complete_a and_o in_o form_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o tie_v themselves_o to_o the_o epilogize_v translation_n of_o a_o man_n that_o s._n jerom_n avouch_v to_o have_v be_v a_o very_a 2._o evil_a translator_n and_o who_o bside_v for_o his_o error_n have_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o note_v say_v the_o same_o s._n jerom_n with_o the_o brand_n of_o heresy_n by_o pope_n anastasius_n and_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n which_o principal_o make_v a_o translator_n unfit_a to_o be_v credit_v passion_n ignorance_n and_o rashness_n now_o as_o for_o passion_n who_o have_v ever_o better_o deserve_v to_o be_v reproach_v in_o this_o regard_n in_o matter_n that_o concern_v the_o roman_a church_n than_o ruffinus_n who_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v for_o his_o error_n in_o faith_n by_o pope_n anastasius_n and_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o before_o he_o write_v his_o history_n which_o be_v write_v after_o alaricus_n come_v into_o italy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o the_o popedom_n of_o innocent_a successor_n of_o anastasius_n russinus_n say_v pope_n anastasius_n be_v so_o exclude_v from_o our_o 〈◊〉_d 2._o as_o we_o be_v not_o curious_a to_o know_v neither_o what_o he_o do_v nor_o where_o he_o be_v let_v he_o look_v to_o himself_o where_o he_o can_v be_v absolve_v and_o s._n jerom_n pope_n anastasius_n in_o the_o epistle_n he_o write_v against_o thou_o to_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v tax_v this_o desault_n justify_v i_o i_o that_o do_v it_o and_o condemn_v thou_o thou_o i_o say_v that_o will_v not_o do_v it_o and_o again_o speak_v of_o the_o confession_n of_o russinus_n faith_n which_o he_o salslie_o assirm_v to_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n how_o shall_v italy_n say_v he_o have_v approve_v that_o which_o rome_n have_v reject_v how_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n receive_v that_o which_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v condemn_v and_o a_o little_a 〈◊〉_d after_o thou_o do_v so_o avoid_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o thou_o chose_v rather_o to_o support_v a_o siege_n of_o barbarian_n this_o he_o speak_v because_o of_o the_o come_n of_o alaricus_n to_o aquilea_n whither_o ruffinus_n have_v retire_v himself_o than_o the_o sen_fw-mi tense_n of_o a_o peaceable_a city_n for_o whereas_o gennadius_n place_v ruffinus_n among_o the_o orchodoxall_a author_n it_o be_v because_o gennadius_n be_v of_o the_o sect_n of_o one_o of_o the_o branch_n of_o pelagius_n beresie_n whereof_o ruffinus_n have_v cast_v the_o
root_n but_o not_o that_o ruffinus_n do_v not_o die_v a_o heretic_n and_o anathematise_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o saint_n jerome_n insinuate_v when_o he_o say_v describe_v enigmaticallie_o the_o revolt_n anathema_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d sepulchre_n of_o ruffinus_n who_o be_v dead_a in_o sicilia_n the_o scorpion_n be_v pres_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d under_o the_o sicilian_a earth_n between_o enceladus_n and_o porphirus_n it_o must_v be_v read_v between_o enceladus_n and_o porphirion_n who_o be_v two_o of_o the_o giant_n that_o the_o poetical_a fable_n have_v say_v to_o be_v revolt_v against_o jupiter_n and_o have_v be_v strike_v dead_a with_o thunder_n bolt_n and_o cover_v with_o the_o mountain_n of_o sicilia_n with_o what_o faith_n then_o can_v they_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o ruffinus_n when_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v in_o question_n by_o who_o tribunal_n he_o have_v be_v condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v you_o can_v scarce_o light_v upon_o a_o place_n in_o ruffinus_n translation_n where_o there_o be_v a_o occasion_n present_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o he_o sharpen_v and_o enuenom_v it_o as_o particular_o when_o eusebius_n report_v the_o history_n of_o pope_n victor_n who_o have_v excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n be_v cause_n of_o the_o question_n about_o keep_v the_o pasch_fw-mi say_v there_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v find_v letter_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o handle_v victor_n some_o what_o roughlie_o ruffinus_n 24_o add_v of_o his_o own_o as_o provide_v unprofitablie_o for_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ibid._n in_o the_o verse_n follow_v where_o eusebius_n write_v ireneus_fw-la exhort_v victor_n not_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o hold_v the_o tradition_n of_o this_o ancient_a custom_n rufsinus_n turn_v it_o ireneus_fw-la reprehend_v he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v well_o to_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o unity_n so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a church_n of_o god_n and_o see_v not_o that_o in_o think_v to_o calumniate_v pope_n victor_n he_o callumniate_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n who_o renew_v the_o same_o excommunication_n a_o thing_n possible_o pardonable_a in_o eusebius_n who_o beside_o that_o he_o be_v a_o arrian_n write_v his_o history_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n but_o inexcusable_a in_o ruffinus_n who_o make_v his_o translation_n afterwards_o with_o what_o colour_n then_o will_v they_o square_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o original_a greek_a of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n by_o the_o addition_n that_o ruffinus_n a_o passionate_a translator_n incense_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v thereto_o and_o as_o for_o ignorance_n what_o translator_n be_v ever_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v refuse_v in_o that_o regard_n than_o ruffinus_n who_o clause_n be_v almost_o as_o many_o prooff_n of_o ignorance_n and_o impertinency_n for_o what_o can_v be_v imagine_v more_o unapt_a then_o to_o make_v of_o james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n james_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signfy_v bless_v or_o happy_a a_o saint_n call_v macarius_n of_o eusebius_n pamphilus_n a_o heretic_n and_o a_o arrian_n pamphilus_n a_o catholic_a 1._o and_o a_o martyr_n of_o xistus_fw-la a_o pithagorian_n and_o pagan_a philosopher_n xistus_n pope_n and_o martyr_n a_o error_n that_o saint_n jerom_o bitter_o reprove_v and_o which_o give_v occasion_n to_o saint_n austin_n to_o stumble_v and_o retract_v upon_o the_o same_o 24._o matter_n of_o question_n which_o come_v of_o quaero_fw-la a_o verb_n active_a querimony_n which_o ctesiph_n come_v of_o queror_fw-la a_o verb_n deponent_a of_o corepiscopus_n whereof_o the_o nicaea_n council_n speak_v the_o vacant_a place_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o so_o of_o infinite_a other_o which_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la move_v saint_n jerom_n to_o say_v that_o ruffinus_n be_v so_o unapt_a in_o both_o tongue_n 42._o as_o the_o roman_n take_v he_o for_o a_o grecian_a and_o the_o greek_n for_o a_o roman_a and_o as_o for_o boldness_n and_o rashness_n what_o interpreter_n ever_o show_v less_o 2_o religion_n or_o faith_n in_o observe_v the_o text_n of_o his_o author_n then_o ruffinus_n who_o have_v always_o take_v liberty_n to_o add_v or_o diminish_v as_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o 2._o thy_o conscience_n say_v saint_n jerom_n speak_v to_o ruffinus_n of_o the_o translation_n he_o have_v make_v of_o origen_n know_v what_o thou_o have_v add_v and_o what_o thou_o have_v take_v away_o and_o what_o thouha_v change_v from_o one_o place_n to_o a_o other_o as_o it_o have_v please_v thou_o ibid._n and_o erasmus_n in_o his_o preface_n upon_o saint_n hilary_n ruffinus_n have_v 〈◊〉_d num_fw-la to_o himself_o the_o same_o authority_n in_o the_o translation_n of_o all_o the_o book_n which_o he_o have_v translate_v and_o principal_o in_o that_o of_o origen_n write_n and_o in_o that_o of_o eusebius_n history_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o liberty_n of_o a_o interpreter_n but_o the_o licence_n of_o a_o defiler_n of_o a_o other_o work_n and_o scaliger_n in_o his_o annotation_n upon_o the_o chronicle_n of_o eusebius_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o ruffinus_n say_v he_o to_o omit_v to_o pervert_v and_o to_o change_v the_o text_n as_o 6._o he_o list_v with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v they_o now_o leave_v the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o ruffinus_n translation_n a_o perpetual_a corrupter_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o antiqultie_n and_o particular_o of_o that_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o nicaea_n where_o of_o he_o suppress_v some_o divide_v other_o mangle_v some_o add_v to_o other_o deprave_v some_o mistake_v the_o sense_n of_o other_o i_o have_v say_v suppress_v some_o for_o he_o suppress_v the_o twenty_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o contain_v the_o ordnance_n to_o adore_v stand_v in_o the_o sunday_n service_n and_o during_o the_o fifty_o day_n of_o pentecoste_n and_o that_o in_o hate_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o very_a flesh_n which_o as_o a_o origenist_n he_o oppose_v no_o more_o remember_v what_o he_o have_v write_v of_o it_o when_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o catholic_a i_o have_v say_v divide_v and_o multiply_v other_o for_o he_o divide_v the_o eigth_n and_o the_o ninteenth_fw-mi canon_n into_o two_o other_o and_o of_o either_o of_o they_o make_v two_o different_a canon_n i_o have_v say_v mangle_v some_o for_o he_o mangle_v the_o six_o and_o eclipse_v from_o it_o the_o right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n in_o favour_n of_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o origenist_n as_o himself_o be_v and_o maim_n the_o end_n of_o the_o thirteen_o and_o that_o which_o the_o father_n say_v of_o die_v penitent_n to_o who_o the_o councellregraunte_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o bishop_n with_o condition_n notwithstanding_o that_o if_o they_o chance_v to_o survive_v they_o shall_v be_v admit_v but_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o prayer_n he_o interpret_v it_o of_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o penitent_n recover_v i_o have_v say_v add_v to_o other_o for_o he_o add_v to_o the_o eighteen_o this_o whole_a clause_n that_o deacon_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n may_v distribut_n the_o eucharist_n and_o to_o the_o nine_o 〈◊〉_d or_o have_v be_v convince_v thereof_o by_o other_o which_o be_v no_o more_o within_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o council_n than_o this_o of_o the_o church_n suburbicary_n i_o have_v say_v deprave_v some_o for_o he_o deprave_v the_o ninteenth_n and_o say_v of_o deaconess_n in_o general_a that_o which_o the_o canon_n only_o say_v of_o the_o paulianist_n deaconess_n i_o have_v say_v mistake_v the_o sense_n of_o other_o for_o in_o the_o eigth_n he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n corepiscopus_n and_o turn_v it_o the_o vacant_a place_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o in_o the_o nine_o that_o of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o interpret_v of_o confession_n of_o priest_n after_o promotion_n that_o which_o the_o council_n say_v of_o the_o confession_n of_o priest_n before_o promotion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o confession_n make_v in_o the_o trial_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v promote_v to_o priesthood_n for_o whereas_o some_o to_o warrant_v the_o clause_n of_o the_o church_n suburbicary_n allege_v that_o pope_n gelasius_n write_v about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o age_n approve_v the_o work_n of_o russinus_n except_v those_o thing_n that_o saint_n jerom_n have_v ibid._n reprehend_v it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a warranty_n for_o as_o much_o as_o pope_n gelasius_n intend_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o work_n or_o dogmatic_a translation_n of_o russinus_n as_o be_v the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o
translation_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o some_o greek_a divine_n and_o not_o of_o his_o historical_a work_n or_o translation_n otherwise_o how_o can_v pope_n gelasius_n in_o the_o same_o decree_n have_v condemn_v the_o ten_o book_n of_o the_o recognition_n of_o clement_n which_o have_v be_v translate_v by_o russinus_n and_o how_o can_v he_o have_v write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o holy_a roman_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n have_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o church_n by_o any_o synodical_a constitution_n but_o have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n by_o the_o evangelicall_a voice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o how_o can_v he_o have_v write_v elsewhere_o speak_v of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v the_o canon_n which_o ordain_v that_o from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o appeal_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o how_o can_v he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o care_n of_o the_o region_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o antioch_n have_v be_v by_o pope_n felix_n commit_v to_o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o whereas_o they_o add_v that_o saint_n cyrill_n send_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n write_v to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v find_v they_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o they_o pretend_v must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o history_n of_o 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o much_o as_o those_o of_o socrates_n theodoret_n and_o sozomene_n be_v write_v since_o and_o beside_o contain_v nothing_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n this_o be_v yet_o a_o more_o feeble_a and_o deceitful_a caution_n for_o beside_o that_o many_o other_o have_v make_v collection_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n as_o among_o the_o catholic_n saint_n athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n who_o have_v compose_v a_o volume_n entitle_v synodica_fw-la 13._o theodorus_n bishop_n of_o mopsvestia_n not_o yet_o then_o note_v for_o heresy_n who_o have_v frame_v a_o particular_a history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n philip_n of_o sida_n who_o have_v compile_v a_o universal_a ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o among_o the_o heretic_n 27._o philostorgius_n the_o arrian_n and_o sabinus_n the_o macedonian_a where_o be_v the_o article_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o precept_n to_o adore_v stand_v on_o the_o sunday_n and_o during_o the_o fifty_o day_n of_o pentecoste_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o saint_n cyrills_n copy_n to_o be_v find_v in_o ruffinus_n edition_n and_o contrariwise_o where_o be_v the_o permission_n to_o deacons_n to_z distribute_v the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n and_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o communion_n to_o penitent_n before_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o their_o penance_n and_o 9_o the_o extension_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o paulianict_a deaconess_n to_o all_o deaconess_n in_o general_a and_o the_o equivocation_n and_o mistake_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o priest_n after_o promotion_n which_o be_v all_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o ruffinus_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o saint_n cyrill_n contrariwise_o if_o saint_n cyril'_v intention_n have_v be_v to_o approve_v the_o edition_n of_o russinus_n by_o this_o remittment_n alibi_fw-la why_o do_v not_o the_o african_n which_o turn_v or_o cause_v to_o be_v turn_v from_o greek_a into_o latin_a saint_n cyril'_v greek_a copy_n follow_v ruffinus_n in_o their_o translation_n and_o put_v in_o the_o clause_n of_o church_n suburbicarie_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n himself_o if_o he_o have_v believe_v that_o the_o clause_n of_o church_n 3._o suburbicary_n shall_v have_v be_v add_v to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n how_o can_v he_o have_v take_v a_o vicarship_n and_o commission_n from_o pope_n celestine_n to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a against_o nestorius_n ibid._n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o how_o can_v he_o and_o the_o other_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v approve_v of_o the_o oration_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n by_o which_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o vicar_n and_o ordinary_a successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o why_o have_v they_o reserve_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o what_o proof_n be_v there_o that_o ruffinus_n by_o the_o word_n suburbicary_n do_v intend_v the_o church_n within_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o the_o church_n of_o all_o the_o city_n subject_n to_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v there_o any_o likelihood_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v have_v have_v egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n under_o which_o be_v yet_o intend_v many_o other_o great_a province_n either_o annex_v or_o subaltern_a as_o ammoniaca_n maroeotides_n thebaidis_n and_o beside_o the_o immense_a region_n of_o chrys._n ethiopia_n from_o whence_o the_o greek_a emperor_n leo_n surname_v the_o philosopher_n say_v in_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n that_o the_o emperor_n arcadius_n cause_v theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n to_o cometo_o constantinople_n accompany_v with_o indian_a and_o egyptian_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o who_o they_o square_v he_o have_v no_o more_o but_o those_o only_a church_n that_o where_o near_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n theocritus_n write_v that_o ptolomeus_n philadelphus_n king_n of_o egypt_n of_o who_o empire_n the_o province_n since_o attribute_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n make_v the_o principal_a part_n command_v 33339._o city_n of_o town_n thirty_o three_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o thirty_o nine_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o his_o decree_n their_o servile_a head_n incline_v 17._o and_o strabo_n and_o diodorus_n siculus_n and_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o notice_n of_o the_o empire_n after_o they_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a division_n of_o egypt_n be_v divide_v 2._o into_o thirty_o six_o province_n whereof_o delta_n in_o egypt_n contain_v ten_o and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d theodosius_n the_o second_o writing_n to_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n to_o cause_v he_o to_o come_v to_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n send_v to_o he_o 〈◊〉_d to_o bring_v his_o ten_o metropolitan_a bishop_n or_o ten_o of_o his_o metropolitan_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v head_n of_o province_n with_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v but_o the_o three_o patriarch_n have_v under_o he_o the_o two_o syria_n the_o three_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o two_o cilicia_n the_o three_o arabia_n the_o region_n of_o euphrates_n mesopotamia_n jsauria_n and_o osrhoene_n and_o more_o as_o he_o pretend_v the_o isle_n of_o 7._o cyprus_n without_o reckon_v many_o other_o province_n which_o though_o he_o 〈◊〉_d not_o their_o metropolitan_n yet_o nevertheless_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o there_o be_v many_o province_n which_o acknowledge_v their_o patriarch_n and_o be_v oblige_v to_o appear_v at_o their_o patriarchall_a synod_n although_o they_o take_v not_o from_o they_o the_o ordination_n of_o their_o metropolitan_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o balsamon_n write_v that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v under_o the_o 〈◊〉_d patriarch_n peter_n jberia_fw-la asiatica_fw-la otherwise_o call_v the_o province_n of_o the_o georgian_n be_v make_v autocephalus_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v exempt_v from_o take_v the_o ordination_n of_o their_o metropolitan_a any_o other_o where_o then_o from_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n and_o nevertheless_o still_o remain_v subject_n to_o the_o patriarch_n 28._o of_o antioch_n and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n will_v erect_v constantinople_n into_o a_o patriarkship_n they_o assign_v he_o for_o his_o patriarchall_a division_n the_o province_n of_o trace_v pontus_fw-la asia_n minor_fw-la with_o the_o barbarous_a province_n terpsichor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v russia_n and_o muscovia_n which_o together_o contain_v more_o ground_n than_o all_o europe_n principal_o if_o we_o give_v credit_n to_o herodotus_n who_o say_v that_o the_o thracian_n be_v the_o great_a nation_n of_o the_o world_n next_o the_o indian_n and_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o first_o patriarch_n and_o the_o pattern_n and_o model_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n to_o have_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o only_a church_n near_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n what_o a_o birthright_n have_v that_o be_v for_o to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v in_o his_o portion_n the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o recompense_v in_o splendour_n and_o dignity_n the_o extént_n of_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n and_o beside_o that_o the_o province_n near_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o more_o people_v than_o the_o province_n near_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a city_n who_o know_v not_o first_o that_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v under_o the_o pope_n
government_n be_v not_o because_o of_o his_o dignity_n of_o patriarch_n but_o because_o of_o his_o quality_n of_o bishop_n 17._o and_o secondlie_o who_o know_v not_o that_o diodorus_n siculus_n write_v that_o many_o place_v alexandria_n the_o first_o or_o second_o of_o all_o the_o city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o assirme_v that_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v above_o three_o hundred_o thousand_o 〈◊〉_d freemen_n inhabitans_fw-la in_o alexandria_n and_o that_o herodian_a say_v that_o geta_n esteem_v that_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n be_v not_o far_o short_a of_o rome_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d call_v constantinople_n equal_a to_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o the_o province_n near_o constantinople_n and_o alexandria_n who_o know_v not_o that_o they_o be_v no_o 2._o less_o people_v than_o the_o provinće_v near_o and_o contiguous_a to_o rome_n and_o principal_o if_o we_o believe_v josephus_n wherein_o 〈◊〉_d say_v that_o egypt_n contain_v 〈◊〉_d seventy_o five_o hundred_o thousand_o of_o man_n without_o account_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o alexandria_n and_o diodorus_n siculus_n who_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a egypt_n contain_v above_o eighteen_o thousand_o city_n or_o famous_a boroughe_n the_o word_n suburbicary_n be_v derive_v as_o grammar_n teach_v we_o from_o the_o word_n vrbs_fw-la the_o law_n of_o etymology_n will_v that_o the_o variety_n of_o the_o signisication_n shall_v be_v rule_v according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n vrbs_fw-la the_o primitive_a now_o the_o word_n vrbs_fw-la preciselie_o take_v for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n have_v two_o office_n the_o one_o to_o distinguish_v she_o from_o all_o city_n be_v contain_v under_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o same_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v call_v by_o excellency_n and_o absolute_o vrbs_fw-la from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n 18._o cyprian_n call_v the_o clerk_n of_o rome_n clerk_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o first_o council_n of_o arles_n entitle_v the_o deacon_n of_o rome_n the_o deaton_n of_o the_o city_n and_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la call_v zepherinus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n zepherinus_n of_o the_o 1._o city_n and_o gregory_n of_o tours_n say_v papam_fw-la vrbis_fw-la intend_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o conformablie_o both_o to_o the_o eminency_n of_o the_o city_n and_o 52._o to_o the_o council_n that_o maecenas_n report_v by_o dion_n give_v to_o augustus_n to_o make_v all_o other_o people_n take_v their_o city_n but_o for_o country_n house_n and_o village_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o city_n true_o a_o city_n to_o wit_n rome_n and_o the_o other_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o only_a city_n subject_a to_o the_o provostship_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o call_v the_o prefecture_n of_o the_o city_n which_o contain_v the_o next_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o word_n vrbs_fw-la take_v precise_o for_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n have_v two_o use_n one_o relative_a to_o the_o imperial_a territory_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o other_o relative_a to_o the_o provostall_a territory_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n so_o the_o word_n suburbicary_n take_v according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o etymology_n aught_o to_o have_v two_o office_n the_o one_o general_n to_o wit_n to_o design_n all_o the_o city_n situate_v within_o the_o imperial_a territory_n of_o rome_n that_o ancient_a writer_n call_v romania_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n athanasius_n say_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o metropolitan_a of_o romania_n the_o other_o particular_a 49._o and_o more_o proper_a to_o lawyer_n to_o wit_n to_o design_n the_o only_a city_n situate_v within_o the_o provostall_a territory_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v within_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n about_o rome_n which_o they_o call_v suburbicary_n to_o distinguish_v they_o 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o city_n of_o italy_n subject_n to_o the_o pretoriall_a perfect_a of_o italy_n who_o hold_v his_o seat_n at_o milan_n the_o which_o and_o principal_o since_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n agent_n be_v partycular_o call_v italy_n for_o before_o constantine_n time_n the_o pretoriall_a prefecture_n be_v not_o yet_o divide_v into_o four_o pretoriall_a prefecture_n of_o italy_n of_o gallia_n of_o illiria_n and_o of_o the_o east_n but_o consist_v in_o one_o only_a prefecture_n though_o it_o be_v sometime_o solidary_o administer_v by_o two_o person_n now_o to_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v in_o this_o second_o sense_n to_o wit_n not_o by_o relation_n to_o the_o imperial_a territory_n of_o rome_n but_o by_o relation_n to_o the_o provostall_a territory_n of_o rome_n that_o ruffinus_n have_v translate_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n suburbicary_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o find_v the_o reader_n some_o what_o to_o laugh_v at_o for_o beside_o that_o this_o term_n be_v not_o in_o use_n but_o in_o the_o author_n that_o have_v write_v since_o constantin_n and_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n who_o ever_o hear_v of_o shut_v up_o the_o pope_n authority_n within_o the_o next_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v there_o so_o simple_a a_o scholar_n that_o know_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n set_v aside_o his_o quality_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v patriarcke_o of_o the_o west_n 77._o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n basile_n consider_v he_o as_o patriarch_n call_v he_o the_o corypheos_n of_o the_o western_a people_n and_o that_o s._n jerome_n speak_v of_o he_o in_o the_o same_o quality_n cry_v out_o let_v they_o condemn_v i_o of_o heresy_n with_o the_o west_n let_v they_o condemn_v i_o of_o heresy_n with_o egypt_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o damasus_n 37._o and_o with_o peter_n understand_v by_o damasus_n pope_n damasus_n and_o by_o peter_n peter_z patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o socrates_n say_v pope_n damasus_n have_v new_o then_o restore_v and_o even_o the_o greek_a schismatic_n do_v not_o they_o ancient_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v ancient_o contain_v all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o province_n of_o italy_n africa_n spain_n france_n and_o the_o germany_n england_n &_o the_o western_a illiria_n under_o which_o be_v understand_v dalmatia_n hungaria_n &_o the_o neighbour_a province_n thou_o see_v say_v nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n dispute_v against_o pap._n the_o latin_n that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n esteem_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o father_n ought_v to_o be_v confirm_v which_o have_v distribute_v to_o every_o church_n their_o privilege_n to_o wit_n that_o some_o of_o the_o nation_n shall_v be_v submit_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n other_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n as_o those_o of_o syria_n &_o the_o two_o cilicia_n coelosiria_n &_o mesopotamia_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v give_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o have_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n and_o zonarus_n a_o greek_a commenter_n and_o a_o schismatic_a expound_v 〈◊〉_d the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o coucell_n of_o nicaea_n long_o before_o nilus_n the_o council_n say_v 〈◊〉_d ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v have_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d of_o libya_n and_o pentapolis_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o ancient_a custom_n have_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o command_v in_o the_o province_n of_o the_o west_n yea_o do_v not_o the_o same_o zonarus_n write_v that_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n comprehend_v not_o 〈◊〉_d only_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n but_o also_o almost_o all_o the_o western_a province_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v 〈◊〉_d coment_v the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v then_o 〈◊〉_d almost_o all_o the_o western_a church_n to_o wit_n those_o of_o macedonia_n those_o of_o illiria_n those_o of_o 〈◊〉_d those_o of_o peloponesus_fw-la those_o of_o epirus_n which_o have_v since_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n for_o those_o province_n that_o zonarus_n call_v western_a be_v all_o of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n but_o they_o be_v call_v western_a and_o appertain_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o west_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o ancient_a empire_n of_o the_o west_n such_o as_o it_o have_v be_v possess_v by_o the_o commonweal_n of_o rome_n before_o the_o empire_n of_o asia_n hold_v by_o the_o seleucides_n &_o other_o neighbour-prince_n &_o that_o of_o egypt_n be_v unite_v to_o it_o &_o such_o 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o have_v be_v limit_v by_o the_o emperor_n antonius_n and_o geta_n when_o they_o 〈◊〉_d to_o divide_v the_o roman_a world_n and_o set_v the_o bosphorus_n for_o a_o bar_n between_o
say_v within_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n next_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o the_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n must_v likewise_o be_v restrain_v within_o the_o ordinary_a territory_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n that_o be_v to_o say_v within_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n next_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n for_o that_o constantius_n son_n of_o constantine_n attribute_v to_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d the_o appeal_n from_o the_o division_n of_o thrace_n of_o pontus_n and_o asia_n it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o provostship_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n no_o more_o than_o the_o appeal_v of_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o the_o ancient_a emperor_n have_v attribute_v to_o the_o provost_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o the_o simple_a and_o precise_a ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o provostship_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n by_o mean_n whereof_o to_o form_n and_o mould_n the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o pattern_n and_o model_n of_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v necessary_a either_o that_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v extend_v over_o all_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o extraordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v be_v enclose_v within_o the_o only_a bound_n of_o the_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n that_o be_v to_o say_v within_o the_o next_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n now_o so_o far_o be_v this_o from_o be_v so_o that_o the_o patriarchall_a territory_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v confine_v within_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n next_o the_o city_n as_o contrary_a wise_a the_o patriarckship_n of_o constantinople_n have_v for_o division_n the_o province_n of_o pontus_n thracia_n asia_n minor_fw-la and_o the_o barbarous_a province_n that_o be_v to_o say_v russia_n and_o muscovia_n which_o 〈◊〉_d contain_v more_o ground_n than_o all_o europe_n and_o against_o this_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v that_o constans_n son_n of_o constantine_n and_o brother_n to_o constantius_n have_v deprive_v the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o right_n of_o examine_v by_o appeal_n the_o cause_n of_o 27._o all_o the_o province_n and_o have_v attribute_v it_o to_o the_o pretoriall_a provost_n for_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v square_v by_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n it_o have_v be_v by_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n not_o such_o as_o he_o be_v since_o the_o empire_n of_o constantine_n but_o such_o as_o he_o have_v be_v under_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o predecessor_n of_o constantine_n otherwise_o how_o have_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n confirm_v the_o ancient_a prerogative_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n for_o asmuch_o r_n they_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n moreover_o the_o same_o law_n of_o constans_n son_n of_o constantine_n which_o take_v away_o the_o appeal_n of_o the_o province_n of_o italy_n from_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d city_n and_o attribute_v they_o to_o the_o pretoriall_a provost_n of_o italy_n comprehend_v by_o name_n sicilia_n sardinia_n campania_n calabria_n and_o brusse_v and_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o province_n and_o particular_o sicilia_n remain_v always_o in_o the_o pope_n patriarkship_n as_o long_o as_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n be_v unite_v for_o those_o that_o say_v that_o sicilia_n be_v add_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n when_o justinian_n attribute_v the_o secular_a appeal_n of_o sicilia_n to_o the_o praetor_n of_o constantinople_n commit_v two_o gross_a ignorances_n the_o one_o not_o to_o know_v that_o the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n of_o sycilia_n be_v not_o transfer_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n till_o after_o the_o greek_a emperor_n infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o iconoclast_n have_v be_v drive_v from_o rome_n and_o in_o revenge_n have_v deprive_v the_o pope_n not_o only_o of_o the_o exercise_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n but_o also_o from_o the_o temporal_a revenue_n that_o he_o have_v in_o sicilia_n which_o remain_v to_o they_o and_o the_o other_o not_o to_o perceive_v that_o see_v sicilia_n which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o ordinary_a territory_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n and_o belong_v before_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o vandal_n to_o the_o pretoriall_a provost_n of_o italy_n and_o since_o the_o expulsion_n of_o the_o vandal_n to_o the_o praetor_n of_o constantinople_n to_o who_o justinian_n have_v attribute_v it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o when_o he_o reconquered_n sicilia_n the_o goth_n still_o hold_v italy_n be_v of_o the_o pope_n patriarkship_n the_o pope_n authority_n be_v not_o then_o restrain_v to_o the_o only_a territory_n of_o the_o provostship_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o that_o sicilia_n both_o before_o and_o after_o justinian_n have_v be_v and_o remain_v under_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o iconoclast_n emperor_n we_o learn_v both_o from_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n leo_n the_o first_o write_v near_o a_o hundred_o year_n bofore_o justinian_n which_o ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o sicilia_n to_o send_v every_o year_n three_o bishop_n of_o their_o provincial_a synod_n to_o rome_n the_o three_o of_o 4._o the_o calends_n of_o october_n and_o from_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a write_v fifty_o year_n after_o justinian_n whereby_o alibi_fw-la he_o make_v maximian_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n his_o vicar_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o sycilia_n and_o from_o the_o six_o general_a council_n where_o the_o bishop_n of_o sicilia_n sign_v among_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o pope_n patriarkship_n and_o from_o the_o council_n trullian_n celebrate_v under_o justinian_n the_o second_o 36._o where_o the_o description_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n be_v repeat_v without_o any_o mention_n of_o sicilia_n and_o final_o from_o the_o very_a confession_n of_o the_o greek_a emperor_n leo_n surname_v the_o learned_a who_o place_v throne_n among_o the_o church_n subtract_v from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o attribute_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n the_o metropolitan_a church_n of_o syracuse_n iur_fw-fr and_o all_o her_o subaltern_a church_n and_o so_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o ruffinus_n a_o author_n that_o saint_n jerom_n say_v be_v full_a of_o impiety_n of_o language_n and_o that_o joseph_n scalager_n advers._n call_v a_o slanderous_a and_o ignorant_a interpreter_n and_o who_o be_v so_o little_a curious_a in_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o lawyer_n as_o he_o employ_v with_o lampridius_n and_o the_o other_o author_n of_o the_o declination_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n 2._o yea_o as_o saint_n jerom_n reproach_v it_o to_o he_o with_o the_o vulgar_a num_fw-la the_o word_n parent_n to_o signify_v kinsman_n set_v therein_o the_o adjective_n suburbicary_n not_o according_a to_o the_o special_a use_n of_o the_o lawyer_n but_o according_a to_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n and_o than_o that_o as_o the_o lxxxiiii_o general_a office_n of_o the_o word_n vrbs_fw-la absolute_o take_v and_o by_o excellency_n agent_n for_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o distinguish_v she_o from_o all_o the_o city_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o distinction_n from_o all_o other_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n so_o ruffinus_n by_o the_o church_n suburbicary_n intend_v not_o the_o church_n within_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o pace_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o church_n of_o all_o the_o city_n subject_a to_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o saint_n athanasius_n call_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o metropolitan_a of_o romania_n and_o indeed_o that_o ruffinus_n in_o translate_n or_o rather_o in_o epilogize_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicean_a council_n omitt_v the_o clause_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o translate_v only_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o egypt_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n that_o of_o the_o church_n suburbicary_n be_v it_o not_o a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o he_o use_v these_o word_n not_o in_o form_n of_o division_n but_o in_o form_n of_o subordination_n and_o that_o this_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n and_o that_o which_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n say_v 8._o that_o to_o the_o
bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o seat_n 7._o 〈◊〉_d care_v of_o all_o thing_n belong_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o language_n or_o rather_o that_o this_o that_o ruffinus_n say_v here_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o have_v the_o care_n of_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n and_o this_o that_o he_o say_v elsewhere_o rome_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o christrians_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o grant_v that_o ruffinus_n by_o the_o 2._o word_n church_n suburbicarie_n do_v intend_v in_o generalll_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o province_n subject_a to_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n nor_o in_o particular_a the_o only_a church_n of_o the_o city_n subject_a to_o the_o provostship_n of_o rome_n but_o intend_v the_o church_n of_o the_o province_n or_o nation_n where_o the_o metropolitan_o or_o primat_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n immediate_o without_o the_o intermeddle_v of_o any_o the_o patriarch_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o west_n will_v that_o hinder_v that_o beside_o the_o immediate_a superintendencie_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v over_o the_o province_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n he_o may_v not_o have_v a_o mediate_a superintendencie_n over_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o other_o hemer_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o compare_v thing_n sacred_a to_o profane_v do_v not_o he_o teach_v we_o that_o beside_o the_o command_n agamemnon_n have_v as_o a_o particular_a king_n over_o the_o company_n of_o his_o own_o subject_n and_o the_o other_o king_n like_o he_o every_o one_o over_o their_o own_o he_o have_v yet_o beyond_o that_o as_o head_n and_o captain_n general_a over_o the_o army_n of_o the_o greek_n the_o universal_a authority_n and_o superintendencie_n over_o the_o other_o king_n and_o over_o their_o company_n and_o will_v not_o the_o adversary_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pope_n have_v it_o that_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o temporal_a proportion_n they_o pretend_v to_o square_v the_o pope_n spiritual_a authority_n beside_o the_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o his_o provostship_n wherein_o they_o equal_v he_o to_o other_o provost_n have_v beside_o in_o the_o first_o age_n a_o other_o extraordinary_a jurisdiction_n by_o which_o as_o head_n of_o the_o senate_n and_o vicar_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o be_v superior_a to_o other_o provost_n and_o judge_v of_o the_o appeal_n of_o all_o the_o province_n and_o 〈◊〉_d saint_n basill_n that_o great_a archbishop_n of_o cappadocia_n do_v not_o he_o consider_v the_o pope_n some_o time_n as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n where_o he_o call_v he_o the_o corypheos_n of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n and_o sometime_o as_o head_n 77._o of_o the_o universal_a church_n when_o he_o write_v to_o those_o of_o the_o west_n be_v it_o that_o you_o repute_v yourself_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o head_n can_v say_v to_o the_o foot_n you_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o i_o be_v it_o that_o you_o place_v yourselves_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o other_o member_n of_o the_o church_n you_o can_v say_v to_o we_o that_o be_v constitute_v in_o one_o same_o body_n with_o you_o you_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o i_o for_o that_o he_o use_v this_o disiunctive_a particle_n be_v it_o it_o be_v not_o there_o to_o cast_v any_o doubt_n but_o to_o distinguish_v the_o address_n of_o his_o speech_n into_o two_o branch_n whereof_o the_o one_o to_o wit_n be_v it_o that_o you_o repute_v yourself_o head_n of_o the_o universail_n church_n have_v regard_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n be_v it_o that_o you_o place_v yourselves_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o other_o member_n have_v regard_n to_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n and_o do_v not_o he_o himself_o report_v that_o eustathius_n bishop_n of_o sebaste_n in_o armenia_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o melitina_n in_o armenia_n a_o catholic_a and_o orthodoxal_a council_n and_o have_v bring_v letter_n of_o restitution_n from_o pope_n liberius_n be_v receive_v without_o form_n of_o process_n into_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o cappadocia_n and_o do_v not_o saint_n jerom_n who_o be_v priest_n of_o antioch_n and_o creature_n to_o paulinus_n the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o resident_a within_o hier._n the_o division_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o 〈◊〉_d say_v what_o shall_v the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n do_v and_o those_o of_o egypt_n and_o that_o of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a design_v by_o the_o church_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a those_o which_o be_v subject_a immediate_o vigil_n without_o acknowledge_v any_o other_o patriarch_n between_o to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o church_n of_o egypt_n those_o which_o answer_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n &_o by_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n those_o which_o be_v submit_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o do_v he_o not_o write_v to_o pope_n damasus_n about_o the_o contention_n of_o vitalis_n 57_o meletius_n and_o paulinus_n competitor_n in_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o thy_o blessedness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o chair_n ibid._n of_o peter_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o that_o rock_n and_o a_o little_a after_o i_o know_v not_o vitalis_n i_o reie_v meletius_n i_o be_o ignorant_a of_o paulinus_n whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o thou_o scatters_z that_o be_v to_o say_v do_v he_o not_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o pope_n patriarkship_n from_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n hinder_v not_o the_o pope_n superiority_n over_o the_o other_o and_o do_v not_o flavianus_n archbishop_n ibid._n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o pope_n leo_n we_o have_v give_v advertisement_n to_o your_o holiness_n of_o the_o excommunication_n of_o eutyches_n that_o you_o may_v make_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 18._o know_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n resident_a under_o your_o piety_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o do_v he_o not_o when_o eutyches_n pretend_v to_o have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n submit_v his_o judgement_n to_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o do_v not_o himself_o in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o john_n the_o second_o and_o anthimus_n and_o menas_n and_o john_n the_o four_o his_o successor_n do_v they_o not_o acknowledge_v and_o protest_v that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o come_v after_o leo_n do_v not_o they_o depose_v acacius_n and_o anthimus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o judge_v by_o appeal_v the_o cause_n of_o john_n &_o athanasius_n subject_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o do_v not_o the_o pope_n s._n gregory_n 64._o the_o great_a call_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n his_o bishop_n if_o the_o cause_n say_v he_o of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o i_o be_v treat_v by_o the_o religious_a emperor_n by_o 64._o the_o intercession_n of_o stranger_n miserable_a man_n that_o i_o be_o what_o do_v i_o in_o this_o church_n but_o that_o my_o bishop_n despise_v i_o and_o have_v recourse_n to_o secular_a judge_n against_o i_o i_o thank_v god_n almighty_a for_o it_o and_o i_o impute_v it_o to_o my_o sin_n yet_o do_v not_o he_o say_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o general_a if_o there_o be_v any_o fault_n in_o the_o bishop_n i_o know_v no_o bishop_n but_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o julian_n the_o former_a who_o live_v 1050._o year_n past_a do_v he_o not_o turn_v the_o hundred_o thirtith_n one_o new_a constitution_n into_o 131._o these_o word_n yet_o more_o raw_a they_o those_o of_o ruffinus_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o right_n over_o the_o bishop_n subject_n to_o he_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v over_o the_o bishop_n submit_v to_o he_o and_o yet_o by_o this_o do_v he_o pretend_v to_o equal_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o exempt_v he_o and_o his_o bishop_n from_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n nothing_o less_o but_o by_o the_o bishop_n submit_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o intend_v the_o bishop_n submit_v immediate_o to_o the_o pope_n without_o the_o interposition_n of_o other_o patriarch_n as_o 131._o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o original_a greek_a of_o the_o law_n which_o bear_v this_o we_o ordain_v that_o in_o all_o province_n subject_a to_o he_o he_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolicle_n 8._o of_o rome_n follow_v the_o thing_n define_v by_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n vigilius_n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o same_o justinian_n to_o epiphanius_n which_o say_v we_o will_v suffer_v nothing_o to_o pass_v concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v also_o refer_v
to_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a 6._o minister_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a which_o witness_n that_o the_o pope_n confirm_v even_o then_o that_o be_v to_o say_v fifty_o year_n after_o julian_n the_o former_a the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n and_o send_v he_o the_o archiepiscopall_a mantle_n and_o the_o revocation_n of_o the_o vicarship_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o judge_v by_o appeal_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o bishop_n &_o chastice_v he_o himself_o when_o he_o have_v misjudge_v but_o in_o sum_n whatsoever_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o addition_n of_o russinus_n be_v it_o import_v little_a to_o know_v it_o for_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v for_o his_o error_n in_o say_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o doubt_v but_o if_o he_o can_v insert_v into_o his_o translation_n any_o thing_n to_o the_o pope_n prejudice_n he_o have_v do_v it_o it_o 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o will_v that_o to_o every_o church_n the_o prerogative_n thereof_o be_v preserve_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v 6._o she_o whereof_o s._n ireneus_n cry_v out_o to_o this_o church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o mighty_a principality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o of_o a_o principality_n more_o mighty_a than_o 3._o the_o temporal_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o the_o church_n shall_v agree_v it_o be_v she_o that_o 〈◊〉_d s._n cyprian_n call_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o 〈◊〉_d all_o unity_n proceed_v it_o be_v she_o of_o who_o s._n jerom_n write_v i_o 〈◊〉_d know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o this_o stone_n whosoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o this_o house_n be_v profane_a it_o be_v she_o of_o who_o s._n austin_n say_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o 〈◊〉_d the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a it_o suffice_v that_o before_o 162._o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n shall_v remain_v entire_a the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a sorbad_v to_o canonize_v church_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v canon_n touch_v the_o generality_n of_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n bare_a that_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v proceed_v to_o without_o attend_v the_o decision_n from_o rome_n and_o that_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n gallienus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v more_o than_o sixty_o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o churchman_n of_o egypt_n desire_v to_o accuse_v dionysius_n bishop_n 2._o of_o alexandria_n their_o patriarch_n go_v up_o say_v saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o the_o same_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n to_o rome_n and_o accuse_v he_o before_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o suffice_v that_o present_o after_o the_o same_o council_n 〈◊〉_d of_o nicaea_n when_o s._n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantivople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o the_o east_n julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n restore_v to_o every_o one_o his_o church_n because_o to_o he_o say_v sozomene_n for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n appertain_v it_o suffice_v 〈◊〉_d that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o athanasius_n pope_n damasus_n confirm_v the_o ordination_n of_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n successor_n to_o the_o same_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n hold_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 12._o 〈◊〉_d &_o whereat_o assist_v beside_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o other_o bishop_n the_o same_o osius_n that_o be_v precedent_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o same_o saint_n athanasius_n which_o have_v help_v to_o frame_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o same_o protogenes_n bishop_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o episcopal_a appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v authorize_v by_o a_o write_a law_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o province_n exhort_v to_o refer_v the_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lampsacus_n in_o asia_n the_o macedonian_n purpose_v to_o return_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n send_v their_o legate_n from_o asia_n to_o rome_n to_o protest_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o to_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o come_v up_o to_o his_o tribunal_n or_o to_o the_o judge_n delegated_a by_o he_o in_o all_o cause_n that_o shall_v be_v attempt_v against_o they_o it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n in_o cappadocia_n eustachius_n bishop_n of_o sebastia_n in_o armenia_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o melitina_n the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o 70._o armenia_n bring_v letter_n of_o restitution_n from_o pope_n liberius_n be_v receive_v without_o form_n of_o process_n and_o have_v place_n as_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n it_o 8._o 〈◊〉_d that_o when_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n have_v cause_v s._n athanas_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v depose_v in_o a_o council_n of_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n he_o think_v he_o have_v not_o satisfy_v his_o desire_n if_o the_o thing_n say_v amianus_n marcellinus_n be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n 15._o whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o eternal_a city_n be_v superior_n it_o suffice_v that_o when_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o be_v now_o in_o question_n be_v renew_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o primat_n 2._o be_v forbid_v to_o meddle_v beyond_o their_o division_n let_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n say_v the_o synod_n govern_v only_o what_o belong_v to_o egypt_n and_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n admister_n only_o to_o the_o east_n where_o never_o council_n interdict_v the_o pope_n from_o meddle_v in_o matter_n which_o be_v out_o of_o his_o patriarkship_n contrariwise_o the_o pope_n in_o important_a occasion_n have_v always_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n &_o judge_v by_o appeal_v the_o cause_n of_o other_o patriarkship_n the_o catholic_a counsel_n of_o the_o east_n themselves_o yield_v to_o be_v solicitor_n &_o executor_n of_o his_o sentence_n &_o opposite_o never_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_v once_o attempt_v to_o examine_v the_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n and_o of_o the_o patriarchall_a division_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o 92._o milevitan_a council_n hold_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o asrica_n and_o by_o s._n austin_n among_o other_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n 24._o and_o draw_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o then_o not_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o simple_a patriarkship_n of_o rome_n but_o universal_a and_o such_o as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o describe_v it_o when_o it_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o rector_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o church_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n when_o 7._o he_o write_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a minister_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o patara_n in_o lycia_n one_o of_o the_o province_n in_o asia_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o same_o emperor_n justinian_n that_o there_o be_v many_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o 22._o the_o world_n but_o there_o be_v no_o one_o of_o they_o that_o be_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o pope_n be_v over_o the_o church_n of_o all_o the_o world_n it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n when_o the_o father_n have_v execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v pronounce_v at_o rome_n against_o nestorius_n when_o they_o shall_v cael._n have_v pass_v to_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n the_o council_n reserve_v the_o judgement_n thereof_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o tradition_n apostolical_a it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o false_a council_n 4._o of_o ephesus_n after_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_a council_n have_v depose_v flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o sire_n flavianus_n say_v the_o emperor_n valentinian_n ibid._n
according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n appeal_v from_o he_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o theodoret_n do_v the_o like_a &_o that_o the_o pope_n upon_o these_o appeal_n replaced_a flavianus_n already_o dead_a into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o restore_v to_o theodoret_n his_o bishopric_n and_o annul_v all_o the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n except_o the_o creation_n of_o maximus_n patriark_n of_o antioch_n which_o remain_v in_o force_n because_o say_v anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n judge_v that_o he_o 10._o shall_v rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o final_o it_o suffice_v that_o when_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n translate_v by_o ruffinus_n have_v be_v read_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n a_o council_n compose_v of_o above_o six_o hundred_o greek_a father_n who_o understand_v both_o greek_a and_o the_o greek_a canon_n better_a than_o ruffinus_n who_o be_v so_o unapt_a and_o barbarous_a in_o both_o the_o tougue_n as_o s._n jerom_n say_v the_o latin_n take_v he_o for_o 2._o a_o grecian_a and_o the_o greek_n for_o a_o latin_a so_o far_o be_v the_o father_n of_o that_o conncell_n from_o infer_v from_o thence_o any_o equallitie_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o patrirake_n of_o alexandria_n that_o contrariwise_o in_o their_o synodical_a relation_n they_o protest_v they_o hold_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o head_n of_o their_o society_n ibid._n thou_o rule_a over_o we_o say_v they_o as_o the_o head_n do_v over_o the_o member_n and_o again_o we_o pray_v thou_o to_o honour_v our_o judgement_n with_o thy_o decree_n and_o that_o as_o in_o what_o concern_v the_o weal_n we_o have_v bring_v correspondency_n to_o our_o head_n so_o thy_o 〈◊〉_d will_v 〈◊〉_d to_o thy_o child_n what_o concern_v decency_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o alexandria_n as_o subject_n and_o ghostly_a vassal_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o these_o word_n `_o 〈◊〉_d have_v extend_v his_o 〈◊〉_d even_o against_o he_o to_o 〈◊〉_d who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o our_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o sait_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d thy_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o claim_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n chapt_n vii_o but_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n not_o find_v any_o foundation_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n to_o establish_v the_o equallitie_n that_o they_o will_v introduce_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o simple_a patriarch_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o claim_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v to_o be_v reduce_v principal_o into_o two_o the_o first_o claim_n be_v that_o of_o anatolius_n who_o pack_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n and_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v declare_v the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o pope_n the_o like_a 〈◊〉_d of_o honour_n as_o the_o pope_n because_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v pack_v to_o be_v declare_v equal_a to_o the_o pope_n not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o 〈◊〉_d he_o and_o all_o his_o catholic_a successor_n always_o protest_v 〈◊〉_d inferior_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n over_o who_o he_o affect_v to_o be_v what_o the_o pope_n be_v over_o he_o and_o they_o for_o that_o be_v it_o that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n signify_v that_o the_o city_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 28_o shall_v be_v honour_v in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o second_o after_o she_o to_o wit_n that_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o 〈◊〉_d absolute_o over_o all_o the_o patriarch_n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v it_o after_o he_o over_o all_o other_o patriarch_n it_o be_v ordain_v say_v 4._o 〈◊〉_d repeat_v the_o same_o canon_n that_o the_o sea_n of_o new_a rome_n because_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d she_o hold_v after_o the_o ancient_a rome_n shall_v have_v the_o primacy_n before_o the_o other_o sea_n the_o second_o claim_n be_v that_o of_o john_n and_o of_o cyriacus_n patriarch_n of_o 〈◊〉_d who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pelagius_n the_o second_o and_o of_o saint_n gregory_n will_v participate_v in_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o in_o the_o presence_n &_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n pretend_v that_o by_o the_o same_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o like_a 〈◊〉_d of_o honour_n as_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o that_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o right_a to_o bear_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n through_o all_o the_o world_n so_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o right_a to_o bear_v it_o in_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n for_o that_o such_o be_v their_o claim_n it_o appear_v beside_o a_o thousand_o other_o proof_n by_o the_o capitulation_n of_o the_o great_a comentor_n of_o homer_n eustathius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d will_v have_v renew_v with_o the_o latin_n under_o the_o greek_a emperor_n basilius_n six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n may_v be_v call_v universal_a in_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n as_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d over_o all_o the_o world_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n say_v glabar_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n with_o his_o prince_n basilius_n and_o some_o other_o greek_n hold_v a_o council_n 〈◊〉_d it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o with_o the_o pope_n consent_n to_o have_v the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v hold_v and_o call_v in_o that_o compass_n universal_a as_o the_o roman_a be_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o whole_a world_n now_o may_v i_o in_o two_o word_n not_o only_o confute_v these_o two_o objection_n but_o also_o retort_v they_o against_o the_o pope_n adversary_n for_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n pretend_v to_o obtain_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o pope_n be_v cause_n constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o part_n and_o a_o branch_n of_o the_o city_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o what_o cause_n be_v it_o not_o manife_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n before_o his_o challenge_n have_v then_o the_o primacy_n before_o all_o other_o church_n as_o also_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n acknow_v ledge_v in_o these_o term_n even_o when_o they_o protect_v anatolius_n by_o the_o proof_n 16._o which_o have_v be_v produce_v on_o both_o side_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o primacy_n before_o all_o and_o the_o principal_a honour_n have_v be_v preserve_v by_o the_o canon_n to_o the_o most_o belove_a of_o god_n the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n and_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n will_v participate_v in_o the_o title_n and_o nomination_n of_o universal_a bishop_n because_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n how_o can_v it_o be_v but_o that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n do_v appartaine_a primitive_o and_o original_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o begin_n of_o these_o contention_n come_v from_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n it_o be_v best_o to_o take_v the_o business_n at_o the_o source_n of_o the_o history_n which_o be_v thus_o at_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o the_o great_a theodosius_n the_o greek_a bishop_n ordain_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n who_o reside_v there_o to_o make_v a_o new_a sea_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o prerogative_n of_o honour_n after_o he_o of_o rome_n because_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n now_o this_o canon_n be_v no_o canon_n 3._o of_o a_o general_n council_n for_o be_v it_o that_o it_o be_v frame_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o we_o call_v general_n or_o be_v it_o be_v make_v by_o that_o which_o be_v reassembled_a at_o constantinople_n the_o year_n follow_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o we_o call_v ecumenical_a have_v be_v compose_v only_o of_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n and_o be_v become_v general_a but_o by_o the_o adiunction_n and_o confirmation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v celebrate_v at_o the_o same_o time_n at_o rome_n and_o this_o canon_n not_o have_v be_v send_v thither_o it_o can_v not_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o a_o canon_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o therefore_o when_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n will_v have_v cause_v
it_o to_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o pope_n 16._o legate_n answer_v that_o be_v be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o code_n of_o the_o synodical_a canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o add_v that_o be_v be_v never_o put_v in_o practice_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n say_v they_o have_v enjoy_v it_o what_o ibid._n will_v they_o have_v more_o and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o enjoy_v it_o why_o do_v they_o demand_v it_o and_o for_o this_o very_a cause_n pope_n leo_n write_v back_o to_o anatolius_n the_o signature_n 51._o of_o certain_a bishop_n make_v as_o thou_o pretend_v more_o than_o threescore_o year_n ago_o can_v uphold_v thy_o intention_n to_o which_o be_v tardy_a and_o long_o ago_o fall_v thou_o have_v seek_v weak_a and_o feeble_a prop_n for_o never_o have_v bone_n transmit_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a it_o can_v obtain_v no_o force_n and_o saint_n gregory_n to_o 31._o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v never_o hitherto_o neither_o now_o do_v receive_v the_o canon_n or_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n but_o she_o have_v admit_v that_o synod_n in_o what_o it_o have_v define_v against_o macedonius_n anatolius_n then_o see_v this_o canon_n have_v remain_v without_o effect_n for_o want_v of_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o western_a church_n resolve_v to_o take_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n celebrate_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o the_o deposition_n of_o `_o dioscorus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o second_o patriarch_n of_o the_o church_n which_o rank_n he_o desire_v to_o possess_v to_o attempt_v to_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v renew_v and_o therefore_o spy_v out_o at_o the_o evening_n of_o the_o twelve_o day_n the_o time_n that_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o council_n be_v separate_v and_o that_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o senate_n be_v retire_v and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o remain_v but_o the_o bishop_n that_o he_o think_v he_o can_v easy_o bring_v to_o his_o bow_n make_v use_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o libya_n who_o assist_v not_o at_o the_o last_o session_n of_o the_o council_n for_o as_o much_o as_o there_o be_v yet_o no_o 〈◊〉_d of_o alexandria_n establish_v in_o dioscorus_n his_o steed_n and_o prevail_a with_o the_o fearfulness_n of_o maximus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n create_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o ephesus_n who_o for_o the_o sense_n he_o have_v of_o the_o vice_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d dare_v not_o open_v his_o mouth_n against_o anatolius_n who_o have_v ordain_v 〈◊〉_d he_o 〈◊〉_d a_o decree_n be_v particularise_v which_o renew_v the_o pretend_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o make_v it_o be_v sign_v by_o certain_a 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o the_o province_n near_o constantinople_n there_o be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d say_v 〈◊〉_d a_o other_o session_n when_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a certain_a privilege_n be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n by_o anatolius_n his_o usurpation_n take_v advantage_n of_o 〈◊〉_d condemnation_n the_o next_o day_n the_o pope_n legate_n stand_v upon_o the_o form_n of_o this_o surprise_n to_o the_o council_n and_o represent_v that_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o that_o have_v sign_v this_o decree_n have_v sign_v it_o by_o constraint_n but_o the_o plot_n be_v so_o well_o lay_v for_o anatolius_n bear_v out_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o by_o the_o senate_n of_o constantinople_n and_o by_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o division_n that_o their_o resistance_n be_v in_o vain_a for_o part_v of_o the_o bishop_n be_v absent_a as_o those_o of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n who_o have_v the_o principal_a interest_n in_o it_o and_o part_n dissemble_v their_o opposition_n as_o maximus_n patriarch_n of_o 〈◊〉_d who_o afterward_o complain_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o preiudices_fw-la that_o the_o priviledg_n of_o his_o church_n have_v receive_v in_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o part_n confess_v against_o their_o will_n that_o they_o have_v sign_v it_o 60_o with_o their_o will_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n minor_a who_o have_v already_o protest_v in_o the_o sowrth_a action_n that_o they_o have_v as_o lief_o die_v as_o permit_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v ordain_v their_o metropolitan_n and_o beside_o that_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o dorylaus_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o division_n of_o constantinople_n assure_v false_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o agreement_n with_o the_o article_n the_o council_n pass_v forward_o to_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o when_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n oppose_v it_o they_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o pray_v he_o to_o confirm_v it_o in_o these_o term_n we_o pray_v thou_o to_o honour_v our_o decree_n 3._o with_o thy_o judgement_n and_o as_o we_o have_v bring_v correspondence_n to_o our_o head_n for_o matter_n of_o weal_n so_o thy_o sooner_o aigntie_n may_v fulfil_v to_o thy_o child_n in_o matter_n of_o decency_n for_o in_o so_o do_v the_o religious_a emperor_n shall_v be_v gratify_v now_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v already_o desire_v not_o to_o give_v consent_n to_o such_o erterprise_n for_o upon_o this_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n jwenall_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n abuse_v the_o absence_n and_o contumacy_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o assay_v to_o usurp_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o palestina_n against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o attribute_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o palestina_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n himself_o to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n one_o of_o the_o metropolitan_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n saint_n cyrill_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n pray_v the_o pope_n to_o consent_v that_o such_o attempt_n shall_v take_v place_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n say_v pope_n leo_n the_o first_o in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la to_o maximus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n iwenall_n bishop_n think_v to_o have_v find_v 60._o out_o a_o sufficient_a occasion_n to_o obtain_v the_o principality_n of_o palestina_n and_o to_o cause_v his_o audacious_a insolence_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o surreptitious_a write_n which_o saint_n cyrill_n of_o holy_a memory_n just_o have_v in_o honour_n represent_v to_o i_o and_o declare_v to_o i_o by_o his_o letter_n what_o iwenall_n ambition_n have_v attempt_v and_o request_v i_o with_o great_a 〈◊〉_d and_o care_n that_o no_o consent_n may_v be_v give_v to_o such_o unlawful_a attempt_n for_o those_o cause_n then_o and_o also_o that_o maximus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n have_v renew_v the_o same_o request_n unto_o he_o the_o pope_n instead_o of_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n see_v it_o inviolated_a the_o order_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o have_v give_v the_o second_o place_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o the_o three_o place_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n annul_v and_o abrogate_a it_o by_o these_o word_n address_v to_o the_o empress_n pulcheria_n 53._o the_o piety_n of_o your_o faith_n join_v with_o we_o we_o annul_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o bishop_n repugnant_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a canon_n establish_v at_o nicaea_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n we_o whole_o abrogate_v they_o by_o a_o general_a sentence_n and_o that_o with_o such_o effect_n as_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v constrain_v for_o the_o time_n to_o depart_v from_o their_o pursuit_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n to_o anatolius_n this_o thy_o fault_n which_o thou_o have_v commit_v to_o 69_o augment_v thy_o power_n as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o exhortation_n of_o other_o thy_o tharitie_n have_v better_a and_o more_o sincere_o blot_v out_o if_o that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v attempt_v against_o thy_o will_n thou_o have_v not_o impute_v it_o only_o to_o the_o council_n of_o thy_o clergy_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v a_o agreeable_a thing_n to_o i_o most_o dear_a brother_n that_o thou_o do_v now_o protest_v to_o be_v displease_v with_o what_o shall_v not_o even_o then_o have_v please_v thou_o but_o the_o profession_n of_o thy_o love_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o christian_a prince_n shall_v suffice_v to_o cause_v thou_o to_o re-enter_v into_o common_a grace_n and_o let_v not_o his_o correction_n seem_v tardy_a that_o have_v get_v so_o reverend_a a_o surety_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o come_v that_o in_o many_o greek_a and_o latin_a copy_n this_o canon_n be_v only_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n but_o not_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canon_n no_o
that_o he_o will_v have_v bring_v under_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o antioch_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o same_o pope_n leo_n reproach_v it_o to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v pack_v this_o decree_n not_o simple_o to_o exalte_n his_o rank_n but_o to_o increase_v his_o power_n this_o thy_o fault_n say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d which_o to_o augment_v thy_o power_n thou_o 〈◊〉_d commit_v as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o exhortation_n of_o other_o thy_o charity_n have_v better_a and_o more_o sincere_o blot_v out_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o impute_v that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v attempt_v without_o thy_o will_n to_o the_o only_a 〈◊〉_d counsel_n of_o thy_o clergy_n and_o elsewhere_o after_o the_o vicious_a beginning_n of_o thy_o promotion_n after_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n which_o against_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o canon_n thou_o have_v attribute_v to_o thyself_o i_o be_o grieve_v that_o thy_o dilection_n have_v fall_v so_o far_o as_o to_o insringe_v the_o holy_a constitution_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o nicaea_n as_o if_o thou_o have_v watch_v a_o time_n for_o thy_o purpose_n wherein_o the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o second_o honour_n and_o wherein_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n have_v lose_v the_o propriety_n of_o the_o three_o dignity_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o place_n be_v subject_v to_o thy_o jurisdiction_n all_o the_o metropolitan_o may_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o proper_a honour_n and_o be_v it_o not_o under_o this_o pretence_n that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n attribute_v to_o themselves_o the_o appeal_n from_o other_o patriarch_n that_o which_o be_v define_v say_v balsamon_n in_o the_o 3._o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o the_o pope_n concern_v appeal_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o have_v be_v by_o diverse_a canon_n mean_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o that_o of_o the_o council_n trullian_n honour_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o again_o this_o ibid._n privilege_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n alone_o that_o every_o bishop_n be_v condemn_v shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n the_o 2._o twenty_o eight_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o thirty_o six_o of_o the_o six_o council_n honour_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o same_o privilege_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n grant_v also_o manifest_o the_o appeal_n to_o that_o of_o constantinople_n and_o in_o brief_a be_v it_o not_o under_o this_o very_a pretence_n that_o when_o gregory_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n have_v appeal_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o to_o the_o council_n from_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o syria_n john_n patriarch_n 7._o of_o constantinople_n presume_v to_o call_v a_o generali_fw-la council_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o to_o assign_v the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o metropolitan_o of_o 1._o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n to_o be_v there_o and_o there_o to_o judge_v with_o they_o the_o cause_n of_o gregory_n and_o there_o to_o entitle_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n 69._o now_o be_v not_o this_o to_o protest_v that_o before_o that_o constantinople_n be_v erect_v into_o the_o title_n of_o second_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n and_o chalcedon_n have_v make_v this_o pretend_a extension_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n the_o universal_a primacy_n and_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o to_o say_v that_o at_o least_o it_o appear_v from_o these_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o father_n do_v justly_o exhibit_v the_o privilege_n to_o the_o 28_o sea_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n for_o asmuch_o as_o that_o city_n have_v the_o empire_n and_o the_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o religious_a father_n move_v with_o the_o same_o consideration_n 〈◊〉_d attribute_v equal_a privilege_n to_o the_o holy_a sea_n of_o the_o city_n of_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o father_n which_o have_v precede_v the_o first_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d have_v give_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n beside_o that_o here_o the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o right_a but_o of_o possession_n nor_o of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o father_n which_o live_v before_o the_o first_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d have_v grant_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o know_v whether_o indeed_o they_o have_v grant_v it_o he_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v that_o the_o primacy_n have_v be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n they_o intend_v not_o that_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v the_o next_o conjoin_v and_o immediate_a cause_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o cause_n antecedent_n obiective_n and_o remote_a contrariwise_o the_o next_o and_o conjoin_v cause_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o succession_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o title_n that_o they_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n epistle_n call_v it_o the_o sermon_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o by_o the_o protestation_n that_o they_o make_v that_o the_o pope_n primacy_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n and_o institute_v by_o the_o proper_a mouth_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o they_o say_v speak_v of_o dioscorus_n he_o have_v extend_v 〈◊〉_d his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o cause_n that_o move_v saint_n peter_n head_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o place_n and_o settle_v his_o sea_n at_o rome_n rather_o than_o in_o a_o other_o place_n they_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n by_o mean_n whereof_o these_o two_o cause_n be_v not_o exclusive_a but_o inclusive_a one_o to_o the_o other_o as_o also_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d &_o valentinian_n make_v six_o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 〈◊〉_d comoynes_fw-la they_o in_fw-la these_o word_n three_o thing_n have_v establish_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a the_o merit_n of_o saint_n peter_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o episcopal_a 〈◊〉_d the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o synodical_a authority_n and_o to_o this_o there_o be_v no_o repugnancy_n in_o that_o which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o council_n argue_v also_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n and_o they_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v second_o rome_n to_o infer_v from_o thence_o the_o second_o place_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n for_o they_o ground_v not_o their_o 5._o instance_n simple_o upon_o the_o temporal_a dignity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v say_v saint_n austin_n daughter_n to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o upon_o the_o spiritual_a dignity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v daughter_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n forasmuch_o as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n be_v transfer_v to_o constantinople_n with_o the_o other_o roman_a inhabi_fw-la tants_z when_o one_o of_o the_o half_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v transport_v thither_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o do_v not_o lean_v only_o upon_o this_o that_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n be_v a_o other_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o upon_o this_o that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v a_o swarm_n and_o a_o colony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o episcopal_a sea_n of_o constantinople_n a_o member_n and_o part_n of_o the_o sea_n episcopal_a of_o rome_n or_o rather_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sea_n episcopal_a and_o one_o and_o the_o same_o throne_n of_o saint_n peter_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n as_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n protest_v to_o pope_n hormisdas_n in_o these_o word_n i_o esteem_v 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n of_o your_o ancient_a and_o this_o new_a rome_n to_o be_v one_o selfsame_a church_n and_o i_o make_v account_n that_o that_o sea_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o this_o of_o this_o imperial_a city_n be_v oneself_o same_o 〈◊〉_d and_o as_o it_o seem_v the_o title_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o when_o he_o call_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n the_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d and_o zonarus_n when_o he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n
of_o the_o council_n entitle_v 〈◊〉_d the_o 8_o the_o occumenicall_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o he_o of_o constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o homothronall_a that_o be_v to_o say_v unite_v in_o one_o selfe-same_a 〈◊〉_d and_o set_v in_o one_o selfe-same_a sea_n and_o therefore_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v no_o allege_v in_o their_o canon_n that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a that_o constantinople_n be_v adorn_v by_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o senate_n shall_v enjoyalsoin_fw-fr the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o same_o privilege_n in_o 28._o ecclesiastical_a cause_n but_o add_v thereto_o in_o their_o relation_n two_o other_o reason_n take_v from_o the_o spiritual_a affinity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n the_o one_o the_o facility_n of_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n into_o that_o of_o constantinople_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a may_v spread_v more_o commodiouslie_o from_o rome_n to_o constantinople_n then_o to_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a sea_n because_o of_o the_o communication_n that_o those_o two_o city_n which_o make_v oneself_o same_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v together_o by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o be_v more_o convenient_a that_o the_o rule_n which_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n shall_v take_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o church_n of_o canstantinople_n where_o reside_v in_o ordinary_a the_o nuncios_fw-la of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o which_o be_v near_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n shall_v receive_v they_o first_o and_o immediate_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o then_o communicate_v they_o to_o the_o other_o sea_n which_o be_v far_o off_o the_o other_o that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v daughter_n and_o extract_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o have_v say_v they_o be_v encourage_v to_o do_v this_o for_o that_o the_o beam_n apostolic_a reign_v amid_o you_o and_o you_o by_o your_o ordinary_a government_n 〈◊〉_d leon_n it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n you_o may_v cause_v it_o to_o shine_v the_o 〈◊〉_d into_o these_o part_n because_o you_o be_v wont_v without_o envy_n to_o enrich_z those_o of_o your_o lineage_n with_o the_o participation_n of_o your_o good_n and_o therefore_o pope_n leo_n with_o a_o purpose_n to_o cut_v off_o in_o a_o word_n all_o their_o hope_n of_o this_o pretence_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o constantinople_n what_o soever_o anatotius_fw-la might_n attempt_n can_v never_o be_v make_v a_o sea_n apostolic_a let_v anatolius_n say_v he_o not_o disdain_v the_o imperial_a 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o can_v make_v a_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o move_v the_o latter_a greek_n to_o add_v 52._o another_o devise_n for_o consider_v that_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o sea_n with_o that_o of_o saint_n peter_n can_v not_o serve_v for_o a_o good_a colour_n of_o a_o spiritual_a title_n to_o perserue_v thereto_o the_o second_o place_n in_o the_o church_n they_o have_v have_v recourse_n to_o derive_v by_o a_o fabulous_a list_n and_o which_o have_v no_o testimony_n niceph_n in_o antiquity_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o byzantium_n from_o saint_n andrew_n brother_n to_o saint_n peter_n to_o maintain_v to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o byzantium_n the_o second_o sea_n after_o that_o of_o saint_n peter_n the_o three_o answer_n be_v what_o soever_o the_o aim_n and_o sense_n of_o this_o canon_n may_v be_v there_o can_v noething_fw-mi be_v infer_v from_o it_o either_o lawful_a or_o canonical_a forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v a_o surreptitious_a canon_n and_o obtain_v by_o chron._n fraud_n and_o by_o surprise_n and_o against_o which_o there_o be_v thirteen_o nullity_n whereof_o the_o least_o be_v sufficient_a to_o impose_v a_o perpetual_a silence_n to_o all_o those_o that_o allege_v it_o the_o first_o nullity_n be_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n which_o propound_v and_o particularise_v this_o canon_n but_o the_o clerk_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o particular_o aetius_n archdeacon_n of_o constantinople_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o from_o the_o eleven_o action_n in_o which_o one_o of_o the_o clause_n which_o be_v after_o enter_v into_o this_o canon_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o metropolitan_o of_o asia_n minor_a shall_v 28._o receive_v their_o ordination_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v contest_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n the_o only_a clerk_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n 11._o with_o loud_a voice_n cry_v out_o let_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o father_n so_o call_v they_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constautinople_n false_o allege_v to_o that_o purpose_n stand_v let_v not_o the_o privilege_n of_o constantinople_n perish_v let_v the_o ordination_n be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n by_o our_o bishop_n and_o from_o the_o word_n of_o aetius_n archdeacon_n of_o constantinople_n when_o he_o will_v have_v excuse_v the_o obreption_n of_o this_o canon_n which_o be_v it_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d thing_n accustom_v in_o synod_n after_o principal_a matter_n have_v be_v define_v to_o question_v and_o decide_v some_o other_o necessary_a thing_n now_o we_o have_v to_o wit_n the_o holy_a church_n of_o constantinople_n some_o article_n to_o propound_v and_o from_o the_o excuse_n that_o anatolius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n make_v when_o he_o depart_v from_o this_o canon_n which_o be_v that_o he_o have_v be_v set_v on_o to_o solicit_v it_o by_o the_o importunity_n of_o his_o clergy_n this_o thy_o fault_n say_v pope_n leo_n answer_v anatolius_n which_o to_o augment_v 69._o thy_o power_n thou_o have_v commit_v as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o exhortation_n of_o other_o thou_o have_v better_a and_o more_o sincere_o blot_v out_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o impute_v to_o the_o only_a council_n of_o thy_o clergy_n that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v attempt_v without_o thy_o consent_n the_o second_o nullity_n be_v that_o this_o decree_n be_v make_v at_o a_o undue_a hour_n and_o after_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o council_n have_v be_v separate_v and_o when_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o senator_n which_o assist_v there_o on_o the_o emperor_n part_n be_v retire_v as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o complaint_n that_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d make_v thereof_o the_o morrow_n after_o to_o the_o emperor_n officer_n 〈◊〉_d to_o keep_v order_n in_o the_o council_n which_o contain_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o departure_n of_o your_o excellency_n and_o of_o our_o humility_n they_o say_v there_o 16._o be_v make_v certain_a article_n that_o we_o pretend_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d discipline_n and_o by_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o emperor_n officer_n which_o 〈◊〉_d be_v if_o there_o be_v any_o article_n frame_v after_o our_o departure_n let_v they_o be_v read_v and_o by_o these_o word_n of_o liberatus_n there_o be_v that_o day_n another_o session_n wherein_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o senate_n and_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a certain_a privilege_n be_v adjudge_v to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n take_v advantage_n of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o dioscorus_n and_o to_o that_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d the_o excuse_n that_o actius_n archdeacon_n of_o constantinople_n allege_v to_o the_o emperor_n officer_n in_o these_o word_n we_o request_v my_o lord_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o 1._o assist_v to_o it_o they_o refuse_v say_v they_o have_v no_o commandment_n to_o that_o effect_n weereported_n it_o also_o to_o your_o magnificence_n you_o command_v the_o synod_n shall_v examine_v it_o when_o your_o excellency_n be_v go_v forth_o the_o holy_a bishop_n which_o be_v here_o rise_v as_o for_o a_o common_a business_n require_v that_o the_o action_n shall_v be_v make_v now_o it_o be_v in_o our_o hand_n nothing_o have_v be_v do_v in_o a_o corner_n or_o by_o stealth_n but_o the_o action_n have_v be_v competent_a and_o canonical_a for_o either_o the_o clerk_n of_o constantinople_n have_v make_v no_o such_o request_n to_o the_o pope_n legate_n &_o the_o emperor_n officer_n or_o it_o be_v not_o that_o day_n nor_o upon_o the_o point_n of_o the_o action_n otherwise_o the_o emperor_n officer_n will_v not_o have_v answer_v the_o pope_n legate_n as_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n if_o there_o be_v any_o article_n frame_v since_o our_o departure_n let_v it_o le_fw-fr read_v ibid._n the_o three_o nullity_n be_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v make_v the_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n be_v absent_a &_o in_o the_o only_a presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o the_o province_n near_o constantinople_n that_o it_o be_v so_o beside_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o
city_n of_o constantinople_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v depute_v to_o maintain_v order_n in_o the_o council_n consider_v so_o much_o their_o own_o interest_n in_o the_o challenge_n of_o anatolius_n esteeme_a they_n may_v by_o this_o mean_n still_o augment_v the_o dignity_n of_o their_o city_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n imprint_v into_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o assistant_n that_o it_o be_v the_o desire_n and_o passion_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n believe_v they_o can_v not_o resist_v this_o decree_n without_o offend_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o senate_n of_o constantinople_n and_o all_o the_o imperial_a court_n of_o the_o east_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o these_o word_n we_o gratifie_v the_o most_o religious_a and_o christian_a emperor_n who_o 〈◊〉_d take_v pleasure_n in_o this_o decree_n and_o all_o the_o illustrious_a senate_n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o royal_a city_n have_v esteem_v it_o to_o purpose_n that_o this_o honour_n shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o general_a council_n and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o pray_v you_o then_o to_o honour_v our_o judgement_n with_o 〈◊〉_d your_o decree_n and_o that_o as_o in_o what_o concern_v the_o weal_n we_o have_v bring_v 〈◊〉_d to_o our_o head_n so_o your_o sovereignty_n may_v accomplish_v towards_o your_o child_n what_o concern_v decency_n for_o in_o so_o do_v the_o religious_a emperor_n shall_v be_v gratify_v the_o seven_o nullity_n be_v that_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o dorylaus_n and_o abettor_n to_o anatolius_n his_o claim_n use_v a_o manifest_a surprise_n to_o cause_v this_o decree_n to_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o council_n which_o be_v to_o testify_v to_o the_o council_n that_o 16._o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o pope_n i_o have_v say_v eusebius_n of_o dorylaus_n voluntary_o sign_v this_o canon_n because_o i_o have_v read_v it_o at_o rome_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o clerk_n of_o constantinople_n and_o he_o approve_v it_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o relation_n that_o they_o address_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v upon_o this_o foundation_n that_o they_o have_v proceed_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o decree_n we_o have_v say_v they_o take_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o confirm_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n begin_v by_o your_o holiness_n in_o favour_n of_o those_o that_o you_o 〈◊〉_d always_o desire_v to_o cherish_v know_v that_o in_o whasoever_o child_n do_v well_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o their_o father_n and_o nevertheless_o this_o testimony_n be_v a_o testimony_n full_a of_o falsehood_n and_o imposture_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o instruction_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o pope_n have_v consign_v to_o the_o legate_n which_o bear_v suffer_v not_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n to_o be_v violate_v by_o any_o rashness_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o if_o any_o perchance_o trust_v in_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o city_n shall_v attempt_v to_o usurp_v any_o thing_n repress_v they_o as_o agree_v with_o 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o leo_n who_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o maximus_n if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d brother_n which_o i_o have_v send_v in_o my_o steed_n to_o the_o synod_n have_v do_v any_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d what_o concern_v faith_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o force_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v be_v send_v by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a to_o this_o end_n only_o to_o root_v out_o heresy_n and_o to_o defend_v 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o anatolius_n never_o may_v my_o conscience_n consent_n that_o so_o 〈◊〉_d a_o 〈◊〉_d covetousness_n shall_v be_v help_v by_o my_o favour_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o be_v suppress_v by_o i_o and_o by_o those_o that_o allow_v not_o the_o proud_a but_o consent_n with_o the_o humble_a the_o eight_o nullity_n be_v that_o when_o they_o will_v proceed_v to_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o canon_n the_o pope_n legate_n protest_v a_o nullity_n against_o it_o and_o make_v their_o protestation_n to_o be_v register_v within_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n this_o appear_v first_o by_o the_o verbal_a process_n of_o the_o council_n where_o their_o opposition_n be_v couch_v in_o these_o word_n we_o require_v your_o excellence_n to_o command_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v yesterday_o do_v against_o the_o canon_n in_o our_o absence_n 16._o may_v be_v cut_n of_o or_o if_o not_o that_o our_o contradiction_n may_v be_v insert_v into_o the_o act_n that_o we_o may_v know_v what_o we_o have_v to_o report_v to_o the_o apostolic_a bishop_n and_o to_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o he_o may_v pronounce_v the_o injury_n do_v to_o his_o sea_n and_o to_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o canon_n this_o they_o add_v not_o that_o this_o decree_n give_v any_o authority_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n but_o after_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o to_o propound_v it_o without_o the_o pope_n consent_n who_o be_v the_o protector_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o preserver_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o to_o make_v it_o pass_v against_o the_o opposition_n of_o his_o legate_n it_o be_v to_o wound_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o to_o infringe_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n which_o annul_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o 51._o church_n make_v without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o second_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o anatolius_n our_o brother_n send_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o preside_v in_o my_o steed_n at_o the_o council_n resist_v pertinent_o and_o constant_o to_o those_o unlawful_a attempt_n cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o the_o presumption_n of_o a_o pernicious_a novelty_n may_v not_o be_v exalt_v against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o their_o contradiction_n can_v be_v doubt_v since_o thou_o thy-self_n complain_v in_o thy_o letter_n that_o they_o have_v desire_v to_o cross_v thy_o enterprise_n wherein_o thou_o do_v greatelie_o recommend_v they_o to_o i_o but_o thou_o accuse_v thyself_n for_o not_o obey_v they_o and_o three_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o to_o the_o pope_n which_o contain_v these_o word_n deign_v most_o holy_a and_o bless_a father_n to_o leon_n embrace_v these_o thing_n for_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n paschasinus_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o most_o religious_a priest_n boniface_n hold_v the_o place_n of_o your_o holiness_n have_v great_o strive_v to_o contradict_v this_o rule_n desire_v that_o such_o a_o good_a may_v take_v the_o entire_a original_n from_o your_o providence_n to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o of_o good_a order_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o you_o the_o nine_o nullity_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n instead_o of_o consent_v to_o the_o request_n that_o the_o council_n solicit_v by_o anatolius_n and_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o senate_n have_v make_v to_o he_o to_o confirm_v this_o canon_n disannul_v &_o abolish_v it_o joyninge_v with_o we_o say_v the_o pope_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o empress_n 〈◊〉_d 53._o the_o piety_n of_o your_o faith_n we_o annul_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o bishop_n repugnant_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a canon_n establish_v at_o nicaea_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n do_v whole_o abrogate_v they_o by_o a_o general_a sentence_n and_o pope_n vincul_fw-la gelasius_n forty_o year_n after_o repeat_v the_o same_o history_n that_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v confirm_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v remain_v in_o force_n and_o what_o she_o have_v refuse_v can_v obtain_v no_o steadfastness_n and_o only_o she_o have_v disannul_v that_o which_o the_o synodical_a congregation_n have_v adjudge_v against_o order_n shall_v be_v usurp_v and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n abrogate_a this_o canon_n for_o passion_n or_o out_o of_o desire_n to_o contradict_v and_o not_o in_o zeal_n to_o preserve_v the_o right_n of_o the_o other_o sea_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o abrogate_v it_o of_o his_o own_o motion_n but_o have_v be_v already_o pray_v before_o by_o saint_n cyrill_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o since_o by_o maximus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n not_o to_o permit_v that_o such_o attempt_n shall_v take_v place_n and_o that_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n settle_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n shall_v be_v violate_v thy_o charity_n say_v pope_n leo_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o maximus_n patriarch_n
canon_n as_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o beside_o that_o in_o say_v we_o renew_v the_o decree_n make_v by_o the_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o father_n 36._o assemble_v in_o this_o religious_a and_o royal_a city_n and_o by_o the_o six_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o father_n assemble_v at_o chalcedon_n it_o show_v sufficient_o how_o this_o canon_n have_v 15_o be_v till_o then_o dispute_v and_o call_v in_o question_n the_o council_n trullian_n be_v aschismaticall_a ignorant_a and_o unlawful_a council_n as_o it_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o beda_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o time_n aetatibus_fw-la who_o call_v it_o a_o impious_a council_n and_o by_o the_o approbation_n which_o be_v make_v there_o of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n concern_v the_o anabaptism_n of_o heretic_n which_o have_v be_v a_o erroneous_a and_o reprovable_a council_n as_o saint_n augustine_n and_o all_o antiquity_n do_v testify_v and_o as_o the_o pope_n adversary_n themselves_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o this_o sufffice_v for_o the_o first_o objection_n now_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o to_o the_o second_o to_o the_o second_o objection_n then_o which_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n go_v about_o to_o participate_v in_o the_o title_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a whereof_o the_o pope_n have_v receive_v the_o nomination_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n we_o bring_v four_o answer_n the_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o possess_v this_o title_n by_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o possess_v it_o by_o the_o association_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n for_o not_o only_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a have_v be_v offer_v the_o pope_n before_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v ever_o presume_v to_o aspire_v to_o it_o but_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n which_o be_v the_o first_o council_n where_o the_o name_n of_o universal_a have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v it_o direct_o or_o be_v it_o from_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o council_n hold_v a_o little_a before_o it_o there_o be_v read_v the_o request_n of_o the_o churchman_n of_o constantinople_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o jerusalem_n present_v in_o constantinople_n itself_o to_o pope_n agapet_n and_o couch_v in_o these_o term_n to_o our_o 1._o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a lord_n agapet_n archbishop_n of_o the_o ancient_a rome_n and_o universal_a patriarch_n and_o during_o the_o contention_n of_o saint_n gregory_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n write_v 30_o to_o pope_n gregory_n call_v he_o universal_a pope_n and_o in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o saint_n gregory_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o beard_a reside_v at_o constantinople_n and_o assist_v at_o the_o three_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n intitule_v the_o pope_n universal_a patriarch_n and_o arch-pastor_n you_o have_v say_v he_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n second_v your_o captain_n the_o 6._o 18._o universal_a ●ier_n arch_n and_o patriarch_n and_o again_o you_o have_v be_v present_a by_o your_o procurator_n you_o and_o the_o universal_a arch-pastor_n at_o our_o council_n and_o after_o when_o the_o emperor_n basilius_n the_o young_a and_o eustachius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n will_v have_v reconcile_v themselves_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o ibidem_fw-la capitule_v that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o obtain_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v be_v call_v universal_a in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 1._o compass_n thereof_o as_o the_o roman_a be_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o still_o after_o they_o balsamon_n although_o puff_v up_o with_o his_o imaginary_a title_n of_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o a_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o latin_n which_o possess_v his_o pretend_a patriarksip_n he_o favour_v the_o pope_n as_o little_a as_o he_o can_v and_o attempt_v to_o prove_v all_o the_o patriarch_n equal_a for_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o ordinary_a administration_n of_o their_o patriarkship_n nevertheless_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v to_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a pope_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n theod._n that_o of_o universal_a patriarch_n i_o have_v say_v he_o a_o purpose_n to_o tell_v wherefore_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v universal_a pope_n and_o likewise_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n ibid._n universal_a patriarch_n and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o because_o the_o devil_n of_o self-love_n have_v separate_v the_o pope_n from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o other_o most_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o have_v restrain_v he_o only_o into_o the_o west_n i_o omit_v this_o discourse_n as_o unprofitable_a the_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o by_o the_o word_n universal_a the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n never_o pretend_v to_o exempt_v himself_o from_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n but_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a and_o inferior_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o those_o very_a piece_n where_o the_o name_n of_o universal_a be_v attribute_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n which_o do_v all_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v subject_a and_o inferior_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o instance_n that_o he_o make_v to_o be_v adjoin_v and_o associate_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o universality_n be_v not_o to_o the_o end_n to_o possess_v it_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o under_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n always_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o stock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o universality_n and_o protest_v himself_o his_o subject_n and_o his_o inferior_a for_o in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o first_o where_o the_o word_n universal_a be_v offer_v to_o the_o patriarch_n impress_n of_o constantinople_n do_v not_o justinian_n write_v to_o he_o we_o have_v in_o all_o thing_n preserve_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n with_o the_o most_o 7._o holy_a pope_n of_o ancient_a rome_n to_o who_o we_o have_v write_v the_o like_a for_o we_o suffer_v not_o that_o any_o thing_n shall_v pass_v touch_v the_o ecclesiastical_a estate_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v also_o refer_v to_o his_o blessedness_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a prelate_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n which_o be_v the_o first_o council_n in_o form_n where_o we_o 4._o see_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a give_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v it_o not_o say_v anthimus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n protest_v to_o do_v all_o that_o the_o sovereign_a pope_n of_o great_a rome_n shall_v decree_v and_o write_v to_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a patriarch_n that_o he_o will_v altogether_o follow_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v no_o he_o himself_o pronouncé_fw-la these_o word_n we_o will_v in_o all_o thing_n follow_v and_o obey_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a ibid._n and_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o question_n of_o the_o word_n universal_a do_v not_o saint_n gregory_n report_n that_o john_n priest_n of_o chalcedon_n a_o city_n situate_a in_o asia_n and_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n appeal_v from_o he_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o be_v again_o judge_v at_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n give_v his_o help_a hand_n to_o it_o even_o then_o when_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o quality_n of_o universal_a and_o send_v the_o act_n of_o the_o first_o judgement_n to_o rome_n to_o be_v review_v by_o the_o pope_n 24._o know_v thou_o not_o say_v saint_n gregory_n that_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n the_o priest_n against_o our_o brother_n and_o fellow-bishop_n john_n of_o constantinople_n he_o have_v recourse_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o 39_o that_o it_o have_v be_v define_v by_o our_o sentence_n and_o elsewhere_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n the_o priest_n he_o have_v send_v hither_o act_n wherein_o almost_o at_o the_o end_n of_o every_o line_n he_o call_v himself_o universal_a patriarch_n and_o final_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v they_o not_o themselves_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o dispute_n that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o saint_n gregory_n report_v it_o in_o
these_o word_n who_o be_v it_o say_v he_o 63._o that_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o the_o most_o religious_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o our_o brother_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n continual_o protest_v for_o as_o for_o the_o illusion_n of_o those_o who_o to_o weaken_v the_o credit_n of_o this_o passage_n cavil_v upon_o the_o word_n eusebius_n which_o be_v in_o the_o print_a copy_n before_o these_o word_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o cittié_fw-fr and_o object_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n then_o be_v be_v not_o call_v eusebius_n but_o cyriacus_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v upon_o it_o to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o inconvenience_n in_o it_o that_o cyriacus_n may_v have_v have_v two_o name_n and_o be_v call_v eusebius_n cyriacus_n as_o saint_n jerome_n be_v call_v eusebius_n jerome_n and_o beside_o that_o the_o word_n eusebius_n may_v there_o be_v take_v adiective_o and_o signify_v pious_a and_o religious_a as_o when_o 6._o arrius_n write_v to_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n farewell_o eusebius_n true_o eusebius_n that_o be_v to_o say_v farewell_n eusebius_n true_o religious_a it_o will_v be_v a_o short_a cut_n to_o answer_v at_o the_o first_o that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o the_o exemplarist_n who_o of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d evil_o write_v and_o for_o that_o occasion_n blot_v out_o and_o write_v again_o have_v make_v eusebius_n for_o the_o copy_n of_o this_o epistle_n which_o have_v be_v currant_n two_o hundred_o year_n after_o saint_n gregory_n read_v simple_o and_o our_o brother_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n without_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v see_v by_o the_o relation_n of_o amalarius_n bishop_n of_o trever_n who_o live_v eight_o hundred_o year_n ago_o who_o insert_v into_o his_o book_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a office_n this_o epistle_n of_o saint_n gregory_n whole_a and_o entire_a from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o endinge_a report_v the_o period_n now_o in_o question_n in_o these_o only_a word_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o eusebius_n for_o as_o for_o that_o 36_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n who_o doubt_v but_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o the_o most_o religious_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o our_o brother_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o town_n continual_o protest_v and_o therefore_o alsoe_o when_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v in_o any_o synodical_a action_n with_o the_o pope_n legate_n yea_o within_o constantinople_n itself_o they_o abstayn_v from_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a and_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n legate_n alone_o for_o their_o master_n to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o pope_n for_o head_n and_o stock_n of_o the_o universality_n and_o do_v repute_v themselves_o universal_a but_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o he_o or_o of_o those_o that_o represent_v he_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o three_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v celebrate_v under_o constantine_n pogonat_n in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o saint_n gregory_n wherein_o the_o pope_n legate_n sign_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o legate_n to_o the_o universal_a pope_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o only_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n for_o though_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v before_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o council_n attribute_n to_o he_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a nevertheless_o in_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o council_n the_o only_a legate_n of_o the_o pope_n take_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a for_o their_o master_n and_o sign_n in_o this_o form_n theodorus_n humble_a priest_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o universal_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n agatho_n i_o have_v subscribe_v george_n humble_a priest_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o holdinge_v the_o place_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o universal_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n agatho_n i_o have_v subscribe_v john_n 18._o humble_a `_o deacon_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o universal_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n agatho_n i_o have_v subscribe_v and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n forbear_v it_o and_o sign_v thus_o george_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n new_a rome_n i_o have_v vote_v and_o subscribe_v the_o three_o answer_n be_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o confirm_v and_o 〈◊〉_d it_o altogether_o and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o how_o from_o this_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n pretend_v to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n because_o constantinople_n have_v be_v associate_v to_o the_o right_n of_o rome_n can_v it_o choose_v but_o follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o primitive_o and_o originallie_o for_o as_o for_o those_o that_o say_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v call_v ecumenical_a bishop_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n wherein_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v so_o call_v not_o know_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n 〈◊〉_d between_o the_o word_n catholic_a bishop_n which_o nilus_n attribute_n to_o the_o patriarch_n which_o signify_v general_a bishop_n of_o a_o region_n and_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n which_o signify_v universal_a bishop_n either_o of_o all_o the_o imperial_a orb_n or_o of_o the_o particular_a orb_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o constantinople_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o confute_v they_o it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o to_o ask_v they_o why_o then_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n never_o give_v the_o name_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n and_o why_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n never_o give_v it_o one_o to_o another_o but_o have_v yield_v it_o only_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o constantinople_n and_o why_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v stir_v up_o so_o many_o tragedy_n to_o participate_v therein_o and_o have_v allege_v that_o constantinople_n be_v the_o second_o rome_n and_o aught_o after_o she_o to_o enjoy_v the_o same_o right_n and_o privilege_n and_o in_o brief_a it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o to_o ask_v they_o why_o then_o both_o ancient_o and_o even_o to_o this_o day_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v attribute_n to_o himself_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o universality_n this_o advantage_n above_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n to_o call_v the_o general_a counsel_n of_o the_o east_n and_o to_o preside_v in_o they_o and_o to_o judge_v by_o appeal_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n it_o have_v be_v report_v say_v pope_n pelagius_n in_o the_o epistle_n before_o 1._o allege_v to_o those_o of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a that_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n inscribe_v himself_o universal_a and_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o his_o presumption_n have_v call_v you_o to_o a_o general_a council_n and_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n pat._n and_o leo_n the_o care_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o metropolitanship_n and_o bishopric_n and_o of_o all_o the_o monastery_n and_o church_n appertain_v to_o their_o proper_a patriarch_n but_o the_o patriarch_n ol_fw-mi constantinople_n may_v in_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o other_o sea_n when_o there_o have_v be_v no_o precedent_a consecration_n plant_v the_o cross_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o may_v decide_v and_o determine_v the_o controversy_n breed_v '_o in_o the_o other_o sea_n and_o nilus_n the_o twenty_o eight_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n 2._o of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o thirtith_n six_o of_o the_o six_o council_n honour_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n with_o like_a privilege_n to_o that_o of_o rome_n grant_v also_o manifest_o the_o appeal_n to_o that_o of_o constantinople_n and_o balsamon_n this_o privilege_n be_v not_o give_v 5._o to_o the_o pope_n alone_o to_o wit_n that_o every_o condemn_a bishop_n shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o elsewhere_o that_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v but_o a_o claim_n breed_v among_o the_o greek_n since_o the_o schism_n the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o 15._o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n or_o at_o least_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o synod_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o no_o appeal_n as_o those_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o as_o sardica_fw-la for_o the_o place_n of_o photius_n from_o whence_o they_o
infer_v that_o the_o patriarch_n be_v as_o the_o prefect_n of_o the_o pretorie_n from_o whence_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n that_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v hereafter_o and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o vice_n in_o the_o transcription_n of_o the_o copy_n and_o the_o four_o and_o last_o answer_n be_v that_o this_o claim_n be_v not_o long_o suffer_v in_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n for_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n who_o favour_v it_o have_v be_v extinguish_v by_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o phocas_n the_o same_o phocas_n interpose_v his_o temporal_a authority_n and_o forbadd_a he_o any_o more_o to_o call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n reserve_v that_o title_n only_o to_o the_o pope_n alone_o it_o be_v true_a that_o afterward_o the_o empire_n be_v again_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o two_o heretical_a emperor_n heraclius_n and_o constans_n successor_n to_o phocas_n the_o greek_n again_o set_v abroache_v this_o custom_n and_o not_o only_o set_v it_o abroache_v but_o have_v since_o continue_v it_o even_o to_o the_o last_o age_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o inscription_n of_o ibid._n 〈◊〉_d germanus_n constantius_n alexius_n and_o other_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n report_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n of_o the_o greek_n where_o they_o inscribe_v and_o sign_n universal_a patriarch_n only_o they_o use_v this_o distinction_n that_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n universal_a pope_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n universal_a patriarch_n and_o that_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o give_v way_n to_o conjecture_n for_o two_o reason_n the_o one_o because_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n be_v evident_o restrain_v by_o this_o distinction_n to_o the_o superiority_n only_o over_o the_o simple_a patriarch_n wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o comprehend_v as_o it_o appear_v when_o saint_n gregory_n say_v that_o if_o one_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d patriarch_n have_v do_v that_o against_o the_o pope_n letter_n that_o be_v 17._o do_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o salona_n such_o a_o disobedience_n can_v not_o have_v pass_v without_o a_o most_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o other_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o constantinopolitan_o 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n pope_n except_o among_o the_o monk_n to_o be_v a_o title_n more_o exalt_v then_o that_o of_o patriarch_n because_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n be_v more_o reverend_a among_o the_o bithynian_n a_o people_n near_o constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d who_o have_v accustom_v in_o the_o time_n of_o paganism_n to_o call_v jupiter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o of_o patriarch_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o latter_a greek_n have_v 〈◊〉_d although_o ignorantlie_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o patriarch_n of_o 〈◊〉_d bear_v the_o title_n of_o pope_n come_v from_o this_o that_o saint_n cyrillus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v be_v legate_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o balsamon_n note_v in_o these_o term_n the_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v be_v call_v pope_n for_o asmuch_o as_o saint_n cyrillus_n in_o the_o three_o council_n receive_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n celestinus_fw-la and_o nicephorus_n in_o these_o celestinus_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n refuse_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n for_o the_o danger_n of_o navigation_n but_o he_o write_v to_o cyrillus_n that_o he_o shall_v hold_v his_o place_n there_o and_o since_o that_o time_n the_o fame_n go_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o tiara_n and_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n and_o of_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n for_o whereas_o beda_n paul_n the_o deacon_n theophanes_n and_o anastasius_n the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o after_o anastasius_n the_o bibliothecary_n all_o the_o latin_a 〈◊〉_d say_v that_o phocas_n judge_v that_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o apostolic_a 〈◊〉_d church_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d herself_o the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o mistake_n that_o beda_n a_o english_a author_n and_o late_a by_o a_o hundred_o year_n than_o phocas_n have_v make_v of_o the_o question_n which_o be_v about_o the_o word_n universal_a and_o not_o about_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d and_o of_o this_o we_o have_v two_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a proof_n the_o one_o that_o saint_n gregory_n who_o be_v he_o only_o of_o all_o the_o author_n of_o the_o age_n that_o have_v speak_v of_o this_o contestation_n and_o who_o be_v himself_o one_o of_o the_o party_n contest_v testify_v that_o the_o dispute_n be_v about_o the_o word_n universal_a and_o not_o about_o the_o word_n first_o and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v always_o remain_v within_o the_o term_n of_o the_o second_o sea_n and_o have_v perpetual_o yield_v the_o first_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o never_o can_v it_o be_v find_v in_o any_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n have_v at_o any_o time_n take_v the_o title_n of_o the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o church_n contrariwise_o all_o the_o pen_n of_o antiquity_n have_v witness_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n never_o affect_v more_o than_o the_o second_o in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v always_o give_v the_o first_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o those_o pretence_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o prerogative_n of_o honour_n after_o the_o pope_n because_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socrates_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o honour_n after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n it_o be_v ordain_v she_o shall_v be_v honour_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o second_o after_o she_o it_o be_v esteem_v fit_a say_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o sea_n of_o new_a rome_n because_o of_o the_o second_o rank_n it_o hold_v after_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o other_o and_o in_o the_o three_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o six_o general_a council_n the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n call_v the_o pope_n the_o protothrone_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d pogonat_n call_v the_o patriarch_n synthrone_n of_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d set_v in_o one_o same_o throne_n with_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o the_o council_n entitle_v trullian_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v renew_v in_o these_o word_n we_o decree_v that_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o sea_n of_o ancient_a rome_n and_o shall_v be_v honour_v in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v the_o second_o after_o it_o and_o when_o nicephorus_n patriarch_n of_o 〈◊〉_d write_v against_o the_o iconoclast_n he_o call_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o divine_a patriarch_n nicephorus_n say_v zonarus_n speak_v of_o the_o icconomak_n write_v thus_o their_o be_v cut_n of_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n appear_v clear_o among_o other_o thing_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o bless_a 28._o archbishop_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o first_o and_o apostolicke_fw-mi sea_n and_o against_o this_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v object_v that_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n call_v constantinople_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o orthodoxal_a for_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o orthodoxal_a of_o his_o empire_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n within_o the_o which_o there_o remain_v the_o year_n before_o no_o patriarchall_a sea_n except_o 16._o that_o of_o constantinople_n but_o be_v possess_v by_o heretical_a patriarch_n as_o little_o be_v it_o to_o be_v object_v that_o justinian_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o other_o church_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o 24._o constantinople_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o of_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o saint_n sophia_n that_o he_o call_v the_o great_a church_n of_o constantinople_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o next_o follow_v discourse_n of_o the_o chartulary_n and_o by_o the_o seven_o law_n of_o the_o foregoe_v title_n where_o he_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a prelate_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o 131._o novel_a where_o the_o same_o justinian_n ordain_v that_o the_o 7._o sea_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v be_v the_o second_o after_o rome_n we_o
ordain_v say_v 131._o he_o according_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o counsel_n that_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n shall_v be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o prelate_n and_o that_o the_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n new_a rome_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n less_o yet_o be_v it_o to_o be_v object_v that_o some_o latter_a greek_n say_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n &_o chalcedon_n adjudge_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n for_o they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o those_o counsel_n be_v then_o to_o judge_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n but_o by_o prophetical_a spirit_n to_o judge_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n after_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v have_v lose_v it_o and_o to_o this_o end_n they_o pretend_v that_o the_o word_n after_o which_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n make_v use_v of_o when_o it_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o privilege_n of_o bonor_n after_o he_o of_o rome_n be_v not_o a_o note_n of_o order_n but_o a_o note_n of_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n foresee_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n that_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n shall_v one_o day_n fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o double_a procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o call_v they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o derivation_n from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n and_o by_o that_o occasion_n fall_v from_o her_o rank_n they_o ordain_v that_o after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v lose_v his_o primacy_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v possess_v it_o which_o zonarus_n although_o a_o greek_a and_o a_o schismatic_n report_n and_o confute_v in_o these_o word_n some_o say_v he_o believe_v that_o the_o 3._o preposition_n after_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o time_n and_o not_o a_o submission_n of_o honour_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o they_o make_v use_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o twenty_o eigth_n canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o 130._o nou._n of_o justinian_n insert_v in_o the_o ibid._n three_o title_n of_o the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o basilicke_n give_v the_o canon_n otherwise_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o a_o little_a below_o from_o hence_o it_o appear_v manifest_o that_o the_o preposition_n after_o signify_v submission_n and_o inferioritie_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n ibid._n ordain_v that_o new_a rome_n shall_v be_v honour_v with_o the_o same_o ecclessiasticall_a prerogative_n as_o old_a rome_n and_o shall_v be_v prefer_v in_o honour_n before_o all_o the_o other_o church_n be_v the_o second_o after_o she_o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o she_o shall_v be_v equal_o honour_v in_o all_o thing_n unless_o they_o will_v say_v that_o those_o divine_a father_n foresee_v by_o 28._o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v cut_n off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o orthodox_n and_o be_v banish_v from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a because_o of_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n they_o destine_v that_o of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v one_o day_n the_o first_o and_o so_o esteem_v it_o then_o worthy_a to_o enjoy_v in_o all_o thing_n equal_a privilege_n to_o wit_n when_o she_o shall_v have_v receive_v the_o primacy_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v in_o former_a time_n have_v it_o and_o again_o but_o to_o this_o sense_n the_o thirty_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n ibid._n trullian_n do_v oppose_v itself_o which_o have_v place_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n second_o after_o that_o of_o old_a rome_n add_v and_o after_o it_o that_o of_o alexandria_n and_o after_o that_o of_o alexandria_n that_o of_o antioch_n and_o after_o that_o of_o antioch_n that_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o not_o only_a nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n write_v against_o the_o latins_n confess_v ingenious_o that_o the_o greek_n never_o dispute_v for_o primacy_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o be_v not_o say_v he_o 1._o separate_v from_o peace_n for_o attribute_v to_o ourselves_o the_o primacy_n nor_o for_o refuse_v to_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o principality_n of_o rome_n for_o we_o never_o contest_v for_o primacy_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o even_o among_o the_o author_n of_o the_o last_o age_n duaren_n although_o a_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o pope_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o phocas_n interuen_v upon_o the_o word_n universal_a and_o not_o upon_o the_o word_n first_o behold_v his_o word_n boniface_n the_o three_o say_v he_o obtain_v with_o great_a contention_n from_o phocas_n to_o be_v make_v ecumenical_a 10._o and_o universal_a bishop_n only_o he_o show_v his_o gall_n in_o say_v that_o boniface_n obtain_v from_o phocas_n to_o be_v make_v universal_a bishop_n where_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o he_o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n shall_v be_v preserve_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o desire_v to_o participate_v in_o it_o may_v be_v exclude_v from_o it_o for_o neither_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n dispute_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n with_o the_o pope_n but_o pretend_v he_o ought_v to_o be_v therein_o associate_v with_o he_o neither_o do_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n begin_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o phocas_n but_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n above_o a_o hundred_o fifty_o year_n before_o phocas_n it_o have_v be_v exhibit_v to_o he_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o after_o that_o under_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n above_o fifty_o year_n before_o phocas_n it_o have_v be_v give_v he_o in_o constantinople_n itself_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o clerk_n of_o alexandria_n present_v to_o the_o council_n bear_v to_o 3._o the_o most_o holy_a and_o universal_a patriarch_n leo_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a general_a council_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n gregory_n who_o write_v to_o eulogius_n patriarch_n 34_o of_o alexandria_n your_o holiness_n know_v that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n have_v be_v offer_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o by_o the_o follow_a father_n to_o my_o predecessor_n and_o by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n &_o confirm_v by_o justinian_n where_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o regulars_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o syria_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o jerusalem_n to_o pope_n agapet_n be_v insert_v with_o this_o inscription_n to_o our_o holy_a and_o bless_a lord_n the_o archbishop_n of_o old_a rome_n and_o universal_a 2._o patriarch_n agapetus_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o be_v it_o that_o phocas_n sentence_n be_v upon_o the_o word_n universal_a it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o phocas_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o attribution_n of_o this_o title_n to_o the_o pope_n since_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o since_o under_o the_o empire_n of_o justinian_n it_o have_v be_v attribute_v to_o he_o or_o be_v it_o that_o it_o interuened_a upon_o the_o word_n first_o the_o original_a thereof_o can_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o phocas_n since_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n more_o than_o fifty_o year_n before_o phocas_n have_v write_v we_o ordain_v 131._o follow_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o counsel_n that_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o that_o the_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n new_a rome_n have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n and_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o other_o sea_n but_o it_o may_v be_v reply_v that_o s._n gregory_n do_v not_o only_o condemn_v the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n universal_a in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o btshop_n of_o constantinople_n but_o refuse_v it_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o for_o have_v admonish_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v this_o title_n neither_o to_o he_o nor_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v write_v to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v abstain_v according_a to_o this_o admonition_n from_o attribute_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n he_o reply_v i_o say_v you_o 30_o shall_v give_v such_o a_o title_n neither_o to_o i_o nor_o to_o any_o other_o and_o behold_v in_o the_o front_n of_o your_o epistle_n which_o you_o have_v address_v to_o myself_o which_o have_v make_v you_o this_o prohibition_n you_o have_v
in_o the_o epistle_n to_o john_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n who_o doubt_v but_o the_o church_n 63._o of_o constantinople_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o the_o most_o religious_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o our_o brother_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n protest_v continual_o he_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n follow_v to_o the_o same_o bishop_n if_o there_o be_v any_o crime_n find_v in_o bishop_n i_o know_v no_o bishop_n but_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a 64._o but_o when_o crime_n exact_v it_o not_o all_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o humility_n be_v equal_a he_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o john_n the_o defendant_n correct_v the_o judgement_n which_o have_v be_v give_v against_o the_o bishop_n steven_n if_o they_o answer_v he_o have_v neither_o metropolitan_a nor_o patriarch_n it_o must_v be_v reply_v that_o the_o cause_n shall_v have_v be_v hear_v and_o determine_v by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n he_o write_v in_o the_o fpistle_n to_o john_n bishop_n of_o panormus_n we_o admonish_v thou_o that_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a be_v not_o trouble_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o presumption_n of_o any_o for_o then_o the_o state_n of_o the_o member_n remain_v entire_a when_o 〈◊〉_d injury_n be_v do_v to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o faith_n he_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o natalis_n bishop_n of_o salona_n if_o one_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n have_v commit_v such_o a_o act_n 37._o so_o great_a a_o disobedience_n can_v not_o have_v pass_v without_o a_o grievous_a scandal_n he_o annul_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n against_o john_n priest_n of_o chalcedon_n reprove_v say_v he_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o foresay_a judge_n we_o declare_v he_o by_o our_o definition_n to_o 15._o be_v catholic_a and_o free_a from_o all_o heretical_a crime_n and_o elsewhere_o know_v 〈◊〉_d not_o 24._o that_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n the_o priest_n against_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n john_n of_o constantinople_n he_o have_v recourse_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o it_o have_v be_v define_v by_o our_o sentence_n he_o abrogate_a in_o his_o epistle_n to_o athanasius_n 〈◊〉_d regular_a of_o lycaonia_n the_o decree_n of_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n against_o he_o and_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o place_n we_o decree_v thou_o say_v he_o to_o be_v exempt_v 64._o from_o all_o blot_n of_o heretical_a forwardness_n and_o do_v grant_v thou_o free_a leave_n to_o return_v into_o thy_o monastery_n and_o to_o hold_v the_o same_o place_n and_o rank_n as_o thou_o do_v before_o he_o abrogate_a in_o the_o epistle_n to_o john_n archbishop_n of_o larissa_n in_o thessalia_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o same_o archbishop_n of_o larissa_n against_o adrian_n bishop_n of_o thebes_n and_o one_o of_o the_o fuffragans_n of_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o larissa_n and_o eclipse_v the_o bishopric_n of_o thebes_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o larissa_n and_o ordain_v that_o if_o the_o archbishop_n of_o larissa_n shall_v ever_o more_o undertake_v to_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o thebes_n he_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o he_o except_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n but_o by_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o ordain_v say_v he_o that_o thy_o brotherhood_n 7._o obtain_v from_o the_o power_n thou_o have_v before_o over_o the_o bishop_n of_o thebes_n and_o over_o his_o church_n and_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n of_o our_o predecessor_n for_o if_o any_o cause_n either_o of_o 6._o faith_n or_o of_o crime_n or_o of_o money_n be_v pretend_v against_o our_o say_a colleague_n adrian_n it_o may_v be_v judge_v if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o mean_a importance_n by_o our_o nuncios_fw-la which_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o royal_a city_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o constantinople_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o weight_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v report_v bither_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a to_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o audience_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n or_o for_o what_o occasion_n 〈◊〉_d thou_o do_v attempt_v to_o contradict_v this_o our_o decree_n know_v that_o we_o declare_v thou_o 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o sacred_a communion_n so_o as_o it_o may_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o thou_o unless_o in_o the_o article_n of_o death_n but_o with_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o final_o he_o abrogate_a in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n patriarch_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n who_o have_v confirm_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o larissa_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o say_v john_n primate_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n and_o condemn_v he_o to_o remain_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o day_n abrogate_a say_v he_o and_o annul_v the_o decree_n of_o thy_o sentence_n we_o decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bless_a prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o thou_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o sacred_a communion_n for_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o day_n now_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o in_o refuse_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a he_o refuse_v not_o therefore_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o superintendency_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o the_o order_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n chapt_n viii_o but_o calvin_n to_o fight_v against_o this_o doctrine_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o superior_a to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n use_v four_o principal_a mean_n first_o that_o the_o pope_n legate_n have_v not_o preside_v in_o the_o ancient_a general_n counsel_n the_o second_o that_o the_o pope_n call_v they_o not_o the_o three_o that_o the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o four_o that_o the_o canon_n of_o africa_n forbadd_a the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o sea_n by_o which_o calvin_n impertinent_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n to_o call_v himself_o prince_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o first_o mean_v he_o strive_v to_o prove_v by_o seven_o example_n which_o we_o have_v best_o confute_v all_o at_o a_o clapp_n for_o 〈◊〉_d they_o will_v object_v they_o to_o we_o in_o a_o second_o answer_n he_o produce_v then_o before_o all_o thing_n the_o order_n of_o the_o council_n of_o counsel_n nicaea_n which_o he_o ignorant_o call_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a not_o know_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n be_v a_o heretical_a council_n that_o the_o arrian_n hold_v at_o nicé_n in_o thrace_n to_o deceive_v the_o catholic_n by_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o word_n nice_a and_o nicaea_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d compound_v almost_o of_o the_o same_o letter_n the_o arrian_n say_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o asian_o to_o liberius_n cause_v to_o be_v sign_v by_o fraud_n and_o perjury_n at_o constantinople_n a_o faith_n contrary_n to_o that_o of_o the_o 11._o holy_a council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v from_o nice_a in_o thrace_n and_o socrates_n they_o transport_v themselves_o into_o a_o city_n of_o trace_v call_v nice_a and_o after_o a_o long_o sy_n aye_o hold_v there_o a_o other_o council_n &c._n &c._n to_o surprise_v the_o simple_a by_o the_o affinity_n 37._o of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o nicaea_n in_o bithynia_n and_o theodoret_n they_o bring_v many_o bishop_n against_o their_o will_n into_o a_o town_n 21._o of_o thrace_n who_o name_n be_v nice_a and_o sozomene_n pass_v through_o thrace_n they_o come_v into_o a_o city_n of_o the_o country_n call_v nice_a 〈◊〉_d there_o keep_v a_o conventicle_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o they_o do_v express_o at_o nice_a to_o the_o end_n to_o persuade_v the_o simple_a people_n to_o consent_v to_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 18._o by_o the_o nearness_n of_o the_o word_n and_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o decree_n which_o be_v make_v at_o nicaea_n for_o although_o stephanus_n do_v indeed_o put_v in_o a_o city_n of_o nicaea_n in_o thrace_n nevertheless_o beside_o that_o ammianus_n marcellinus_n say_v that_o the_o 31._o 〈◊〉_d of_o thrace_n situate_v upon_o the_o passage_n from_o italy_n to_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o same_o wherein_o the_o arrian_n have_v hold_v their_o false_a council_n be_v call_v nice_a the_o grecian_a ecclesiastical_a historian_n very_o notable_o mark_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o council_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o that_o of_o the_o annians_n upon_o
the_o name_n where_o of_o the_o fraud_n be_v found_v that_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n be_v hold_v at_o nicaea_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o of_o the_o heretic_n at_o nice_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o report_v the_o two_o imposture_n of_o the_o arrian_n use_v in_o the_o first_o which_o be_v to_o hold_v a_o mocke-councell_n at_o nice_a in_o thrace_n the_o word_n affinity_n of_o name_n and_o say_v that_o the_o arrian_n advise_v themselves_o of_o this_o 16._o fraud_n to_o surprise_v the_o simple_a by_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o name_n and_o in_o the_o second_o which_o be_v to_o hold_v a_o mock_n council_n at_o nicaea_n in_o bithynia_n they_o 27._o use_v the_o word_n identity_n of_o name_n and_o say_v that_o they_o commit_v this_o fraud_n to_o surprise_v the_o simple_a by_o the_o identity_n of_o name_n by_o which_o mean_n that_o in_o the_o write_n of_o saint_n hillary_n the_o town_n of_o nice_a in_o thrace_n where_o the_o conventicle_n of_o the_o arrian_n be_v hold_v be_v call_v nicaea_n it_o be_v a_o vice_n of_o the_o copyists_n which_o have_v impose_v it_o upon_o some_o learned_a man_n but_o in_o sum_n what_o soever_o the_o city_n of_o nice_a in_o thrace_n be_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o that_o of_o nicaea_n in_o bithynia_n where_o the_o catholic_a council_n be_v hold_v be_v other_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nicaea_n and_o not_o nice_a which_o i_o will_v not_o reproach_n to_o calvin_n be_v it_o not_o that_o all_o the_o author_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n agree_v in_o this_o note_n he_o be_v as_o inexcusable_a for_o have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o as_o many_o catholic_n which_o be_v deceive_v after_o he_o be_v excusable_a for_o have_v follow_v he_o bonafide_fw-la but_o here_o be_v to_o much_o of_o this_o digression_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o point_n he_o allege_n then_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n s._n athanasius_n 7._o preside_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n legate_n have_v only_o the_o four_o place_n i_o pray_v you_o say_v calvin_n if_o they_o have_v acknowledge_v julius_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n will_v those_o that_o represent_v his_o person_n have_v be_v cast_v back_o to_o the_o four_o place_n have_v athanasius_n preside_v in_o the_o general_a council_n where_o the_o order_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n ought_v to_o be_v siugular_o observe_v now_o what_o shall_v i_o answer_v to_o this_o but_o what_o the_o oracle_n say_v of_o chalcedon_n to_o wit_n that_o heresy_n be_v the_o land_n of_o the_o blind_a for_o all_o the_o author_n of_o ecclesiastical_a antiquity_n melet._n s._n epiphanius_n 14._o ruffinus_n 15._o socrates_n 27._o theodoret_n 17._o sózomene_n and_o arim._n s._n athanasius_n himself_o and_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n report_v by_o he_o to_o who_o we_o may_v over_o and_o above_o add_v s._n hillary_n testify_v that_o s._n athanasius_n be_v yet_o deacon_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o be_v not_o make_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n till_o five_o month_n after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o that_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n his_o predecessor_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o do_v not_o preside_v there_o so_o far_o be_v s._n athanasius_n that_o be_v then_o but_o his_o deacon_n from_o preside_a but_o only_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n there_o and_o be_v precede_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n it_o be_v true_a calvin_n may_v easy_o be_v pardon_v this_o error_n since_o he_o be_v so_o ignorant_a in_o the_o 23._o ecclesiastical_a history_n as_o to_o have_v believe_v that_o sabellius_n who_o be_v above_o threescore_o year_n before_o arrius_n and_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v since_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o but_o let_v we_o leave_v the_o error_n there_o and_o pass_v forward_o to_o the_o consequence_n 4._o calvin_n argument_n then_o against_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o sozomen_n write_v at_o this_o council_n assist_v from_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a macarius_n bishop_n of_o hist._n jerusalem_n eustachius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o 16._o as_o for_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o assist_v not_o at_o it_o because_o of_o his_o age_n but_o in_o his_o steed_n there_o assist_v vito_n and_o vincentius_n priest_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o from_o thence_o calvin_n infer_v that_o the_o legate_n of_o julius_n be_v only_o then_o in_o the_o four_o place_n and_o consequent_o that_o julius_n do_v not_o preside_v there_o now_o can_v i_o note_v in_o pass_v by_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v not_o hold_v under_o julius_n as_o calvin_n think_v but_o under_o sybuester_v the_o predecessor_n of_o julius_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o depravation_n of_o sozomen_n copy_n that_o have_v deceive_v calvin_n and_o before_o he_o cassiodorus_n beda_n and_o many_o other_o for_o first_o chron._n eusebius_n chron._n saint_n jerom_n 27._o socrates_n 3._o theodoret_n nic._n gelasius_n of_o cyzica_n and_o the_o ancient_a latin_a subscription_n and_o after_o all_o those_o hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n testify_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o time_n of_o sylvester_n and_o not_o of_o julius_n 20._o and_o second_o sozomene_n note_n that_o under_o the_o three_o consulship_n of_o crispus_n and_o constantine_n caesar_n which_o be_v he_o by_o who_o he_o have_v begin_v his_o history_n 2._o sylvester_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n now_o the_o three_o consulship_n of_o crispus_n and_o constantine_n end_v but_o four_o month_n before_o the_o overture_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o begin_v in_o the_o month_n of_o may_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o paulinus_n &_o julianus_n by_o which_o mean_v julius_n can_v not_o have_v send_v his_o legate_n see_v 9_o between_o sylvester_n and_o julius_n sozomene_n report_v that_o there_o be_v a_o papacy_n interpose_v which_o be_v that_o of_o marcus_n which_o according_a to_o s._n jerom_n ibid._n 25._o 2._o 20._o chron._n last_v eight_o month_n and_o three_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o sozomene_n observe_v 7._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n assist_v not_o at_o the_o council_n which_o be_v his_o extreme_a age_n or_o as_o theodoret_n say_v his_o profound_a age_n can_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o person_n of_o julius_n who_o live_v till_o thirty_o year_n after_o the_o council_n and_o four_a sozomene_n assign_v but_o twenty_o five_o year_n to_o julius_n 27._o papacy_n in_o which_o place_n we_o must_v read_v but_o fifteen_o with_o socrates_n and_o consequent_o he_o can_v not_o presuppose_v that_o julius_n have_v be_v pope_n in_o ibid._n the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n see_v aswell_o he_o as_o socrates_n affirm_v ibid._n that_o julius_n die_v after_o the_o death_n of_o magnentius_n gallus_n and_o silvanus_n ibid._n ibid._n that_o be_v to_o say_v thirty_o year_n after_o the_o council_n for_o magnentius_n be_v slay_v according_a to_o socrates_n under_o the_o six_o consulship_n of_o constantine_n and_o the_o second_o of_o gallus_n which_o be_v the_o twenty_o eigth_n year_n after_o the_o council_n and_o gallus_n under_o the_o seven_o of_o constantine_n and_o the_o three_o of_o his_o ownen_n which_o be_v the_o twenty_o nine_o year_n after_o the_o 15._o council_n and_o siluáńus_fw-la according_a to_o amianus_n marcellinus_n after_o gallus_n i_o add_v that_o julius_n will_v never_o have_v reproach_v to_o those_o of_o the_o east_n that_o 9_o they_o do_v not_o request_v he_o to_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v hold_v sixteen_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n if_o he_o have_v be_v so_o old_a 7._o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o he_o can_v not_o be_v there_o i_o add_v that_o sozomene_n have_v have_v much_o more_o cause_n to_o impute_v it_o to_o julius_n his_o age_n that_o he_o be_v not_o at_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v hold_v twenty_o 20._o two_o year_n after_o that_o of_o nicaea_n then_o that_o he_o be_v not_o at_o that_o of_o nicaea_n and_o final_o i_o add_v that_o sozomene_n himself_o decide_v the_o point_n of_o the_o question_n and_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o vice_n in_o the_o writing_n which_o be_v slip_v into_o the_o text_n of_o the_o history_n for_o after_o he_o have_v finish_v in_o the_o close_n up_o of_o the_o first_o book_n the_o whole_a narration_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n with_o these_o word_n here_o 〈◊〉_d this_o place_n end_v all_o that_o concern_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 1._o and_o after_o he_o have_v employ_v all_o the_o ninteen_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o book_n to_o set_v down_o what_o pass_v between_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o that_o of_o antioch_n against_o eustathius_n when_o he_o have_v finish_v the_o recital_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n against_o
eustathius_n he_o begin_v the_o twenty_o chapter_n 20._o of_o his_o second_o book_n with_o these_o word_n in_o this_o time_n marcus_n have_v for_o a_o short_a space_n hold_v the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o rome_n after_o sylvester_n julius_n take_v the_o government_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o maximus_n after_o macarius_n of_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v manifest_o either_o that_o the_o word_n julius_n which_o be_v in_o the_o precedent_a book_n where_o sozomene_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o his_o age_n be_v not_o there_o be_v a_o note_n which_o slip_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n and_o that_o sozomene_n have_v simple_o say_v as_o eusebius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o his_o 7._o age_n be_v not_o there_o or_o that_o instead_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o must_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v ancient_a or_o venerable_a but_o because_o we_o have_v handle_v this_o matter_n more_o at_o large_a elsewhere_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o preface_n compose_v by_o we_o at_o rome_n but_o publish_v without_o our_o name_n before_o gelasius_n of_o cyzica_n we_o 1._o will_v here_o content_v ourselves_o to_o remit_v the_o reader_n to_o that_o and_o the_o while_o we_o will_v examine_v the_o place_n of_o sozomene_n sozomene_n then_o say_v 〈◊〉_d write_v at_o this_o council_n assist_v of_o the_o sea_n 16._o apostolic_a macarius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n eustathius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v not_o there_o because_o of_o his_o age_n but_o in_o his_o steed_n there_o assist_v vito_n and_o uincentius_n priest_n of_o the_o same_o church_n this_o be_v true_a but_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o sozomene_n put_v the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o four_o place_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v evident_a even_o there_o that_o he_o attribure_v to_o they_o the_o first_o for_o be_v constrain_v to_o follow_v the_o tract_n of_o his_o discourse_n which_o oblige_v he_o since_o he_o have_v purpose_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolic_a prelate_n which_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n to_o begin_v with_o those_o that_o be_v there_o in_o person_n before_o he_o will_v make_v mention_n of_o those_o which_o be_v there_o but_o by_o their_o legate_n he_o ●●erted_v of_o set_a purpose_n the_o order_n of_o the_o enumeration_n and_o begin_v with_o the_o four_o and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n which_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v then_o but_o a_o patriarcke_n of_o honour_n and_o then_o go_v up_o increase_v to_o he_o of_o antioch_n who_o be_v the_o three_o and_o then_o come_v to_o he_o of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v the_o second_o to_o the_o end_n to_o keep_v the_o last_o place_n of_o the_o progress_n for_o the_o pope_n legate_n now_o what_o can_v be_v do_v more_o express_o and_o with_o more_o note_n to_o testify_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o man_n that_o be_v to_o describe_v a_o imperial_a diet_n where_o the_o emperor_n assist_v but_o representativelie_a will_v begin_v with_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n who_o have_v assist_v there_o in_o person_n but_o to_o keep_v the_o great_a dignity_n to_o the_o emperor_n will_v invert_v the_o order_n of_o the_o other_o prince_n and_o will_v say_v rise_v from_o the_o last_o to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n there_o assist_v at_o the_o imperial_a diet_n the_o marquese_n of_o brandenbourg_n the_o count_n palatine_n the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n the_o archbishop_n of_o collen_n the_o archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o archbishop_n of_o mentz_n and_o the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n and_o as_o for_o the_o emperor_n he_o be_v not_o there_o but_o depute_v two_o vicar_n there_o to_o hold_v his_o place_n shall_v he_o in_o do_v so_o give_v the_o last_o rank_n to_o the_o emperor_n or_o the_o first_o for_o that_o the_o order_n report_v in_o sozomene_n be_v the_o invert_v order_n and_o not_o the_o direct_a order_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o patriarch_n it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o calvin_n who_o cry_v out_o among_o the_o patriarch_n jerusalem_n 6._o have_v ●en●_n the_o last_o and_o by_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o teach_v we_o that_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o four_o of_o the_o patriarkship_n and_o antioch_n the_o three_o and_o alexandria_n the_o second_o and_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicoa_n itself_o which_o set_v alexandria_n before_o antioch_n and_o antioch_n before_o jerusalem_n and_o by_o the_o express_a report_n that_o socrates_n 12._o make_v of_o the_o direct_a order_n of_o the_o council_n take_v by_o the_o very_a synodical_a book_n of_o s._n athanasius_n which_o be_v thus_o osius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d uito_fw-la and_o vincentius_n priest_n alexander_n of_o egypt_n eustathius_n of_o great_a antioch_n macarius_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o which_o catalogue_n saint_n athanasius_n and_o socrates_n put_v osius_n the_o bishop_n and_o uito_fw-la and_o uincentius_n priest_n as_o hold_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o first_o rank_n and_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v the_o second_o patriarch_n in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o eustachius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v the_o three_o patriarch_n in_o the_o three_o and_o macarius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v the_o four_o patriarch_n in_o the_o four_o place_n but_o they_o will_v reply_v that_o eusebius_n and_o after_o he_o theodoret_n and_o so●omene_n make_v mention_v but_o of_o two_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n vito_n and_o vincentio_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o consequent_o that_o s._n athanasius_n and_o socrates_n can_v not_o place_n osius_n vito_n and_o vincentius_n as_o be_v all_o three_o legate_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o one_o same_o place_n to_o this_o reply_n then_o the_o answer_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d accustom_v to_o send_v two_o sort_n of_o legate_n to_o the_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v in_o the_o east_n the_o one_o bishop_n take_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o roman_a patriarchall_a church_n as_o arcadius_n and_o proiectas_fw-la bishop_n to_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n julian_n bishop_n of_o pozzoly_a to_o the_o second_o paschasinus_n bishop_n of_o lilybea_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n take_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n 〈◊〉_d vito_n and_o vincentius_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n archidamus_n and_o philo●elius_n to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n philip_n to_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephe●●●●_n boniface_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n be_v never_o at_o the_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v out_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o west_n but_o the_o pope_n hold_v at_o rome_n a_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n who_o resolution_n he_o send_v by_o a_o legation_n to_o the_o council_n of_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a division_n assemble_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d at_o 〈◊〉_d confirm_v by_o a_o council_n hold_v afterward_o that_o which_o have_v be_v decide_v at_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a division_n assemble_v in_o the_o east_n and_o from_o this_o concourse_n arise_v the_o absolute_a title_n of_o general_a council_n the_o legate_n then_o that_o the_o pope_n send_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o voice_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d counsel_n assemble_v in_o the_o east_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o take_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o represent_v in_o general_a the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 〈◊〉_d the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n and_o deacon_n take_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d clergy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o represent_v particular_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v some_o time_n the_o practice_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n in_o the_o western_a ex_fw-la pedition_n for_o when_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n send_v his_o embassage_n to_o rome_n to_o recover_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o add_v to_o it_o beside_o the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n acacius_n bishop_n of_o beroe_n in_o syria_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n who_o be_v say_v theodoret_n 23._o head_n of_o the_o legation_n and_o some_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o division_n to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v the_o consent_n of_o his_o patriarchall_a church_n with_o his_o particular_a church_n but_o let_v we_o leave_v those_o of_o the_o east_n and_o return_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n then_o
to_o cause_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o western_a church_n to_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v in_o the_o east_n send_v a_o legation_n compound_v of_o two_o kind_n of_o legate_n the_o one_o internal_a and_o take_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n who_o we_o with_o 〈◊〉_d the_o council_n of_o sardica_n call_v legate_n take_v out_o of_o the_o pope_n own_o side_n and_o the_o other_o external_a and_o take_v out_o of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o this_o legation_n be_v sometime_o make_v by_o two_o distinct_a commission_n as_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n the_o legate_n from_o the_o pope_n particular_a person_n and_o those_o from_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n be_v depute_v feveral_o and_o sometime_o by_o a_o joint_a deputation_n as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n now_o be_v those_o legate_n that_o we_o call_v internal_a that_o be_v to_o say_v take_v out_o of_o the_o particular_a clergy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o principal_a legate_n not_o in_o honour_n except_o when_o the_o pope_n legation_n and_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n be_v distinct_a but_o as_o for_o the_o instruction_n and_o in_o the_o report_n of_o the_o pope_n intention_n and_o therefore_o also_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o the_o particular_a voice_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o be_v often_o name_v alone_o as_o in_o the_o history_n of_o sozomene_n 17._o and_o in_o the_o list_n of_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n because_o they_o be_v only_a legate_n depute_v both_o from_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n 2._o and_o from_o the_o body_n of_o his_o church_n and_o of_o those_o example_n we_o have_v one_o remarkable_a in_o the_o commission_n that_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n that_o it_o send_v to_o constantinople_n for_o by_o this_o commission_n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n entitle_v philip_n priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_n legate_n from_o the_o pope_n in_o these_o word_n to_o philip_n priest_n hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n celestine_n to_o arcadius_n to_o 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n and_o entitle_v not_o arcadius_n legate_n to_o the_o pope_n though_o he_o be_v both_o bishop_n and_o legate_n to_o the_o pope_n altogether_o because_o philip_n be_v legat_n à_fw-fr latire_n from_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o legate_n take_v out_o of_o the_o very_a body_n of_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n and_o arcadius_n be_v legate_n from_o the_o patriarchall_a roman_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v legate_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o rome_n by_o mean_n whereof_o when_o sozomene_n and_o theodoret_n say_v there_o be_v two_o legate_n from_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o wit_n uito_fw-la and_o uincentius_n and_o that_o s._n athanasius_n and_o socrates_n put_v osius_n uito_fw-la and_o vincentius_n into_o one_o place_n they_o contradict_v not_o one_o a_o other_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o one_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o internal_a legate_n that_o we_o call_v legate_n a_o latere_fw-la of_o which_o osius_n be_v none_o and_o the_o other_o speak_v of_o the_o legate_n aswell_o internal_a as_o external_a whereof_o osius_n be_v one_o and_o in_o this_o the_o ancient_a greek_a 20._o and_o latin_a canonist_n agree_v with_o we_o for_o not_o only_a hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o be_v not_o suspect_v to_o favour_v the_o pope_n much_o writes_z at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n in_o the_o place_n of_o sylvester_n osius_n bishop_n of_o cordua_n and_o vito_n and_o vincentius_n priest_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n preside_v but_o alsoe_o dalmatius_n bishop_n of_o cyzica_n in_o asia_n one_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n who_o live_v near_o a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o after_o syntag._n he_o gelasius_n priest_n of_o cyzica_n who_o live_v under_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n a_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n ago_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o nic._n next_o age_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o from_o who_o pen_n be_v come_v to_o we_o the_o famous_a canon_n of_o the_o eucharist_n so_o much_o cite_v by_o calvin_n and_o by_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n write_v in_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o nicaea_n that_o osius_n be_v the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o that_o vito_n and_o vincentius_n be_v his_o colleague_n at_o this_o council_n say_v 5._o 〈◊〉_d of_o cyzica_n speak_v after_o dalmatius_n of_o cyzica_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n assist_v osius_n bishop_n of_o cordua_n who_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o great_a rome_n sylvester_n with_o the_o priest_n uito_fw-la and_o vincentius_n and_o not_o only_a gelasius_n of_o cyzica_n use_v these_o word_n but_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o greatestenemie_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o ever_o be_v among_o the_o greek_n allege_v they_o near_o eight_o hundred_o year_n ago_o in_o these_o biblioth_n word_n i_o have_v say_v he_o read_v a_o book_n in_o form_n of_o a_o history_n entitle_v the_o ibid._n act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n contain_v three_o tome_n and_o bear_v add_v he_o a_o little_a after_o the_o title_n of_o gelasius_n of_o cyzica_n in_o this_o book_n say_v he_o the_o author_n write_v that_o osius_n bishop_n of_o cordua_n and_o vito_n and_o vincentius_n roman_n priest_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n from_o the_o part_n of_o sylvester_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o only_a photius_n allege_v they_o but_o himself_o in_o his_o treaty_n of_o the_o synod_n dedicate_v to_o michael_n king_n of_o the_o bulgarian_n and_o report_v by_o euthymius_n write_v with_o vito_n and_o uincentius_n be_v join_v osius_n bishop_n of_o cordua_n panopl_n and_o indeed_o for_o what_o other_o cause_n shall_v osius_n simple_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o subject_a in_o the_o first_o instance_n catalogue_n to_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o sevilla_n in_o spain_n and_o by_o appeal_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n have_v precede_v all_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n yea_o in_o the_o east_n it_o elib_n self_n he_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o eluira_n that_o we_o call_v elibertin_n compose_v of_o 1._o nineteen_o bishop_n of_o spain_n have_v hold_v but_o the_o second_o or_o according_a to_o other_o collect._n the_o eleaventh_o place_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n compound_v of_o two_o hisp._n hundred_o bishop_n have_v have_v no_o rank_n among_o the_o principal_a bishop_n of_o loais_fw-fr the_o council_n but_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n for_o which_o uito_fw-la &_o uincentius_n simple_a 5._o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n precede_v they_o to_o wit_n for_o the_o order_n of_o his_o legation_n for_o to_o precede_v they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o particular_a condition_n of_o his_o person_n neither_o age_n nor_o antiquity_n of_o promotion_n nor_o learning_n nor_o desert_n have_v ever_o give_v rank_n in_o general_a counsel_n to_o any_o simple_a bishop_n before_o archbishop_n much_o less_o before_o the_o patriarch_n otherwise_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o sea_n have_v be_v introduce_v in_o vain_a and_o the_o personal_a condition_n of_o osius_n be_v good_a to_o make_v his_o person_n reverend_a but_o not_o to_o make_v he_o preside_v in_o a_o general_a council_n where_o the_o order_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n say_v calvin_n ought_v to_o be_v singular_o observe_v 7._o joint_o that_o even_o in_o all_o these_o quality_n there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o council_n that_o surpass_v he_o for_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o persecution_n for_o the_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o one_o of_o the_o city_n of_o thebaida_n who_o have_v lose_v a_o knee_n under_o 4._o the_o persecution_n of_o maximinus_n and_o a_o eye_n who_o scar_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n be_v wont_a to_o kiss_v be_v not_o he_o there_o potamon_n bishop_n of_o heraclea_n 11._o in_o egypt_n who_o s._n epiphanius_n call_v great_a bishop_n and_o great_a 〈◊〉_d and_o who_o in_o the_o same_o persecution_n have_v have_v a_o eye_n put_v out_o be_v not_o 68_o he_o there_o paul_n bishop_n of_o neocesarea_n upon_o euphrates_n who_o hand_n have_v be_v maim_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n in_o the_o persecution_n of_o licinius_n be_v not_o he_o 7._o there_o and_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o prophetie_n and_o work_n of_o miracle_n spiridion_n bishop_n of_o trimithunta_n in_o cyprus_n that_o ruffinus_n call_v a_o man_n of_o the_o 5._o order_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v not_o he_o there_o james_n that_o great_a bishop_n of_o antioch_n in_o mygdonia_n otherwise_o call_v nisibis_n that_o theodoret_n say_v 7._o have_v raise_v again_o the_o dead_a and_o who_o he_o entitle_v the_o prince_n of_o
the_o troop_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o he_o there_o s._n nicholas_n bishop_n of_o myra_n in_o lycia_n a_o man_n for_o 〈◊〉_d manner_n and_o for_o miracle_n apostolical_a be_v not_o he_o there_o and_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o credit_n and_o estimation_n with_o the_o emperor_n even_o he_o who_o credit_n we_o learn_v from_o osius_n to_o wit_n eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o palestina_n who_o the_o emperor_n from_o his_o childhood_n have_v know_v in_o the_o east_n 13._o and_o who_o he_o testify_v in_o his_o conceit_n to_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 59_o and_o to_o who_o beside_o so_o many_o other_o letter_n and_o mark_n of_o familiarity_n he_o direct_v the_o first_o commission_n for_o the_o re-establishment_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o east_n 44._o and_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o transcription_n of_o the_o sacred_a book_n 36._o for_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v not_o he_o there_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n who_o afterward_o baptize_v the_o emperor_n and_o who_o be_v metropolitan_a of_o the_o province_n where_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v and_o bishop_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o the_o east_n and_o of_o the_o city_n where_o the_o emperor_n reside_v a_o man_n say_v socrates_n and_o sozomene_n endue_v with_o great_a 6._o authority_n and_o very_o prudent_a and_o honour_v in_o the_o palace_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o eclipse_n of_o his_o favour_n with_o the_o emperor_n happen_v not_o till_o after_o the_o 15._o council_n and_o last_v but_o a_o moment_n be_v not_o he_o there_o alexander_n bishop_n manumittuntur_fw-la of_o the_o future_a imperial_a city_n of_o byzantium_n convert_v by_o exchange_n of_o name_n into_o constantinople_n be_v not_o he_o there_o paphnutius_fw-la of_o who_o socrates_n say_v the_o emperor_n honour_v he_o extraordinary_o and_o keep_v he_o ordinary_o in_o his_o court_n be_v not_o he_o there_o protogenes_n bishop_n of_o sardica_n to_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v address_v his_o first_o law_n for_o the_o manumission_n in_o church_n 70._o and_o to_o osius_n the_o second_o law_n be_v not_o he_o there_o 35._o and_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o learning_n the_o same_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n of_o who_o the_o emperor_n say_v that_o he_o more_o than_o admire_v his_o knowledge_n and_o his_o 19_o study_n be_v not_o he_o there_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o theodoret_n call_v the_o admirable_a bishop_n be_v not_o he_o there_o eustachius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o make_v the_o oration_n of_o the_o council_n and_o who_o sozomene_n entitle_v the_o miracle_n of_o eloquence_n be_v not_o he_o there_o and_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o reverence_n for_o age_n the_o same_o alexander_n of_o alexandria_n 9_o who_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n call_v the_o old_a man_n and_o who_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n exalt_v for_o have_v at_o that_o age_n sustain_v so_o many_o labour_n be_v not_o he_o there_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n of_o threescore_o and_o three_o year_n of_o age_n whether_o he_o be_v then_o bishop_n in_o chief_a 3._o or_o as_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n will_v have_v it_o coadiutor_n and_o legate_n of_o metrophanes_n yet_o elder_a than_o himself_o be_v not_o he_o there_o and_o if_o we_o must_v speak_v of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o promotion_n zeno_n who_o saint_n epiphanius_n call_v antique_a bishop_n of_o phenicia_n evil_o qualify_v 69._o by_o the_o list_n of_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o council_n bishop_n of_o tyre_n be_v not_o he_o ibid._n there_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n before_o bishop_n of_o berith_n who_o saint_n epiphanius_n call_v the_o ancient_a old-man_n of_o nicomedia_n be_v not_o he_o there_o and_o in_o brief_a a_o infinite_a number_n of_o other_o bishop_n that_o eusebius_n for_o the_o antiquity_n aswell_o of_o their_o age_n as_o of_o their_o promotion_n comprehend_v in_o the_o 9_o first_o clause_n of_o this_o passage_n some_o where_o honour_v because_o of_o their_o length_n of_o time_n other_o flourish_v in_o the_o rigour_n of_o their_o age_n and_o spirit_n other_o were_z new_o enter_v into_o the_o course_n of_o their_o charge_n be_v not_o they_o there_o for_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o age_n of_o osius_n be_v account_v among_o those_o thing_n that_o purchase_v he_o reverence_n that_o be_v more_o than_o twenty_o year_n after_o the_o 8._o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o that_o saint_n athanasius_n call_v he_o the_o father_n of_o bishop_n and_o say_v he_o die_v a_o centenarie_a it_o be_v near_o forty_o year_n after_o the_o agent_n council_n of_o nicaea_n but_o if_o none_o of_o these_o what_o personal_a quality_n soever_o he_o have_v no_o not_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n call_v the_o master_n of_o the_o council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v master_n for_o sufficiency_n 9_o do_v advance_v himself_o a_o finger_n breadth_n beyond_o the_o degree_n of_o his_o dignity_n for_o what_o cause_n shall_v osius_n for_o his_o particular_a condition_n have_v be_v precedent_n of_o all_o the_o assembly_n for_o to_o say_v osius_n preside_v there_o as_o the_o emperor_n deputy_n the_o emperor_n be_v in_o person_n at_o the_o council_n and_o so_o can_v have_v no_o deputy_n and_o beside_o that_o he_o preside_v not_o there_o but_o be_v set_v there_o beneath_o the_o bishop_n and_o in_o a_o low_a seat_n and_o after_o he_o have_v attend_v and_o desire_v the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o show_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o 10._o religion_n he_o be_v of_o the_o number_n not_o of_o the_o judge_n but_o of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v and_o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o arles_n where_o the_o emperor_n 1_o constantine_n assist_v also_o in_o person_n and_o osius_n with_o he_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o donatist_n against_o the_o judge_n of_o that_o council_n wherein_o osius_n be_v enwrap_v not_o only_o osius_n who_o be_v already_o then_o in_o 7._o as_o great_a credit_n with_o that_o emperor_n witness_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o iudow_a the_o church_n of_o africa_n do_v not_o preside_v there_o but_o even_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o place_v among_o the_o first_o bishop_n but_o comprehend_v 〈◊〉_d under_o the_o curtain_n of_o silence_n with_o the_o troop_n and_o multitude_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n where_o osius_n preside_v aswell_o as_o at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n he_o be_v so_o evil_o will_v by_o constantius_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o empire_n who_o be_v a_o arrian_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v say_v there_o to_o preside_v in_o quality_n neither_o of_o a_o favourite_n or_o of_o a_o deputy_n to_o the_o emperor_n contrariwise_o the_o care_n he_o have_v to_o make_v himself_o procurator_n and_o promoter_n of_o the_o pope_n right_n and_o the_o instance_n he_o make_v for_o the_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n peter_n memory_n and_o the_o iustificative_a 5._o relation_n of_o the_o counsel_n which_o protogenes_n bishop_n of_o sardica_n and_o he_o dedicate_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o protestation_n that_o he_o and_o the_o other_o bishop_n insert_v into_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o hold_v 12._o he_o for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o convenient_a gal._n thing_n that_o from_o all_o province_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o prelate_n of_o god_n shall_v refer_v all_o affair_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n show_v sufficient_o that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o part_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o of_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o preside_v there_o and_o from_o this_o it_o derogate_v not_o that_o saint_n athanasius_n make_v the_o recital_n of_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n put_v the_o signature_n of_o osius_n without_o a_o title_n of_o legation_n and_o before_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o those_o word_n osius_n of_o spain_n julius_n of_o rome_n by_o archidamas_n and_o philoxemus_fw-la 2._o for_o beside_o that_o this_o recital_n follow_v not_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o dignity_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o nessus_n a_o african_a bishop_n who_o be_v place_v there_o before_o gratus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o moreover_o that_o he_o use_v this_o order_n for_o as_o much_o as_o osius_n sign_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n immediate_o and_o by_o himself_o and_o the_o pope_n mediatelie_o and_o by_o another_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v bishop_n have_v a_o vote_n of_o their_o own_o in_o the_o council_n and_o the_o priest_n not_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o the_o legation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n be_v
distinct_a as_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n the_o legate_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n because_o they_o where_o bishop_n take_v the_o quality_n of_o difinitor_n and_o sign_v in_o this_o form_n john_n unworthy_a bishop_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o port_n and_o legate_n of_o all_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o 18_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a sea_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v define_v and_o subscribe_v and_o the_o legate_n from_o the_o particular_a person_n of_o the_o pope_n abstain_v from_o it_o and_o 18._o sign_v thus_o theodorus_n humble_a priest_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a and_o universal_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n agatho_n i_o have_v subscribe_v now_o saint_n athanasius_n have_v a_o interest_n not_o to_o diminish_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o vote_v for_o his_o justification_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o not_o to_o loose_v that_o of_o osius_n for_o this_o cause_n then_o he_o procure_v he_o to_o sign_n not_o as_o a_o simple_a reporter_n of_o the_o pope_n voice_n but_o as_o have_v right_a himself_o to_o vote_n and_o say_v his_o opinion_n in_o the_o council_n and_o reserve_v to_o archidamus_n and_o philoxemus_fw-la who_o be_v but_o simple_a priest_n and_o have_v no_o voice_n of_o their_o own_o in_o the_o council_n the_o office_n to_o represent_v the_o voice_n and_o the_o signature_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o truth_n with_o what_o a_o face_n can_v osius_n have_v accept_v to_o preside_v in_o the_o counsel_n whether_o of_o nicaea_n or_o sardica_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o emperor_n he_o that_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n go_v script_n not_o about_o to_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o command_v not_o we_o in_o such_o matter_n but_o rather_o learn_v of_o we_o god_n have_v commit_v the_o empire_n to_o thou_o and_o the_o government_n solit_fw-la of_o the_o church_n to_o us._n and_o s._n athanasius_n how_o can_v hè_fw-fr have_v past_a without_o censure_n he_o that_o cry_v out_o that_o a_o emperor_n preside_v in_o ecclesiastical_a 〈◊〉_d judgement_n be_v the_o abomination_n foretell_v by_o daniel_n for_o that_o afterward_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o emperor_n marcian_n preside_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o thing_n ecclesiastical_a but_o for_o order_n and_o temporal_a policy_n to_o the_o end_n to_o hinder_v such_o sedition_n as_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o testify_v that_o the_o presidencie_n of_o the_o emperor_n whas_fw-ge not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o council_n as_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o for_o comeliness_n q._n and_o ornament_n thou_o govern_v we_o there_o say_v they_o to_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d the_o head_n do_v the_o member_n contribute_v thy_o good_a will_n by_o those_o that_o hold_v thy_o place_n and_o the_o faithful_a emperor_n preside_v there_o for_o ornament_n or_o to_o cause_v good_a order_n to_o be_v observe_v there_o and_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonat_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o rolle_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o layck_n the_o most_o religious_a and_o christian_a emperor_n preside_v that_o have_v reference_n not_o to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o synod_n but_o to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o senate_n and_o of_o the_o imperial_a office_n for_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a assembly_n in_o the_o hall_n of_o the_o council_n the_o one_o that_o of_o the_o senator_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o empire_n wherein_o the_o emperor_n preside_v and_o the_o other_o that_o of_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o bishop_n wherein_o the_o pope_n legate_n preside_v as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o verbal_a process_n of_o the_o counsel_n which_o after_o it_o have_v decree_v seqq_n the_o assembly_n of_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o empire_n add_v the_o holy_a and_o general_a council_n be_v also_o assemble_v call_v by_o the_o imperial_a ordinance_n in_o this_o royal_a and_o god-protected_n city_n to_o wit_n the_o most_o reverend_a priest_n theodore_n and_o george_n and_o the_o most_o reverend_a john_n the_o deacon_n hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o sacred_a archbishop_n 1._o of_o old_a rome_n agatho_n and_o george_n the_o most_o holy_a and_o sacred_a archbishop_n of_o this_o famous_a city_n of_o constantinople_n new_a rome_n and_o by_o the_o protestation_n that_o the_o same_o emperor_n send_v to_o rome_n for_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o council_n in_o these_o word_n i_o will_v not_o sit_v as_o emperor_n with_o they_o and_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v emperiouslie_o but_o as_o one_o of_o they_o and_o what_o the_o prelate_n shall_v ordain_v i_o will_v execute_v and_o final_o by_o the_o modesty_n which_o he_o use_v in_o the_o signature_n in_o sign_v last_o and_o after_o all_o the_o bishop_n for_o whereas_o in_o the_o false_a council_n entitle_v trullian_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n 〈◊〉_d his_o son_n sign_v contrary_a to_o his_o father_n modesty_n before_o all_o the_o prelate_n it_o be_v a_o irregular_a action_n and_o do_v in_o a_o erroneous_a and_o illegitimat_fw-la council_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o and_o then_o if_o credit_n with_o emperor_n shall_v have_v give_v any_o bishop_n the_o prerogative_n 15._o to_o preside_v in_o council_n what_o bishop_n have_v ever_o more_o credit_n with_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n then_o 〈◊〉_d bisohp_n of_o murse_n to_o who_o merit_n 2._o and_o not_o to_o his_o soldier_n valour_n he_o say_v he_o ought_v the_o victory_n over_o magnensius_fw-la and_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o empire_n and_o upon_o who_o industry_n and_o counsel_n he_o depend_v in_o all_o affair_n of_o religion_n who_o not_o witdstanding_n never_o preside_v in_o any_o one_o of_o the_o many_o counsel_n hold_v under_o constantius_n or_o what_o bishop_n have_v ever_o more_o credit_n with_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d than_o theodorus_n archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n who_o be_v his_o 37._o dear_a and_o trusty_a counsellor_n and_o assessor_n or_o rather_o the_o soul_n and_o oracle_n of_o all_o his_o counsel_n who_o notwithstanding_o preside_v not_o in_o the_o five_o general_n council_n but_o sit_v there_o in_o his_o simple_a rank_n of_o metropolitan_a below_o 8._o all_o the_o patriarch_n and_o legate_n of_o the_o patriarch_n now_o if_o osius_n have_v preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o merit_n and_o condition_n of_o his_o person_n must_v not_o the_o election_n have_v be_v make_v before_o by_o a_o solemn_a and_o authentical_a act_n in_o the_o council_n or_o if_o he_o have_v preside_v there_o by_o delegation_n from_o the_o emperor_n must_v not_o the_o same_o emperor_n have_v signify_v it_o and_o enrol_v his_o commission_n in_o the_o council_n for_o if_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n find_v of_o it_o because_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n be_v lose_v wherefore_o shall_v they_o rather_o exact_v testimony_n of_o the_o delegation_n of_o osius_n by_o the_o pope_n then_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o content_v themselves_o that_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o that_o which_o be_v save_v from_o the_o shypwracke_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o follow_a age_n and_o have_v be_v collect_v by_o dalmasius_fw-la or_o other_o yet_o more_o ancient_a and_o by_o gelasius_n of_o cyzica_n greek_n and_o thrace_n author_n the_o one_o write_v a_o hundred_o year_n &_o the_o other_o a_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o latter_a and_o schismatical_a greek_n themselves_o as_o 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o do_v plain_o inform_v we_o of_o it_o in_o affirm_v that_o osius_n be_v 〈◊〉_d legate_n with_o vito_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o socrates_n do_v tacit_o inform_v we_o so_o in_o set_v osius_n vito_n and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o place_n and_o before_o the_o second_o 62._o patriarch_n for_o where_o 〈◊〉_d and_o after_o he_o socrates_n and_o sozamene_n say_v that_o from_o before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n have_v send_v osius_n from_o nicomedia_n into_o egypt_n to_o assay_v to_o pacify_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o commission_n happen_v not_o seven_o year_n 〈◊〉_d the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o they_o conceive_v that_o will_v salve_v the_o act_n entitle_v from_o silvester_n but_o the_o next_o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o sozomen_n history_n who_o putt_v the_o call_n of_o the_o 17._o council_n of_o nicaea_n present_o after_o the_o return_n of_o osius_n what_o can_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v with_o the_o advice_n and_o authority_n of_o pope_n silvester_n or_o rather_o what_o can_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o
of_o it_o the_o one_o be_v socrates_n who_o say_v after_o saint_n athanasius_n 5._o at_o this_o council_n assist_v osius_n bishop_n of_o cordula_n uito_fw-la and_o uincentius_n priest_n the_o other_o dalmatius_n of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o socrates_n who_o write_v and_o galatius_n of_o cyzica_n fifty_o year_n after_o he_o at_o this_o council_n assist_v osius_n legate_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o great_a rome_n silvester_n with_o the_o priest_n uito_fw-la and_o uincentius_n but_o as_o for_o eusebius_n he_o say_v thereof_o nothing_o at_o all_o contrariwise_o he_o affirm_v cleerelie_o that_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o he_o reserve_v to_o name_v last_o as_o the_o seal_n and_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o council_n 7._o hold_v there_o the_o rank_n of_o their_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n regnant_a say_v he_o assist_v not_o there_o because_o of_o his_o age_n but_o his_o priest_n keep_v his_o rank_n there_o now_o by_o what_o arithmetic_n can_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n keep_v there_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n if_o osius_n possess_v the_o first_o place_n otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o colleague_n and_o fill_v up_o one_o selfesame_a place_n with_o they_o moreover_o how_o have_v not_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n lose_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n their_o right_n of_o the_o second_o three_o 7._o and_o fowrth_a seat_n in_o the_o counsel_n against_o the_o express_a protestation_n that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n make_v to_o preserve_v their_o privilege_n if_o osius_n uito_fw-la and_o uincentius_n have_v hold_v diverse_a place_n there_o and_o not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o place_n and_o how_o have_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n celebrate_v in_o the_o same_o age_n that_o the_o grecian_n call_v the_o second_o general_a council_n when_o they_o will_v erect_v constantinople_n into_o a_o patriarkship_n ordain_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v hold_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n if_o in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o hold_v the_o first_o place_n and_o how_o can_v the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v complain_v that_o dioscorus_n have_v presume_v to_o undertake_v to_o preside_v in_o a_o pretend_a general_a council_n without_o the_o pope_n authority_n 1._o which_o have_v never_o be_v lawful_a nor_o ever_o have_v be_v do_v if_o osius_n have_v preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n without_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o how_o can_v the_o emperor_n justinian_n have_v say_v we_o decree_v follow_v all_o the_o sour_a holy_a 131._o concell_n that_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o prelate_n if_o in_o the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o general_a counsel_n a_o simple_a bishop_n of_o spain_n have_v be_v the_o first_o otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o delegate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o final_o how_o come_v it_o that_o a_o action_n so_o irregular_a as_o that_o by_o which_o a_o man_n who_o be_v neither_o metropolitan_a nor_o patriarch_n have_v precede_v all_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n and_o even_o in_o the_o east_n be_v not_o note_v among_o the_o extraordinary_a example_n of_o antiquity_n and_o how_o come_v it_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o patriarch_n that_o theognis_n bishop_n of_o nicaea_n the_o city_n wherein_o the_o council_n be_v celebrate_v and_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n head_n of_o the_o arrian_n faction_n and_o metropolitan_a of_o the_o province_n of_o bithynia_n wherein_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v and_o bishop_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o east_n do_v not_o oppose_v it_o as_o well_o as_o when_o fortunius_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n be_v at_o constantinople_n the_o metropolitan_o subject_n to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n oppose_v this_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o carthage_n shall_v have_v cause_v the_o act_n of_o the_o second_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v search_v to_o see_v what_o place_n the_o legate_n of_o primosus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o carthage_n have_v there_o and_o how_o chance_v it_o that_o they_o and_o the_o other_o arrian_n who_o after_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n and_o constans_n the_o catholic_a brother_n to_o constantius_n the_o heretical_a emperor_n stir_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o reverse_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o conncell_n of_o nicaea_n and_o sardica_n can_v not_o allege_v for_o a_o mean_n of_o nullity_n that_o osius_n have_v preside_v irregular_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o if_o he_o have_v preside_v otherwise_o then_o as_o represent_v the_o person_n of_o he_o to_o who_o the_o right_a to_o preside_v do_v appertain_v but_o the_o question_n in_o the_o matter_n that_o calvin_n propound_v be_v not_o between_o the_o pope_n and_o osius_n who_o at_o least_o be_v one_o of_o the_o suffragans_fw-la or_o rear_v suffragans_fw-la of_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o pope_n patriarchall_a division_n and_o by_o consequence_n what_o rank_n soever_o he_o hold_v it_o can_v not_o tend_v to_o the_o pope_n prejudice_n for_o be_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n send_v he_o from_o the_o west_n into_o the_o east_n with_o the_o title_n of_o legate_n or_o be_v it_o that_o be_v already_o there_o the_o pope_n have_v choose_v and_o design_v he_o by_o letter_n to_o represent_v his_o person_n or_o be_v it_o that_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o have_v chance_v but_o that_o be_v at_o the_o council_n he_o have_v be_v entreat_v as_o the_o most_o ancient_a bishop_n there_o present_a of_o the_o pope_n patriarkship_n to_o join_v himselfo_o with_o his_o deputy_n to_o help_v they_o to_o present_v he_o it_o can_v be_v no_o way_n to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o his_o patriarch_n it_o be_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o whether_o at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o pope_n deputy_n be_v set_v after_o the_o other_o three_o patriarch_n 12._o or_o before_o they_o now_o of_o this_o athanasius_n and_o socrates_n put_v we_o out_o of_o doubt_n when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o council_n be_v 18._o osius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n vito_n and_o uincentius_n priest_n alexander_n of_o egypt_n eustachius_n patriarch_n of_o great_a antioch_n and_o macarius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o to_o this_o that_o eustachius_n patriarch_n of_o anthioch_n or_o as_o other_o say_v eusebius_n archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n make_v the_o oration_n of_o the_o council_n to_o the_o em_n peror_n and_o be_v set_v at_o the_o head_n of_o the_o bishop_n on_o the_o rigth_n hand_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o who_o his_o speech_n be_v direct_v it_o suffice_v to_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o the_o high_a qualify_v be_v not_o choose_v to_o preach_v the_o oration_n but_o the_o most_o eloquent_a among_o who_o eustachius_n that_o sozomene_n call_v admirable_a in_o eloquence_n hold_v the_o first_o 18._o rank_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o right_a hand_n at_o the_o come_n in_o and_o reckon_n 10._o from_o the_o place_n where_o constantine_n be_v who_o have_v his_o back_n turn_v towards_o the_o door_n and_o his_o face_n to_o the_o father_n at_o the_o first_o encounter_n of_o who_o in_o come_v from_o the_o door_n he_o stay_v be_v not_o the_o most_o honourable_a place_n in_o the_o council_n but_o the_o right_a hand_n at_o go_v forth_o and_o to_o reckon_v from_o the_o place_n where_o the_o gospel_n be_v set_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chabcedon_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n seqq_fw-fr hold_v under_o menas_n where_o the_o precedent_n be_v set_v at_o the_o left_a hand_n from_o the_o side_n where_o they_o come_v in_o which_o be_v the_o right_a hand_n from_o the_o side_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o other_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o epehsus_fw-la chapt_n ix_o the_o second_o objection_n of_o calvin_n be_v take_v from_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o couch_v by_o he_o in_o these_o word_n att_n the_o first_o 7_o council_n of_o ephesus_n say_v calvin_n pope_n celestin_n use_v a_o oblique_a practice_n pray_v saint_n cylill_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n who_o otherwise_o be_v to_o preside_v there_o to_o hold_v his_o place_n and_o the_o pope_n ambassador_n be_v there_o in_o a_o inferior_a place_n but_o with_o what_o oblique_a faith_n be_v this_o do_v for_o first_o pope_n celestine_n have_v make_v saint_n cyrill_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n his_o vicar_n in_o the_o east_n before_o any_o council_n be_v speak_v of_o to_o be_v keep_v at_o ephesus_n and_o have_v give_v he_o commission_n to_o
execute_v at_o constantinople_n the_o rudgement_n pronounce_v at_o rome_n against_o nestorius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n add_v to_o thou_o say_v pope_n celestine_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o impress_n saint_n cyrill_n the_o authority_n of_o our_o sea_n and_o use_v with_o power_n the_o representation_n 16._o of_o our_o place_n thou_o shall_v execute_v exact_o and_o constant_o this_o sentence_n to_o wit_n that_o if_o within_o ten_o day_n reckon_v since_o the_o day_n of_o this_o monitory_a nestorius_n do_v not_o anathematise_v by_o write_v his_o wicked_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n thy_o holiness_n shall_v provide_v for_o that_o church_n without_o delay_n and_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v whole_o cut_v of_o from_o our_o body_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o nestorius_n read_v and_o insert_v into_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n we_o have_v send_v the_o form_n of_o this_o judgement_n with_o all_o the_o verbal_a 17_o process_n to_o our_o holy_a fellow-bishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o be_v make_v our_o uicar_n may_v execute_v these_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o clergy_n of_o constantinople_n we_o have_v confer_v our_o uicarship_n because_o of_o the_o far_a distance_n 17_o of_o place_n to_o our_o holy_a brother_n cyrillus_n and_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o relation_n to_o the_o emperor_n the_o sentence_n of_o he_o and_o he_o before_o there_o 65._o be_v any_o synod_n assemble_v at_o ephesus_n the_o most_o holy_a celestine_n bishop_n of_o great_a 〈◊〉_d have_v testify_v by_o his_o letter_n and_o have_v commit_v to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o belove_a of_o god_n cyrill_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v his_o uicar_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n himself_o in_o the_o epistle_n against_o nestorius_n address_v to_o the_o constantinopolitan_o we_o be_v constrain_v say_v he_o to_o signify_v to_o he_o by_o synodical_a 15._o letter_n that_o if_o 〈◊〉_d speedy_o that_o be_v to_o say_v within_o the_o time_n define_v by_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o renounce_v not_o the_o novelty_n of_o his_o doctrine_n he_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o communion_n with_o we_o nor_o place_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o second_o celestine_n make_v saint_n cyrill_n his_o vicar_n it_o be_v by_o 65_o form_n of_o commission_n and_o not_o by_o form_n of_o entreaty_n he_o commit_v to_o chron_n he_o say_v the_o council_n of_o ephésus_fw-la to_o be_v his_o uicar_n and_o marcellinus_n come_v of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o justinian_n nestorius_n be_v condemn_v at_o ephesus_n heid_n in_o a_o synod_n of_o two_o hundred_o holy_a father_n celestine_n declare_v to_o the_o council_n cyrill_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n his_o uicar_n for_o the_o time_n and_o liberatus_n the_o african_a author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n celestine_n signify_v to_o nestorius_n that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o uicarship_n to_o cyrillus_n and_o theophanes_n the_o greeke-historian_n celestine_n of_o rome_n write_v to_o cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n to_o hold_v his_o place_n in_o the_o 1._o synod_n and_o balsamon_n not_o only_o a_o grecian_a but_o a_o schismatic_n celestine_n when_o he_o can_v not_o assist_v at_o ephesus_n and_o judge_v nestorius_n in_o person_n think_v good_a to_o permit_v saint_n cyrill_n to_o preside_v in_o his_o place_n at_o this_o council_n and_o 34._o nicephorus_n celestine_n bishop_n of_o rome_n refuse_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n for_o the_o peril_n of_o the_o navigation_n but_o he_o write_v to_o cyrill_a to_o hold_v his_o place_n there_o and_o after_o that_o time_n the_o fame_n go_v that_o cyrill_n receive_v the_o tiara_n and_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n &_o of_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o three_o who_o reveal_v to_o calvin_n that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n but_o in_o his_o own_o name_n that_o saint_n cyrill_n preside_v in_o the_o council_n for_o do_v not_o prosper_v a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o time_n say_v 45._o to_o the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n cyrills_n industry_n and_o celestine_n authority_n principal_o resist_v and_o again_o celestine_n cut_n of_o the_o nestorian_a impiety_n aid_v cyrill_a with_o the_o apostolic_a sword_n and_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o bishop_n write_v from_o constantinople_n to_o the_o council_n do_v they_o not_o bear_v this_o superscription_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o belove_a of_o god_n bishop_n and_o father_n who_o by_o god_n grace_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o ephesus_n celestine_n cyrillus_n iwenall_n and_o other_o to_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n though_o absent_a precede_v saint_n cyrill_n even_o in_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n cyrill_n and_o do_v not_o the_o pope_n legate_n thank_v the_o father_n of_o the_o synod_n because_o 2._o they_o have_v show_v themselves_o holy_a member_n to_o their_o holy_a head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o saint_n cycill_a writing_n to_o pope_n celestine_n do_v he_o not_o 1._o call_v he_o his_o father_n though_o himself_o be_v a_o ancient_a patriarch_n by_o ten_o year_n then_o celestine_n and_o do_v not_o the_o council_n in_o the_o body_n of_o it_o make_v themselves_o executioner_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n against_o the_o same_o nestorius_n when_o they_o say_v we_o be_v come_v not_o without_o tear_n to_o pronounce_v this_o nestor_n sad_a sentence_n constrain_v by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o by_o the_o letter_n of_o our_o holy_a father_n and_o fellow-minister_n celestine_n and_o then_o if_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v not_o preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n but_o be_v there_o 12._o precede_v by_o two_o simple_a priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n vito_n and_o vincentius_n why_o shall_v saint_n cyrill_v one_o of_o his_o successor_n and_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n as_o he_o be_v and_o no_o less_o enemy_n to_o nestorius_n then_o alexander_n be_v to_o arrius_n have_v preside_v at_o that_o of_o ephesus_n a_o city_n that_o be_v in_o asia_n and_o out_o of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o alexandria_n as_o well_o as_o nicaea_n be_v and_o if_o that_o appertain_v by_o right_a to_o saint_n cyrill_n for_o what_o cause_n do_v dioscorus_n his_o successor_n obtain_v surteptitious_a letter_n from_o the_o emperor_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o refusal_n that_o eutyches_n make_v of_o the_o pope_n 1._o legate_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v be_v entertain_v feast_v and_o gratify_v with_o present_n by_o his_o adversary_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o preside_v at_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o for_o what_o cause_n notwithstanding_o the_o say_a letter_n be_v he_o accuse_v for_o this_o attempt_n at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n as_o for_o a_o new_a and_o unheard_a 1._o of_o enterprise_n he_o must_v say_v lucentius_n bishop_n of_o ascoli_n give_v up_o a_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o judgement_n for_o asmuch_o as_o have_v no_o right_a to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n he_o have_v usurp_v it_o and_o have_v presume_v to_o hold_v a_o synod_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o have_v never_o be_v lawful_a neither_o be_v ever_o do_v and_o for_o what_o cause_n do_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n call_v his_o presidencie_n tyranny_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n author_n of_o the_o follow_a 25._o age_n usurp_a principality_n for_o whereas_o calvin_n add_v that_o at_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o other_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n sit_v after_o saint_n cyrill_n that_o be_v because_o saint_n cyrill_n have_v be_v first_o depute_v and_o before_o the_o council_n and_o that_o the_o other_o come_v thither_o but_o at_o the_o end_n thereof_o and_o zenon_n beside_o that_o among_o colleague_n of_o one_o same_o legation_n he_o that_o of_o himself_o be_v already_o in_o great_a dignity_n be_v to_o precede_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n chapt_n x._o the_o three_o objection_n of_o calvin_n be_v that_o in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o 7._o ephesus_n dioscorus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n preside_v and_o that_o although_o the_o issue_n of_o this_o council_n be_v unlawful_a nevertheless_o at_o the_o beginning_n when_o order_n be_v yet_o observe_v the_o pope_n deputy_n do_v not_o question_v he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o place_n a_o objection_n that_o contain_v as_o many_o falsehood_n as_o word_n for_o first_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n that_o the_o greek_n call_v the_o council_n of_o robbery_n be_v all_o disorder_a from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n 11_o those_o thing_n shall_v cease_v say_v the_o law_n which_o have_v take_v their_o original_n from_o injustice_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o have_v begunn_n by_o practice_n by_o steel_n and_o weapon_n for_o chrysaphius_n master_n of_o the_o imperial_a palace_n who_o be_v a_o eutychian_a and_o eutyches_n his_o
contribute_v our_o presence_n at_o the_o reverend_a synod_n which_o the_o necessity_n of_o time_n and_o custom_n will_v not_o permit_v nevertheless_o your_o brotherhood_n may_v make_v account_n that_o in_o these_o brother_n of_o i_o paschasinus_n and_o lucentius_n bishop_n 45_o and_o boniface_n and_o basilius_n priest_n send_v from_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a i_o do_v preside_v in_o your_o council_n for_o the_o letter_n the_o pope_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n be_v date_v the_o six_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o julie_n and_o that_o he_o write_v to_o the_o council_n be_v date_v the_o five_o and_o why_o shall_v he_o have_v pray_v he_o since_o in_o the_o secular_a chalc._n confirmation_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n the_o same_o emperor_n say_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v examine_v matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bless_a leo_n bishop_n of_o the_o city_n eternal_a in_o glory_n rome_n and_o why_o since_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n thou_o do_v preside_v in_o the_o council_n as_o 3._o the_o head_n to_o the_o member_n exhibit_v there_o thy_o good_a will_n by_o those_o that_o hold_v thy_o place_n and_o the_o faithsull_n emperor_n preside_v there_o for_o policy_n and_o ornament_n and_o why_o since_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n a_o while_n after_o press_v macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o race_n out_o of_o the_o rolle_n of_o his_o church_n the_o name_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n macedonius_n answer_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o 2._o a_o general_a council_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o great_a rome_n do_v preside_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n of_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n chapt_n xii_o calvin_n five_o objection_n be_v that_o menas_n preside_v at_o the_o five_o council_n 7._o of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v call_v thither_o debate_v not_o the_o first_o place_n but_o without_o any_o difficulty_n suffercd_v menas_n patriarch_n of_o the_o place_n to_o preside_v which_o be_v a_o objection_n wherein_o ignorances_n march_n by_o troop_n for_o first_o menas_n be_v dead_a five_o year_n before_o the_o five_o council_n of_o 3._o constantinople_n be_v hold_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o fixth_v council_n basil._n of_o constantinople_n which_o say_v menas_n die_v the_o one_o and_o wenntith_n year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o justinian_n but_o the_o fisth_n council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v hold_v the_o twenty_o seven_o and_o by_o victor_n of_o tune_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n who_o say_v that_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v hold_v under_o eutychius_n seqq_n successor_n to_o menas_n and_o by_o the_o very_a act_n of_o the_o five_o general_a council_n in_o all_o the_o session_n whereof_o eutychius_n be_v name_v and_o not_o menas_n for_o what_o we_o have_v from_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o menas_n be_v but_o particular_a act_n and_o preambulatory_a to_o the_o general_n council_n which_o be_v 36._o after_o hold_v under_o eutychius_n which_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o euagrius_n and_o to_o nicephorus_n to_o mistake_v and_o to_o think_v that_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v begin_v under_o menas_n and_o finish_v under_o eutychius_n as_o impertinent_o as_o the_o same_o euagrius_n place_v epiphanius_n between_o anthymus_n and_o menas_n and_o make_v epiphanius_n succeed_v anthymus_n whereas_o contrariwise_o he_o be_v his_o predecessor_n and_o second_o pope_n agapet_n who_o go_v to_o constantinople_n not_o to_o assist_v at_o any_o council_n but_o to_o treat_v a_o peace_n between_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n and_o theodat_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n be_v dead_a when_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n be_v celebrate_v and_o by_o conseuqent_n have_v no_o 1._o occasion_n to_o debate_v for_o the_o first_o place_n and_o siluerius_n his_o successor_n in_o who_o time_n this_o council_n be_v hold_v never_o be_v at_o constantinople_n and_o suppose_v agapet_n have_v be_v live_v and_o present_a at_o the_o council_n how_o can_v menas_n have_v presume_v to_o preside_v in_o his_o presence_n he_o that_o say_v 4._o in_o the_o same_o council_n we_o follow_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a &_o obey_v it_o and_o who_o have_v be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o his_o predecessor_n 4._o anthymus_n depose_v from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n by_o pope_n agapet_n and_o who_o call_v pope_n agapet_n his_o father_n of_o most_o holy_a memory_n and_o how_o will_v the_o emperor_n jusiinian_n have_v permit_v it_o he_o that_o say_v we_o will_v not_o suffer_v that_o any_o thing_n shall_v pass_v concern_v the_o estate_n of_o 7._o church_n but_o what_o shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o holy_a prelate_n of_o god_n and_o 131._o again_o we_o decree_v according_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o four_o counsel_n that_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o we_o ordain_v that_o the_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n new_a rome_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o holy_a sea_n apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n and_o shall_v precede_v all_o the_o other_o sea_n also_o how_o will_v he_o have_v permit_v it_o he_o that_o forsake_v his_o great_a friend_n anthymus_n who_o he_o have_v exalt_v from_o the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o trebysond_a to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v depose_v in_o his_o presence_n from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n by_o pope_n agapet_n we_o know_v say_v he_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n that_o the_o same_o have_v be_v do_v to_o anthymus_n who_o have_v be_v 42._o depose_v from_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o royal_a city_n by_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n of_o old-rome_n agapet_n of_o holy_a and_o glorious_a memory_n because_o that_o against_o all_o the_o sacred_a canon_n he_o have_v intrude_v himself_o into_o a_o sea_n that_o appartain_v not_o to_o he_o for_o what_o he_o add_v present_o after_o but_o he_o have_v also_o be_v depose_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o common_a sentence_n first_o of_o that_o person_n of_o holy_a memory_n and_o then_o of_o the_o holy_a synod_n here_o celebrate_v because_o he_o have_v stray_v from_o the_o right_a doctrine_n have_v reference_n not_o to_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthimus_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n as_o the_o patriarch_n nicephorus_n and_o cedrenus_n suppose_v author_n far_o from_o the_o age_n of_o justinian_n but_o to_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthimus_n from_o the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o trebisond_n for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o you_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v two_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n one_o from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v make_v and_o perfect_v by_o the_o pope_n only_a action_n and_o wherein_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n whereof_o justinian_n speak_v have_v no_o hand_n and_o the_o other_o from_o the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o trebyzond_n which_o be_v indeed_o begin_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o ordain_v that_o if_o anthymus_n do_v not_o purge_v himself_o of_o the_o heresy_n which_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o he_o shall_v be_v depose_v also_o from_o the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o trebisond_n which_o have_v be_v reserve_v to_o he_o by_o the_o first_o deposition_n and_o shall_v be_v withal_o excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v of_o all_o sacerdotal_a title_n and_o of_o all_o catholic_a nomination_n but_o because_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o finish_v this_o second_o deposition_n by_o reason_n death_n prevent_v he_o before_o he_o have_v the_o leisure_n to_o be_v full_o clear_v from_o the_o condition_n that_o be_v thereunto_o oppose_v it_o be_v finish_v and_o execute_v in_o the_o council_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o same_o council_n whereof_o justinian_n speak_v to_o wit_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v by_o menas_n for_o the_o confirmation_n whereof_o be_v publish_v two_o month_n after_o this_o law_n which_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n for_o the_o action_n that_o precede_v it_o be_v the_o last_o although_o it_o be_v first_o recite_v god_n say_v the_o regulars_n of_o syria_n in_o their_o petition_n to_o the_o emperor_n report_v by_o the_o same_o act_n send_v into_o this_o city_n agapet_n true_o agapet_n that_o be_v to_o say_v belove_v of_o god_n and_o man_n 1._o pope_n of_o old_a rome_n for_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n and_o of_o the_o foresay_a heretic_n as_o 〈◊〉_d he_o send_v great_a peter_n to_o the_o roman_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o witcheraft_n of_o simon_n this_o reverend_a person_n then_o know_v by_o the_o request_n of_o many_o of_o we_o the_o thing_n injust_o attempt_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o know_v
they_o by_o sight_n will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o admit_v into_o his_o presence_n anthymus_n transgressor_n of_o the_o canon_n but_o just_o depose_v he_o from_o the_o episcopal_a sea_n of_o this_o city_n and_o a_o little_a after_o after_o 1._o the_o bishop_n of_o palestina_n assemble_v in_o this_o city_n and_o the_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o we_o do_v again_o present_a petition_n touch_v anthymus_n and_o the_o other_o heretic_n and_o demand_v that_o anthymus_n shall_v certify_v his_o believe_v by_o libel_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o shall_v purge_v himself_o from_o all_o heretical_a error_n and_o in_o this_o case_n shall_v return_v to_o the_o church_n of_o trebisonde_v or_o if_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v final_o condemn_v and_o depose_v from_o all_o sacerdot_n all_o dignity_n and_o action_n and_o a_o little_a beneath_o these_o our_o just_a request_n the_o same_o most_o holy_a personage_n ibid._n to_o wit_n agapet_n prevent_v they_o and_o see_v anthymus_n have_v fail_v to_o appear_v he_o condemn_v he_o with_o the_o foresay_a heretic_n and_o despoil_v he_o of_o all_o office_n and_o dignity_n sacerdot_n all_o and_o of_o all_o title_n orthodoxal_a even_o till_o the_o penance_n of_o his_o error_n and_o 4._o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o in_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o synod_n the_o bless_a pope_n agapet_n of_o most_o holy_a and_o happy_a memory_n set_v with_o god_n his_o hand_n to_o the_o sacred_a canon_n depose_v anthymus_n from_o the_o sea_n which_o appartain_v not_o to_o he_o pardon_v those_o which_o have_v participate_v or_o communicate_v in_o this_o act_n that_o be_v to_o say_v peter_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o of_o the_o east_n and_o a_o little_a after_o ibid._n but_o because_o that_o even_o in_o doctrine_n anthymus_n be_v burden_v with_o infinite_a accusation_n and_o that_o many_o petition_n and_o supplication_n be_v present_v against_o he_o and_o by_o diverse_a reverend_a personage_n to_o a_o most_o religious_a emperor_n and_o to_o the_o most_o bless_a pope_n the_o same_o most_o bless_a pope_n after_o much_o pain_n take_v with_o a_o fatherly_a care_n to_o call_v back_o his_o soul_n etc._n etc._n pronounce_v a_o sentence_n by_o write_n against_o he_o full_a of_o clemency_n and_o seemly_a holiness_n grauntinge_v he_o time_n of_o repentance_n and_o ordain_v that_o till_o he_o have_v change_v his_o opinion_n and_o satisfy_v the_o doctrine_n canonical_o define_v by_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v neither_o have_v the_o title_n of_o a_o catholic_a nor_o a_o prelate_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v two_o diverse_a deposition_n of_o anthymus_n and_o in_o two_o differ_a time_n one_o from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o ground_a upon_o discipline_n because_o against_o the_o canon_n anthymus_n be_v exalt_v from_o the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o trebisond_n to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o other_o from_o the_o bishop_n sea_n of_o trebisond_n which_o have_v be_v reserve_v to_o he_o by_o the_o deposition_n from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o ground_a upon_o doctrine_n because_o anthymus_n be_v accuse_v and_o defame_v for_o heresy_n but_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o these_o two_o deposition_n be_v that_o the_o first_o i_o mean_v that_o from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n be_v absolute_a and_o definitive_a and_o make_v and_o perfect_v by_o the_o pope_n without_o the_o help_a hand_n of_o any_o council_n for_o whereas_o within_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o latin_a interpreter_n have_v unapt_o translate_v exossavimus_fw-la anthymum_fw-la you_o must_v say_v 1._o you_o have_v cast_v forth_o anthymus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o follow_v and_o our_o emperor_n have_v participate_v in_o your_o good_a ibid._n work_n and_o the_o second_o to_o wit_n that_o from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o trebisond_n be_v by_o provision_n and_o conditional_a and_o temper_v with_o this_o clause_n until_o penance_n which_o leave_v the_o sentence_n depend_v and_o subject_a to_o revocation_n in_o case_n that_o anthymus_n shall_v appear_v and_o purge_v himself_o of_o heresy_n now_o the_o pope_n die_v before_o he_o have_v leisure_n to_o attend_v whether_o anthimus_n will_v come_v to_o repentance_n and_o purge_v himself_o both_o of_o the_o contempt_n and_o of_o the_o heresy_n which_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o this_o cause_n then_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n take_v it_o up_o where_o the_o pope_n leave_v it_o and_o make_v a_o end_n to_o fulfil_v all_o the_o formality_n require_v to_o clear_v the_o doubt_n of_o the_o condition_n cite_v anthymus_n again_o and_o see_v he_o appear_v not_o execute_v the_o second_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o he_o and_o depose_v he_o from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o trebizond_n and_o from_o all_o sacerdotal_a and_o catholic_a title_n but_o without_o touch_v in_o any_o sort_n the_o deposition_n already_o make_v and_o perfect_v from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n weé_v say_v the_o 4._o father_n of_o the_o council_n follow_v those_o thing_n well_o examine_v by_o the_o bless_a pope_n ordain_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o despoil_v of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o trebizond_n and_o deprive_v of_o all_o sacerdotal_a dignity_n and_o action_n and_o according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o appellation_n of_o catholic_a for_o whereas_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n &_o the_o law_n of_o justinian_n report_v the_o history_n of_o the_o same_o sentence_n place_n among_o the_o cause_n of_o anthymus_n deposition_n the_o transgression_n that_o he_o have_v make_v of_o the_o canon_n in_o usurp_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n that_o make_v nothing_o towards_o inferringe_n that_o the_o deposition_n that_o the_o council_n decree_v against_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o deposition_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o council_n report_v the_o memory_n of_o this_o usurpation_n not_o to_o depose_v he_o then_o from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n from_o which_o the_o same_o council_n testify_v that_o he_o have_v already_o be_v entire_o exclude_v but_o to_o aggravate_v the_o crime_n for_o which_o it_o will_v depose_v he_o from_o the_o archbishoprike_v of_o trebizond_n to_o wit_n heresy_n by_o a_o commemoration_n of_o his_o fore_n go_v crime_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o from_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o same_o council_n and_o from_o that_o of_o the_o sentence_n of_o menas_n who_o preside_v there_o and_o from_o the_o repetition_n which_o be_v make_v of_o it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n hold_v under_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o all_o which_o place_n there_o be_v nothing_o speak_v of_o but_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n from_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o trebizond_n and_o not_o from_o that_o of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n where_o menas_n preside_v touch_v the_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n from_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o menas_n vote_v there_o in_o quality_n of_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n since_o menas_n have_v be_v promote_v to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n by_o the_o deposition_n of_o anthymus_n for_o of_o this_o 1._o all_o the_o ancient_a monument_n be_v of_o agreement_n agapet_n say_v the_o syrian_n to_o the_o emperor_n have_v just_o depose_v anthymus_n from_o the_o episcopal_a sea_n of_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n and_o with_o the_o help_n of_o your_o imperial_a authority_n cooperatinge_v and_o lendinge_v a_o hand_n to_o the_o divine_a canon_n have_v propose_v the_o holy_a menas_n to_o the_o same_o chron._n church_n and_o marcellinus_n come_v of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o menas_n agapet_n be_v come_v from_o rome_n to_o constantinople_n drive_v away_o soon_o after_o his_o arrival_n anthymus_n from_o the_o church_n say_v that_o accord_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n he_o be_v a_o adulterer_n because_o he_o have_v leave_v his_o church_n and_o have_v pack_v for_o another_o and_o ordain_v the_o priest_n menas_n bishop_n in_o his_o place_n and_o liberatus_n of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o 21._o marcellinus_n the_o empress_n promisinge_v in_o secret_a great_a present_n to_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o will_v suffer_v anthymus_n in_o his_o sea_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n tempt_v he_o with_o threat_n the_o pope_n persist_v in_o not_o harkninge_v to_o her_o request_n and_o anthymus_n seeinge_v he_o be_v
cast_v out_o of_o his_o sea_n give_v up_o the_o mantle_n that_o he_o have_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o retire_v himself_o to_o a_o place_n where_o the_o empress_n take_v he_o into_o her_o protection_n and_o then_o the_o pope_n infavour_v of_o the_o emperor_n ordain_v menas_n bishop_n in_o his_o steed_n consecrate_v he_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n of_o the_o same_o time_n with_o liberatus_n agapet_n chron._n archbishop_n of_o rome_n come_v to_o constantinople_n and_o depose_v anthymus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n usurper_n of_o the_o church_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o excommunicate_v the_o empress_n and_o make_v menas_n bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n a_o admirable_a effect_n of_o the_o power_n of_o s._n peter_n successor_n in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v most_o flourish_a and_o triumphant_a &_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n contrariwise_o most_o abate_v &_o afflict_v when_o constantinople_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n &_o the_o mansion_n of_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n conquer_a and_o victorious_a and_o that_o rome_n on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v no_o more_o a_o city_n but_o a_o tomb_n and_o carcase_n of_o a_o city_n a_o servant_n and_o slave_n of_o the_o goth_n a_o barbarous_a and_o arrian_n people_n a_o poor_a pope_n that_o the_o tyranny_n of_o theodat_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n who_o otherwise_o threaten_v he_o to_o root_v out_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v force_v to_o transport_v himself_o into_o the_o east_n to_o solicit_v the_o emperor_n justinian_n to_o withdraw_v his_o arm_n out_o of_o italy_n and_o so_o poor_a as_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o sell_v the_o sacred_a vessel_n of_o his_o church_n to_o perform_v his_o voyage_n be_v in_o constantinople_n a_o stranger_n and_o without_o support_n yea_o evil_a receive_a and_o entertain_v by_o the_o emperor_n nevertheless_o depose_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o his_o sea_n anthymus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n powerful_a in_o mean_n and_o favour_n about_o the_o emperor_n and_o who_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o empress_n have_v exalt_v from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o trebizond_n to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o pardon_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n who_o have_v communicate_v with_o he_o and_o excommunicate_v the_o empress_n who_o obstinate_o defend_v he_o and_o establish_v menas_n in_o his_o place_n and_o calvin_n will_v have_v it_o that_o menas_n who_o be_v agapets_n creature_n precede_v agapet_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n in_o who_o time_n agapet_n be_v already_o dead_a and_o wherein_o there_o be_v never_o mention_v make_v of_o he_o but_o with_o this_o title_n of_o agapet_n of_o holy_a memory_n what_o a_o argus_n be_v he_o in_o antiquity_n but_o at_o the_o least_o will_n calvin_n reply_v the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n that_o assist_v with_o menas_n at_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n after_o the_o death_n of_o agapet_n do_v not_o preside_v there_o it_o be_v true_a but_o what_o will_v this_o reply_n serve_v he_o for_o but_o to_o increase_v his_o shame_n for_o these_o bishop_n be_v no_o more_o the_o pope_n deputy_n when_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v and_o have_v no_o commission_n to_o be_v there_o but_o be_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n which_o be_v long_o before_o come_v out_o of_o italy_n for_o other_o business_n 〈◊〉_d and_o who_o legation_n be_v finish_v both_o by_o the_o arrival_n and_o by_o the_o death_n of_o agapet_n and_o who_o assist_v not_o at_o the_o synod_n which_o be_v no_o general_a council_n but_o a_o simple_a council_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o some_o strange_a bishop_n resident_a at_o constantinople_n but_o for_o honour_n sake_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o emperor_n commandment_n as_o exlegate_n and_o not_o as_o legate_n neither_o must_v he_o hope_v to_o escape_v by_o this_o excuse_n that_o he_o pretend_v to_o speak_v of_o uigilius_n and_o not_o of_o agapet_n for_o vigilius_n be_v neither_o pope_n nor_o present_n at_o constantinople_n when_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n be_v celebrate_v less_o yet_o can_v calvin_n save_v himself_o by_o say_v that_o his_o intention_n be_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o eutychius_n for_o uigilius_n who_o be_v then_o pope_n be_v neither_o present_a by_o himself_o nor_o by_o his_o legate_n and_o consequent_o have_v not_o occasion_n to_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n but_o confirm_v it_o by_o writing_n 18._o vigilius_n say_v euagrius_n 〈◊〉_d consent_v by_o letter_n with_o the_o council_n and_o photius_n synod_n vigilius_n approve_v by_o writing_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o refuse_v to_o assist_v there_o it_o be_v not_o as_o nicephorus_n a_o schismatical_a author_n 27._o and_o late_a by_o many_o age_n pretend_v because_o he_o disdain_v to_o receive_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n into_o one_o seat_n with_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v have_v sit_v in_o a_o seat_n more_o exalt_v for_o how_o shall_v that_o have_v be_v put_v in_o dispute_n since_o the_o same_o nicephorus_n say_v 9_o it_o have_v be_v practise_v twenty_o eight_o year_n before_o by_o pope_n john_n who_o have_v sit_v within_o constantinople_n in_o a_o throne_n exalt_v above_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o the_o place_n and_o that_o add_v he_o ibid._n not_o to_o abandon_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a but_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o see_v the_o emperor_n resolute_a to_o cause_v the_o three_o chapter_n to_o be_v condemn_v so_o be_v call_v certain_a write_n of_o theodorus_n of_o mopsuestia_n of_o ibas_n and_o of_o theodoret_n which_o have_v be_v read_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o fear_v that_o if_o this_o condemnation_n shall_v be_v make_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o the_o west_n not_o be_v present_a it_o may_v beget_v a_o schism_n between_o those_o of_o the_o west_n and_o those_o of_o the_o east_n for_o those_o of_o the_o west_n hold_v that_o to_o condemn_v those_o three_o chapter_n it_o be_v to_o give_v advantage_n to_o the_o entychian_o and_o to_o make_v a_o breach_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n who_o have_v receive_v into_o their_o communion_n ibas_n and_o theodoret_n author_n of_o those_o write_n and_o defendor_n of_o theodorus_n of_o mopsuestia_n and_o those_o of_o the_o east_n contrariwise_o hold_v that_o to_o maintain_v they_o be_v to_o give_v advantage_n to_o the_o nestorian_n and_o to_o oppose_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o have_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v and_o deny_v that_o to_o censure_v they_o be_v to_o do_v wrong_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n who_o have_v indeed_o receive_v theodoret_n and_o ibas_n into_o their_o communion_n but_o after_o they_o have_v make_v they_o detest_v the_o doctrine_n of_o nestorius_n for_o this_o occasion_n though_o pope_n uigilius_n in_o his_o particular_a condemn_v 8._o these_o three_o chapter_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o assist_v at_o a_o council_n wherein_o they_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o condemn_v they_o publicklie_o unless_o it_o have_v be_v a_o general_a council_n and_o wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n have_v be_v present_a aswell_o as_o those_o of_o the_o east_n and_o he_o admit_v not_o the_o reason_n allege_v by_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o council_n that_o in_o the_o other_o general_a conc._n counsel_n there_o have_v be_v few_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n forasmuch_o as_o those_o few_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n which_o have_v be_v in_o other_o general_a counsel_n go_v thither_o after_o counsel_n hold_v upon_o the_o same_o matter_n in_o the_o west_n who_o resolution_n they_o bear_v with_o they_o they_o carry_v the_o voice_n of_o all_o the_o western_a church_n into_o the_o east_n to_o this_o fear_n there_o concur_v also_o that_o that_o vigilius_n have_v to_o renew_v the_o opinion_n that_o be_v hold_v of_o he_o during_o his_o antipapacie_n i_o say_v during_o his_o antipapacie_n because_o in_o the_o beginning_n uigilius_n be_v intrude_v into_o the_o papacy_n by_o the_o private_a suit_n of_o the_o empress_n who_o be_v a_o eutychian_a his_o predecessor_n siluerius_n a_o true_a and_o lawful_a pope_n 22._o still_o live_v &_o with_o this_o simoniacal_a and_o heretical_a covenant_n not_o only_o to_o condemn_v the_o three_o chapter_n but_o to_o approve_v the_o faith_n of_o anthymus_n which_o he_o do_v and_o therefore_o sometime_o as_o false_a pope_n and_o sometime_o as_o a_o abettor_n of_o heretic_n he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o true_a pope_n siluerius_n vigil_n and_o by_o the_o bishop_n that_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o among_o other_o by_o the_o prelate_n of_o africa_n chronic._n for_o those_o that_o suspect_v that_o liberatus_n libre_fw-la the_o most_o exact_a monument_n that_o we_o have_v of_o antiquity_n have_v be_v deprave_a in_o the_o fall_n of_o uigilius_n be_v mistake_v see_v victor_n
of_o tune_n basil_n timefellowe_n of_o they_o both_o recite_v the_o same_o history_n but_o after_o siluerius_n be_v dead_a and_o vigilius_n have_v be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o peace_n accept_v by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n he_o become_v true_a pope_n and_o then_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o communicate_v with_o anthymus_n that_o contrariwise_o he_o rather_o choose_v to_o suffer_v all_o kind_n of_o disgrace_n then_o to_o consent_v to_o it_o yea_o he_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o condemn_v the_o same_o empress_n who_o have_v exalt_v he_o to_o the_o papacy_n as_o s._n gregory_n testify_v in_o these_o word_n alij_fw-la the_o pope_n uigilius_n constitute_v in_o the_o royal_a city_n that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o constantinople_n publish_v a_o sentence_n of_o condémnaiion_n against_o theodor_n a_o then_o 〈◊〉_d and_o against_o the_o acephales_n this_o than_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o uigilius_n assist_v not_o at_o the_o five_o council_n but_o if_o he_o have_v assist_v there_o who_o doubt_v but_o he_o have_v preside_v since_o the_o letter_n that_o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o he_o to_o obtain_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n import_v thus_o much_o we_o require_v that_o 1._o your_o blessedness_n preside_v over_o we_o under_o the_o sacerdotal_a tranquillity_n and_o meekness_n mopsue_v the_o holy_a gospel_n be_v set_v in_o the_o middle_n which_o be_v a_o form_n of_o obligation_n by_o oath_n to_o vote_n according_a to_o conscience_n the_o three_o chapter_n which_o be_v in_o question_n may_v be_v examine_v well_o do_v i_o know_v that_o the_o minister_n junius_n will_v correct_v these_o word_n presidente_fw-la nobis_fw-la vestrâ_fw-la be_v atitudine_fw-la and_o change_v they_o into_o these_o 〈◊〉_d nobiscum_fw-la vestrâ_fw-la be_v atitudine_fw-la but_o who_o see_v not_o this_o be_v a_o corruption_n and_o no_o correction_n for_o beside_o that_o this_o clause_n under_o the_o sacerdotal_a quiet_a and_o peace_n presuppose_v presidency_n and_o not_o simple_a residency_n do_v not_o the_o pope_n repeat_v the_o request_n of_o eutychius_n in_o these_o word_n your_o brotherhood_n have_v require_v that_o we_o preside_v vobis_fw-la praesidentibus_fw-la the_o three_o chapter_n may_v be_v examine_v and_o after_o when_o the_o council_n depute_v all_o the_o patriarch_n who_o be_v there_o in_o person_n eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 1._o apollinarius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n domnus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o seventeen_o of_o the_o principal_a metropolitan_o with_o they_o to_o the_o pope_n to_o beseech_v he_o to_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o testify_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o that_o if_o he_o have_v assist_v at_o the_o council_n he_o have_v preside_v there_o and_o when_o the_o emperor_n 〈◊〉_d write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o mopsuestia_n that_o they_o shall_v inform_v what_o have_v pass_v about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 5._o of_o mopsuestia_n from_o the_o record_n of_o his_o church_n and_o add_v and_o send_v two_o 〈◊〉_d thereof_o one_o to_o we_o and_o the_o other_o to_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n be_v not_o this_o enough_o to_o testify_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v bène_fw-fr at_o the_o council_n he_o have_v preside_v there_o and_o when_o the_o five_o council_n itself_o insert_v within_o the_o act_n thereof_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o mopsuestia_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o inrolle_v it_o in_o thesé_fw-fr word_n they_o make_v also_o a_o relation_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n vigilius_n which_o 〈◊〉_d ibid._n these_o word_n it_o be_v very_o convenient_a o_o most_o holies_n so_o call_v they_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n to_o give_v he_o the_o more_o respect_n since_o you_o hold_v the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o priesthood_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v represent_v to_o your_o divine_o honour_a blessedness_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o testify_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v primacy_n over_o all_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o that_o if_o he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o 〈◊〉_d he_o have_v preside_v there_o and_o when_o marcellinus_n come_v a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n say_v that_o within_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o constantinople_n where_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v principal_o keep_v his_o rank_n pope_n john_n predecessor_n to_o agapet_n be_v set_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o within_o the_o right_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n dexter_a dextro_fw-la insedit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la solio_fw-la and_o if_o we_o believe_v nicephorus_n in_o a_o 〈◊〉_d eminent_a and_o exalt_a be_v not_o this_o enough_o to_o show_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n he_o have_v preside_v there_o and_o when_o the_o greek_a historian_n report_n that_o macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o live_v forty_o year_n 〈◊〉_d the_o five_o general_a council_n find_v himself_o press_v by_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n to_o blot_n out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o his_o church_n the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n answer_v that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o general_a 〈◊〉_d eccl._n wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o great_a rome_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o this_o enough_o to_o testify_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n vigilius_n have_v assist_v at_o the_o council_n he_o have_v preside_v there_o and_o when_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n himself_o who_o cause_v the_o council_n to_o be_v celebrate_v say_v we_o ordain_v according_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o four_o holy_a 151._o counsel_n that_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n shall_v be_v first_o of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v be_v the_o second_o after_o the_o holy_a sea_n apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n and_o shall_v precede_v all_o the_o other_o sea_n and_o elsewhere_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d of_o god_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o show_v geneu_fw-fr that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v at_o the_o council_n he_o have_v preside_v there_o but_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n adversary_n be_v celebrate_v notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n be_v neither_o at_o it_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o his_o deputy_n it_o be_v true_a forasmuch_o as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n have_v already_o draw_v a_o writing_n from_o the_o pope_n whereby_o he_o have_v promise_v they_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o hold_v of_o a_o regular_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v complete_a and_o to_o assist_v at_o it_o we_o agree_v say_v he_o that_o assemble_v a_o regular_a council_n equity_n be_v observe_v 1._o and_o the_o sacred_a holy_a ghospell_n be_v set_v in_o the_o middle_n we_o unite_v with_o our_o brother_n will_v confer_v of_o the_o three_o chapter_n but_o those_o that_o make_v this_o observation_n add_v yet_o five_o more_o to_o it_o the_o first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o hold_v for_o general_a but_o since_o the_o pope_n confirm_v it_o &_o that_o while_o it_o be_v celebrate_v although_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n assist_v at_o it_o either_o personal_o or_o representative_o in_o any_o of_o the_o act_n it_o never_o take_v the_o title_n of_o general_n uigilius_n say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n consent_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 18._o council_n be_v establish_v the_o second_o that_o howsoever_o pope_n vigilius_n refuse_v to_o be_v there_o although_o he_o be_v in_o constantinople_n itself_o and_o under_o justinian_o halberd_n the_o council_n never_o pass_v to_o proceed_v against_o he_o the_o three_o that_o the_o great_a african_a light_n primasius_n bishop_n of_o adrumeta_fw-la who_o write_n do_v to_o this_o day_n illustrate_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v within_o constantinople_n and_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o council_n to_o assist_v at_o it_o prefer_v the_o pope_n authority_n before_o the_o citation_n of_o the_o council_n &_o answer_v those_o that_o summon_v he_o from_o the_o council_n the_o pope_n not_o be_v there_o present_a i_o 2._o will_v not_o go_v the_o four_o that_o the_o strong_a and_o last_o persuasion_n that_o the_o emperor_n use_v to_o the_o council_n to_o dispose_v they_o to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n be_v to_o send_v they_o particular_a write_n of_o pope_n uigilius_n whereby_o he_o have_v condemn_v they_o and_o the_o five_o that_o till_o three_o or_o four_o 7._o pope_n after_o vigilius_n who_o intention_n be_v a_o long_a while_n call_v in_o question_n pelagius_n s._n gregory_n and_o sergius_n have_v confirm_v this_o council_n there_o be_v both_o in_o the_o west_n and_o east_n so_o many_o schism_n and_o opposition_n against_o it_o and_o so_o many_o
bishop_n and_o counsel_n that_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v to_o gain_v the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n to_o die_v for_o resist_v it_o some_o believe_a pope_n vigilius_n never_o confirm_v it_o and_o other_o believe_v that_o pope_n vigilius_n who_o be_v say_v to_o confirm_v it_o be_v not_o true_a pope_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v intrude_v into_o the_o papacy_n his_o predecessor_n be_v yet_o live_v that_o whatsoever_o threaten_n banishment_n and_o punishment_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n employ_v upon_o it_o he_o can_v never_o compass_v it_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o next_o successor_n but_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o this_o objection_n of_o calvin_n let_v we_o go_v on_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n chapt_n xiii_o calvin_n six_o objection_n be_v take_v from_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n say_v calvin_n 7._o aurelius_n archbishop_n of_o the_o city_n preside_v and_o not_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n now_o we_o may_v send_v he_o to_o dispute_v this_o matter_n with_o hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n of_o almost_o eight_o hundred_o year_n antiquity_n who_o say_v contrariwise_o speak_v of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n ad_fw-la the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a preside_v by_o his_o vicar_n nevertheless_o lest_o it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o delay_n the_o best_a will_v be_v to_o try_v it_o out_o in_o the_o 3._o field_n to_o this_o objection_n than_o we_o will_v bring_v three_o answer_n the_o first_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o uncertain_a than_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o sit_n and_o signature_n of_o counsel_n where_o the_o copy_n vary_v and_o mistake_v at_o every_o turn_n sometime_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o the_o person_n send_v sometime_o the_o order_n of_o the_o person_n send_v sometime_o the_o order_n of_o the_o time_n of_o their_o arrival_n sometime_o the_o error_n in_o the_o writing_n which_o slip_n in_o in_o the_o transcription_n of_o list_n and_o catalogue_n as_o it_o appear_v beside_o a_o hundred_o other_o proof_n by_o the_o repetition_n of_o one_o of_o the_o session_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n insert_v into_o the_o latin_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o which_o arcadius_n proiectus_fw-la and_o phillippus_n the_o pope_n legate_n 1._o be_v name_v not_o only_o after_o all_o the_o bishop_n but_o even_o after_o bessula_n deacon_n and_o legate_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v the_o order_n of_o the_o time_n of_o their_o arrival_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o greek_a original_a of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o ephesus_n place_v they_o in_o all_o the_o session_n whereat_o they_o assist_v immediate_o after_o saint_n cyrill_n first_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o be_v present_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hincmarus_n for_o hincmarns_n affirm_v particular_o that_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a preside_v by_o legate_n at_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n supra_fw-la the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d preside_v by_o uicar_n the_o second_o that_o there_o where_o diverse_a kind_n of_o legate_n some_o which_o represent_v the_o negotiate_v person_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o 〈◊〉_d agent_n nuntio_n apocrisary_n and_o ambassador_n and_o other_o which_o represent_v the_o judiciary_n person_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o cathedraticall_a vicar_n and_o legate_n a_o kind_n only_o necessary_a for_o general_a counsel_n where_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n speak_v with_o her_o head_n and_o not_o for_o particular_a counsel_n as_o this_o of_o carthage_n be_v now_o among_o these_o deputy_n some_o hold_v the_o rank_n of_o those_o that_o send_v they_o and_o other_o not_o for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n seqq_fw-la justinian_n bishop_n of_o cos_n legate_n or_o rather_o nuntio_n and_o ambassador_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o constantinople_n although_o he_o bear_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pope_n legate_n at_o the_o council_n nevertheless_o sit_v not_o with_o the_o other_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o after_o the_o patriarch_n and_o among_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o at_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o menas_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o set_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o their_o patriarch_n but_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o their_o simple_a personal_a dignity_n and_o after_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n 4._o and_o the_o three_o answer_v final_o be_v that_o in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o legation_n of_o the_o pope_n deputy_n be_v finish_v by_o the_o death_n of_o sozimus_n who_o have_v send_v they_o the_o year_n before_o and_o have_v not_o be_v renew_v by_o boniface_n his_o successor_n who_o creation_n they_o know_v well_o for_o they_o procure_v 5._o and_o charge_v themselves_o 100_o to_o carry_v he_o the_o counsel_n letter_n but_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v any_o commission_n from_o he_o and_o treat_v only_o upon_o the_o memory_n that_o they_o have_v bring_v from_o his_o predecessor_n by_o mean_n whereof_o they_o be_v no_o more_o the_o pope_n legate_n but_o exlegate_n continue_v nevertheless_o in_o office_n to_o solicit_v for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o they_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o former_a council_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n bear_v for_o honour_n sake_n in_o the_o signature_n the_o title_n of_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o not_o the_o title_n of_o legate_n or_o vicar_n of_o pope_n boniface_n then_o sit_v and_o indeed_o if_o they_o have_v be_v then_o in_o the_o actual_a quality_n of_o the_o pope_n vicar_n and_o cathedraticall_a vicar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v represent_v the_o judiciary_n person_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o have_v be_v set_v one_o with_o a_o other_o and_o have_v all_o sign_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o bishop_n now_o this_o be_v not_o so_o for_o faustinus_n archbishop_n of_o potentia_n assist_v but_o in_o his_o simple_a rank_n of_o archbishop_n below_o aurelius_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o valentine_n archbishop_n of_o numidia_n and_o phillippus_n and_o asellus_n be_v not_o there_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o bishop_n but_o sit_v and_o sign_v as_o simple_a priest_n after_o all_o the_o bishop_n where_o as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v general_a the_o same_o philip_n priest_n 4._o as_o vicar_n depute_v to_o represent_v the_o judiciary_n person_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v set_v with_o saint_n cyrill_n and_o arcadius_n likewise_o the_o pope_n legate_n before_o all_o the_o other_o primate_fw-la archbishop_n s_z and_o bishop_n it_o it_o true_a that_o faustinus_n phillippus_n and_o asellus_n have_v be_v either_o nuntio_n or_o legate_n to_o pope_n sozimus_n in_o a_o council_n hold_v the_o year_n before_o at_o carthage_n under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n and_o the_o eigth_n of_o theodosius_n as_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o discourse_n and_o from_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o of_o this_o council_n for_o that_o which_o be_v insert_v under_o the_o date_n of_o the_o same_o consul_n in_o the_o rapsodie_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n legate_n there_o remain_v to_o we_o no_o piece_n whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v whether_o the_o pope_n agent_n preside_v or_o preside_v not_o only_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v very_o eminent_a there_o for_o it_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n as_o prosper_v a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n testify_v in_o these_o word_n chron._n under_o the_o 12_o the_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n and_o the_o eigth_n of_o theodosius_n a_o council_n of_o two_o hundred_o and_o fourteen_o bishop_n have_v be_v hold_v at_o carthage_n the_o synodical_a decree_n be_v carry_v to_o pope_n sozimus_n which_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o he_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n be_v condemn_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o again_o colla●_n pope_n zosimus_n annex_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o african_a counsel_n the_o force_n of_o his_o sentence_n and_o for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o the_o wicked_a arm_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o peter_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sit_n in_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n chapt_n fourteen_o the_o seven_o objection_n of_o calvin_n be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a council_n 7._o keep_v even_o in_o italy_n to_o wit_n add_v he_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n wherein_o saint_n ambrose_n preside_v for_o the_o credit_n that_o he_o have_v with_o the_o emperor_n now_o this_o objection_n be_v the_o crown_n &_o masterpiece_n of_o all_o caluin_n objection_n for_o matter_n of_o impertinency_n for_o first_o s._n ambrose_n do_v not_o preside_v there_o but_o valerianus_n bishop_n of_o aquilea_n
the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o aquilea_n have_v be_v in_o such_o sort_n equal_n &_o parallel_n until_o the_o time_n of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o when_o the_o bishopric_n of_o milan_n be_v vacant_a as_o pope_n pelagius_n the_o first_o tymefellowe_n to_o justinian_n note_v it_o the_o bishop_n of_o aquilea_n ordain_v he_o of_o milan_n and_o when_o the_o bishopric_n of_o aquilea_n be_v vacant_a the_o bishop_n 1._o of_o milan_n ordain_v he_o of_o aquilea_n by_o mean_n whereof_o each_o of_o they_o in_o his_o diocese_n have_v his_o rank_n before_o the_o other_o and_o in_o any_o three_o place_n the_o ancient_a of_o the_o two_o precede_v as_o at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n s._n ambrose_n precede_v valerian_n and_o at_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n ualerian_n precede_v s._n ambrose_n it_o be_v true_a s._n ambrose_n dispute_v there_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n because_o of_o his_o learning_n and_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o bologna_n after_o he_o which_o deceive_v the_o author_n of_o synodica_fw-la publish_v by_o the_o minister_n pappus_n a_o greek_a author_n &_o mean_o instruct_v in_o latin_a affair_n &_o many_o other_o with_o he_o but_o he_o preside_v not_o there_o if_o we_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v couch_v in_o these_o term_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o eucherius_n and_o euagrius_n in_o the_o nonce_n of_o september_n there_o be_v set_v in_o the_o church_n of_o aquilea_n ualerian_n aquil._n ambrose_n eusebius_n limenius_fw-la and_o other_o and_o then_o if_o he_o have_v preside_v there_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v it_o to_o interpret_v that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o favour_n the_o emperor_n bear_v he_o be_v not_o s._n ambrose_n a_o archbishop_n &_o archbishop_n of_o milan_n a_o city_n say_v s._n athanasius_n metropolitan_a of_o italy_n agent_n that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o of_o all_o italy_n but_o of_o that_o part_n of_o italy_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pretoriall_a perfect_a of_o italy_n and_o which_o be_v particular_o call_v italy_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o province_n subject_a to_o the_o provost_n or_o vicar_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o what_o marvel_n have_v it_o be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o istria_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o province_n of_o italy_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o vicar_n of_o italy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o vicar_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o pretory_n of_o italy_n in_o italy_n and_o the_o pope_n not_o be_v there_o neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o his_o legate_n if_o s._n ambrose_n who_o be_v both_o the_o most_o ancient_a archbishop_n &_o the_o archbishop_n of_o milan_n metropolitan_a of_o italy_n have_v preside_v there_o and_o second_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n which_o last_v but_o half_a a_o day_n be_v not_o a_o general_a council_n but_o a_o particular_a council_n compound_v only_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o lombardie_n &_o of_o provence_n &_o of_o one_o bishop_n of_o illiria_n and_o of_o some_o deputy_n of_o africa_n &_o of_o the_o gaul_n for_o there_o be_v in_o all_o but_o thirty_o bishop_n among_o which_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a legate_n neither_o of_o the_o pope_n nor_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n now_o how_o can_v it_o be_v general_a if_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n nor_o any_o patriarch_n nor_o patriarch_n legate_n nay_o how_o can_v it_o be_v general_a since_o the_o only_a reason_n that_o palladius_n the_o heretic_n make_v that_o he_o will_v not_o answer_v there_o be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o general_a council_n we_o have_v promise_v say_v he_o that_o aquil._n we_o will_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v christian_n but_o in_o a_o general_a council_n we_o answer_v you_o not_o lest_o we_o shall_v prejudice_n a_o future_a council_n nay_o how_o can_v it_o have_v be_v universal_a since_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n themselves_o confess_v ibidem_fw-la in_o their_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n that_o be_v be_v not_o reasonable_a that_o for_o two_o wretched_a heretic_n the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v abandon_v by_o their_o bishop_n nay_o how_o can_v it_o have_v be_v general_a since_o the_o same_o year_n the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v celebrate_v for_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n be_v hold_v in_o september_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o euagrius_n and_o eucherius_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v assemble_v the_o same_o year_n not_o in_o the_o month_n of_o may_n as_o socrates_n and_o those_o that_o have_v follow_v he_o have_v conceive_v but_o upon_o the_o end_n of_o autumn_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n late_o cite_v from_o 〈◊〉_d and_o by_o the_o very_a epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o pope_n 9_o where_o the_o father_n testify_v that_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v call_v after_o the_o hold_n of_o that_o of_o aquilea_n it_o be_v true_a it_o have_v be_v project_v at_o the_o beginning_n to_o have_v hold_v a_o large_a council_n at_o aquilea_n but_o because_o the_o adversary_n be_v not_o judge_v worthy_a that_o for_o they_o there_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o quantity_n of_o bishop_n necessary_a neither_o for_o a_o general_a council_n not_o for_o a_o patriarchall_a council_n the_o pope_n not_o only_o abstain_v from_o send_v but_o also_o present_o after_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n as_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o universal_a set_v himself_o to_o cause_v a_o general_a council_n to_o be_v celebrate_v and_o to_o this_o effect_n call_v by_o his_o letter_n address_v to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n witness_v these_o word_n of_o the_o same_o bishop_n to_o pope_n damasus_n 9_o we_o be_v come_v to_o constantinople_n at_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o letter_n from_o your_o reverence_n send_v after_o the_o council_n of_o aquilea_n to_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n and_o hold_v himself_o a_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n at_o rome_n where_o assist_v the_o chief_a of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v at_o aquilea_n and_o among_o other_o saint_n ambrose_n archbishop_n of_o milan_n and_o valerianus_n archbishop_n of_o aquilea_n and_o in_o the_o which_o preside_v he_o approve_v what_o have_v be_v do_v at_o constantinople_n and_o by_o this_o approbatron_n make_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 〈◊〉_d for_o whereas_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o in_o this_o concourse_n of_o counsel_n it_o be_v not_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n whereat_o the_o pope_n be_v present_a that_o obtain_v the_o title_n of_o a_o general_n council_n but_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n it_o suffice_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v because_o the_o symbol_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v publish_v there_o against_o macedonius_n be_v compose_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n whereat_o there_o assist_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n where_o the_o question_n be_v dispute_v and_o be_v but_o confirm_v and_o not_o compose_v at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o counsel_n ecumenical_a by_o concourse_n take_v their_o name_n from_o the_o place_n where_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v compose_v and_o not_o from_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v only_o confirm_v of_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n chapt_n xv._n there_o follow_v the_o call_n of_o counsel_n that_o calvin_n affirm_v to_o have_v be_v only_o do_v by_o the_o emperor_n the_o general_n council_n say_v calvin_n 9_o be_v never_o declare_v but_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o bishop_n be_v call_v by_o his_o authority_n now_o from_o whence_o do_v he_o infer_v this_o upon_o this_o that_o the_o counsel_n bare_a on_o their_o brow_n the_o convocation_n of_o the_o emperor_n fine_a and_o subtle_a logiquel_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o incompatible_a thing_n that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v call_v the_o counsel_n in_o regard_n of_o temporal_a authority_n to_o make_v they_o obligatorie_n to_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n and_o executory_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o crime_n of_o treason_n and_o the_o hindrance_n of_o politic_a law_n which_o forbid_v they_o to_o make_v any_o assembly_n 1._o but_o with_o permission_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n without_o who_o say_v socrates_n 8_o the_o church_n can_v be_v rule_v or_o according_a to_o the_o translation_n of_o epiphanius_n follow_v by_o cassiodorus_n 9_o the_o counsel_n can_v be_v celebrate_v shall_v call_v they_o in_o regard_n of_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n but_o rather_o as_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o thing_n perpetual_o use_v and_o practise_v that_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v require_v with_o the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o
forasmuch_o as_o the_o one_o contribute_v to_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o counsel_n the_o authority_n of_o those_o that_o send_v they_o and_o the_o other_o confer_v no_o more_o but_o that_o of_o their_o own_o person_n or_o their_o particular_a province_n and_o therefore_o the_o assistance_n of_o basilius_n bishop_n of_o gortyna_n at_o the_o council_n surname_v trullian_n wherein_o he_o hold_v not_o the_o place_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o sign_v after_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n yea_o after_o some_o metropolitan_o subscript_n do_v nothing_o avail_v to_o make_v it_o general_a and_o as_o for_o the_o archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n he_o sign_v not_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o balsamon_n can_v not_o tell_v his_o name_n but_o because_o his_o predecessor_n have_v assist_v by_o attorney_n at_o the_o six_o council_n whereof_o the_o council_n trullian_n pretend_v ro_o be_v a_o supply_n a_o place_n to_o sign_n in_o be_v reserve_v for_o he_o as_o one_o absent_a in_o these_o word_n subscript_n the_o place_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o heraclea_n of_o he_o of_o ravenna_n and_o of_o he_o of_o corinth_n therefore_o even_o from_o that_o from_o whence_o balsamon_n infer_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n surname_v trullian_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o rolle_n of_o the_o subscription_n we_o collect_v the_o contrary_a that_o he_o assist_v not_o there_o at_o all_o and_o indeed_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n or_o any_o other_o western_a bishop_n have_v assist_v there_o how_o can_v that_o council_n have_v commtit_v the_o error_n it_o do_v commit_v beside_o 〈◊〉_d other_o in_o approve_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o saint_n cyprian_n for_o the_o rebaptisation_n of_o heretic_n 1._o for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o west_n so_o ignorant_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o saint_n cyprian_n be_v a_o erroneous_a council_n who_o doctrine_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o have_v be_v the_o seed_n and_o original_n of_o the_o donatist_n hear_v sie_fw-la for_o if_o they_o object_n with_o balsamon_n and_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o council_n surname_v trullian_n that_o will_v be_v take_v for_o a_o supply_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n and_o pass_v the_o canon_n thereof_o for_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o general_n council_n attribute_n to_o itself_o in_o the_o forefront_n of_o their_o decree_n the_o title_n of_o general_n council_n we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o because_o it_o be_v so_o but_o because_o it_o expect_v to_o be_v so_o by_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n for_o who_o there_o be_v a_o blank_a leave_v to_o sign_n in_o above_o all_o the_o patriarch_n in_o these_o word_n subscript_n a_o place_n for_o the_o most_o bolie_a pope_n of_o rome_n a_o thing_n that_o plain_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o deputy_n there_o now_o so_o far_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o western_a church_n from_o sign_v to_o it_o as_o contrariwise_o they_o prepare_v themselves_o rather_o to_o endure_v 〈◊〉_d martyrdom_n for_o the_o emperor_n have_v send_v the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d to_o rome_n to_o pray_v the_o pope_n to_o set_v to_o his_o subscription_n the_o pope_n rather_o choose_v to_o incur_v all_o the_o emperor_n hatred_n and_o persecution_n then_o to_o consent_v to_o it_o as_o beda_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o age_n testify_v in_o these_o word_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o second_o say_v he_o aetatib_fw-la have_v send_v zacharie_n his_o constable_n command_v he_o to_o confine_v pope_n sergius_n to_o constantinople_n because_o he_o will_v not_o favour_v the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n that_o he_o have_v make_v at_o constantinople_n and_o have_v refuse_v to_o sign_n it_o but_o the_o garrison_n of_o ravenna_n and_o of_o the_o neighbour_a place_n prevent_v the_o impious_a command_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o repulse_v 〈◊〉_d with_o outrage_n and_o injury_n from_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v either_o that_o pope_n adrian_n praise_v the_o allegation_n that_o tarhasius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v make_v in_o his_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o the_o eightith_n two_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n against_o the_o iconoclast_n or_o that_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n adrian_n do_v not_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o apology_n that_o tarhasius_n patriarch_n of_o constan_n tinople_n make_v for_o the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n at_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o that_o pope_n adrian_n praise_v the_o allegation_n of_o tarhasius_n it_o be_v not_o because_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o council_n that_o tarhasius_n have_v cite_v under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o six_o council_n but_o because_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v sound_a and_o orthodoxal_a and_o that_o not_o only_o the_o pope_n legate_n do_v not_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o it_o but_o alsoe_o some_o pope_n have_v allege_v it_o against_o the_o iconoclast_n it_o be_v because_o the_o argument_n take_v from_o those_o canon_n be_v good_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o have_v receive_v they_o and_o beside_o that_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v be_v wound_v in_o the_o council_n trullian_n by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n rhinotmete_v this_o wound_n have_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n repair_v by_o the_o same_o emperor_n with_o his_o other_o crime_n when_o at_o pope_n constantine_n arrival_n in_o the_o east_n he_o prostrate_v himself_o say_v beda_n sexoetatib_fw-la on_o the_o earth_n before_o he_o and_o pray_v he_o to_o intercede_v for_o his_o sin_n renew_v to_o he_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o church_n but_o against_o this_o prescription_n the_o adversary_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a frame_v three_o principal_a objection_n the_o first_o that_o ruffinus_n speake_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n say_v 1._o that_o the_o emperor_n by_o advice_n of_o the_o churchman_n call_v a_o 〈◊〉_d at_o nicaea_n and_o make_v no_o particular_a mention_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o second_o that_o julius_n reproach_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n 10._o that_o they_o have_v not_o call_v he_o to_o their_o council_n and_o the_o three_o that_o saint_n jerom_n treat_v of_o a_o council_n hold_v among_o the_o gaul_n cry_n 2._o what_o emperor_n command_v this_o synod_n to_o be_v call_v to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o these_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o ruffinus_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o clergy_n call_v a_o council_n at_o nicaea_n we_o answer_v that_o although_o ruffinus_n because_o of_o the_o hate_n he_o bear_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o whence_o he_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v for_o his_o error_n whould_v not_o express_v the_o history_n but_o in_o general_a term_n and_o by_o these_o word_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o churchman_n nevertheless_o he_o always_o give_v it_o to_o be_v infer_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n precede_v the_o imperial_a convocation_n and_o that_o the_o imperial_a convocation_n be_v but_o a_o execution_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a advice_n for_o whereas_o saint_n epiphanius_n say_v melet._n that_o the_o care_n of_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n move_v constantine_n to_o assemble_v the_o council_n this_o word_n move_v exclude_v not_o the_o mean_n and_o intervention_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o alexander_n have_v write_v of_o it_o by_o especial_a letter_n as_o liberius_n testify_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n in_o these_o term_n caral_n we_o have_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o bishop_n alexander_n to_o silvester_n of_o holy_a memory_n &_o by_o consequent_a be_v not_o incompatible_a with_o these_o word_n of_o the_o three_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n 18._o constantine_n augustus_n and_o pope_n silvester_n of_o reverend_a memory_n call_v the_o famous_a council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o the_o second_o opposition_n which_o be_v that_o julius_n reproach_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n that_o they_o have_v not_o call_v he_o to_o their_o council_n from_o whence_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a infer_v that_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o call_v counsel_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o objection_n be_v not_o valide_fw-la and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o nullity_n be_v that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o general_a council_n to_o which_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o pope_n either_o mediate_a or_o immediate_a be_v necessary_a but_o a_o particular_a council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n which_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n may_v call_v alone_o and_o at_o which_o the_o other_o bishop_n who_o be_v but_o in_o small_a number_n assist_v but_o by_o aggregation_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o reproach_v it_o to_o they_o that_o their_o council_n be_v not_o
call_v by_o he_o or_o at_o his_o 17._o instance_n but_o for_o 〈◊〉_d much_o as_o that_o council_n which_o be_v a_o particular_a council_n have_v undertake_v as_o compound_v of_o arrian_n bishop_n who_o violate_v all_o order_n and_o discipline_n to_o decide_v thing_n that_o concern_v the_o universal_a church_n ordain_v in_o hate_n to_o saint_n athanasius_n that_o every_o bishop_n that_o after_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o synod_n shall_v continue_v still_o to_o perform_v episcopal_a function_n without_o have_v be_v first_o reestablisht_v by_o a_o other_o great_a synod_n shall_v be_v incapable_a of_o restitution_n and_o that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n bear_v that_o there_o can_v no_o decree_n be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o calvin_n himself_o interpret_v it_o 7._o for_o thing_n regard_v the_o universal_a church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o reproach_v it_o to_o they_o that_o they_o have_v exceed_v the_o power_n of_o a_o particular_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v decide_v the_o affair_n which_o concern_v the_o general_a government_n of_o the_o church_n without_o have_v invite_v he_o to_o assist_v at_o it_o either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o legate_n a_o thing_n that_o if_o we_o be_v strip_v of_o all_o other_o argument_n will_v sufficient_o show_v the_o pope_n authority_n for_o if_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o pope_n alone_o and_o not_o of_o any_o other_o patriarch_n or_o metropolitan_a be_v a_o impediment_n to_o the_o make_v of_o decree_n to_o oblige_v the_o universal_a church_n how_o can_v it_o be_v but_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n to_o the_o three_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n jerom_n speak_v of_o a_o certain_a 2._o council_n hold_v among_o the_o gaul_n cry_n what_o emperor_n have_v command_v this_o synod_n to_o he_o assemble_v from_o whence_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o emperor_n only_o call_v the_o general_a counsel_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o very_a sophism_n for_o the_o council_n whereof_o saint_n jerom_n speak_v be_v not_o a_o general_a council_n but_o a_o particular_a that_o ruffinus_n pretend_v to_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o gaul_n against_o saint_n hillary_n now_o we_o agree_v of_o all_o side_n and_o calvin_n himself_o confess_v it_o 7._o that_o the_o metropolitan_o primate_fw-la and_o patriarch_n call_v particular_a counsel_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o western_a church_n hold_v at_o rome_n by_o pope_n damasus_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o macedonian_n by_o pope_n celestine_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o nestorian_n by_o pope_n leo_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o eutychian_o by_o pope_n agatho_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n enforce_v the_o most_o obstinate_a to_o confess_v that_o the_o pope_n if_o not_o as_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n yet_o at_o least_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n call_v the_o patriarchall_a counsel_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o not_o only_o call_v the_o patriarchall_a counsel_n of_o the_o western_a church_n but_o alsoe_o when_o there_o be_v need_v cause_v to_o be_v call_v extraordinary_o the_o national_a or_o provincial_a counsel_n of_o such_o a_o nation_n or_o province_n of_o the_o west_n as_o he_o think_v to_o be_v necessary_a as_o it_o appear_v for_o africa_n from_o these_o wordo_n s._n augustine_n 157._o the_o ecclesiastical_a necessity_n enjoin_v we_o by_o the_o reverend_a pope_n zosime_fw-la bishop_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_v draw_v we_o to_o caesaria_n and_o for_o macedonia_n achaia_n and_o thessalia_n from_o these_o of_o pope_n leo_n to_o anastasius_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n his_o legate_n in_o those_o province_n 82._o if_o there_o be_v any_o mayor_n cause_n move_v for_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o cause_v a_o episcopal_a assembly_n to_o be_v call_v let_v it_o suffice_v thou_o to_o call_v two_o bishop_n of_o every_o province_n such_o as_o the_o metropolitan_o shall_v choose_v and_o for_o spain_n from_o these_o of_o the_o same_o leo_n 91._o we_o have_v send_v letter_n to_o our_o brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n of_o arragon_n of_o carthagena_n of_o portugal_n and_o of_o galitia_fw-la and_o bave_v declare_v to_o they_o the_o assembly_n of_o a_o general_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v general_a for_o spain_n in_o which_o place_n they_o must_v not_o cavil_n upon_o the_o word_n council_n and_o convert_v it_o into_o counsel_n for_o the_o first_o council_n of_o bracara_n report_v the_o same_o history_n say_v praefac_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o leo_n the_o bishop_n of_o arragon_n carthagena_n portugal_n and_o andaluzia_n hold_v a_o council_n among_o they_o but_o beside_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n be_v it_o of_o metropolitan_o primate_fw-la and_o patriarch_n for_o the_o call_n of_o particular_a counsel_n be_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o we_o pretend_v for_o the_o call_n of_o general_a counsel_n the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v alsoe_o requisite_a aswell_o to_o avoid_v state_n jealousy_n and_o hinder_v suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o the_o empire_n as_o to_o take_v order_n for_o the_o charge_n of_o transportation_n staple_n and_o provision_n and_o to_o furnish_v the_o cost_n of_o the_o voyage_n which_o the_o church_n then_o new_o out_o of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o pagan_n can_v yet_o hardly_o bear_v and_o therefore_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o call_v not_o only_o general_a counsel_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n but_o alsoe_o the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o western_a church_n the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n concur_v with_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o pope_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o convocation_n the_o emperor_n valentinian_n say_v pope_n sixtus_n the_o three_o tymefellowe_n to_o saint_n cyrill_n orient_n have_v command_v by_o our_o authority_n that_o the_o synod_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o calling_n national_n synod_n if_o it_o be_v within_o the_o country_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n or_o of_o their_o lievetenan_n be_v also_o require_v and_o if_o it_o be_v within_o the_o eclipse_v country_n or_o not_o depend_v from_o the_o empire_n that_o of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v must_v be_v join_v thereto_o as_o when_o the_o first_o council_n of_o bracara_n in_o spain_n be_v call_v it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v call_v prae_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o glorious_a king_n ariamira_n or_o according_a to_o other_o theodomina_fw-la and_o when_o the_o second_o council_n of_o tours_n speak_v of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o orleans_n hold_v under_o clovis_n it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v do_v 22_o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o most_o invincible_a king_n clovis_n and_o when_o the_o second_o council_n of_o mascon_n be_v hold_v under_o king_n gontran_n it_o be_v ordain_v 20._o that_o the_o ordinary_a national_n counsel_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v from_o three_o year_n to_o three_o year_n and_o that_o the_o care_n to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v assemble_v appertain_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o lion_n and_o the_o disposition_n to_o the_o most_o magnificent_a prince_n now_o if_o the_o temporal_a convocation_n of_o national_n counsel_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n or_o by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v 〈◊〉_d impediment_n but_o that_o the_o spiritual_a convocation_n of_o the_o same_o counsel_n may_v be_v due_a to_o the_o primat_n of_o the_o nation_n why_o shall_v the_o temporal_a convocation_n of_o general_a counsel_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o impediment_n why_o the_o authority_n to_o call_v they_o spiritual_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o behalf_n of_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n may_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o that_o then_o as_o we_o have_v new_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n be_v necessary_a and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v the_o decision_n of_o counsel_n executorie_a by_o the_o secular_a arm_n and_o by_o the_o minister_n and_o officer_n of_o temporal_a justice_n who_o otherwise_o will_v not_o have_v labour_v to_o punish_v corporal_o those_o that_o shall_v contradict_v and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o father_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v so_o careful_a to_o set_v this_o title_n in_o the_o forefront_n of_o their_o act_n the_o most_o holy_a and_o general_a council_n call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v their_o decree_n executorie_a temporallie_o and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n but_o not_o to_o make_v they_o obligatorie_n in_o conscience_n and_o spiritual_o for_o when_o be_v it_o say_v saint_n athanasius_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o take_v authority_n from_o the_o emperor_n and_o indeed_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o
if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o general_a council_n hold_v under_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n the_o christian_n have_v be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o spiritual_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o have_v not_o be_v call_v by_o they_o and_o that_o if_o the_o turk_n shall_v ever_o make_v himself_o universal_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a council_n hold_v under_o 〈◊〉_d empire_n the_o christian_n shall_v be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o spiritual_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o be_v not_o call_v by_o he_o and_o then_o if_o the_o authority_n necessary_a to_o make_v general_a counsel_n obligatorie_n in_o conscience_n aught_o to_o be_v perpetual_a and_o always_o to_o have_v place_n how_o can_v that_o be_v by_o imperial_a authority_n which_o have_v be_v divide_v into_o so_o many_o parcel_n as_o at_o this_o day_n in_o a_o manner_n the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o empire_n for_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o plurality_n disperse_v must_v depend_v from_o a_o unity_n and_o from_o a_o unity_n that_o have_v authority_n over_o every_o individual_a of_o the_o plurality_n as_o the_o ancient_a emperor_n themselves_o acknowledge_v that_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v when_o they_o ordain_v 24._o that_o every_o bishop_n that_o be_v call_v to_o the_o pope_n judgement_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d to_o come_v shall_v be_v constrain_v by_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o province_n to_o appear_v and_o therefore_o as_o often_o as_o our_o adversary_n cry_v out_o such_o a_o emperor_n call_v such_o or_o such_o a_o council_n so_o often_o they_o lose_v their_o time_n and_o their_o labour_n for_o we_o be_v agree_v that_o whilst_o the_o emperor_n be_v monarch_n of_o the_o world_n or_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n they_o call_v they_o all_o in_o regard_n of_o temporal_a authority_n but_o we_o say_v beside_o the_o secular_a authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v the_o convocation_n of_o counsel_n authentical_a temporal_o must_v a_o other_o authority_n intervene_v to_o wit_n a_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o make_v it_o lawful_a and_o authentical_a spirituallle_fw-la and_o to_o make_v that_o the_o counsel_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v call_v from_o god_n and_o obligatorie_n in_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o spiritual_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n now_o that_o we_o maintain_v to_o have_v be_v the_o authority_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o principle_n &_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n 15._o and_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o without_o who_o sentence_n it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o make_v definitive_a law_n in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o pope_n 7._o who_o authority_n for_o this_o regard_n ought_v to_o concur_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o 8._o the_o emperor_n either_o actuallie_o or_o virtuallie_o i_o say_v either_o actuallie_o or_o virtuallie_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o suffice_v for_o the_o spiritual_a validity_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o counsel_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v either_o call_v they_o or_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v call_v or_o approve_v their_o convocation_n for_o when_o the_o emperor_n call_v they_o either_o at_o the_o pope_n instance_n or_o with_o the_o consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o spiritual_a convocation_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v always_o repute_v to_o intervene_v as_o also_o the_o catholic_a emperor_n and_o which_o abstain_v from_o tyrannise_v over_o the_o church_n never_o call_v they_o but_o when_o the_o pope_n require_v it_o of_o they_o or_o they_o require_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o they_o be_v require_v by_o the_o pope_n they_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o call_v they_o although_o that_o for_o the_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v the_o emperor_n because_o of_o the_o commodity_n or_o incommodity_n of_o the_o state_n reserve_v the_o election_n to_o themselves_o for_o whereas_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n refuse_v pope_n liberius_n who_o demand_v of_o he_o that_o a_o general_a 16._o council_n may_v be_v hold_v for_o saint_n athanasius_n cause_n it_o be_v the_o refusal_n of_o a_o arrian_n emperor_n no_o less_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o sonn_n of_o god_n then_o to_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o whereas_o the_o emperor_n arcadius_n refuse_v ult._n pope_n innocent_a who_o send_v say_v sozomene_n five_o bishop_n and_o two_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o emperor_n to_o demand_v of_o they_o a_o council_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n and_o send_v saint_n chrisostome_n into_o a_o more_o remote_a banishment_n it_o wasatyrannicall_a act_n of_o a_o emperor_n possess_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o this_o holy_a man_n for_o this_o then_o the_o temporal_a convocation_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v necessary_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o empire_n who_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o politic_a and_o imperial_a law_n not_o to_o suffer_v any_o assembly_n without_o the_o emperor_n permission_n shall_v not_o hinder_v they_o &_o that_o the_o estate_n shall_v have_v no_o colour_n of_o jealousy_n and_o that_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v furnish_v the_o charge_n staple_n and_o transportation_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o counsel_n shall_v be_v keep_v at_o the_o expense_n of_o the_o imperial_a exchequer_n and_o that_o final_o the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n may_v be_v obligatorie_n to_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n and_o executory_a temporallie_o and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o politic_a magistrate_n but_o not_o that_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o council_n as_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n be_v nor_o serve_v to_o make_v they_o obligatorie_n in_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o spiritual_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n no_o more_o than_o the_o presidency_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n at_o the_o counsel_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o their_o officer_n be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o counsel_n as_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o only_o for_o comeliness_n and_o ornament_n and_o for_o keep_v order_n and_o temporal_a policy_n witness_n this_o language_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o thou_o do_v leon._n preside_v by_o thy_o legate_n in_o the_o council_n as_o the_o head_n to_o the_o member_n and_o the_o emperor_n preside_v there_o for_o seemliness_n and_o ornament_n strive_v with_o thou_o as_o zorobabel_n with_o jesus_n to_o renew_v in_o doctrine_n the_o build_n the_o jerusalem_n of_o the_o church_n for_o what_o mean_v this_o comparison_n of_o pope_n leo_n with_o jesus_n high_a priest_n of_o the_o jewish_a law_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n with_o zorobabel_n prince_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n but_o that_o there_o be_v like_o analogy_n in_o christian_a religion_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o hold_n of_o counsel_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n between_o the_o high_a priest_n which_o be_v jesus_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v zorobabel_n for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o one_o to_o wit_n the_o pope_n shall_v concur_v there_o as_o head_n of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o emperor_n shall_v concur_v there_o as_o head_n of_o the_o politic_a and_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n and_o therefore_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n there_o must_v be_v a_o distinction_n between_o the_o spiritual_a call_n of_o counsel_n and_o the_o temporal_a call_n of_o counsel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v between_o the_o convocation_n necessary_a to_o make_v their_o assembly_n authentical_a temporallie_o and_o the_o convocation_n necessary_a to_o make_v their_o assembly_n authentical_a in_o conscience_n and_o spiritual_o in_o the_o first_o case_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v determine_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n for_o none_o doubt_v but_o the_o authority_n necessary_a to_o call_v general_a counsel_n temporallie_o and_o to_o make_v they_o executory_a by_o the_o secular_a arm_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n no_o more_o then_o at_o this_o day_n any_o doubt_n but_o the_o authority_n necessary_a to_o make_v the_o convocation_n of_o national_n counsel_n authentical_a temporal_o must_v be_v that_o of_o the_o king_n or_o prince_n within_o who_o estate_n they_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o second_o case_n there_o be_v yet_o less_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o authority_n necessary_a to_o legitimate_a in_o conscience_n the_o convocation_n of_o counsel_n and_o to_o make_v they_o obligatorie_n spiritual_o must_v be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n a_o temporal_a magistrate_n not_o be_v able_a to_o confer_v any_o spiritual_a authority_n to_o counsel_n and_o indeed_o when_o the_o emperor_n have_v pretend_v
to_o call_v general_a counsel_n without_o be_v move_v thereto_o or_o second_v by_o the_o just_a ecclesiastical_a authority_n those_o counsel_n have_v be_v declare_v illegitimate_a not_o only_o by_o the_o final_a issue_n of_o their_o judgement_n but_o by_o the_o original_a vice_n of_o their_o form_n if_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n do_v not_o come_v in_o to_o correct_v the_o defect_n for_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la which_o be_v compound_v of_o four_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o which_o have_v be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n be_v declare_v invalid_a not_o only_o for_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o judgement_n but_o for_o this_o cause_n among_o other_o say_v the_o council_n of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n report_v by_o theodoret_n that_o it_o have_v be_v hold_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o sentence_n 22._o shall_v first_o of_o all_o have_v be_v attend_v and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o first_o complaint_n that_o be_v make_v against_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n that_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o second_o surprise_v by_o the_o fraud_n of_o the_o eutychian_o have_v call_v without_o the_o pope_n authority_n although_o with_o a_o request_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o assist_v at_o it_o or_o to_o send_v to_o it_o be_v that_o dioscorus_n presume_v to_o hold_v a_o council_n without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 1._o permission_n which_o have_v never_o be_v lawful_a or_o before_o do_v by_o mean_n whereof_o all_o the_o question_n of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n necessary_a from_o the_o part_n of_o the_o convocation_n to_o make_v counsel_n lawful_a in_o conscience_n and_o obligatory_a to_o the_o internal_a tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n be_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o to_o wit_n to_o who_o either_o to_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n it_o belong_v to_o call_v counsel_n spiritual_o now_o who_o doubt_v but_o it_o must_v be_v to_o he_o of_o the_o patriarch_n that_o ought_v to_o preside_v there_o and_o the_o defect_n of_o who_o presence_n either_o mediare_fw-la or_o immediate_a render_v the_o counsel_n invalid_a and_o who_o see_v not_o that_o even_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o be_v the_o direct_a successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v his_o vicar_n in_o who_o name_n all_o counsel_n ought_v to_o be_v call_v if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n and_o communion_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v the_o bishop_n as_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v of_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o of_o the_o principal_a church_n 55._o from_o whence_o the_o sacerdotal_a unity_n proceed_v and_o in_o brief_a have_v he_o not_o be_v superior_a in_o authority_n to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n but_o only_o the_o first_o of_o they_o in_o order_n it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o call_v they_o as_o it_o do_v ancient_o to_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o senate_n to_o call_v the_o senate_n and_o therefore_o when_o pope_n gelasius_n say_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a only_a decree_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d be_v hold_v it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o make_v this_o restriction_n but_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o when_o pope_n pelagius_n s._n gregory_n predecessor_n write_v the_o authority_n to_o call_v general_a counsel_n have_v be_v attribute_v by_o a_o singular_a privilege_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o holy_a peter_n it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o orient_n make_v this_o limitation_n but_o to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n pretend_v by_o the_o creation_n of_o his_o city_n into_o the_o title_n of_o the_o second_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v make_v equal_a to_o the_o pope_n not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o have_v be_v above_o say_v but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v dare_v to_o presume_v to_o participate_v in_o the_o east_n in_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n which_o 7._o title_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o in_o continuance_n of_o this_o presumption_n have_v endeavour_v to_o call_v a_o general_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o general_a council_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n in_o the_o east_n to_o the_o end_n then_o to_o repress_v his_o arrogance_n the_o pope_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o power_n to_o call_v general_a counsel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o general_a counsel_n aswell_o of_o all_o the_o empire_n as_o of_o the_o particular_a empire_n of_o constantinople_n as_o a_o ease_n exceed_v the_o simple_a patriarchall_a authority_n belong_v to_o the_o only_a direct_a and_o absolute_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n it_o have_v be_v report_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a say_v the_o same_o pelagius_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o orient_n the_o east_n that_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v entitle_v himself_o universal_a and_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o his_o presumption_n have_v call_v you_o to_o a_o general_a council_n he_o mean_v the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o east_n whereof_o euagrius_n speak_v call_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o gregory_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n notwithstanding_o that_o 7._o the_o authority_n of_o call_v general_a counsel_n have_v be_v attribute_v by_o a_o singular_a privilege_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o the_o holy_a peter_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o therefore_o all_o that_o you_o have_v decree_v in_o this_o your_o not_o council_n but_o conventicle_n i_o ordain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v disannul_v &_o abrogate_a which_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a also_o report_v in_o these_o word_n our_o predecessor_n pelagius_n of_o happy_a memory_n have_v abrogate_a by_o a_o sentence_n entire_o 69._o valid_a all_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n except_o what_o concern_v the_o affair_n of_o gregory_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n of_o happy_a memory_n now_o do_v not_o this_o alone_o suffice_v to_o decide_v the_o whole_a question_n for_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o equality_n that_o he_o challenge_v to_o have_v obtain_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o superiority_n over_o the_o other_o patriarch_n presume_v to_o call_v the_o general_a counsel_n of_o the_o east_n why_o be_v it_o not_o manifest_a that_o the_o authority_n to_o call_v general_a counsel_n forasmuch_o as_o concern_v spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o when_o the_o emperor_n possess_v almost_o all_o the_o region_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o when_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v spread_v almost_o over_o all_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n how_o much_o more_o now_o when_o that_o the_o emperor_n hold_v but_o the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o ancient_a empire_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v almost_o reduce_v into_o the_o province_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o those_o that_o by_o the_o conversion_n of_o country_n new_o discover_v have_v draw_v their_o mission_n and_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n from_o they_o but_o here_o be_v enough_o of_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n let_v we_o go_v forward_o to_o the_o other_o article_n card_n perron_n reply_v to_o the_o king_n of_o great_a britain_n the_o three_o book_n of_o appeal_v chapt_n i._o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d observation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o a_o contrary_a observation_n to_o 〈◊〉_d his_o 〈◊〉_d have_v say_v that_o those_o which_o be_v excommunicate_a by_o any_o of_o the_o church_n be_v present_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d of_o through_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o reply_n and_o what_o do_v this_o then_o signify_v that_o theodoret_n speak_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d make_v of_o saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o pope_n julius_n write_v julius_n follow_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n command_v they_o to_o come_v to_o 4._o rome_n and_o cite_v the_o divine_a 〈◊〉_d in_o judgement_n and_o what_o do_v this_o then_o signify_v that_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n that_o after_o the_o same_o athanasius_n 〈◊〉_d of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d marcellus_n primate_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o 〈◊〉_d and_o lucius_n bishop_n of_o andrinopolis_n in_o thrace_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o diverse_a counsel_n of_o the_o 7._o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o east_n the_o pope_n restore_v they_o every_o one_o to_o his_o church_n because_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n
who_o have_v be_v judge_v in_o the_o first_o instance_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d instance_n by_o the_o pope_n do_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n cry_v out_o that_o dioscorus_n and_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v restore_v to_o eutyches_n the_o dignity_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v deprive_v he_o of_o he_o have_v say_v they_o declare_v eutyches_n in_o 〈◊〉_d and_o have_v restore_v to_o he_o the_o dignity_n take_v 3._o from_o he_o by_o your_o holiness_n and_o wherefore_o then_o when_o john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v be_v depose_v from_o his_o patriarkship_n and_o peter_n surname_v mongus_n establish_v in_o his_o place_n do_v john_n appeal_v to_o pope_n simplicius_n and_o take_v synodical_a letter_n from_o calendion_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o accompany_v his_o appeal_n john_n say_v liberatus_n address_v himself_o to_o calendion_n patriarch_n 16._o of_o antioch_n and_o have_v get_v from_o he_o synodic_n all_o letter_n of_o intercession_n appeal_v to_o pope_n simplicius_n and_o wherefore_o then_o when_o pope_n felix_n successor_n to_o simplicius_n have_v depose_v the_o same_o peter_n mongus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n zenon_n and_o acacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o peter_n surname_v the_o tanner_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o that_o these_o three_o patriarch_n trust_v upon_o the_o support_n of_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n who_o be_v a_o heretic_n like_o themselves_o despise_v the_o pope_n sentence_n do_v victor_n of_o tune_n say_v that_o they_o die_v all_o three_o under_o damnation_n and_o wherefore_o then_o when_o the_o emperor_n justin_n a_o catholic_a prince_n be_v come_v to_o the_o empire_n be_v the_o sentence_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v pronounce_v against_o they_o execute_v so_o exact_o that_o their_o name_n even_o after_o their_o death_n be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o for_o the_o rest_n that_o have_v communicate_v with_o they_o but_o be_v not_o comprehend_v by_o name_n within_o the_o pope_n letter_n the_o emperor_n be_v fain_o to_o demand_v pardon_n of_o hormisd_v the_o pope_n for_o they_o we_o ask_v grace_n say_v the_o emperor_n write_v to_o pope_n hormisdas_n for_o the_o name_n not_o of_o acacius_n not_o of_o either_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o of_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n not_o of_o dioscorus_n or_o timotheus_n of_o who_o your_o holiness_n letter_n to_o we_o direct_v make_v especial_a mention_n but_o of_o those_o who_o the_o episcopal_a revereuce_n have_v celebrate_v in_o the_o other_o city_n and_o wherefore_o then_o when_o pope_n agapet_n depose_v within_o constantinople_n 12._o itself_o anthimus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v liberatus_n say_v the_o empress_n theodora_n wife_n to_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n on_o the_o one_o side_n secret_o offer_v great_a present_n to_o pope_n agapet_n and_o one_o the_o other_o side_n try_v he_o with_o threat_n to_o hinder_v he_o from_o depose_v anthimus_n but_o the_o pope_n persist_v in_o not_o hear_v her_o request_n and_o anthimus_n see_v himself_o cast_v out_o of_o his_o sea_n render_v up_o the_o archiepiscopall_a mantle_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o retire_v himself_o into_o a_o place_n where_o the_o empress_n take_v he_o into_o her_o protection_n and_o for_o what_o cause_n when_o the_o council_n of_o constan_n 〈◊〉_d hold_v under_o menas_n speak_v of_o the_o deposition_n of_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v it_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v pardon_v peter_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n that_o have_v communicate_v with_o he_o it_o must_v not_o be_v wonder_v at_o say_v the_o 1._o council_n if_o the_o great_a sea_n apostolic_a still_o continue_v to_o follow_v the_o first_o tract_n preserve_v the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n inviolate_a and_o maintain_v the_o faith_n and_o grant_v pardon_n to_o those_o that_o have_v sin_v and_o again_o the_o bless_a pope_n 4._o agapet_n of_o holy_a and_o reverend_a memory_n come_v into_o this_o royal_a city_n have_v next_o god_n give_v his_o help_a hand_n to_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o have_v cast_v anthimus_n out_o of_o the_o sea_n which_o appertain_v not_o to_o he_o and_o have_v pardon_v those_o who_o have_v participate_v or_o communicate_v with_o he_o and_o wherefore_o then_o when_o john_n archbishop_n of_o larissa_n and_o john_n primate_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n have_v injust_o condemn_v the_o one_o in_o the_o first_o and_o the_o other_o in_o thè_z second_o instance_n adrian_n bishop_n of_o thebes_n in_o thessalia_n do_v saint_n gregory_n deprive_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n of_o the_o communion_n 6._o for_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o day_n and_o eclipse_v the_o bishopric_n of_o thebes_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o larissa_n and_o ordain_v that_o if_o the_o archbishop_n of_o larissa_n shall_v any_o more_o attempt_n 7_o to_o enterprise_v any_o thing_n upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o thebes_n he_o shall_v remain_v deprive_v of_o the_o sacred_a communion_n so_o as_o it_o may_v not_o be_v restore_v to_o he_o except_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o wherefore_o then_o when_o the_o same_o s._n gregory_n restore_v 64._o athanasius_n abbot_n of_o tamnaca_n in_o lycaonia_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o have_v appeal_v from_o he_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a do_v he_o say_v to_o he_o we_o declare_v thou_o free_a from_o all_o crime_n of_o heresy_n and_o give_v thou_o free_a le_fw-fr ave_fw-la to_o repair_v to_o thy_o monastery_n and_o there_o to_o hold_v the_o same_o place_n as_o thou_o do_v before_o but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o these_o shift_n be_v more_o than_o sufficient_o confute_v by_o the_o only_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v frame_v to_o justify_v the_o restitution_n of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o s._n athanasius_n himself_o we_o remit_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o chapter_n we_o shall_v hereafter_o make_v thereof_o and_o the_o while_o we_o will_v examine_v sardica_n the_o objection_n that_o calvin_n allege_n against_o the_o appeal_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a which_o consist_v in_o five_o principal_a instance_n which_o though_o they_o be_v treat_v of_o under_o two_o title_n the_o one_o of_o correction_n &_o the_o other_o of_o appeal_n nevertheless_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o right_n of_o appeal_n depend_v 7._o from_o that_o of_o correction_n and_o beside_o that_o calvin_n mingle_v the_o instance_n of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o other_o we_o will_v treat_v of_o they_o under_o one_o title_n to_o wit_n under_o that_o of_o appeal_v of_o the_o opposition_n of_o s._n ireneus_fw-la to_o pope_n victor_n chapt_n ii_o the_o first_o instance_n then_o that_o calvin_n allege_v against_o the_o pope_n ibid._n censure_n be_v take_v from_o eusebius_n a_o arrian_n author_n and_o from_o ruffinus_n enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n his_o translator_n who_o write_v that_o s._n ireneus_n reprehend_v pope_n victor_n for_o have_v excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n for_o the_o question_n of_o the_o day_n of_o pasche_n which_o they_o observe_v according_a to_o a_o particular_a tradition_n that_o s._n john_n have_v introduce_v for_o a_o time_n in_o their_o province_n because_o of_o the_o neighbourhood_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o bury_v the_o synagogue_n with_o honour_n and_o not_o according_a to_o supra_fw-la the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n jreneus_n say_v calvin_n reprehend_v pope_n victor_n bitter_o because_o for_o a_o light_a cause_n he_o have_v move_v a_o great_a and_o perilous_a contention_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v this_o in_o the_o text_n that_o calvin_n produce_v he_o reprehend_v he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v well_o to_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o body_n of_o unity_n so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a church_n but_o against_o who_o make_v this_o but_o against_o hist._n those_o that_o object_n it_o for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o s._n ireneus_n do_v not_o there_o 24._o reprehend_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o want_n of_o power_n but_o for_o the_o ill_a use_n of_o his_o power_n and_o do_v not_o reproache_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o can_v not_o excomcommunicate_v the_o asian_o but_o admonish_v he_o that_o for_o so_o small_a a_o cause_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v cut_n of_o so_o many_o province_n from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n jreneus_n say_v eusebius_n do_v fit_o exhort_v pope_n victor_n that_o he_o shall_v 24._o not_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o hold_v this_o ancient_a tradition_n and_o ruffinus_n translate_n and_o enuenome_v eusebius_n say_v he_o question_v victor_n that_o he_o have_v 24._o not_o
do_v well_o in_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o body_n of_o unity_n so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a church_n of_o 3._o god_n and_o in_o truth_n how_o can_v s._n ireneus_n have_v reprehend_v the_o pope_n for_o want_n of_o power_n he_o that_o cry_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o 25._o powerful_a principality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o above_o appear_v because_o of_o a_o principality_n more_o powerful_a than_o the_o temporal_a or_o as_o we_o have_v expound_v otherwhere_o because_o of_o a_o more_o powerful_a original_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o church_n shall_v agree_v and_o therefore_o alsoe_o s._n ireneus_n allege_v not_o to_o pope_n victor_n the_o example_n of_o he_o and_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n assemble_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v expresselie_o for_o this_o effect_n who_o have_v 22._o not_o excommunicate_v the_o asian_o nor_o the_o example_n of_o narcissus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o palestina_n assemble_v in_o a_o other_o council_n hold_v express_o for_o the_o same_o effect_n who_o have_v not_o excommunicate_v they_o nor_o the_o example_n of_o palmas_n and_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o pontus_n assemble_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o the_o region_n of_o pontus_n who_o have_v not_o excommunicote_v they_o but_o only_a allege_n to_o 26._o he_o the_o example_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o predecessor_n the_o prelate_n say_v he_o who_o have_v preside_v before_o soter_n in_o the_o church_n where_o thou_o preside_v anisius_n pius_n hyginus_n telesphorus_n and_o sixtus_n have_v not_o observe_v this_o custom_n etc._n etc._n and_o nevertheless_o none_o of_o those_o that_o observe_v it_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o yet_o o_o admirable_a providence_n of_o god_n the_o success_n of_o the_o after_o age_n show_v that_o even_o in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o power_n the_o pope_n proceed_n be_v just_a for_o after_o the_o death_n of_o victor_n the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o ephesus_n 7._o excommunicate_v again_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o custom_n with_o the_o province_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v and_o place_v they_o in_o the_o catalogue_n 6._o of_o heretic_n under_o the_o title_n of_o heretic_n quarto_fw-la decumans_fw-la but_o to_o this_o instance_n calvin_n sect_n do_v annexe_v two_o new_a observation_n the_o first_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v threaten_v the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n to_o excommunicate_v they_o polycrates_n the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o metropolitan_a of_o asia_n despise_v the_o pope_n threat_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o same_o polycrates_n 24._o to_o pope_n victor_n which_o be_v insert_v in_o the_o write_n of_o eusehius_n and_o of_o s._n jerom_n &_o which_o saint_n jerom_n seem_v to_o approve_v when_o he_o say_v polycr_n he_o report_v it_o to_o show_v the_o spirit_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o second_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n pronounce_v ancient_o his_o excommunication_n he_o do_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v and_o do_v not_o thereby_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o universal_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o first_o than_o we_o say_v that_o so_o far_o be_v this_o epistle_n of_o polycrates_n from_o abate_v and_o diminish_v the_o pope_n authority_n that_o contrary_a wise_a it_o great_o magnify_v and_o exalte_v it_o for_o although_o polycrates_n blind_v with_o the_o love_n of_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o nation_n which_o he_o believe_v to_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o have_v assign_v the_o of_o the_o month_n of_o march_n for_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o pasche_n and_o upon_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n john_n tradition_n maintain_v it_o obstinate_o nevertheless_o 12._o this_o that_o he_o answer_v speak_v in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n to_o who_o he_o preside_v i_o fear_v not_o those_o that_o threaten_v we_o for_o my_o elder_n have_v say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n supra_fw-la then_o man_n do_v it_o not_o show_v that_o have_v it_o not_o be_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o pope_n threat_n be_v against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n there_o have_v be_v cause_n to_o fear_v it_o and_o he_o have_v be_v oblige_v to_o obey_v he_o for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o this_o answer_n it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v but_o to_o those_o who_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o obey_v if_o their_o commandment_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o commaundment_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o add_v that_o he_o have_v call_v the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n to_o a_o national_n council_n be_v summon_v to_o it_o by_o the_o pope_n do_v it_o not_o insinuate_v that_o the_o other_o counsel_n where_o of_o eusebius_n speak_v that_o be_v hold_v about_o this_o matter_n 23._o through_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o palestina_n which_o if_o you_o believe_v the_o act_n that_o beda_n say_v come_v to_o his_o hand_n theophilus_n vernali_fw-la archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n have_v call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o victor_n be_v hold_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o first_o mover_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n of_o constantinople_n of_o ephesus_n embrace_v the_o censure_n of_o victor_n and_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o observe_v the_o custom_n of_o polycrates_n do_v it_o not_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n but_o polycrates_n that_o be_v deceive_v in_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n commandment_n be_v against_o god_n commandment_n and_o that_o saint_n jerom_n himself_o celebrate_v the_o paschall_n homelye_v of_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o nicaea_n concern_v the_o pasche_n do_v it_o not_o justify_v that_o when_o saint_n jerom_n say_v that_o he_o report_v the_o epistle_n of_o polycrates_n to_o show_v the_o spirit_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o man_n he_o intend_v by_o authority_n not_o authority_n of_o right_n but_o of_o fact_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o credit_n that_o polycrates_n have_v among_o the_o asian_o and_o other_o quartodecumans_n to_o the_o second_o observation_n which_o be_v that_o when_o the_o pope_n excommucate_v other_o bishop_n archbishop_n or_o patriarch_n he_o separate_v himself_o from_o their_o communion_n but_o do_v not_o thereby_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n we_o will_v do_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o examine_v example_n that_o they_o allege_v for_o proof_n of_o their_o hypothesis_n and_o yet_o we_o will_v not_o examine_v they_o all_o for_o we_o have_v already_o confute_v the_o 27._o most_o part_n of_o they_o in_o the_o chapter_n precede_v as_o that_o of_o saint_n hilary_n against_o liberius_n and_o other_o the_o like_a we_o will_v only_o treat_v of_o those_o that_o they_o propound_v to_o we_o a_o new_a which_o consist_v in_o three_o principal_a head_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n ordain_v that_o every_o bishop_n that_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o case_n mention_v by_o the_o ten_o and_o thirteen_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n shall_v content_v himself_o with_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o one_o church_n alone_o from_o whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o every_o excommunication_n do_v not_o import_v privation_n of_o sacrament_n the_o second_o that_o nicephorus_n write_v that_o pope_n vigilius_n have_v excommunicate_v menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o four_o month_n menas_n yield_v he_o the_o same_o measure_n and_o the_o three_o that_o sigesbert_n speak_v of_o the_o proceed_n of_o 26._o pope_n innocent_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n say_v that_o pope_n innocent_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n suspend_v themselves_o from_o the_o 409._o communion_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o these_o example_n which_o be_v that_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n odaine_v thàt_v every_o bishop_n that_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o case_n of_o canon_n above_o mention_v shall_v content_v himself_o with_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o own_o church_n only_o we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o the_o censure_n whereof_o the_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n speak_v be_v not_o a_o excommunication_n but_o a_o restitution_n of_o communion_n by_o which_o those_o that_o do_v fall_v into_o the_o case_n whereof_o there_o be_v question_n may_v administer_v the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o their_o own_o diocese_n and_o to_o their_o own_o people_n but_o not_o out_o of_o their_o diocese_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o pope_n himself_o often_o use_v 〈◊〉_d restriction_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o 2_o epistle_n of_o
and_o in_o cut_v it_o of_o do_v not_o only_o cut_v it_o of_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o head_n only_o but_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n or_o that_o the_o stock_n and_o root_n in_o cut_v of_o some_o branch_n cut_v not_o of_o itself_o from_o that_o but_o cut_v that_o of_o from_o itself_o and_o in_o cut_v it_o of_o cut_v it_o not_o of_o only_a from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o root_n but_o from_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a tree_n and_o therefore_o we_o alsoe_o see_v that_o in_o all_o the_o breach_n of_o communion_n which_o have_v be_v between_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o other_o church_n there_o have_v happen_v four_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o when_o other_o church_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a all_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v always_o remain_v unite_v with_o the_o roman_a and_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o those_o which_o have_v forsake_v she_o the_o second_o that_o when_o it_o have_v be_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o have_v excommunicate_v other_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v forsake_v they_o or_o if_o they_o not_o think_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o excommunication_n grievous_a have_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o remonstrance_n and_o intercession_n to_o beseech_v she_o to_o suspend_v and_o revoke_v her_o censure_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n ireneus_n to_o pope_n victor_n upon_o the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o asian_o he_o supra_fw-la exhort_v he_o not_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d hold_v the_o tradition_n of_o this_o ancient_a custom_n and_o by_o those_o of_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d alexandria_n to_o pope_n steven_n upon_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n i_o have_v say_v he_o write_v beseech_v he_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n or_o occord_v to_o the_o other_o translation_n beseech_v he_o for_o they_o all_o and_o by_o these_o of_o socrates_n upon_o the_o pope_n censure_n against_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 15._o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v send_v the_o priest_n isidorus_n appease_v damasus_n you_o must_v read_v anastasius_n his_o indignation_n and_o represent_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o people_n to_o forget_v the_o fault_n of_o flavianus_n and_o so_o the_o communion_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o flavianus_n the_o faction_n of_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n be_v soon_o after_o reunite_v and_o by_o these_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n upon_o pope_n innocent_n sentence_n against_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n for_o s._n chrysostom_n cause_n it_o have_v be_v agree_v upon_o that_o concern_v the_o dissension_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o alexandrian_a church_n pope_n 2._o innocent_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o that_o both_o church_n may_v observe_v the_o peace_n that_o our_o lord_n have_v command_v for_o why_o shall_v it_o be_v ordain_v that_o pope_n innocent_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o and_o not_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n that_o keep_v the_o key_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o receive_v the_o alexandrian_a church_n into_o her_o communion_n and_o not_o to_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n to_o receive_v the_o roman_a into_o her_o communion_n and_o in_o brief_a that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o prescribe_v to_o the_o alexandrian_a the_o law_n of_o the_o reunion_n and_o not_o to_o the_o alexandrian_a to_o 〈◊〉_d they_o to_o the_o roman_a as_o theodoret_n witness_v that_o it_o happen_v a_o while_n after_o in_o these_o word_n john_n be_v dead_a those_o of_o the_o west_n will_v never_o admit_v the_o communion_n nether_a of_o the_o egyptian_n nor_o of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n nor_o of_o the_o `_o bishop_n 34._o of_o bosphorus_n and_o thrace_n till_o they_o have_v inscribe_v the_o name_n of_o this_o admirable_a personage_n into_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o bishop_n his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o three_o that_o when_o the_o separation_n have_v continue_v those_o that_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a have_v always_o be_v cast_v out_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o catholic_a church_n and_o repute_v for_o heretic_n or_o schismatickes_n as_o it-appeares_a even_o in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o asian_o excommunicate_v by_o victor_n who_o sectary_n be_v afterward_o constrain_v 6._o to_o abjure_v their_o heresy_n in_o these_o term_n i_o anathematise_v all_o heresy_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o the_o quartodecumans_n and_o the_o fowrth_n that_o when_o the_o divided_a part_n be_v to_o be_v reunite_v the_o other_o church_n have_v always_o send_v to_o take_v and_o demand_v their_o restitution_n into_o the_o commnnion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n never_o send_v to_o take_v or_o demand_v that_o of_o other_o church_n those_o of_o the_o west_n say_v theodoret_n speak_v of_o 23._o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n promise_v to_o lay_v by_o all_o bitterness_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o ambassador_n that_o flavianus_n shall_v send_v which_o the_o divine_a flavianus_n have_v hear_v he_o send_v a_o legation_n of_o famous_a bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o antioch_n to_o rome_n and_o socrates_n the_o communion_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o 15._o flavianus_n the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v soon_o after_o reunited_a and_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o write_v to_o alexander_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n upon_o s._n john_n chrysostom_n cause_n i_o have_v diligent_o in_o quire_v whether_o 17._o the_o case_n of_o the_o bless_a bishop_n john_n have_v be_v satisfy_v in_o all_o point_n and_o have_v find_v by_o those_o of_o your_o 〈◊〉_d that_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v accomplish_v according_a to_o our_o desire_n i_o have_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n admit_v the_o communion_n of_o your_o church_n and_o 〈◊〉_d treat_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n john_n be_v dead_a those_o of_o the_o west_n will_v supra_fw-la never_o admit_v the_o communion_n neither_o of_o the_o egyptian_n nor_o of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n nor_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o bosphorus_n and_o thrace_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o division_n of_o constantinople_n till_o they_o have_v inscribe_v the_o name_n of_o that_o admirable_a personage_n into_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o bishop_n his_o predecessor_n and_o scarce_o esteem_v arsacius_n who_o have_v succeed_v he_o 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d salute_v and_o as_o for_o atticus_n successor_n to_o arsacius_n after_o many_o legation_n ibid._n and_o 〈◊〉_d for_o peace_n they_o final_o receive_v he_o but_o when_o he_o have_v first_o add_v the_o name_n of_o john_n to_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o pope_n leo_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o anatolius_n 38._o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n we_o will_v say_v he_o that_o by_o our_o legate_n the_o care_n of_o the_o affair_n be_v communicate_v to_o thou_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o those_o that_o with_o full_a satisfaction_n shall_v condemn_v their_o evil_a action_n and_o rather_o choose_v to_o accuse_v then_o to_o defend_v themselves_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o unity_n of_o our_o peace_n and_o communion_n and_o else_o where_o but_o as_o for_o those_o that_o have_v more_o grievous_o sin_v if_o they_o after_o such_o satisfaction_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v it_o ought_v not_o 44._o to_o be_v refuse_v etc._n etc._n let_v the_o thing_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o more_o mature_a determination_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o pope_n hormisdas_n tyme-felowe_n with_o the_o emperor_n justin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n you_o must_v say_v he_o put_v on_o my_o person_n and_o of_o those_o that_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d with_o you_o in_o communion_n ibid._n and_o by_o you_o to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a inform_v we_o by_o your_o letter_n therein_o 〈◊〉_d therein_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o libel_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v present_v and_o again_o which_o we_o think_v wought_v to_o impose_v upon_o you_o lay_v our_o charge_n upon_o your_o diligence_n because_o you_o have_v give_v no_o small_a proof_n of_o your_o resistance_n to_o heretic_n and_o victor_n of_o tune_n report_v the_o same_o history_n the_o emperor_n justin_n reunite_v those_o of_o the_o east_n etc._n etc._n with_o chrome_n 〈◊〉_d satisfaction_n for_o those_o of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n nephew_n and_o successor_n to_o justin_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o pope_n john_n surname_v 〈◊〉_d we_o have_v hasten_v to_o submit_v and_o unit_fw-la to_o your_o holiness_n sea_n all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 8._o east_n country_n and_o certain_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v hold_v no_o other_o rank_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n than_o the_o other_o patriarch_n
archbishop_n or_o bishop_n for_o what_o cause_n be_v it_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v any_o other_o patriarch_n as_o when_o he_o excommunicate_v flavianus_n 〈◊〉_d and_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n or_o as_o when_o he_o excommunicate_v nestorius_n accacius_n &_o anthimus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n or_o as_o when_o he_o excommunicate_v theophilus_n peter_n and_o other_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n he_o do_v for_o all_o this_o incur_v no_o censure_n from_o the_o bishop_n or_o catholic_a counsel_n but_o be_v repute_v to_o do_v what_o he_o may_v do_v whereas_o when_o any_o other_o patriarch_n yea_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o a_o general_a council_n do_v 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n he_o be_v punish_v and_o depose_v for_o this_o presumption_n as_o for_o a_o enormous_a and_o extraordinary_a sacrilege_n for_o what_o have_v not_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n do_v in_o his_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o have_v embrace_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n he_o have_v condemn_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n he_o have_v excommunicate_v flavianus_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o maintain_v it_o and_o have_v not_o only_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o alsoe_o slay_v he_o and_o nevertelesse_a o_o eminent_a dignity_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d apostolic_a these_o sacrilege_n be_v not_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o deposition_n but_o that_o he_o and_o his_o pretend_a council_n have_v dare_v to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n dioscorus_n say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n 5._o bath_n not_o hene_n depose_v for_o the_o faith_n but_o because_o he_o excommunicate_v my_o lord_n the_o archbishop_n leo_n and_o that_o have_v be_v cite_v thrice_o before_o the_o council_n he_o appear_v not_o and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o their_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n after_o all_o these_o thing_n say_v they_o he_o have_v extend_v his_o frenzy_n even_o leon._n against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o thy_o holyness_n and_o have_v i_o ditate_v a_o excommunication_n against_o he_o who_o labour_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o why_o shall_v we_o have_v recourse_n to_o particular_a example_n since_o the_o common_a voice_n of_o antiquity_n teach_v we_o that_o in_o all_o the_o tumult_n and_o in_o all_o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o schism_n and_o heresy_n which_o have_v perturb_v the_o christian_a religion_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o be_v as_o the_o centre_n the_o principle_n and_o original_a of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o as_o the_o ensign_n colonel_n of_o the_o army_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o who_o all_o the_o other_o catholic_n 〈◊〉_d have_v cast_v their_o eye_n and_o to_o who_o they_o have_v gather_v 〈◊〉_d separate_n themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o that_o communicate_v not_o with_o she_o and_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o communicate_v with_o she_o for_o what_o mean_v these_o word_n of_o saint_n ireneus_n with_o the_o roman_a 3_o church_n because_o of_o a_o more_o powerful_a principality_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o every_o church_n shall_v comply_v and_o these_o of_o saint_n cyprian_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o unity_n have_v proceed_v and_o these_o of_o saint_n ambrose_n he_o ask_v whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o frat._n that_o place_n consent_v with_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o these_o of_o theodoret_n the_o emperor_n gratian_n command_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v he_o deliver_v to_o those_o that_o hold_v communion_n with_o damasus_n which_o 2._o be_v add_v he_o execute_v throughout_o the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o centre_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o root_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v admit_v to_o her_o communion_n be_v likewise_o admit_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o what_o mean_v these_o word_n of_o saint_n hierom_n i_o be_o join_v in_o 57_o communion_n with_o thy_o blessedness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o that_o rock_n etc._n etc._n whosoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o this_o house_n he_o be_v profane_a and_o a_o little_a after_o i_o know_v not_o vitalis_n i_o be_o iguorant_a of_o paulinus_n 8_o i_o reject_v meletius_n whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o the_o scatters_z and_o again_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o cry_v if_o any_o one_o be_v join_v to_o peter_n chair_n he_o be_v i_o and_o these_o 〈◊〉_d of_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la at_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v settle_v to_o peter_n the_o episcopal_a chair_n in_o which_o there_o be_v set_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o this_o only_o chair_n the_o unity_n of_o all_o may_v be_v preserve_v and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o person_n of_o cyricius_n all_o the_o world_n communicate_v with_o we_o by_o the_o commerce_n of_o form_a ibidem_fw-la letter_n and_o again_o from_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o you_o pretend_v to_o usurp_v to_o yourselves_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n you_o that_o combat_n against_o peter_n chair_n by_o your_o presumption_n and_o bold_a sacrilege_n but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o centre_n the_o principle_n ibidem_fw-la and_o the_o root_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o that_o those_o that_o be_v admit_v into_o her_o communion_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o those_o that_o be_v exclude_v from_o her_o communion_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o what_o mean_v these_o word_n of_o saint_n austin_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o 162._o apostolic_a sea_n and_o those_o of_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n to_o saint_n fulgentiv_n see_v to_o turn_v he_o from_o go_v to_o the_o monastery_n of_o egypt_n the_o ●icat_fw-la country_n whither_o thou_o desire_v to_o travel_v a_o perfidious_a dissension_n have_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bless_a peter_n all_o those_o religious_a person_n who_o admirable_a abstinence_n be_v celebrate_v shall_v not_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n common_a with_o thee●_n and_o these_o of_o victor_n of_o tune_n speak_v of_o the_o rebellion_n of_o vitalian_a against_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n the_o heretic_n he_o will_v never_o promise_v anast._n peace_n to_o the_o emperor_n till_o first_o he_o have_v restore_v the_o defendor_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n who_o have_v be_v banish_v into_o their_o own_o sea_n and_o till_o he_o have_v unite_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o roman_a but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o centre_n principle_n and_o the_o root_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v admit_v to_o her_o communion_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n &_o that_o those_o who_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o what_o do_v these_o word_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n intend_v we_o promise_v not_o to_o recite_v amid_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o be_v separate_v council_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o do_v not_o full_o consent_v with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n we_o preserve_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a church_n with_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n and_o these_o of_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n we_o follow_v council_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o obey_v it_o and_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o communicate_v therewith_o and_o condemn_v those_o that_o it_o condemn_v and_o these_o of_o the_o bishop_n greg._n return_v from_o the_o schism_n to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a i_o promise_v i_o will_v never_o return_v to_o the_o schism_n from_o whence_o 31._o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o redeemer_n i_o have_v be_v deliver_v but_o that_o i_o will_v remain_v always_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o centre_n the_o principle_n and_o the_o root_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o that_o those_o
that_o be_v admit_v into_o her_o communion_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o that_o those_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o her_o communion_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o opposition_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n chapt_n iii_o the_o second_o instance_n of_o calvin_n be_v take_v from_o saint_n cyprian_n 7._o and_o consist_v in_o seven_o head_n produce_v by_o he_o or_o by_o his_o disciple_n the_o first_o that_o saint_n cyprian_n call_v pope_n steven_n brother_n the_o second_o that_o he_o complain_v because_o basilides_n a_o bishop_n of_o spain_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o synod_n of_o his_o province_n for_o have_v bow_v under_o persecution_n and_o a_o other_o have_v be_v ordain_v in_o his_o place_n pope_n steven_n restore_v he_o the_o three_o that_o he_o say_v there_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n of_o lose_a and_o desperate_a person_n who_o believe_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n be_v lesser_a the_o fowrth_n that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n ought_v to_o be_v determine_v where_o they_o be_v breed_v the_o five_o that_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v one_o thing_n whereof_o every_o one_o hold_v his_o portion_n undivide_o the_o six_o that_o he_o cry_v none_o of_o we_o constitute_v himself_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o seven_o final_o that_o he_o use_v rude_a word_n against_o pope_n steven_n and_o accuse_v he_o of_o ignorance_n and_o of_o presumption_n to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o these_o head_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n cyprian_n call_v pope_n cornelius_n brother_n we_o cornel._n answer_v he_o call_v he_o brother_n not_o to_o deny_v to_o he_o the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n but_o for_o two_o other_o cause_n the_o one_o to_o insinuate_v that_o the_o pope_n superintendencie_n over_o other_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o lordly_a monarchy_n as_o that_o of_o temporal_a prince_n over_o their_o subject_n but_o a_o gentle_a and_o brotherly_a monarchy_n as_o that_o of_o a_o elder_a brother_n over_o his_o young_a brother_n which_o be_v the_o title_n that_o our_o lord_n himself_o will_v bear_v when_o he_o make_v himself_o be_v call_v the_o first_o bear_v among_o 8._o many_o brother_n and_o which_o be_v the_o memorial_n of_o humility_n that_o god_n have_v 17_o give_v to_o the_o king_n of_o his_o people_n when_o he_o have_v pronounce_v thou_o shall_v take_v a_o king_n from_o among_o thy_o brother_n and_o again_o that_o the_o king_n heart_n may_v not_o ibidem_fw-la be_v exalt_v above_o his_o brother_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n to_o represent_v this_o brotherly_a monarchy_n as_o well_o in_o the_o sacerdotal_a as_o in_o the_o politic_a 3._o order_n say_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o esdras_n and_o josua_n son_n of_o josedeck_v 〈◊〉_d up_o and_o the_o priest_n his_o brother_n and_o build_v up_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o to_o signify_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o communion_n that_o tertullian_n call_v the_o nomination_n of_o brotherhood_n and_o to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o antipope_n novatianus_n to_o who_o the_o schismatickes_n adhere_v but_o of_o the_o true_a pope_n cornelius_n and_o of_o steven_n his_o successor_n with_o who_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n communicate_v as_o erasmus_n have_v acknowledge_v upon_o the_o same_o place_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n in_o these_o term_n the_o word_n brother_n do_v not_o cornel._n there_o signify_v equality_n but_o society_n of_o religion_n for_o that_o it_o be_v a_o familiar_a thing_n for_o ancient_a author_n to_o use_v the_o word_n brother_n not_o to_o exclude_v the_o superiority_n 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o express_v the_o unity_n of_o communion_n it_o appear_v by_o a_o thousand_o testimony_n it_o appear_v first_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n who_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o holy_a brother_n and_o nevertheless_o '_o 78._o in_o the_o same_o place_n advertise_v theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v a_o committee_n from_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o procure_v his_o judgement_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n we_o conceive_v say_v he_o that_o you_o ought_v to_o reserr_v the_o affair_n ibid._n to_o our_o holy_a brother_n bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o we_o presume_v you_o will_v judge_v so_o as_o can_v not_o displease_v he_o and_o a_o little_a after_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o tenor_n of_o ibid._n your_o act_n when_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o you_o have_v judge_v thing_n so_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v undoubtedlie_o approve_v we_o will_v receive_v with_o joy_n the_o fruit_n of_o your_o examination_n it_o appear_v second_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o africa_n who_o answer_v the_o donatist_n in_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n that_o cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n have_v be_v their_o brother_n he_o be_v say_v 3._o saint_n austin_n our_o brother_n because_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o archbishop_n of_o carthage_n be_v head_n and_o superintendent_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n it_o appear_v three_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n augustine_n who_o call_v aurelius_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n his_o brother_n and_o neverthesse_n saint_n augustine_n be_v the_o spiritual_a subject_n to_o aurtlius_fw-la and_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n of_o hippo_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o dispensation_n monarch_n that_o aurelius_n have_v give_v to_o ualerius_n to_o take_v he_o for_o coadiutor_n and_o himself_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o execute_v his_o commandment_n i_o have_v say_v he_o obey_v thy_o commandment_n my_o holy_a brother_n 〈◊〉_d it_o appear_v 45_o fowrthlie_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o epigonius_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n who_o call_v the_o same_o aurelius_n his_o brother_n and_o nevertheless_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o aurelius_n have_v superintendencie_n over_o all_o africa_n it_o appear_v in_o the_o five_o place_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o write_v to_o pope_n hormisdas_n hormisd_v intitule_v he_o his_o brother_n and_o nevertheless_o protest_v we_o do_v in_o all_o thing_n follow_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o preach_v all_o that_o have_v be_v thereby_o decide_v and_o promise_v in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v not_o to_o recite_v amid_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v add_v he_o that_o do_v not_o altogether_o agree_v with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o final_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n who_o 8._o 〈◊〉_d to_o pope_n john_n surname_v mercurius_n we_o demand_v that_o your_o fatherlie_a 〈◊〉_d may_v declare_v to_o we_o your_o intention_n by_o your_o letter_n direct_v to_o we_o and_o to_o the_o most_o holy_a bishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o this_o famous_a city_n your_o brother_n and_o nevertheless_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 7._o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a prelate_n of_o god_n and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o word_n colleague_n or_o fellow-minister_n that_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a bishop_n sometime_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n not_o to_o weaken_v the_o superiority_n of_o the_o government_n but_o to_o design_n the_o society_n 24._o of_o the_o ministry_n and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o faithful_a and_o wise_a servant_n that_o the_o master_n have_v substitute_v over_o the_o company_n of_o his_o servant_n to_o give_v they_o their_o nourishment_n in_o due_a season_n be_v not_o lord_n but_o fellow_n servant_n to_o his_o fellow_n servant_n for_o that_o the_o father_n do_v so_o understand_v it_o it_o appear_v by_o many_o example_n it_o appear_v first_o by_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o apolog._n alexandria_n where_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n call_v saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n their_o colleague_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v their_o head_n 4._o and_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n and_o libya_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o from_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n which_o give_v perfect_a authority_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n over_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n and_o from_o the_o remonstrance_n that_o the_o metropolitan_o of_o 4._o egypt_n make_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o they_o can_v enterprise_v nothing_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n it_o appear_v secondlie_o by_o the_o epistle_n of_o proclus_n archbishop_n
it_o be_v a_o comparitive_a of_o positive_a signification_n which_o have_v no_o other_o meaning_n but_o less_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v little_a or_o not_o great_a enough_o as_o when_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n writeh_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o antonius_n if_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n resident_a in_o africa_n seem_v less_o sufficient_a that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o enough_o sufficient_a and_o the_o other_o that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o comparison_n of_o the_o comparative_a signification_n it_o shall_v no_o more_o have_v reference_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o to_o these_o word_n paucis_fw-la desperatis_fw-la &_o perditis_fw-la interpret_n they_o in_o the_o ablative_a and_o not_o in_o the_o dative_a and_o translate_n the_o period_n in_o this_o sense_n if_o it_o be_v not_o peradventure_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n constitute_v in_o asrica_n who_o have_v already_o judge_v of_o they_o be_v esteem_v less_o than_o a_o small_a number_n of_o desperate_a and_o lose_v man_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o period_n do_v afterward_o declare_v which_o compare_v the_o number_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n who_o have_v judge_v of_o fortunatus_n with_o those_o that_o take_v part_n with_o fortunatus_n and_o not_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o these_o word_n if_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o judge_v of_o ibid._n they_o the_o year_n past_a comprehend_v the_o priest_n and_o deacons_n be_v reckon_v it_o will_v be_v find_v there_o be_v more_o assistant_n present_a at_o the_o judgement_n and_o at_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o cause_n then_o of_o those_o that_o take_v fortunatus_n part_n and_o indeed_o if_o saint_n cyprian_n have_v intend_v this_o word_n in_o a_o comparative_a signification_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n how_o can_v he_o have_v say_v three_o line_n above_o they_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o unity_n have_v proceed_v and_o how_o coul_n optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la a_o african_a as_o well_o as_o he_o say_v at_o rome_n have_v be_v constitute_v 2._o to_o peter_n the_o chief_a the_o episcopal_a chair_n that_o in_o this_o only_a chair_n the_o unity_n of_o all_o may_v be_v preserve_v and_o how_o can_v saint_n augustine_n a_o 〈◊〉_d as_o well_o as_o either_o of_o they_o say_v that_o cecilianus_n may_v despise_v the_o 162._o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o seventy_o bishop_n of_o africa_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n of_o numidia_n with_o he_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o see_v himself_o unite_v by_o letter_n communicatorie_a with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o with_o the_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v into_o africa_n and_o again_o 92._o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la who_o have_v be_v judge_v by_o two_o counsel_n of_o africa_n whould_v more_o easy_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n authority_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o five_o head_n which_o be_v that_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n say_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o bishopric_n whence_o every_o one_o hold_v his_o portion_n undividedlie_o we_o answer_v eccl._n he_o use_v this_o language_n to_o insinuate_v that_o the_o bishopric_n can_v be_v possess_v separatelie_o out_o of_o the_o unity_n and_o society_n of_o the_o episcopal_a body_n but_o not_o to_o deny_v but_o that_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o episcopal_a body_n the_o function_n of_o episcopal_a power_n be_v exercise_v in_o a_o more_o principal_a and_o eminent_a manner_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n then_o in_o the_o other_o church_n no_o more_o than_o when_o we_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v possess_v by_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n inseparablie_o and_o undivide_o we_o intend_v not_o to_o say_v that_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o her_o function_n she_o reside_v not_o in_o a_o more_o principal_a and_o eminent_a fashion_n in_o the_o head_n then_o in_o the_o other_o part_n otherwise_o why_o shall_v he_o call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o 55._o principal_a church_n and_o the_o original_n of_o sacerdot_n all_o unity_n to_o the_o six_o head_n which_o be_v that_o s._n cyprian_n say_v in_o the_o council_n hold_v for_o the_o rebaptisation_n of_o heretic_n none_o of_o we_o constitute_v himself_o carth._n bishop_n of_o bishop_n we_o answer_v he_o speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o who_o he_o direct_v his_o speech_n and_o who_o he_o exhort_v to_o tell_v their_o opinion_n free_o in_o the_o council_n without_o be_v hold_v back_o by_o the_o respect_n of_o the_o authority_n that_o as_o primate_n of_o africa_n he_o have_v over_o they_o and_o we_o will_v add_v that_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v this_o language_n even_o to_o tax_v and_o prevent_v the_o pope_n oblique_o who_o afterward_o condemn_v he_o the_o matter_n will_v be_v of_o no_o weight_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o council_n be_v a_o erroneous_a council_n where_o s._n cyprian_n cast_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o donatists_n heresy_n and_o that_o as_o such_o it_o be_v not_o only_o condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n but_o even_o by_o those_o that_o have_v adhere_v to_o saint_n cyprian_n witness_n these_o word_n of_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d the_o bless_a cyprian_n strive_v to_o avoid_v the_o miry_a lucif_n lake_n and_o not_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o strange_a water_n and_o upon_o this_o subject_n address_v the_o synod_n of_o africa_n to_o steven_n bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v the_o twenty_o six_o after_o saint_n peter_n but_o his_o strife_n be_v in_o vain_a and_o final_o those_o that_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o cyprian_a set_v forth_o a_o new_a decree_n say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v so_o have_v it_o 〈◊〉_d deliver_v to_o they_o by_o their_o ancestor_n and_o we_o to_o the_o seven_o head_n which_o be_v of_o the_o invective_n that_o s._n cyp._n suffer_v to_o slip_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n after_o the_o contention_n that_o he_o have_v with_o pope_n steven_n for_o the_o rebaptisation_n of_o heretic_n tax_v he_o of_o ignorance_n and_o presumption_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v impiety_n in_o calvin_n to_o allege_v they_o since_o s._n austin_n 25._o hold_v they_o unworthy_a to_o be_v report_v and_o cover_v they_o with_o this_o excuse_n the_o thing_n which_o cyprian_n in_o anger_n have_v spread_v against_o steven_n i_o will_v not_o fuffer_v they_o to_o pass_v under_o my_o pen_n and_o we_o add_v the_o resistance_n that_o pope_n steven_n make_v to_o the_o error_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n as_o saint_n uincent_n lerin_n witness_v in_o these_o word_n then_o the_o bless_a 1._o steven_n resist_v with_o but_o before_o his_o colleague_n judge_v it_o as_o i_o conceive_v a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v surmount_v they_o as_o much_o in_o faith_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o place_n of_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a for_o the_o judgement_n of_o cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n chapt_n iv._o the_o three_o instance_n of_o calvin_n be_v take_v from_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la 162._o and_o from_o saint_n augustine_n who_o say_v that_o the_o donatist_n have_v accuse_v cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o felix_n bishop_n of_o aptunge_v his_o ordinator_n and_o beseech_v the_o emperor_n constantine_n who_o they_o be_v resident_a among_o the_o gaul_n to_o give_v they_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n the_o emperor_n give_v they_o three_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n who_o he_o send_v to_o rome_n to_o judge_v the_o affair_n with_o pope_n melchiade_n but_o who_o do_v this_o instance_n combat_n against_o but_o those_o that_o allege_v it_o for_o the_o emperor_n be_v constrain_v by_o the_o importunity_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o that_o as_o himself_o protest_v against_o all_o ecclesiastical_a order_n to_o give_v they_o judge_n and_o have_v give_v they_o according_a to_o their_o demand_n judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n what_o can_v he_o more_o express_o do_v to_o testify_v the_o pope_n authority_n then_o to_o remit_v they_o to_o rome_n and_o to_o ordain_v that_o the_o same_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n that_o he_o have_v give_v they_o shall_v transport_v themselves_o from_o the_o gaul_n to_o rome_n to_o the_o end_n the_o cause_n may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o pope_n tribunal_n and_o under_o the_o presidencie_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v there_o a_o strong_a mean_n to_o prove_v what_o we_o read_v in_o s._n athanasius_n that_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o
cause_n of_o 9_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v determine_v till_o first_o the_o decision_n have_v be_v make_v at_o rome_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o law_n require_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v constitute_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sentence_n shall_v be_v annul_v nevertheless_o for_o as_o much_o as_o calvin_n object_n that_o if_o this_o cause_n have_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n ordinary_a jurisdiction_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v judge_v it_o by_o the_o emperor_n commission_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o clear_v it_o to_o this_o objection_n then_o before_o we_o 〈◊〉_d the_o matter_n to_o the_o bottom_n we_o will_v answer_v in_o form_n of_o a_o prologue_n five_o thing_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o commission_n except_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o three_o assessor_n of_o the_o gaul_n that_o the_o emperor_n name_v to_o content_v the_o importunity_n of_o the_o donatist_n &_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v serve_v for_o 〈◊〉_d &_o warrant_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o remittment_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o emperor_n confession_n who_o avow_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o to_o examine_v this_o cause_n &_o by_o the_o election_n that_o the_o pope_n make_v of_o fifteen_o other_o bishop_n that_o he_o take_v for_o his_o assistant_n beside_o those_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v nominate_v and_o therefore_o although_o s._n aug._n in_o regard_n of_o the_o donatists_n intention_n sometime_o call_v this_o remittmenta_fw-mi delegation_n nevertheless_o he_o show_v sufficient_o that_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o relegation_n than_o a_o delegation_n when_o he_o note_v that_o the_o reason_n wherefore_o the_o emperor_n do_v it_o be_v for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o dare_v not_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n your_o superior_n say_v he_o to_o the_o donatist_n first_o bring_v the_o cause_n of_o cecilianus_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o because_o 〈◊〉_d 166._o dare_v not_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n he_o delegated_a the_o examination_n and_o 〈◊〉_d thereof_o to_o bishop_n i_o add_v that_o he_o use_v this_o language_n by_o synecdoche_n and_o referringe_a the_o word_n delegation_n to_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n only_o that_o be_v depute_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o to_o all_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o witness_v elsewhere_o by_o these_o word_n the_o emperor_n give_v to_o the_o donatist_n the_o judge_n that_o themselves_o have_v demand_v that_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 171._o the_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n and_o again_o donatus_n be_v hear_v at_o rome_n by_o the_o judge_n that_o himself_o have_v demand_v for_o of_o the_o nineteen_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v but_o three_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o those_o that_o donatus_n have_v demand_v donatus_n have_v demand_v but_o three_o but_o saint_n austin_n extende_v 29._o this_o clause_n by_o synecdoche_n to_o all_o the_o council_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o three_o judge_n demand_v by_o donatus_n have_v judge_v in_o common_a with_o all_o the_o council_n and_o be_v find_v so_o conformable_a to_o the_o rest_n as_o the_o judgement_n 1._o of_o the_o council_n which_o pass_v all_o with_o one_o voice_n and_o without_o any_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o they_o be_v oneself_o same_o thing_n the_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o constantine_n do_v not_o interpose_v his_o authority_n in_o this_o affair_n as_o master_n by_o himself_o of_o the_o cause_n but_o as_o a_o arbiter_n seek_v by_o the_o donatist_n and_o assuringe_v himself_o as_o a_o catholic_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v avow_v by_o the_o catholic_n this_o matter_n say_v saint_n augustin_n belong_v 162._o great_o to_o the_o emperor_n care_n whereof_o he_o ought_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n for_o the_o donatist_n have_v make_v he_o arbyter_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o tradition_n and_o of_o the_o schism_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o emperor_n interposition_n in_o this_o cause_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o not_o of_o right_a and_o who_o example_n can_v be_v allege_v for_o a_o pattern_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n the_o three_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o controversy_n question_v among_o the_o catholic_n and_o according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a law_n of_o the_o church_n but_o a_o suit_n commence_v by_o the_o heretic_n against_o the_o catholic_n and_o by_o way_n extraordinary_a to_o all_o the_o law_n and_o form_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o donatist_n have_v already_o break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n and_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n they_o be_v say_v saint_n augustin_n already_o ibid._n culpable_a of_o the_o schism_n and_o already_o stain_v with_o the_o horrible_a crime_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o altar_n against_o altar_n by_o mean_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o judge_n common_a between_o they_o and_o the_o catholic_n in_o the_o church_n there_o remain_v nothing_o for_o they_o to_o do_v but_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n who_o example_n can_v no_o more_o be_v draw_v into_o consequence_n against_o the_o ordininarie_a authority_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n than_o the_o judgement_n that_o ptolomeus_n philometor_n 6._o king_n of_o egypt_n give_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o samaritan_n can_v form_v a_o precedent_n against_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o of_o the_o sacerdotal_a college_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n the_o fowrth_n that_o the_o cause_n question_v in_o this_o process_n be_v not_o a_o cause_n of_o right_n and_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v by_o ecclesiastical_a mean_n such_o as_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n but_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n and_o whereof_o the_o hypothesis_n be_v mingle_v with_o accessory_n that_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n and_o can_v not_o be_v examine_v by_o ecclesiastical_a mean_n only_o but_o must_v be_v justify_v by_o human_a and_o secular_a mean_n as_o the_o confront_v of_o witness_n the_o act_n of_o notary_n yea_o pagan_a and_o heathen_a one_o the_o record_n of_o clerk_n 162._o and_o even_o the_o application_n of_o question_n and_o corporal_a torture_n for_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v principal_o ground_v upon_o the_o frame_n of_o a_o false_a letter_n that_o they_o have_v forge_v against_o felix_n bishop_n of_o aptunge_v for_o the_o examination_n whereof_o there_o must_v be_v a_o secular_a and_o proconsulary_a cecilian_a judgement_n interpose_v between_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v between_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o of_o arles_n to_o convince_v the_o forger_n of_o the_o falsehood_n by_o the_o application_n of_o 152._o rack_n and_o torture_n we_o have_v undertake_v say_v saint_n austin_n the_o defence_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o cecilianus_n although_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o 162._o church_n that_o we_o may_v make_v their_o calumny_n appear_v even_o in_o that_o and_o again_o speak_v of_o the_o torture_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o scrivener_n ingentius_fw-la or_o uigentius_fw-la to_o make_v he_o confess_v whether_o he_o have_v falsify_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o aedile_n alfius_n cecilianus_n to_o felix_n bishop_n of_o aptunge_v the_o proconsul_n say_v he_o among_o the_o fearful_a cry_n of_o the_o usher_n and_o the_o bloody_a hand_n of_o the_o hangman_n will_v not_o have_v condemn_v a_o colleague_n of_o his_o be_v absent_a and_o the_o five_o that_o all_o the_o act_n that_o the_o donatists_n extort_a from_o the_o emperor_n in_o this_o 〈◊〉_d he_o protest_v they_o to_o be_v so_o many_o irregularity_n and_o nullity_n and_o so_o many_o unlawful_a enterprise_n unjust_a and_o extraordinary_a wherein_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v constrain_v against_o his_o will_n to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o passion_n and_o malice_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o in_o yield_v to_o they_o to_o assay_v to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o be_v so_o 〈◊〉_d from_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o example_n thereof_o serve_v for_o a_o law_n to_o the_o bishop_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o promise_v to_o ask_v the_o bishop_n pardon_n the_o history_n be_v this_o the_o donatist_n have_v accuse_v cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n of_o treason_n or_o communication_n with_o traitor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o those_o that_o have_v deliver_v the_o holy_a book_n and_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n in_o the_o persecution_n time_n yea_o even_o to_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o a_o traitor_n so_o do_v they_o entitle_v felix_n
of_o the_o watchfulness_n of_o two_o episcopal_a counsel_n with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n who_o take_v the_o protection_n of_o his_o church_n have_v also_o be_v condemn_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o the_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a yea_o even_o to_o the_o number_n of_o two_o pope_n innocent_a and_o pope_n zosimus_n if_o they_o do_v not_o correct_v themselves_o and_o beside_o do_v penance_n and_o prosper_v his_o disciple_n under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n and_o of_o theodosius_n chronic._n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n two_o hundred_o and_o fourteen_o bishop_n be_v carry_v to_o pope_n zosimus_n which_o have_v be_v approve_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n be_v condemn_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o again_o the_o pope_n zosimus_n collator_n of_o bless_a memory_n add_v the_o force_n of_o his_o sentence_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n and_o to_o cut_v of_o impious_a person_n arm_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o peter_n the_o second_o solution_n that_o when_o bring_v to_o the_o place_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n be_v that_o the_o canon_n speak_v but_o of_o inferior_a clerk_n which_o be_v priest_n deacons_n subdeacons_n and_o other_o lesser_a order_n and_o not_o superior_a clerk_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bishop_n who_o cause_n because_o of_o the_o importance_n and_o dignity_n of_o their_o person_n be_v repute_v mayor_n cause_n as_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o though_o long_o after_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n in_o gallic_n these_o word_n the_o more_o the_o bishop_n be_v in_o a_o principal_a degree_n and_o more_o exalt_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o more_o when_o their_o preservation_n be_v treat_v of_o or_o their_o deposition_n ought_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v reckon_v among_o mayor_n and_o difficult_a cause_n for_o they_o be_v the_o first_o in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v those_o which_o hold_v the_o reed_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o measure_v the_o holy_a jerusalem_n they_o be_v those_o that_o rule_n in_o god_n building_n and_o this_o solution_n we_o draw_v first_o from_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n which_o be_v it_o have_v be_v think_v fit_a that_o 22._o the_o priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n in_o the_o cause_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v if_o they_o complain_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o bishop_n appeal_v not_o but_o to_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o their_o province_n by_o which_o word_n restrain_v to_o only_a priest_n deacons_n and_o other_o clerk_n of_o inferior_a order_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o counsel_n except_o the_o clerk_n of_o the_o superior_a order_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bishop_n and_o second_o we_o draw_v it_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n julius_n the_o first_o report_v by_o saint_n athanasius_n which_o say_v that_o saint_n athanasius_n can_v not_o be_v definitive_o judge_v without_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o ibid._n order_n of_o bishop_n they_o be_v say_v he_o bishop_n and_o not_o of_o vulgar_a church_n and_o a_o little_a after_o if_o then_o there_o be_v such_o a_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o the_o bishop_n there_o it_o must_v have_v be_v write_v of_o to_o this_o church_n here_o hereby_o testify_v to_o we_o that_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o inferior_a clerk_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v determine_v in_o particular_a counsel_n but_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v judge_v definitive_o without_o the_o pope_n and_o three_o we_o collect_v it_o from_o saint_n augustine_n who_o teach_v we_o as_o we_o note_v in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o fontaine-bleau_a that_o the_o prerogative_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o decret_a of_o priest_n deacons_n and_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v distinct_a in_o africa_n for_o matter_n of_o appeal_n and_o that_o the_o one_o to_o wit_n bishop_n may_v appeal_v beyond_o sea_n and_o not_o the_o other_o yea_o ground_n the_o justice_n of_o the_o catholic_n of_o africa_n who_o take_v part_n with_o cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n against_o the_o donatist_n who_o oppose_v he_o upon_o this_o that_o cecilianus_n have_v be_v judge_v by_o a_o council_n of_o seventy_o african_a bishop_n assemble_v at_o carthage_n can_v have_v appeal_v beyond_o sea_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o priest_n deacons_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o be_v of_o 162._o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n he_o may_v say_v saint_n austin_n despise_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n because_o he_o see_v himself_o join_v by_o communicatorie_a letterr_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d transmarine_a church_n for_o add_v he_o a_o little_a 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v no_o question_n of_o priest_n deacons_n or_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n but_o of_o the_o colleague_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o bishop_n who_o may_v reserve_v their_o cause_n entire_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o principal_o of_o the_o church_n apostolic_a in_o which_o place_n saint_n austin_n use_v the_o word_n church_n apostolic_a in_o the_o plural_a number_n not_o to_o deny_v the_o eminency_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n over_o the_o other_o apostolic_a church_n of_o which_o contrariwise_o he_o have_v new_o say_v that_o cecilianus_n may_v despise_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o see_v himself_o unite_v by_o communicatorie_a letter_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a but_o to_o the_o end_n to_o shut_v up_o the_o gate_n against_o the_o shift_n of_o the_o donatist_n which_o calumniate_v and_o reject_v the_o judgement_n that_o pope_n melchiade_n have_v make_v of_o cecilianus_n because_o they_o say_v that_o melchiade_n not_o only_o be_v culpable_a of_o the_o crime_n of_o treason_n as_o well_o as_o cecilianus_n and_o by_o consequent_a capable_a of_o refusal_n in_o this_o case_n but_o also_o whilst_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o deacon_n have_v sacrifice_v to_o idol_n with_o pope_n marcellinus_n for_o although_o this_o reproach_n be_v false_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o computation_n that_o saint_n augustine_n 〈◊〉_d give_v it_o elsewhere_o and_o by_o the_o testimony_n that_o theodoret_n give_v to_o marcellinus_n to_o have_v be_v most_o excellent_a in_o persecution_n nevertheless_o it_o give_v 〈◊〉_d colour_n to_o the_o donatist_n to_o revolt_v against_o the_o pope_n judgement_n therefore_o saint_n austin_n without_o tie_v himself_o to_o the_o specialitie_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n content_v himself_o to_o say_v in_o general_a that_o cecilianus_n may_v reserve_v his_o cause_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o transmarine_a church_n and_o principal_o those_o that_o be_v apostolic_a to_o infer_v thence_o that_o the_o donatist_n who_o upon_o the_o only_a sentence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n &_o without_o attend_v a_o judgement_n from_o beyond_o sea_n have_v institute_v a_o other_o archbishop_n at_o carthage_n be_v 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o privilege_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v that_o they_o may_v appeal_v beyond_o sea_n be_v such_o that_o their_o cause_n can_v not_o be_v determine_v either_o till_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v examine_v they_o or_o in_o default_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n put_v it_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o case_n give_v 16._o not_o grant_v that_o they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o refuse_v the_o pope_n in_o any_o affair_n till_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o other_o transmarine_a church_n &_o principal_o apostolic_a have_v interuen_v as_o s._n aus_n declare_v a_o while_n after_o in_o these_o word_n put_v the_o case_n that_o the_o bishop_n that_o judge_v the_o cause_n at_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v good_a judge_n there_o remain_v yet_o the_o universal_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o this_o cause_n then_o the_o milevitan_a council_n willing_a according_a to_o the_o ancient_a african_a discipline_n witness_v by_o saint_n austin_n himself_o to_o except_v at_o the_o canon_n where_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o appeal_n beyond_o sea_n be_v question_v the_o clerk_n of_o the_o superior_a order_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n put_v in_o by_o way_n of_o bar_n the_o specification_n of_o priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n to_o hinder_v bishop_n from_o be_v comprehend_v therein_o 22_o it_o have_v be_v think_v fit_a say_v the_o council_n that_o the_o priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n shall_v not_o appeal_v but_o to_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o
and_o compiler_n have_v strange_o confound_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o inform_v the_o reader_n therein_o before_o i_o pass_v further_o of_o the_o order_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n chapt_n vi_o to_o bring_v some_o light_n to_o this_o confusion_n you_o must_v note_v that_o there_o be_v three_o way_n by_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n the_o first_o the_o original_a text_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n which_o be_v come_v in_o form_n to_o we_o among_o which_o be_v seven_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v escape_v from_o the_o injury_n of_o time_n and_o some_o counsel_n of_o numidia_n the_o secondis_fw-la this_o latin_a rapsodie_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n contain_v in_o a_o hundred_o &_o five_o chapter_n which_o we_o call_v the_o council_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o three_o be_v this_o greek_a rapsodie_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n contain_v in_o a_o hundred_o thirty_o 〈◊〉_d whereof_o the_o first_o thirty_o three_o be_v translate_v from_o a_o latin_a collection_n false_o attribute_v to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o the_o hundred_o and_o five_o other_o be_v translate_v from_o the_o latin_a rapsodie_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o those_o three_o way_n we_o will_v distribute_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n into_o three_o part_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n then_o which_o be_v come_v in_o form_n to_o we_o the_o first_o be_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o gratus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n son_n to_o the_o great_a breu._n constantine_n when_o paulus_n and_o macarius_n be_v send_v into_o africa_n and_o who_o canon_n be_v cite_v by_o fulgentius_n ferrandus_fw-la a_o ancient_a african_a canonist_n alibi_fw-la with_o this_o title_n the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o saint_n gratus_n which_o council_n we_o call_v the_o first_o because_o it_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o orthodox_n counsel_n of_o africa_n that_o have_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n for_o that_o that_o be_v hold_v by_o saint_n cyprian_n be_v a_o erroneous_a council_n and_o reprove_v by_o the_o church_n the_o second_o be_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n celebrate_v under_o genetlius_n during_o the_o empire_n of_o valentinian_n the_o first_o the_o second_o be_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n assemble_v in_o the_o time_n of_o cornelius_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n the_o fowrth_n be_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n call_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n and_o eutychianus_n where_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v receive_v into_o ecclesiastical_a order_n be_v decide_v the_o five_o be_v the_o council_n date_v after_o the_o consulship_n whether_o of_o stilicon_n and_o aurelianus_n or_o whether_o as_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n will_v have_v it_o of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n where_o be_v decree_v the_o legation_n to_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o relic_n of_o idolatry_n the_o six_o be_v the_o council_n that_o be_v gather_v after_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n the_o eigth_n of_o the_o calend_n of_o june_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o apiarius_n and_o the_o seven_o be_v that_o that_o be_v keep_v the_o three_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o june_n of_o the_o same_o year_n after_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v retire_v and_o have_v leave_v with_o aurelius_n one_o &_o twenty_o deputy_n of_o all_o their_o assembly_n to_o the_o end_n to_o frame_n rule_v necessary_a for_o africa_n now_o in_o the_o business_n of_o these_o seven_o counsel_n we_o shall_v meet_v with_o seven_o principal_a difficulty_n which_o we_o will_v assay_v to_o remove_v all_o in_o this_o chapter_n the_o first_o difficulty_n be_v concern_v the_o second_o and_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n whereof_o some_o author_n of_o this_o age_n reverse_v the_o order_n and_o will_v have_v the_o second_o to_o be_v the_o eigth_n or_o the_o nine_o and_o the_o three_o to_o be_v the_o second_o and_o from_o the_o three_o they_o cut_v of_o many_o canon_n which_o they_o attribute_v to_o the_o six_o a_o thing_n that_o not_o only_o disturb_v the_o order_n and_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n but_o also_o diminish_v the_o antiquity_n of_o many_o canon_n advantageous_a to_o the_o catholic_a cause_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o same_o cause_n oblige_v i_o to_o replace_v they_o in_o their_o rank_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o 1606._o last_o impression_n of_o the_o counsel_n which_o have_v be_v make_v upon_o this_o new_a chronology_n begin_v to_o take_v such_o foot_n in_o man_n spirit_n as_o the_o more_o part_n of_o the_o modern_a writer_n sufferr_v themselves_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o it_o now_o i_o can_v set_v to_o my_o hand_n to_o correct_v it_o without_o shoulder_v and_o remove_v the_o computation_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n for_o it_o be_v he_o under_o who_o authority_n they_o cover_v themselves_o and_o out_o of_o who_o write_n they_o take_v all_o their_o argument_n and_o therefore_o before_o i_o enter_v into_o the_o matter_n i_o will_v beseech_v that_o great_a ornament_n of_o the_o church_n now_o that_o he_o discern_v from_o heaven_n his_o oblivion_n and_o we_o to_o pardon_v i_o if_o i_o be_v in_o any_o thing_n different_a from_o the_o course_n of_o his_o nanall_n for_o who_o can_v be_v such_o a_o homer_n as_o in_o so_o long_a and_o prodigious_a a_o labour_n not_o sometime_o to_o slumber_v but_o we_o must_v always_o remember_v that_o his_o defect_n be_v beneath_o his_o glory_n and_o that_o if_o within_o the_o great_a and_o immense_a mass_n of_o his_o work_n there_o be_v find_v as_o within_o the_o body_n of_o the_o moon_n some_o mark_n and_o spot_n they_o hinder_v he_o not_o from_o shine_v above_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a historian_n as_o luna_n when_o the_o night_n dim_a curtain_n shrine_v the_o sky_n the_o faint_a light_n of_o star_n outshine_v the_o reason_n then_o for_o which_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n 〈◊〉_d 397._o depart_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n from_o the_o ordinary_a chronology_n be_v sour_a the_o first_o that_o the_o inscription_n of_o this_o council_n be_v valentinian_n 397._o be_v the_o fowrth_a time_n consul_n with_o theodosius_n which_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o valentinian_n the_o first_o and_o of_o the_o great_a theodosius_n who_o be_v never_o together_o consul_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o have_v reference_n to_o conc._n theodosius_n the_o second_o &_o valentinian_n the_o three_o who_o be_v consul_n together_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n three_o hundred_o twenty_o five_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o when_o valentinian_n be_v name_v before_o theodosius_n it_o be_v valentinian_n the_o first_o and_o theodosius_n binn_n the_o great_a which_o be_v intend_v he_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o order_n have_v be_v invert_v and_o that_o instead_o of_o valentinian_n and_o theodosius_n it_o shall_v be_v restore_v theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n and_o because_o the_o fowrth_a consulship_n 1_o of_o valentinian_n the_o three_o fall_v out_o after_o the_o possession_n of_o africa_n by_o the_o vandal_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n he_o conceive_v that_o in_o steed_n of_o four_o we_o shall_v read_v iu_o and_o that_o these_o two_o letter_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d of_o cypher_v but_o a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o word_n junior_a and_o that_o the_o inscription_n speak_v of_o the_o young_a valentinian_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o this_o council_n be_v hold_v under_o genedius_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n which_o can_v be_v before_o aurelius_n for_o before_o aurelius_n there_o be_v no_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o genedius_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v in_o this_o council_n of_o aurelius_n and_o of_o genedius_n as_o be_v both_o present_a there_o by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o must_v be_v that_o this_o genedius_n be_v condintor_n to_o aurelius_n which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v but_o in_o the_o extreme_a old_a age_n of_o aurelius_n and_o by_o consequent_a long_o after_o the_o date_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o the_o fowrth_n which_o be_v the_o strong_a of_o all_o that_o alipius_n bishop_n of_o tagast_n and_o ualentin_n primate_n of_o numidia_n be_v there_o nominate_v as_o present_v and_o speak_v in_o the_o council_n which_o can_v agree_v to_o the_o chronologie_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o time_n whereof_o neither_o alipius_n as_o appear_v by_o saint_n 8._o 53._o augustine_n be_v bishop_n
council_n of_o africa_n the_o two_o and_o fortith_n canon_n epigonius_n bishop_n pronounce_v this_o among_o other_o thing_n i_o conceive_v that_o a_o people_n that_o have_v always_o be_v under_o the_o subjection_n of_o a_o bishop_n ibidem_fw-la and_o never_o have_v a_o proper_a bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o have_v a_o bishop_n all_o which_o be_v say_v nevertheless_o with_o so_o much_o respect_n as_o the_o world_n shall_v know_v that_o we_o admire_v the_o great_a cardinal_n baronius_n even_o when_o we_o reprove_v he_o and_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o his_o dream_n be_v more_o learned_a than_o the_o clear_a sight_n of_o other_o the_o second_o question_n concern_v the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n in_o chief_a be_v about_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o whether_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v publish_v all_o the_o fifttie_a canon_n that_o be_v in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n which_o be_v the_o forty_o seven_o or_o whether_o it_o have_v publish_v but_o twenty_o one_o the_o new_a promulgator_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o african_a church_n will_v have_v it_o that_o it_o publish_v but_o 21._o among_o which_o that_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v frame_v by_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v not_o comprehend_v and_o we_o contrariwise_o maintain_v that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v publish_v all_o the_o fifty_o canon_n contain_v in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n &_o among_o the_o rest_n that_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n their_o pretence_n be_v ground_v upon_o two_o reason_n the_o one_o that_o there_o be_v but_o twenty_o one_o canon_n or_o few_o more_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n insert_v into_o the_o african_a rhapsody_n among_o the_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v none_o and_o the_o other_o that_o in_o the_o continuance_n of_o this_o canon_n it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o must_v communicate_v with_o pope_n boniface_n and_o with_o other_o bishop_n beyond_o sea_n which_o boniface_n be_v of_o the_o time_n not_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o of_o the_o six_o to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o their_o reason_n we_o answer_v that_o whereas_o they_o say_v there_o be_v but_o twenty_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o rhapsody_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n it_o be_v because_o the_o rapsodist_n as_o it_o have_v above_o appear_v have_v insert_v there_o but_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o have_v add_v some_o amplification_n or_o modification_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o have_v not_o set_v in_o those_o that_o have_v first_o be_v institute_v in_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o have_v be_v but_o repeat_v in_o the_o three_o of_o carthage_n among_o which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o thirtith_n canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n who_o quotation_n remain_v to_o we_o in_o 30._o these_o word_n what_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n and_o beside_o which_o no_o other_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o second_o reason_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n who_o say_v that_o the_o fifty_o canon_n contain_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n can_v be_v all_o of_o this_o council_n and_o particulaaly_a the_o canon_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o pope_n boniface_n who_o be_v long_a time_n after_o we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o original_a canon_n of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o this_o mention_n be_v find_v of_o pope_n boniface_n but_o in_o the_o repetition_n that_o be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o canon_n in_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o thirty_o three_o canon_n attribute_v to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o pope_n boniface_n from_o whence_o certain_a ignorant_a exemplifier_n have_v take_v it_o away_o &_o make_v it_o retrograde_a in_o form_n of_o a_o diverse_a read_n in_o the_o margin_n of_o some_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o the_o other_o that_o if_o this_o continuance_n be_v of_o the_o original_a text_n of_o the_o canon_n it_o must_v have_v be_v read_v syricius_n &_o not_o bonifacius_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o canon_n follow_v where_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o a_o other_o matter_n say_v it_o 48._o 〈◊〉_d be_v conclude_v that_o we_o shall_v consult_v with_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n cyricius_n and_o simplicianus_n and_o because_o that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o a_o little_a after_o cyricius_n who_o die_v six_o month_n after_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v already_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n comformable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n more_o than_o fifteen_o year_n before_o boniface_n and_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o exup_n six_o council_n of_o carthage_n whereat_o the_o pope_n legate_n assist_v can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o by_o mean_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n to_o demand_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n in_o this_o regard_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o solve_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n but_o we_o must_v propound_v our_o own_o the_o 〈◊〉_d then_o that_o we_o make_v to_o convince_v that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v publish_v the_o fifty_o canon_n that_o be_v in_o the_o ordinary_a edition_n and_o among_o other_o that_o of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v ground_v upon_o four_o reason_n the_o firstreason_n be_v that_o the_o twelve_o council_n of_o toledo_n which_o be_v hold_v near_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o cit_v the_o 42_o the_o 4._o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o 42_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o africa_n it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o people_n that_o have_v be_v always_o subject_a to_o a_o diocese_n shall_v receive_v no_o other_o bishop_n for_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a word_n of_o the_o two_o &_o fortith_n canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o we_o 〈◊〉_d in_o our_o haude_n the_o second_o that_o in_o the_o repetition_n of_o twenty_o three_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o cesarius_n &_o atticus_n the_o six_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o september_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o african_a rhapsody_n there_o be_v a_o canon_n repeat_v which_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v also_o lawful_a to_o read_v the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o canon_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o adverbe_n alsoe_o to_o 13._o some_o canon_n from_o whence_o it_o have_v be_v separate_v can_v have_v no_o relation_n but_o to_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v any_o other_o scripture_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n and_o consequent_o suppose_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v be_v publish_v in_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o atticus_n and_o cesarius_n which_o be_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o that_o it_o have_v be_v omit_v in_o the_o rhapsody_n because_o it_o report_v none_o but_o those_o canon_n that_o have_v add_v some_o amplification_n or_o diminution_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n which_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n can_v not_o see_v for_o the_o impediment_n that_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o vicious_a collocation_n that_o the_o exemplifier_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n have_v make_v of_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v after_o the_o consulship_n of_o stelicon_n which_o they_o have_v interpose_v between_o the_o exordium_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o atticus_n and_o cesarius_n and_o the_o first_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n a_o thing_n which_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o think_v that_o all_o the_o thirty_o two_o canon_n follow_v be_v of_o the_o council_n celebrate_v after_o stilicon_n consulship_n whereas_o the_o 401._o twenty_o three_o first_o be_v of_o the_o council_n celebrate_v under_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n as_o we_o will_v prove_v hereafter_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o date_n and_o by_o council_n confer_v of_o the_o greek_a edition_n and_o as_o it_o be_v
confirm_v also_o by_o the_o fowrteenth_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n which_o make_v mention_n of_o syricius_n and_o of_o simplicianus_n which_o be_v not_o bishop_n together_o but_o under_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la cit_v these_o two_o canon_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n and_o that_o of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o martyr_n as_o two_o consequent_a canon_n and_o the_o one_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o forty_o five_o and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o forty_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n that_o 229._o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n canon_n fifty_o six_o and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n canon_n forty_o five_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v also_o lawful_a to_o read_v the_o martyr_n passion_n on_o the_o day_n of_o their_o martyrdom_n the_o council_n of_o carthage_n canon_n forty_o six_o which_o can_v be_v mean_v but_o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o well_o because_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n contain_v but_o thirty_o three_o canon_n as_o because_o the_o last_o of_o these_o two_o canon_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o only_o in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o they_o be_v couch_v one_o next_o after_o the_o other_o and_o the_o fowrth_n final_o because_o saint_n austin_n teach_v us._n that_o the_o first_o among_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v publish_v be_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o not_o the_o six_o for_o he_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o quintianus_n that_o in_o the_o same_o council_n where_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v enter_v it_o be_v also_o ordain_v that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o usurp_v the_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o bishop_n i_o be_o amaze_v say_v he_o that_o thou_o do_v admonish_v i_o to_o command_v 235._o that_o those_o that_o come_v from_o your_o quarter_n into_o our_o monastery_n shall_v not_o be_v receive_v that_o that_o which_o have_v be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n by_o we_o may_v be_v observe_v and_o that_o thou_o remember_v not_o that_o in_o the_o same_o council_n it_o be_v determine_v what_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n then_o review_v this_o council_n and_o bring_v to_o thy_o memory_n all_o thing_n that_o thou_o shall_v read_v there_o and_o thou_o shall_v perceive_v it_o be_v so_o decide_v only_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o not_o of_o the_o laity_n that_o come_v from_o other_o diocese_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v into_o our_o monastery_n not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o word_n of_o a_o monastery_n but_o because_o it_o have_v be_v decree_v that_o none_o shall_v receive_v the_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o now_o the_o canon_n that_o prohibit_v bishop_n to_o receive_v 21._o the_o clerk_n of_o other_o bishop_n be_v in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o not_o in_o the_o six_o moreover_o he_o add_v that_o in_o a_o late_a council_n it_o have_v be_v ordain_v that_o those_o that_o depart_v from_o a_o monastery_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v clerk_n or_o superintendent_o of_o a_o other_o monastery_n in_o the_o council_n say_v he_o where_o it_o be_v determine_v what_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o a_o monastery_n only_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o none_o shall_v receive_v the_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o but_o in_o a_o late_a council_n it_o have_v be_v decree_v that_o those_o that_o have_v retire_v themselves_o or_o have_v be_v expel_v out_o of_o any_o monastery_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v clerk_n in_o any_o other_o place_n or_o superintend_v any_o minastery_n which_o show_v again_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v publish_v where_o of_o saint_n austin_n speak_v be_v the_o three_o council_n and_o not_o the_o six_o for_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v to_o receive_v a_o religious_a man_n that_o retire_v from_o a_o monastery_n and_o to_o make_v he_o clerk_n or_o superintendent_n of_o a_o other_o monastery_n be_v institute_v in_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o precede_v the_o six_o near_o eighteen_o year_n the_o three_o controversy_n be_v concern_v the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n 13._o hold_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n and_o of_o eutychianus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o next_o year_n after_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n the_o which_o not_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n baronius_n but_o the_o new_a publisher_n of_o the_o greek_a edition_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n race_n from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n move_v thereto_o because_o it_o be_v not_o insert_v into_o that_o rapsodie_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a council_n now_o this_o conjecture_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o confutation_n for_o beside_o that_o the_o collection_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a council_n be_v far_o from_o comprehend_v either_o in_o general_a all_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n witness_v the_o council_n of_o suffetula_n the_o council_n of_o septimunica_fw-la the_o council_n of_o marazan_n the_o council_n of_o tusdra_n the_o council_n of_o macri_n the_o council_n breu._n of_o zelles_n the_o council_n of_o tunis_n the_o council_n of_o juca_n or_o rather_o tuca_n cite_v by_o 2._o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la which_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o african_a 11._o rhapsody_n or_o in_o particular_a all_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o principal_o if_o 44._o 23._o we_o believe_v the_o edition_n of_o the_o same_o ferandus_fw-la who_o allege_v the_o five_o canon_n 76._o of_o the_o fifty_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n there_o be_v two_o evident_a reason_n 65._o 61._o wherefore_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v insert_v into_o 26._o the_o collection_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a counsel_n 13._o the_o one_o that_o he_o that_o collect_v they_o have_v restrain_v himself_o of_o deliberate_a purpose_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o division_n of_o the_o nintie_n nine_o canon_n of_o his_o rapsodie_n which_o be_v the_o last_o of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o to_o find_v the_o reckon_n just_o he_o divide_v in_o two_o to_o make_v but_o one_o century_n of_o african_a canon_n within_o which_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n which_o only_o contain_v a_o hundred_o and_o four_o canon_n can_v not_o enter_v and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n have_v prescribe_v the_o law_n under_o which_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a person_n of_o africa_n ought_v to_o be_v promote_v to_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o inserte_n it_o into_o the_o body_n of_o this_o rapsodie_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o wander_v from_o the_o matter_n for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o particular_o bishop_n be_v oblige_v to_o keep_v it_o in_o their_o hand_n to_o those_o two_o reason_n i_o will_v yet_o annex_v two_o other_o which_o convince_v that_o it_o be_v true_o ancient_a and_o due_a to_o the_o age_n whereto_o we_o attribute_v it_o the_o one_o be_v that_o the_o thing_n there_o decide_v agree_v whole_o to_o the_o estate_n of_o africa_n in_o s._n aug._n time_n as_o the_o profession_n which_o this_o council_n oblige_v bishop_n to_o make_v come_v to_o the_o bishop_n sea_n that_o oneself_o same_o 1._o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v become_v ill_o by_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o will_n to_o exclude_v the_o manichee_n as_o the_o belief_n that_o be_v exact_v from_o they_o that_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n one_o be_v save_v to_o exclude_v the_o 84._o donatist_n as_o the_o prohibition_n that_o he_o make_v to_o drive_v the_o gentill_n or_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o heretic_n out_o of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o dimission_n of_o the_o catechuman_n which_o show_v that_o this_o council_n be_v hold_v while_o paganism_n last_v yet_o among_o the_o province_n 44._o of_o the_o christian_n or_o as_o the_o canon_n that_o he_o institute_v that_o the_o clerk_n shall_v not_o nourish_v either_o their_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n or_o their_o beard_n 52._o and_o may_v get_v their_o meat_n drink_v and_o cloth_n by_o a_o trade_n or_o by_o husbandry_n without_o derogate_a from_o their_o
have_v 10._o be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o east_n and_o that_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v they_o whould_v assemble_v a_o council_n to_o advise_v upon_o it_o from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v finish_v the_o same_o year_n wherein_o it_o begin_v and_o last_v but_o till_o the_o copy_n come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n which_o arrive_v in_o the_o month_n of_o november_n of_o the_o consulship_n of_o monaxius_n and_o plinta_n and_o the_o other_o that_o when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o the_o last_o process_n of_o apiarius_n and_o of_o the_o second_o voyage_n of_o faustinus_n into_o africa_n the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n write_v to_o pope_n celestine_n that_o they_o have_v assemble_v a_o council_n express_o upon_o the_o occurrence_n of_o this_o business_n from_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v not_o continue_v till_o then_o our_o holy_a brother_n caelest_n &_o fellow_n bishop_n faustinus_n say_v they_o come_v to_o we_o we_o have_v assemble_v a_o council_n whereto_o there_o may_v yet_o be_v add_v that_o between_o the_o first_o appeal_n of_o apiarius_n when_o he_o be_v pursue_v by_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o sicca_n which_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o flavianus_n and_o the_o second_o appeal_n of_o the_o same_o apiarius_n when_o he_o be_v pusue_v by_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o thabraca_n which_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o council_n hold_v after_o the_o return_n of_o faustinus_n into_o africa_n there_o do_v again_o intervene_v a_o other_o council_n by_o which_o he_o have_v be_v deprive_v a_o second_o time_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reply_v 7_o that_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n choose_v twenty_o two_o deputiesto_fw-la finish_v what_o have_v not_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o general_a assembly_n of_o the_o council_n for_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a thing_n for_o the_o general_a counsel_n of_o africa_n when_o they_o have_v be_v some_o day_n together_o to_o avoid_v the_o wearysomnes_n and_o the_o expense_n of_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o bishop_n to_o choose_v three_o or_o four_o 〈◊〉_d from_o every_o province_n who_o shall_v prepare_v and_o put_v into_o form_n the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n as_o in_o the_o council_n hold_v the_o year_n before_o under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n after_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v choose_v three_o deputy_n of_o every_o province_n to_o determine_v 94._o the_o other_o business_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o reduce_v into_o form_n the_o act_n of_o what_o have_v be_v there_o resolve_v and_o nevertheless_o so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o appear_v from_o thence_o that_o this_o council_n last_v to_o the_o year_n follow_v as_o contrariwise_o the_o year_n follow_v which_o be_v the_o year_n after_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n there_o be_v assemble_v a_o new_a council_n the_o 1._o eigth_n of_o the_o calend_n of_o june_n which_o be_v that_o that_o we_o call_v the_o six_o of_o carthage_n the_o seven_o skirmish_n be_v about_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v a_o gather_n of_o thirty_o three_o of_o the_o principal_a canon_n of_o the_o former_a counsel_n of_o carthage_n which_o many_o think_v to_o have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o we_o conntrarywise_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v compile_v by_o some_o impertinent_a rapsodist_n whether_o a_o african_a during_o the_o last_o and_o most_o barbarous_a time_n of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o uandall_n in_o africa_n or_o a_o europian_n while_o the_o heresy_n and_o tyranny_n of_o the_o vandal_n hinder_v the_o catholic_n on_o this_o side_n the_o sea_n from_o be_v able_a to_o have_v exact_a communication_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n of_o africa_n and_o we_o be_v ground_v in_o this_o belief_n by_o infinite_a reason_n the_o first_o reason_n be_v that_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la a_o african_a deacon_n and_o very_o conversant_a in_o the_o african_a antiquity_n who_o write_v a_o little_a before_o the_o expulsion_n of_o the_o uandall_n out_o of_o africa_n not_o only_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o this_o collecton_n that_o they_o entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o also_o citinge_v some_o of_o the_o canon_n that_o be_v there_o allege_v they_o under_o the_o title_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o former_a counsel_n of_o carthage_n as_o when_o he_o cit_v the_o canon_n 4._o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n he_o cite_v it_o from_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o there_o be_v add_v the_o permission_n to_o read_v the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o be_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o do_v not_o note_n that_o this_o canon_n have_v be_v publish_v in_o any_o other_o council_n of_o carthage_n when_o he_o register_n the_o prohibition_n of_o ordayninge_v bishop_n without_o the_o 16_o consent_n of_o their_o primate_n he_o allege_v it_o with_o these_o quotation_n 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o carthage_n under_o the_o prelate_n genetlius_n title_n ten_o the_o general_n council_n of_o carthage_n title_n forty_o fowerth_o and_o the_o council_n of_o zelles_n in_o the_o recital_n of_o the_o pope_n epistle_n and_o make_v no_o mention_n among_o the_o place_n where_o this_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n be_v that_o we_o call_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v hold_v the_o year_n after_o that_o of_o zelles_n when_o he_o enroll_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o celibate_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacons_n he_o insert_v it_o with_o this_o quotation_n the_o council_n of_o carthage_n title_n the_o first_o and_o council_n of_o zelles_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v after_o that_o of_o zelles_n which_o be_v that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o six_o he_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v object_v that_o these_o fragment_n be_v find_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la for_o beside_o that_o the_o collection_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la be_v compile_v not_o by_o a_o natural_a african_a as_o be_v fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la but_o by_o a_o scythian_a it_o be_v make_v after_o the_o register_n of_o ferandus_fw-la as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v there_o insert_v which_o in_o pope_n gelasius_n his_o time_n and_o in_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la his_o time_n who_o be_v both_o african_n be_v neither_o recevy_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o in_o the_o african_a church_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o register_n of_o ferandus_fw-la and_o by_o the_o division_n of_o the_o last_o canon_n of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o the_o collection_n dict_z of_o dionysius_n and_o the_o greek_a edition_n that_o follow_v it_o do_v divide_v 100_o inpertinent_o into_o two_o canon_n whereas_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la and_o the_o 133._o original_a text_n of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n do_v place_n they_o under_o one_o only_a title_n and_o to_o this_o there_o be_v no_o opposition_n in_o this_o that_o victor_n bishop_n of_o tunune_n or_o according_a to_o other_o ton_n extende_v the_o 73._o 〈◊〉_d of_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la if_o the_o quotation_n be_v not_o transpose_v to_o the_o one_o &_o twentieth_o year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o justinian_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la write_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n and_o of_o 5._o fulgentius_n bishop_n of_o ruspa_n to_o who_o he_o dedicate_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o five_o question_n scriptor_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o these_o fragment_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v not_o in_o the_o collection_n of_o jsidorus_fw-la mercator_fw-la and_o in_o the_o 59_o ordinary_a volume_n of_o the_o counsel_n where_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n in_o chief_a be_v report_v and_o all_o the_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n whereof_o we_o make_v use_v contrariwise_o that_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n 620._o which_o be_v there_o insert_v contain_v no_o canon_n and_o comprehend_v but_o the_o verbal_a process_n of_o what_o pass_v between_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n about_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_n which_o verbal_a process_n be_v reduce_v only_o to_o ten_o chapter_n after_o which_o immediate_o follow_v in_o the_o calend._n ordinary_a copy_n the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o the_o seven_o be_v not_o two_o different_a counsel_n but_o two_o action_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o council_n the_o one_o attic._n celebrate_v the_o eigth_n of_o the_o calend_n of_o june_n under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n conc._n of_o honorius_n and_o the_o
bishop_n and_o if_o any_o man_n happen_v in_o any_o thing_n to_o contradict_v his_o profession_n or_o his_o signature_n he_o shall_v thereby_o make_v himself_o incapable_a of_o this_o society_n and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o fit_a it_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n either_o he_o or_o the_o exemplifier_n which_o have_v come_v after_o he_o have_v change_v the_o name_n of_o genetlius_n into_o that_o of_o aurelius_n against_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o say_v breu._n genetlius_n and_o of_o fulgentius_n ferrandus_fw-la who_o cit_v these_o canon_n with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o genetlius_n 4._o the_o seven_o reason_n but_o one_o that_o comprehende_v under_o it_o a_o legion_n of_o other_o be_v that_o almost_o all_o the_o canon_n that_o be_v insert_v into_o this_o collection_n be_v there_o insert_v with_o precise_a note_n of_o canon_n compose_v &_o pronounce_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v scarce_o one_o of_o they_o where_o there_o be_v not_o some_o clause_n that_o can_v agree_v neither_o with_o the_o time_n nor_o 3._o with_o the_o person_n nor_o yet_o with_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o coucell_n of_o carthage_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o three_o canon_n it_o be_v say_v when_o in_o the_o council_n past_a the_o continence_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v treat_v of_o these_o three_o degree_n be_v restrain_v by_o the_o consecration_n as_o to_o one_o kind_n of_o conscription_n of_o chastity_n to_o wit_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacons_n now_o it_o have_v already_o be_v show_v that_o these_o word_n can_v be_v of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o well_o 2._o because_o they_o be_v word_n by_o word_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o have_v be_v celebrate_v thirty_o year_n before_o &_o with_o this_o same_o remitment_n to_o the_o past_a council_n as_o because_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n which_o have_v immediate_o precede_v the_o 12._o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n there_o have_v be_v nothing_o ordain_v concern_v the_o continence_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o by_o this_o phrase_n afric_n in_o the_o council_n past_a they_o intend_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n assemble_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o vincentius_n &_o flavitas_fw-la which_o have_v be_v celebrate_v 37._o eighteen_o year_n before_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o beside_o that_o this_o note_n of_o time_n in_o concilio_n praeterito_fw-la determinate_o take_v &_o to_o say_v in_o the_o past_a council_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o council_n last_o pass_v and_o indeterminate_o take_v &_o to_o say_v in_o a_o council_n past_a it_o can_v have_v be_v use_v by_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o time_n whereof_o the_o decree_n of_o clergy_n continence_n have_v be_v publish_v not_o in_o one_o but_o in_o many_o and_o several_a counsel_n as_o the_o 25._o twenty_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o collection_n declare_v when_o it_o say_v that_o have_v please_v we_o which_o have_v also_o be_v confirm_v in_o several_a counsel_n that_o the_o subdeacons_n which_o handle_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o former_a decree_n shall_v abstain_v even_o from_o their_o wife_n the_o word_n in_o concilio_n praeterito_fw-la can_v be_v expound_v of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o uincentius_n and_o flavitas_fw-la for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o celibat_fw-la publish_v under_o the_o consulship_n of_o uincentius_n and_o flavitas_fw-la be_v whole_o report_v in_o the_o same_o collection_n more_o than_o twenty_o chapter_n 5._o after_o in_o the_o five_o canon_n the_o text_n say_v faustinus_n bishop_n of_o potentia_n of_o the_o province_n of_o urbino_n legat_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v it_o please_v that_o bishop_n priect_n and_o deacon_n or_o those_o that_o handle_v the_o sacrament_n keep_v chastity_n shall_v abstain_v even_o from_o their_o own_o wife_n now_o this_o canon_n be_v not_o a_o canon_n by_o itself_o but_o the_o train_n of_o a_o former_a canon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o second_o canon_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o which_o the_o compiler_n of_o 2._o the_o collection_n or_o his_o exemplifier_n in_o steed_n of_o these_o word_n it_o be_v say_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n it_o please_v all_o that_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n or_o those_o that_o handle_v the_o sacrament_n keep_v chastity_n shall_v abstain_v even_o from_o their_o own_o wife_n have_v put_v to_o fit_a the_o decree_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n faustinus_n bishop_n of_o potentia_n of_o the_o province_n of_o urbin_n legat_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v it_o please_v that_o bishop_n priest_n deacons_n or_o those_o that_o shall_v handle_v the_o sacrament_n keep_v chastity_n shall_v abstain_v even_o from_o their_o own_o wife_n apud_fw-la a_o thing_n that_o can_v no_o way_n subsist_v for_o beside_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o pope_n legate_n that_o have_v speak_v this_o language_n he_o will_v never_o have_v forget_v to_o mention_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o celibate_n send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n by_o pope_n syricius_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o clause_n be_v not_o a_o canon_n a_o part_n but_o 130._o it_o be_v the_o approbation_n and_o conclusion_n of_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o therefore_o alsoe_o in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n it_o be_v join_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o canon_n with_o the_o precede_a article_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o author_n 3._o of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n not_o only_o have_v thereof_o make_v two_o canon_n in_o chief_a but_o the_o better_a to_o distinguish_v and_o 4._o make_v manifest_a his_o impertinency_n have_v entitle_v they_o with_o two_o differ_a title_n 4._o and_o have_v place_v before_o the_o one_o of_o they_o this_o inscription_n of_o continence_n chapter_n the_o three_o and_o before_o the_o other_o of_o the_o diverse_a order_n that_o ought_v to_o abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n chapter_n four_o and_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n the_o 6._o very_a same_o in_o the_o nine_o canon_n the_o text_n of_o the_o collection_n be_v augustin_n bishop_n legate_n of_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n say_v vouchsafe_v to_o ordain_v that_o if_o any_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o crime_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n receive_v they_o into_o communion_n he_o may_v be_v hold_v to_o be_v involue_v in_o the_o like_a crime_n as_o those_o that_o shun_v the_o regular_a judgement_n of_o their_o bishop_n now_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o after_o felix_n bishop_n of_o selemsela_n and_o epigonius_n bishop_n of_o bulla_n regia_n for_o it_o must_v be_v read_v bullensium_n regiorum_fw-la and_o not_o bullensium_n regionum_fw-la as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o act_n 1._o of_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n which_o say_v bullensium_n regiorum_fw-la and_o by_o the_o geograficall_a table_n of_o ptolemy_n where_o there_o be_v a_o city_n of_o africa_n call_v bullaria_n legendum_fw-la which_o be_v a_o corrupt_a abridgement_n of_o the_o word_n bulla_n regius_fw-la have_v make_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o article_n genetlius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n reply_v with_o 〈◊〉_d good_a cause_n then_o do_v our_o brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n propound_v that_o those_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o crime_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n if_o avoid_v the_o regular_a judgement_n of_o their_o bishop_n they_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n 7._o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v to_o be_v involue_v in_o the_o like_a crime_n only_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o whereas_o the_o second_o conncell_n of_o carthage_n say_v genetlius_n bishop_n say_v the_o compiler_n or_o his_o exemplifer_n to_o accommodate_v the_o canon_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v set_v augustin_n bishop_n legate_n of_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n say_v which_o be_v a_o metamophosis_n that_o can_v take_v place_n as_o well_o because_o epigonius_n be_v dead_a as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o show_v a_o long_a time_n before_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o because_o saint_n augustin_n will_v not_o have_v say_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n vouchsafe_v to_o ordain_v of_o a_o thing_n already_o ordain_v and_o in_o the_o same_o term_n thirty_o year_n before_o in_o the_o fourteen_o canon_n the_o collection_n say_v item_n it_o 14._o have_v please_v that_o from_o the_o province_n of_o tripoli_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o
in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o dereee_v of_o the_o anniversarie_n hold_v of_o the_o national_n counsel_n of_o africa_n first_o entitle_v in_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o since_o renew_v by_o this_o canon_n in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v be_v suppress_v and_o abrogate_a more_o than_o 7._o twelf_n year_n before_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n by_o the_o council_n hold_v 18._o under_o the_o seven_o consulship_n of_o honorius_n in_o these_o word_n because_o it_o have_v be_v ordain_v in_o that_o council_n of_o hippo_n the_o there_o shall_v be_v hold_v every_o year_n a_o general_n council_n of_o africa_n not_o only_o here_o at_o carthage_n but_o in_o all_o the_o other_o province_n eiusdem_fw-la every_o one_o in_o his_o turn_n it_o have_v be_v reserve_v to_o be_v keep_v sometime_o in_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n and_o sometime_o in_o that_o of_o byzacia_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o have_v seem_v laborious_a to_o all_o the_o brother_n it_o have_v please_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o anniversarie_n necessity_n to_o travaile-trouble_a the_o brother_n but_o that_o when_o the_o common_a cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o all_o africa_n shall_v require_v it_o from_o whatsoever_o part_n the_o letter_n 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v address_v to_o this_o sea_n the_o synod_n shall_v be_v assemble_v in_o the_o province_n that_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a in_o the_o ninteenth_n and_o tweentith_n it_o be_v say_v that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n accuse_v can_v be_v excommunicate_v unless_o after_o citation_n and_o refusal_n to_o appear_v which_o be_v two_o decree_n transfer_v from_o the_o three_o 2._o council_n of_o carthage_n into_o this_o collection_n and_o not_o transfer_v from_o this_o collection_n into_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o the_o 8._o new_a publisher_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n pretend_v for_o s._n augustin_n himself_o note_v that_o the_o decree_n forbid_v to_o excommunicate_v accuse_v priest_n but_o after_o citation_n and_o refusal_n of_o appearance_n be_v institute_v in_o the_o time_n that_o proculian_a be_v bishop_n for_o the_o donatist_n at_o hippo._n now_o proculian_a 137._o have_v live_v and_o be_v dead_a à_fw-fr long_a while_n before_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n 68_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o hippo_n to_o januarius_n 201._o which_o testify_v that_o proculian_a be_v bishop_n of_o hippo_n before_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n against_o the_o donatist_n come_v into_o africa_n and_o by_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v hold_v eight_o year_n before_o the_o six_o council_n of_o 24._o carthage_n in_o which_o time_n it_o be_v no_o more_o proculian_a but_o macrobius_n that_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o donatist_n at_o hippo._n in_o the_o twenty_o four_o canon_n which_o be_v of_o the_o canonical_a book_n the_o collection_n say_v be_v it_o also_o make_v know_v to_o our_o brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n boniface_n and_o to_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o canon_n that_o these_o be_v the_o book_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o our_o father_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n now_o we_o have_v already_o show_v by_o three_o reason_n and_o can_v yet_o confirm_v it_o by_o a_o fowrth_n that_o the_o canon_n of_o canonical_a book_n have_v be_v publish_v in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o first_o milevitan_n council_n testify_v that_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o council_n conc._n of_o hippo_n which_o contain_v forty_o one_o canon_n among_o which_o be_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n have_v be_v insert_v and_o confirm_v in_o a_o more_o 52_o full_a council_n assemble_v at_o carthage_n which_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v but_o 30._o of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o council_n hold_v the_o five_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o september_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o attic._n atticus_n in_o which_o be_v propound_v the_o extract_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo._n moreover_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o have_v already_o frame_v a_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o 3._o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n more_o than_o fourteen_o year_n before_o boniface_n and_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o have_v be_v a_o impertinent_a thing_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n to_o write_v to_o pope_n boniface_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o canon_n and_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o perchance_o the_o african_n know_v it_o not_o for_o faustinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n who_o be_v present_a at_o this_o council_n and_o phillippus_n and_o asellus_n priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o assist_v he_o will_v not_o have_v permit_v they_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o in_o the_o twenty_o five_o the_o collection_n 25._o contain_v aurelius_n say_v we_o add_v my_o most_o dear_a brother_n moreover_o as_o relation_n bid_v be_v make_v of_o the_o incontinence_n of_o some_o clerk_n although_o but_o reader_n towards_o their_o own_o wife_n it_o be_v decree_v which_o also_o have_v be_v confirm_v in_o diverse_a counsel_n that_o the_o subdeacons_n which_o shall_v handle_v the_o sacrament_n &_o the_o deacons_n and_o priest_n and_o also_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o former_a statute_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o own_o wife_n &c_n &c_n which_o if_o they_o observe_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d office_n but_o that_o the_o other_o clerk_n shall_v not_o be_v constrain_v by_o this_o law_n but_o in_o a_o ripe_a age_n now_o beside_o that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o three_o canon_n 3._o of_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o say_v moreover_o as_o relation_n have_v beve_v make_v of_o the_o incontinence_n of_o some_o clerk_n though_o towards_o their_o own_o wife_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacons_n according_a to_o the_o former_a statute_n shall_v abstain_v even_o from_o their_o own_o wife_n which_o if_o they_o observe_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o ecclesiastical_a office_n but_o that_o other_o clerk_n shall_v not_o be_v bind_v by_o this_o law_n there_o be_v so_o many_o impertiency_n in_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o canon_n as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v collect_v by_o the_o father_n of_o a_o council_n for_o first_o these_o word_n aurelius_n say_v we_o add_v my_o most_o dear_a brother_n have_v no_o relation_n 24._o with_o the_o former_a canon_n of_o the_o same_o collection_n which_o be_v of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n and_o secondlie_o this_o contexture_n aurelius_n say_v we_o add_v my_o most_o dear_a brother_n moreover_o as_o relation_n have_v be_v make_v to_o the_o incontinency_n of_o some_o clerk_n have_v no_o construction_n neither_o natural_a nor_o gramaticall_a but_o be_v a_o strain_a and_o impertinent_a conjunction_n to_o bring_v into_o aurelius_n discourse_n the_o word_n of_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o beginus_fw-la with_o these_o word_n moreover_o as_o relation_n have_v be_v make_v of_o the_o incontinence_n of_o some_o clerk_n and_o three_o this_o parenthesis_n although_o but_o reader_n be_v direct_o against_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o father_n of_o africa_n who_o never_o mean_v to_o deprive_v the_o reader_n from_o the_o use_n of_o their_o own_o wife_n contrariwise_o they_o have_v bind_v they_o come_v to_o the_o age_n of_o manhood_n either_o to_o profess_v chastity_n or_o to_o marry_v it_o have_v be_v ordain_v say_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n that_o reader_n have_v once_o attain_v to_o the_o age_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 19_o shall_v be_v constrain_v either_o to_o take_v wife_n or_o to_o make_v profession_n of_o chastity_n and_o fowrthly_a this_o exception_n unless_o a_o ripe_a age_n utterlie_o destroy_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o council_n which_o will_v that_o none_o but_o bishop_n priest_n deacons_n and_o subdeacons_n shall_v be_v oblige_v receive_v order_n to_o quit_v their_o wive_fw-mi &_o that_o 23._o the_o other_o clerk_n which_o handle_v not_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o this_o condition_n in_o the_o twenty_o eight_o canon_n which_o be_v a_o repetition_n of_o the_o canon_n institute_v in_o the_o second_o milevitan_n council_n and_o confirm_v 22._o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o the_o twelve_o consulship_n of_o 〈◊〉_d where_o it_o have_v be_v decide_v that_o the_o priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o inferior_a 92._o clerk_n can_v in_o their_o proper_a cause_n appeal_v beyond_o sea_n the_o greek_a edition_n and_o some_o latin_a copy_n add_v as_o it_o hath-bene_a often_o say_v of_o bishop_n
behold_v how_o it_o be_v couch_v at_o 33._o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o carthage_n gratus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la dixit_fw-la juxta_fw-la council_n statuta_fw-la concilij_fw-la &_o meae_fw-la mediocritatis_fw-la sententiam_fw-la placet_fw-la facere_fw-la rerum_fw-la omnium_fw-la conclusionem_fw-la universi_fw-la tituli_fw-la disignati_fw-la &_o digesti_fw-la teneant_fw-la sententias_fw-la svas_fw-la in_o which_o 14._o place_n the_o rapsodist_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v impertinentlie_o take_v the_o word_n tituli_fw-la in_o the_o genitive_n singular_a and_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n even_o the_o same_o and_o have_v express_v the_o period_n 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o sense_n be_v it_o register_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n the_o treaty_n of_o all_o the_o title_n design_v &_o digest_v this_o day_n not_o consider_v that_o in_o gratus_n his_o proposition_n it_o be_v a_o nominative_a plural_a and_o not_o remember_v that_o tituli_fw-la in_o the_o statute_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o carthage_n signify_v canon_n and_o beside_o 〈◊〉_d perceive_v that_o the_o word_n universi_fw-la in_o the_o same_o first_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v reference_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o the_o decree_n for_o the_o order_n of_o the_o sense_n show_v that_o gratus_n his_o proposition_n must_v be_v read_v by_o way_n of_o interrogation_n and_o expound_v it_o in_o these_o word_n do_v it_o please_v you_o according_a to_o the_o statute_n of_o all_o the_o council_n &_o the_o sentence_n of_o my_o mediocrity_n to_o make_v the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o second_o clause_n after_o the_o word_n vniversi_fw-la to_o set_v in_o as_o in_o all_o the_o other_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n dixerunt_fw-la and_o to_o interpret_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n all_o the_o bishop_n do_v say_v that_o the_o canon_n design_v and_o digest_v maintain_v their_o sentence_n and_o this_o do_v to_o repeat_v gratus_fw-la bishop_n say_v i_o know_v well_o nevertheless_o that_o in_o the_o verbal_a process_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n insert_v into_o the_o ordinary_a volume_n of_o the_o counsel_n there_o be_v some_o article_n ordain_v to_o be_v register_v as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n to_o aurelius_n which_o be_v these_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o statuten_v 9_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o our_o council_n by_o the_o bishop_n cecilian_n late_a predecessor_n to_o your_o hollinesse_n which_o have_v assist_v there_o and_o also_o the_o thing_n that_o our_o father_n constitute_v here_o follow_v the_o same_o copy_n and_o those_o that_o we_o by_o a_o common_a synod_n constitute_v now_o remain_v register_v in_o the_o present_a ecclesiastical_a act_n but_o that_o these_o word_n the_o thing_n that_o we_o constitute_v now_o by_o a_o common_a council_n be_v mean_v of_o the_o determination_n to_o send_v to_o seek_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n into_o the_o east_n and_o to_o observe_v it_o treat_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n precede_v the_o verbal_a process_n which_o the_o 〈◊〉_d will_v shall_v be_v reduce_v into_o writing_n and_o not_o of_o any_o other_o decree_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o speech_n show_v it_o which_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o say_v your_o blessedness_n graec._n shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o write_v to_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n to_o send_v under_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o letter_n the_o most_o certain_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n whereby_o the_o truth_n be_v clear_v the_o chapter_n 〈◊〉_d that_o our_o brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n faustinus_n here_o present_a and_o our_o fellow_n priest_n phillipus_n and_o asellus_n have_v bring_v with_o they_o in_o their_o instruction_n either_o if_o they_o be_v find_v they_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o we_o or_o if_o they_o be_v not_o find_v we_o will_v assemble_v a_o synod_n to_o advise_v upon_o it_o and_o as_o for_o these_o word_n and_o also_o the_o thing_n that_o our_o father_n constitute_v here_o follow_v the_o same_o copy_n they_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o confirmative_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n make_v by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v under_o cecelianus_fw-la and_o other_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v impose_v both_o in_o gross_a and_o in_o retail_v to_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o africa_n and_o not_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n whereof_o the_o more_o part_n have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o aurelius_n and_o be_v not_o contain_v neither_o in_o sense_n nor_o in_o word_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n well_o do_v i_o know_v again_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o collection_n be_v allege_v both_o by_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o counsel_n send_v in_o pope_n adrian's_n name_n to_o charlemagne_n and_o by_o hinckmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o fifty_o five_o chapter_n and_o by_o many_o other_o but_o the_o misreckon_n be_v come_v from_o a_o high_a root_n and_o have_v have_v place_n from_o the_o time_n of_o dionysius_n and_o cresconius_n and_o of_o the_o greek_a translation_n it_o must_v not_o to_o be_v think_v strange_a if_o from_o one_o absurdity_n many_o other_o have_v ensue_v it_o suffice_v that_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la who_o be_v both_o before_o they_o and_o more_o verse_v in_o the_o knowledge_v of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n than_o they_o represent_v no_o tract_n of_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o thirty_o three_o canon_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o that_o fnlgentius_fw-la ferandus_fw-la have_v precede_v all_o the_o other_o collector_n of_o this_o kind_n in_o anti_fw-la quitie_n whether_o it_o be_v that_o ferandus_fw-la deacon_n of_o carthage_n that_o write_v the_o work_n of_o the_o five_o question_n to_o saint_n fulgentius_n 14._o bishop_n of_o ruspia_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o other_o deacon_n of_o carthage_n yet_o more_o ancient_a which_o have_v bear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o fulgentius_n ferrandus_fw-la it_o appear_v as_o well_o because_o he_o speak_v not_o neither_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n late_a than_o syricius_n as_o because_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o infinite_a counsel_n of_o africa_n as_o of_o the_o council_n of_o suffetula_n of_o the_o council_n of_o septimunica_fw-la of_o the_o council_n of_o marazan_n of_o the_o council_n of_o tusdra_n of_o the_o council_n of_o macria_n of_o the_o council_n of_o tennis_n of_o the_o council_n of_o juca_n &_o of_o many_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n whereof_o there_o be_v find_v no_o tract_n neither_o in_o dionysius_n nor_o in_o cresconius_n and_o that_o he_o have_v surpass_v they_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n it_o be_v manifest_v aswell_o by_o the_o can._n same_o citation_n as_o by_o the_o testimony_n that_o cresconius_n give_v of_o he_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o liberinus_fw-la which_o contain_v these_o word_n i_o do_v remonstrate_v to_o you_o that_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n have_v be_v already_o make_v by_o ferandus_fw-la most_o reverend_a 〈◊〉_d of_o carthage_n and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o suffice_v for_o our_o instruction_n least_o undertake_v to_o 〈◊〉_d a_o other_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o we_o will_v steal_v from_o his_o wisdom_n and_o therefore_o also_o those_o that_o have_v collect_v the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n in_o form_n have_v pass_v over_o the_o medley_n of_o the_o thirty_o three_o canon_n entitle_v by_o some_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o silence_n of_o the_o african_a council_n chapt_n vii_o now_o as_o for_o this_o medley_n and_o rhapsody_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n that_o we_o call_v the_o african_a council_n which_o be_v a_o century_n of_o african_a canon_n gather_v from_o diverse_a counsel_n there_o be_v therein_o two_o difficulty_n the_o first_o difficulty_n concern_v the_o author_n of_o the_o rapsodie_n &_o consist_v in_o this_o to_o wit_n whether_o this_o composition_n have_v be_v make_v by_o any_o particular_a canonist_n or_o whether_o it_o have_v be_v gather_v in_o a_o council_n the_o greek_n &_o the_o protestant_n who_o follow_v they_o and_o some_o catholic_n as_o well_v ancient_a as_o modern_a believe_v it_o to_o be_v make_v in_o a_o council_n which_o some_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o other_o the_o seven_o &_o i_o contrariwise_o incline_v to_o believe_v that_o it_o have_v be_v make_v by_o some_o african_a canonist_n and_o whilst_o the_o uandalls_n possess_v africa_n in_o which_o time_n there_o can_v no_o
national_a council_n be_v assemble_v in_o africa_n and_o this_o i_o incline_v to_o believe_v for_o ten_o reason_n among_o other_o the_o first_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n to_o pope_n celestine_n be_v there_o insert_v which_o be_v make_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v express_o for_o the_o second_o process_n of_o apiarius_n and_o after_o the_o last_o caelest_n voyage_n of_o faustinus_n into_o africa_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n our_o holy_a brother_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n faustinus_n come_v to_o we_o we_o have_v assemble_v a_o council_n and_o have_v believe_v that_o the_o aim_n of_o his_o come_n have_v be_v that_o as_o by_o his_o procurement_n apiarius_n have_v be_v once_o before_o restore_v to_o the_o priesthood_n so_o now_o by_o his_o labour_n he_o may_v be_v purge_v from_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o tabracenians_n now_o this_o council_n that_o we_o call_v the_o nine_o be_v hold_v long_o after_o the_o fixth_n &_o seven_o which_o have_v be_v celebrate_v under_o boniface_n and_o to_o sale_n that_o it_o be_v in_o this_o nine_o that_o the_o rapsodie_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n be_v make_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o can_v subsist_v for_o the_o father_n will_v not_o have_v be_v content_v to_o insert_v heereinto_o their_o epistle_n only_o but_o will_v have_v add_v to_o it_o somewhat_o of_o the_o history_n and_o of_o the_o date_n of_o their_o council_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o after_o the_o quotation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n which_o be_v the_o first_o who_o date_n be_v register_v in_o this_o rhapsody_n follow_v these_o word_n the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n 1._o be_v not_o here_o describe_v because_o the_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v therein_o ordain_v be_v above_o insert_v which_o word_n can_v have_v relation_n either_o to_o the_o rhapsody_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n which_o contain_v more_o than_o forty_o canon_n be_v insert_v neither_o into_o the_o rapsodie_n which_o begin_v with_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n and_o comprehend_v nothing_o that_o precede_v it_o nor_o in_o the_o thirty_o three_o canon_n attribure_v to_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o exemplifier_n or_o rapsodist_n which_o remitt_v the_o reader_n to_o find_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n to_o the_o former_a collection_n of_o the_o counsel_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v that_o in_o the_o quotation_n of_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d the_o fixth_n of_o the_o calend_n of_o julie_n under_o the_o consulship_n of_o cesarius_n and_o atticus_n there_o be_v these_o word_n whosoever_o will_v search_v the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n shall_v 1._o find_v they_o in_o the_o authentic_a all_o copy_n a_o thing_n which_o show_v it_o be_v a_o particular_a collection_n and_o not_o a_o council_n that_o speak_v the_o four_o reason_n be_v that_o at_o the_o head_n of_o the_o sixtith_n one_o chapter_n after_o these_o word_n under_o the_o consulship_n 61._o of_o the_o noble_a consul_n stelicon_n for_o the_o second_o time_n &_o arthemius_n the_o ten_o of_o the_o calend_n of_o september_n at_o carthage_n in_o the_o basilicke_a of_o the_o second_o region_n these_o follow_v i_o have_v not_o transcribe_v from_o the_o one_o end_n to_o the_o other_o the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o more_o regard_n 〈◊〉_d of_o time_n than_o any_o general_a ordinance_n but_o for_o the_o instruction_n 〈◊〉_d the_o studious_a i_o have_v digest_v from_o they_o a_o brief_a summary_n fron_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o collection_n be_v make_v by_o a_o particular_a compiler_n for_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v translate_v it_o in_o the_o three_o person_n &_o in_o steed_n of_o these_o word_n graec._n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o studious_a have_v turn_v it_o of_o thing_n studious_o ordain_v 69._o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o steed_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v suppose_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o corruption_n too_o apparent_a the_o five_o reason_n be_v that_o in_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n which_o be_v the_o forty_o seven_o of_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n the_o canon_n say_v in_o either_o edition_n likewise_o also_o that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o read_v the_o 47._o the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o former_a canon_n which_o be_v that_o reconciliation_n shall_v not_o be_v refuse_v to_o comedian_n but_o it_o be_v a_o train_n that_o have_v be_v tear_v from_o his_o head_n that_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n 46_o have_v omit_v and_o that_o the_o greek_a have_v transfer_v from_o his_o place_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o canon_n that_o forbid_v other_o scripture_n than_o those_o that_o be_v canonical_a to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n as_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n entire_a where_o these_o two_o canon_n be_v couch_v the_o one_o after_o the_o other_o and_o by_o ferandus_fw-la his_o breviarie_n where_o they_o be_v quote_v as_o two_o canon_n 47._o follow_v one_o a_o other_o in_o these_o word_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n title_n fifty_o six_o and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n title_n forty_o five_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a also_o to_o read_v the_o 9_o martyr_n passion_n in_o the_o anniversary_n day_n of_o their_o martyrdom_n council_n of_o carthage_n title_n forty_o six_o a_o thing_n that_o show_v that_o this_o collection_n have_v be_v make_v by_o a_o particular_a rapsodist_n who_o insert_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n into_o his_o rhapsody_n have_v omit_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o canon_n be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o hippo_n &_o be_v but_o repeat_v in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n &_o have_v content_v himself_o with_o insert_v that_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v add_v to_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o permission_n of_o read_v also_o in_o the_o church_n the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n the_o six_o reason_n be_v that_o of_o the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o ordain_v 5._o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n say_v that_o if_o any_o one_o have_v confess_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o civil_a confession_n a_o crime_n to_o he_o alone_o and_o that_o he_o after_o deny_v it_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o injury_n if_o credit_n be_v not_o give_v to_o his_o only_a testimony_n and_o that_o if_o the_o bishop_n move_v with_o the_o scruple_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o so_o deny_v as_o long_o as_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o other_z bishop_n shall_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o bishop_n the_o rapsodist_n have_v make_v two_o different_a canon_n to_o wit_n the_o nintie_a nine_o &_o hùdredth_n of_o his_o rhapsody_n and_o to_o perfect_v the_o construction_n of_o the_o nintie_n nine_o which_o otherwise_o be_v without_o sense_n have_v add_v these_o word_n that_o he_o shall_v notwithstanding_o secret_o interdict_v he_o the_o communion_n till_o he_o conform_v himself_o which_o be_v direct_o against_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o council_n see_v here_o the_o word_n of_o the_o nintie_n nine_o if_o a_o bishop_n say_v that_o any_o one_o have_v confess_v a_o crime_n to_o he_o alone_o and_o edit_n that_o he_o deny_v it_o and_o will_v not_o do_v penance_n for_o it_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o particular_a 99_o injury_n that_o credit_n be_v not_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o if_o move_v with_o the_o scruple_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o so_o deny_v let_v he_o 〈◊〉_d interdict_v he_o the_o communion_n 〈◊〉_d till_o he_o conform_v himself_o and_o behold_v here_o the_o word_n of_o the_o hundred_o while_o a_o bishop_n communicate_v not_o with_o 100_o his_o excommunicate_v diocesan_n 〈◊〉_d not_o the_o other_o bishop_n communicate_v with_o such_o a_o bishop_n a_o error_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n will_v never_o have_v commit_v if_o themselves_o have_v compile_v this_o rhapsody_n see_v it_o be_v themselves_o that_o have_v compose_v the_o whole_a canon_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o late_a exemplifier_n perceive_v this_o fault_n have_v reunite_v the_o two_o canon_n in_o one_o and_o have_v report_v the_o canon_n complete_a as_o it_o be_v couch_v in_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n for_o the_o ancient_a latin_a rhapsody_n make_v two_o canon_n of_o it_o as_o it_o appears_a
that_o be_v to_o say_v between_o the_o three_o &_o thirtith_n canon_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n &_o the_o thirty_o four_o and_o therefore_o the_o greek_n have_v take_v away_o these_o three_o quotation_n from_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v set_v in_o c._n the_o latin_a rhapsody_n and_o have_v set_v they_o in_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n after_o the_o canon_n and_o signature_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o pertinentlie_o for_o the_o two_o last_o quotation_n as_o impertinent_o for_o the_o first_o which_o shall_v precede_v the_o register_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o question_n of_o the_o compile_n which_o nevertheless_o i_o remit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n for_o i_o know_v well_o that_o cresconius_n a_o african_a canonist_n of_o 〈◊〉_d a_o thousand_o year_n antiquity_n have_v cite_v the_o canon_n of_o a_o council_n that_o he_o entitle_v the_o general_a council_n of_o carthage_n with_o number_n artic_a answer_v to_o the_o number_n of_o this_o collection_n which_o we_o call_v the_o african_a council_n it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o may_v either_o be_v abuse_v about_o the_o clause_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v above_o or_o else_o that_o he_o may_v call_v this_o collection_n the_o general_a council_n of_o carthage_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o many_o several_a counsel_n of_o carthage_n as_o gratian_n and_o the_o other_o canonist_n alibi_fw-la allege_v the_o collection_n of_o the_o greek_a synod_n make_v by_o martin_n the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o brague_n or_o bracara_n in_o spain_n under_o the_o singular_a title_n of_o a_o council_n and_o entitle_v it_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o pope_n martin_n well_o know_v i_o also_o that_o the_o african_n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o pope_n boniface_n send_v he_o the_o copy_n of_o some_o canon_n either_o make_v or_o confirm_v by_o their_o council_n but_o there_o be_v no_o impediment_n why_o this_o send_n may_v not_o be_v intend_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o seven_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o say_a pope_n boniface_n the_o day_n before_o the_o date_n of_o this_o epistle_n and_o therefore_o without_o pervert_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n i_o have_v content_v myself_o with_o touch_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o first_o difference_n let_v we_o go_v on_o to_o the_o second_o the_o second_o difficulty_n have_v regard_n to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o this_o rapsodie_n &_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o latin_a edition_n contain_v but_o a_o hundred_o canon_n which_o with_o the_o epistle_n and_o the_o act_n send_v from_o the_o east_n make_v anhundr_v five_o chapter_n &_o that_o of_o the_o greek_n contain_v a_o hundred_o thirty_o three_o beside_o the_o epistle_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n proceed_v from_o this_o that_o the_o original_a rhapsody_n not_o comprehend_v all_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o hundred_o and_o the_o greek_n not_o have_v the_o copy_n of_o those_o other_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n in_o chief_a that_o we_o have_v it_o seem_v necessary_a to_o they_o to_o add_v to_o this_o century_n a_o other_o collection_n of_o thirty_o three_o canon_n which_o go_v under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o which_o be_v take_v from_o diverse_a former_a counsel_n and_o to_o set_v it_o at_o the_o head_n can._n of_o their_o rapsodie_n for_o that_o the_o original_a rhapsody_n contain_v but_o a_o hundred_o canon_n and_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o number_n and_o to_o the_o cypher_n of_o the_o latin_a and_o not_o of_o the_o greek_a it_o appear_v by_o the_o citation_n that_o cresconius_n a_o ancient_a african_a canonist_n make_v of_o this_o medley_n that_o we_o call_v the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n wherein_o the_o number_n and_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n answer_v the_o order_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n whether_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n be_v more_o faithful_a than_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n chap._n viii_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n be_v more_o faithful_a then_o that_o of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n and_o we_o contrary_a wise_n maintain_v that_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n be_v much_o more_o sure_a save_v some_o fault_n in_o the_o exemplifier_n they_o that_o of_o the_o greek_a &_o that_o for_o three_o cause_n the_o first_o because_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n have_v be_v make_v in_o latin_a and_o not_o in_o greek_a by_o mean_n whereof_o reason_n will_n that_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n which_o have_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o original_n itself_o except_o the_o epistle_n whereof_o it_o seem_v as_o it_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o that_o the_o latin_n have_v be_v translate_v from_o the_o greek_a translation_n and_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d latin_n original_a have_v be_v lose_v must_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n which_o have_v be_v make_v but_o upon_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o translation_n the_o second_o because_o the_o greek_n have_v be_v much_o more_o ignorant_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o counsel_n of_o africa_n than_o the_o latin_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o erroneous_a council_n hold_v under_o saint_n cyprian_n that_o the_o greek_n have_v set_v into_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o orthodox_n counsel_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o three_o because_o that_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o reading_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a graec_fw-la rhapsody_n differ_v the_o reading_n of_o the_o latin_a rhapsody_n 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o counsel_n 73._o of_o africa_n in_o chief_a which_o we_o have_v in_o our_o hand_n and_o with_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a african_a church_n report_v by_o saint_n augustine_n by_o fulgentius_n ferrandus_fw-la and_o other_o african_a doctor_n and_o the_o reading_n of_o 29._o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n be_v repugnant_a thereunto_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o to_o allege_v two_o example_n beside_o that_o which_o we_o have_v already_o tender_v nicen._n of_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o appeal_n the_o first_o example_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o seaventith_n one_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n where_o the_o african_a father_n have_v say_v it_o have_v please_v that_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n according_a to_o the_o former_a determination_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o own_o wife_n the_o greek_n that_o do_v indeed_o forbid_v priest_n to_o marry_v after_o their_o promotion_n yea_o call_v such_o marriage_n impious_a and_o detestable_a but_o if_o before_o their_o promotion_n they_o have_v be_v marry_v provide_v it_o be_v but_o once_o and_o beside_o that_o they_o be_v simple_a priest_n and_o not_o bishop_n do_v permit_v they_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o wife_n that_o they_o have_v marry_v before_o their_o priesthood_n have_v advise_v themselves_o to_o abuse_v 73._o the_o ambiguity_n of_o their_o tongue_n which_o make_v use_v of_o one_o same_o word_n to_o express_v determination_n and_o to_o express_v term_n and_o have_v convert_v these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o former_a determination_n or_o according_a to_o their_o own_o determination_n into_o these_o word_n according_a to_o their_o proper_a term_n and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o delude_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o canon_n have_v make_v weekly_a priest_n who_o serve_v by_o turn_n and_o alternative_a week_n and_o observe_v the_o celibat_fw-la during_o the_o week_n of_o their_o service_n and_o intermit_v it_o during_o the_o rest_n now_o how_o false_a this_o interpretation_n be_v and_o how_o contrary_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o african_a father_n who_o never_o know_v these_o weekly_a priest_n nor_o these_o alternative_a celibat_n it_o appear_v first_o by_o all_o the_o conncell_n of_o the_o ancient_a latin_a church_n hold_v in_o the_o region_n near_o africa_n which_o oblige_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacons_n without_o distinction_n of_o turn_n and_o vicissitude_n to_o a_o perpetual_a celibat_fw-la it_o have_v please_v say_v the_o elibertine_n council_n celebrate_v 33._o in_o the_o province_n of_o grenado_n in_o spain_n near_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n priest_n deacon_n and_o subdeacons_n establish_v in_o the_o ministry_n to_o abstain_v whole_o from_o their_o wife_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d no_o child_n and_o the_o first_o council_n of_o toledo_n celebrate_v in_o spain_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n from_o whence_o this_o canon_n be_v 1_o take_v if_o any_o deacon_n have_v live_v incontinentlie_o with_o their_o wife_n let_v they_o not_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o degree_n of_o priesthood_n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ark_n celebrate_v c._n a_o
little_a after_o the_o six_o of_o carthage_n none_o constitute_v in_o the_o bond_n of_o marriage_n can_v be_v admit_v to_o priesthood_n without_o promise_n of_o conversion_n second_o it_o 2._o appear_v by_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o african_a church_n which_o concern_v the_o same_o matter_n it_o have_v please_v say_v the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n that_o graec._n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n etc._n etc._n practice_n entire_a continence_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n that_o what_o 3._o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v or_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a edition_n give_v by_o tradition_n ibid._n and_o antiquity_n itself_o observe_v we_o also_o shall_v observe_v and_o again_o it_o 3._o have_v please_v that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n or_o other_o that_o handle_v the_o sacrament_n shall_v live_v chaste_o and_o abstain_v evenfrom_o their_o own_o wife_n and_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n it_o have_v please_v that_o priest_n and_o deacon_n according_a to_o their_o own_o statute_n or_o as_o the_o best_a copy_n have_v it_o according_a to_o the_o former_a statute_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o own_o wife_n it_o appear_v three_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o especial_o the_o african_a ult._n who_o have_v live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o counsel_n that_o the_o ministry_n say_v saint_n ambrose_n must_v be_v preserve_v inviolate_a and_o immaculate_a without_o defile_v it_o with_o any_o conjugal_a embrace_n you_o know_v it_o you_o that_o with_o integrity_n of_o body_n 1._o and_o incorruption_n of_o modesty_n ab_v ayning_a yourselves_o even_o from_o the_o use_n of_o marriage_n have_v receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o sacred_a deaconship_n and_o saint_n hierom_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v choose_v either_o virgin_n or_o in_o widowhood_n or_o at_o least_o be_v after_o ult._n their_o priesthood_n eternal_o chaste_a and_o saint_n augustine_n the_o soul_n and_o pen_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n we_o have_v say_v he_o accustom_v to_o propound_v to_o lay_v man_n that_o have_v put_v away_o their_o wife_n the_o continence_n of_o clergy_n man_n who_o be_v often_o take_v by_o force_n and_o against_o their_o will_n to_o undergo_v that_o charge_n and_o have_v accept_v it_o be_v be_v it_o with_o god_n help_v lawful_o even_o to_o the_o end_n we_o say_v to_o they_o what_o will_v become_v of_o you_o if_o you_o be_v constrain_v and_o force_v by_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o people_n to_o undergo_v this_o charge_n will_v you_o not_o chaste_o preserve_v the_o office_n wherewith_o you_o be_v charge_v instant_o convert_n yourselves_o to_o beseech_v of_o god_n such_o strength_n as_o demost_a before_o your_o never_o think_v of_o whereto_o i_o may_v yet_o add_v the_o ancient_a greek_a doctor_n 9_o as_o eusebius_n who_o write_v now_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o divine_a word_n do_v necessary_o 59_o embrace_v abstinence_n from_o marriage_n to_o attend_v to_o a_o better_a imploymeut_n practise_v a_o generation_n of_o spiritual_a and_o incorporal_a child_n or_o as_o saint_n epiphanius_n that_o cry_v out_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n receive_v not_o he_o that_o have_v be_v but_o once_o marry_v and_o converse_v still_o with_o his_o wife_n and_o beget_v child_n for_o deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o because_o here_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o african_a &_o notof_o the_o greek_a church_n breu._n i_o set_v the_o greek_a testimony_n aside_o it_o appear_v four_a by_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la a_o african_a canonist_n of_o above_o 1100._o year_n antiquity_n who_o in_o his_o 109._o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n register_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o these_o word_n that_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n and_o by_o cresconius_n a_o african_a canonist_n likewise_o &_o of_o near_a a_o thousand_o grec_n year_n antiquity_n who_o register_n it_o in_o these_o word_n that_o the_o priestly_a 7._o and_o leviticall_a order_n ought_v to_o have_v no_o cohabitation_n with_o woman_n it_o appear_v fist_o by_o the_o proper_a text_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o plain_o comprehend_v bishop_n 12_o which_o nevertheless_o the_o greek_n exclude_v from_o all_o conjugal_a act_n and_o to_o who_o this_o condition_n of_o serve_v by_o turn_n and_o alternative_a week_n can_v nicen._n agree_v it_o appear_v beside_o this_o by_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o say_v that_o reader_n when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o manhood_n 16._o shall_v be_v constrain_v either_o to_o marry_v or_o profess_v chastity_n a_o thing_n which_o necessary_o show_v that_o the_o use_n of_o marriage_n be_v whole_o prohibit_v to_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacons_n and_o final_o it_o appear_v by_o andrew_n gesnerus_fw-la minister_n of_o zurich_n and_o the_o german_a centuriator_n be_v ashamed_a of_o this_o falsehood_n for_o gesnerus_fw-la interpret_n the_o greek_a translation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v turn_v it_o into_o these_o word_n it_o have_v please_v that_o edit_fw-la bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n according_a to_o their_o statute_n shall_v abstain_v even_o andr._n from_o their_o wife_n and_o the_o centuriator_n of_o germany_n epitomize_v the_o same_o council_n of_o carthage_n report_v it_o in_o these_o word_n that_o the_o sacerdot_n all_o and_o ceatur_fw-la and_o diaconall_a order_n shall_v abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o 829_o matter_n be_v treat_v of_o more_o large_o in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o fontainebleau_n where_o we_o confute_v the_o fable_n of_o paphnucius_fw-la report_v by_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n novatian_n author_n from_o who_o the_o late_a greek_n have_v borrow_v the_o occasion_n of_o their_o fall_n and_o expound_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o gangre_n which_o seem_v to_o favour_v they_o it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o for_o a_o end_n of_o this_o advertisement_n to_o remit_v the_o reader_n thereunto_o the_o second_o example_n of_o infidelity_n shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o twenty_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n which_o be_v the_o twenty_o four_o of_o those_o thirty_o three_o latin_a canon_n whereof_o the_o collection_n be_v entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n have_v eclipse_v from_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n receive_v in_o africa_n the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n now_o that_o this_o subctraction_n be_v a_o notable_a falsehood_n appear_v by_o six_o unreprochable_a '_o means_n it_o appear_v first_o by_o all_o the_o latin_a copy_n as_o well_o print_v as_o manuscript_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v innumeri_fw-la the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o which_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n be_v express_v by_o name_n it_o appear_v second_o by_o the_o forty_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n from_o whence_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v be_v extract_v which_o mention_n particular_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n it_o appear_v three_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n insert_v into_o saint_n augustins_n second_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n where_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n be_v express_o contain_v and_o to_o which_o saint_n augustine_n for_o a_o impediment_n that_o the_o number_n shall_v not_o be_v vary_v 8._o by_o any_o addition_n or_o subtraction_n set_v to_o this_o seal_n in_o these_o forty_o four_o book_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v determine_v and_o again_o repeat_v the_o same_o seal_n in_o the_o register_n of_o his_o retraction_n in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o place_n 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n where_o i_o have_v write_v in_o 4._o these_o forty_o four_o book_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v determine_v i_o make_v use_v of_o the_o word_n old_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o speech_n which_o the_o church_n practise_v at_o this_o day_n but_o the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o call_v none_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o that_o which_o be_v give_v in_o the_o mount_n sinai_n it_o appear_v four_a by_o the_o other_o write_n where_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o maccabee_n as_o when_o 36._o he_o say_v in_o the_o eighteen_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n among_o the_o volume_n sever_v from_o this_o rank_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n which_o not_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o church_n hold_v for_o canonical_a and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n against_o the_o epistle_n of_o gaudentius_n the_o donatist_n the_o scripture_n entitle_v from_o the_o macchabee_n the_o jew_n 23._o do_v not_o hold_v as_o the_o law_n the_o prophett_n and_o the_o psalm_n which_o our_o
cut_v it_o of_o from_o the_o prophetical_a volume_n and_o prohibit_v they_o from_o read_v now_o the_o jew_n can_v have_v no_o fair_a colour_n to_o cut_v of_o the_o book_n of_o 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o 〈◊〉_d canon_n of_o esdras_n a_o thing_n which_o likewise_o oblige_v they_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o 〈◊〉_d other_o posthume_n book_n from_o the_o old_a restament_n so_o call_v i_o all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o have_v be_v write_v or_o publish_v since_o 〈◊〉_d of_o esdras_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o esdras_n as_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o tobias_n the_o book_n of_o judith_n and_o the_o two_o book_n of_o maccabee_n 〈◊〉_d these_o cause_n then_o saint_n hierome_n tie_v himself_o to_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o jew_n upon_o who_o text_n and_o with_o who_o help_n and_o particular_o of_o a_o certain_a rabbin_z called_z barabanus_fw-la or_o barhanina_n who_o ruffinus_n by_o 65._o way_n of_o reproach_n call_v barrabas_n he_o have_v make_v the_o translation_n of_o his_o bible_n not_o only_o exclude_v in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o king_n that_o he_o entitle_v the_o arm_a prologue_n and_o in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o proverb_n all_o the_o 115._o whole_a book_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o esdras_n as_o be_v wisdom_n ecclesiacticus_fw-la tobias_n judith_n and_o the_o maccabee_n but_o also_o in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o daniel_n reject_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o hebrowe_n as_o be_v the_o canticle_n of_o the_o three_o child_n and_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n and_o that_o of_o bel._n the_o book_n of_o daniel_n 120._o say_v he_o among_o the_o hebrew_n contain_v neiter_n the_o history_n of_o susanna_n nor_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o three_o child_n nor_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o dragon_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o nevertheless_o because_o they_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n we_o have_v annex_v thereto_o but_o after_o have_v mark_v they_o with_o a_o obeliske_n which_o precede_v they_o and_o cut_v their_o throat_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o ruffinus_n be_v grow_v his_o enemy_n reproach_v he_o thus_o all_o those_o then_o that_o suppose_a 2._o susanna_n have_v furnish_v all_o marry_v and_o unmarried_a woman_n with_o a_o example_n of_o chastity_n have_v err_v it_o be_v not_o true_a all_o those_o that_o conceive_v that_o daniel_n yet_o a_o child_n have_v be_v fulfil_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o have_v 〈◊〉_d the_o adulterous_a elder_n have_v err_v it_o be_v not_o true_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n throughout_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v still_o upon_o the_o earth_n as_o of_o those_o that_o be_v before_o our_o lord_n be_v they_o holy_a coufessor_n be_v they_o holy_a martyr_n who_o have_v sing_v in_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o hymn_n of_o the_o three_o child_n have_v all_o err_v and_o sunge_a false_a thing_n now_o then_o after_o four_o hundred_o year_n do_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o law_n buy_v with_o silver_n so_o 113._o he_o say_v because_o saint_n hierom_n have_v give_v money_n to_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v help_v by_o they_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o this_o bible_n come_v to_o we_o from_o the_o synagogue_n and_o the_o three_o observation_n final_o be_v that_o saint_n hierome_n be_v afterward_o more_o exact_o instruct_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n change_v his_o opinion_n and_o retract_v both_o in_o general_a and_o particular_a all_o that_o he_o have_v write_v in_o these_o three_o prologue_n for_o in_o his_o apology_n against_o ruffinus_n answer_v to_o his_o reproach_n about_o the_o history_n of_o susanna_n and_o of_o the_o dragon_n of_o bel_n and_o of_o the_o canticle_n of_o the_o three_o child_n he_o say_v whereas_o i_o have_v report_v what_o the_o hebrew_n use_v to_o object_n against_o the_o history_n of_o 2._o susanna_n and_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o three_o child_n and_o the_o fable_n of_o the_o dragon_n of_o bell_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n volume_n etc._n etc._n i_o have_v not_o explicate_v what_o i_o think_v but_o what_o the_o jew_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v against_o us._n and_o in_o his_o preface_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o tobias_n the_o hebrew_n say_v he_o cut_n of_o the_o book_n of_o 100_o toby_n from_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n and_o again_o the_o ie_fw-fr alousie_n of_o the_o hebrew_n do_v accuse_v we_o and_o impute_v it_o to_o we_o that_o against_o their_o canon_n we_o transferr_v ibidem_fw-la the_o book_n of_o toby_n into_o the_o latin_a ear_n but_o i_o judge_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o displease_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o in_o the_o exposition_n upon_o the_o forty_o four_o psalm_n ruth_n hester_n and_o judith_n 140._o have_v be_v so_o glorious_a as_o they_o have_v give_v their_o name_n into_o the_o sacred_a volume_n and_o in_o his_o preface_n upon_o the_o history_n of_o indith_n the_o book_n of_o judith_n say_v he_o be_v read_v by_o the_o hebrew_n among_o the_o hagiograph_n who_o authority_n be_v esteem_v 〈◊〉_d less_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v contentious_a thing_n etc._n etc._n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v read_v to_o have_v reckon_v it_o among_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v obey_v your_o demand_n word_n which_o plain_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v say_v in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o proverb_n as_o then_o the_o church_n read_v judith_n and_o toby_n and_o the_o 115._o maccabee_n but_o receave_v they_o not_o among_o the_o canonical_a book_n so_o may_v she_o read_v wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n but_o not_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n and_o which_o can_v be_v avoid_v by_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o there_o signify_v canonical_a for_o the_o opposition_n that_o he_o make_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n to_o the_o jew_n which_o esteem_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n among_o the_o hagiograph_n book_n 23._o who_o authority_n be_v repute_v less_o sufficient_a to_o divide_v contentious_a thing_n stopp_n the_o mouth_n of_o that_o delusion_n and_o final_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n compound_v long_o after_o the_o prologue_n arm_v he_o set_v the_o history_n 17._o of_o the_o maccabee_n among_o the_o canonical_a book_n the_o scripture_n say_v he_o report_v that_o alexander_n king_n of_o the_o macedonian_n come_v out_o from_o the_o land_n of_o cethim_n which_o some_o latin_n that_o follow_v be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o befall_v that_o they_o 6._o be_v separate_v from_o the_o common_a voice_n of_o the_o western_a church_n for_o although_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o late_a latin_a doctor_n as_o alcimus_n bellator_n 〈◊〉_d isidorus_n have_v follow_v the_o catalogue_n of_o s._n aus_n &_o of_o the_o three_o casiodor_n ibid._n council_n of_o carthage_n and_o set_v the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n among_o the_o 〈◊〉_d canonical_a book_n yea_o that_o some_o of_o they_o as_o bellator_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o first_o have_v illustrate_v it_o with_o commentary_n nevertheless_o some_o other_o not_o know_v that_o s._n hierome_n have_v change_v his_o opinion_n have_v tie_v themselves_o to_o that_o of_o s._n hierome_n but_o in_o 6._o sum_n whatsoever_o the_o late_a latin_a doctor_n have_v do_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n never_o any_o before_o s._n hierome_n have_v remove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o six_o posthume_n book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o whereas_o s._n hilary_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o psalm_n compose_v or_o rather_o as_o s._n hierome_n say_v translate_v by_o he_o out_o of_o origen_n whilst_o he_o be_v in_o the_o ad_fw-la east_n write_v that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v reduce_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n either_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o twétie_n two_o letter_n of_o the_o hebrew_n alphabet_n or_o by_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o book_n of_o judith_n &_o of_o tobias_n to_o the_o number_n of_o twenty_o four_o letter_n of_o the_o 141._o greek_a alphabet_n beside_o that_o these_o mark_n be_v not_o the_o note_n of_o s._n hilary_n psalm_n but_o the_o note_n of_o origen_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o psalm_n that_o s._n hilary_n have_v transcribe_v in_o part_n into_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o psalm_n he_o mean_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n not_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n whereof_o some_o to_o wit_n
since_o without_o this_o dedication_n the_o ordinary_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n can_v not_o be_v lawful_a &_o by_o consequence_n according_a to_o our_o adversary_n have_v need_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o s._n paul_n when_o he_o cite_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o history_n of_o the_o tympanize_v martyr_n and_o that_o not_o in_o matter_n of_o thing_n know_v by_o natural_a light_n as_o when_o he_o allege_v aratus_n or_o in_o manner_n 35._o as_o when_o he_o allege_v menander_n or_o epimenides_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o verify_v these_o two_o theological_a proposition_n that_o faith_n be_v the_o proof_n 1._o of_o thing_n not_o apparent_a and_o by_o faith_n the_o saint_n have_v conquer_a kingdom_n 33._o and_o wrought_v justice._n for_o the_o history_n and_o the_o word_n itself_o of_o tympanize_v martyr_n s._n paul_n take_v it_o from_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the._n maccabee_n as_o graec_fw-la theodoret_n have_v note_v and_o after_o he_o the_o minister_n of_o geneva_n who_o in_o their_o 18._o annotation_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n have_v quote_v in_o the_o margin_n 11._o of_o this_o verse_n the_o six_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o of_o the_o maccabee_n i_o know_v well_o that_o the_o caluinist_n do_v shake_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o two_o 1588._o book_n &_o principal_o of_o the_o second_o they_o object_v five_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o author_n excuse_v the_o lowness_n of_o his_o stile_n the_o second_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o original_a history_n but_o the_o extract_n &_o epitome_n of_o a_o more_o large_a history_n the_o three_o that_o the_o primitive_a author_n be_v call_v jason_n which_o be_v a_o pagan_a and_o profane_a name_n the_o forth_o that_o he_o be_v a_o cyrenian_a and_o not_o a_o jewe_n the_o five_o that_o this_o history_n contain_v many_o contrariety_n both_o to_o itself_o and_o to_o profane_a history_n but_o there_o be_v none_o of_o these_o objection_n but_o bring_v his_o solution_n with_o he_o for_o to_o the_o first_o opposition_n which_o be_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o excuse_n of_o the_o stile_n we_o answer_v that_o s._n paul_n do_v yet_o excuse_v himself_o in_o more_o express_a term_n for_o the_o stile_n of_o his_o epistle_n when_o he_o say_v though_o i_o be_v ignorant_a as_o concern_v 11._o word_n yet_o i_o be_o not_o so_o in_o knowledge_n to_o the_o second_o opposition_n which_o be_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o history_n which_o be_v the_o abridgement_n of_o a_o large_a history_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o history_n of_o king_n and_o that_o of_o chronicle_n alibi_fw-la be_v also_o of_o other_o large_a history_n of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o juda_n and_o that_o to_o make_v a_o history_n canonical_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n alibi_fw-la shall_v immediate_o indite_v all_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o narration_n but_o it_o suffice_v that_o he_o so_o assist_v it_o that_o in_o the_o composition_n of_o the_o ingredient_n of_o the_o history_n there_o be_v no_o falsehood_n mingle_v with_o it_o to_o the_o three_o opposition_n which_o be_v concern_v the_o name_n of_o jason_n one_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o original_a history_n 2._o which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v a_o profane_a name_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o name_n jesus_n in_o hebrewe_n and_o the_o name_n jason_n in_o greek_a the_o one_o derive_v from_o the_o hebrewe_n word_n jesa_n which_o signify_v salvation_n and_o the_o other_o from_o the_o the_o greek_a word_n jasis_n which_o signify_v heal_v be_v one_o selfe-same_a from_o whence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o priest_n jesus_n brother_n of_o onias_n be_v call_v jesus_n 6._o among_o the_o hebrew_n and_o jason_n among_o the_o greek_n as_o onias_n his_o brother_n be_v call_v onias_n or_o onian_a among_o the_o hebrew_n which_o signify_v the_o strength_n alij_fw-la of_o the_o people_n and_o menelaus_n among_o the_o greek_n &_o that_o since_o jason_n son_n of_o eleazar_n and_o many_o other_o jew_n bear_v the_o same_o name_n to_o the_o four_o 8._o opposition_n which_o concern_v the_o country_n of_o this_o jason_n who_o be_v surname_v jason_n 2._o the_o cyrenean_n we_o answer_v that_o cyrene_n be_v a_o province_n and_o people_v with_o jew_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o gospel_n call_v he_o that_o do_v help_v to_o carry_v the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n simon_n the_o cyrenean_n and_o that_o s._n luke_n call_v one_o of_o 10._o the_o synagogue_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o cyrenean_n and_o final_o 6._o to_o the_o five_o and_o last_o opposition_n which_o be_v concern_v the_o pretend_a repugancie_n of_o this_o history_n either_o against_o itself_o or_o against_o profane_a history_n 21._o we_o answer_v that_o if_o this_o gate_n shall_v be_v once_o open_v there_o be_v no_o canonical_a book_n who_o authority_n may_v not_o be_v call_v in_o question_n 3_o for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o difficult_a to_o reconcile_v 1_o either_o the_o history_n of_o the_o chronicle_n which_o say_v that_o elias_n write_v 15_o to_o joram_n king_n of_o juda_n with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n which_o say_v that_o elias_n have_v be_v take_v up_o out_o of_o the_o world_n eight_o year_n before_o the_o reign_n 26._o of_o the_o same_o joram_n king_n of_o juda_n or_o saint_n matthew_n who_o write_v that_o joram_n king_n of_o juda_n beget_v ozias_n and_o reckon_v from_o david_n to_o ozias_n fourteen_o 5._o generation_n with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n &_o the_o chronicle_n which_o tetestifie_v 2._o that_o joram_n be_v the_o grandfather_n of_o the_o grandfather_n to_o ozias_n and_o let_v we_o down_o from_o david_n to_o ozias_n seaventeen_o generation_n or_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n which_o compute_v the_o death_n of_o theodas_n to_o be_v under_o the_o empire_n of_o tiberius_n with_o josephus_n a_o author_n of_o that_o country_n and_o tymel_v who_o reckon_v it_o under_o the_o empire_n of_o claudius_n then_o to_o reconcile_v all_o the_o seem_a repugnancy_n which_o be_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n either_o against_o itself_o or_o against_o profane_a history_n and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v less_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o belong_v not_o as_o have_v be_v already_o say_v to_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o agitation_n for_o the_o question_n that_o be_v in_o dispute_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o collection_n entitle_v the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v in_o their_o ground_n canonical_a or_o not_o not_o whether_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v repute_v they_o canonical_a or_o not_o canonical_a but_o whether_o the_o african_a church_n have_v hold_v they_o for_o such_o and_o whether_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n in_o eclipse_v they_o from_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o african_a church_n have_v do_v false_o or_o not_o now_o we_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v do_v so_o both_o by_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o by_o that_o of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o by_o a_o thousand_o other_o authentical_a testimony_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n be_v of_o better_a credit_n than_o the_o greek_a rhapsody_n which_o be_v that_o we_o have_v oblige_v ourselves_o to_o prove_v of_o the_o difficulty_n touch_v the_o epistle_n that_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o african_a council_n chapt_n ix_o there_o remain_v one_o last_o difficulty_n which_o be_v represent_v 47._o 8._o upon_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n touch_v the_o epistle_n annex_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o century_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o latin_a text_n of_o these_o epistle_n which_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n in_o our_o library_n have_v be_v translate_v from_o the_o greek_a translation_n and_o add_v to_o the_o collection_n of_o dionysius_n the_o ancient_a latin_a original_a being_n lose_v or_o whether_o the_o ancient_a latin_a text_n be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n it_o have_v be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o schismatickes_n of_o west_n the_o whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o church_n of_o aquilea_n and_o that_o of_o grada_n be_v in_o schism_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n hold_v for_o the_o church_n of_o grada_n and_o the_o lumbards_n for_o the_o church_n of_o aquilea_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v afterward_o for_o that_o it_o have_v be_v familiar_a with_o the_o schismatickes_n of_o the_o west_n to_o abuse_v these_o epistle_n to_o the_o foment_v their_o rebellion_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o mocke-councell_n synon_n of_o rheims_n hold_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o arnulphus_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n where_o the_o principal_a piece_n that_o the_o schismatickes_n make_v use_v of_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o
african_n to_o pope_n celestine_n i_o have_v say_v the_o mocke-councell_n of_o rheims_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o very_a centuriator_n that_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v print_v confess_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o tyrannical_a council_n hold_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o hugh_n capet_n to_o oppress_v arnulphus_n bastard_n brother_n to_o the_o king_n lotharius_n legitimate_a and_o innocent_a bishop_n of_o orleans_n and_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v disannul_v three_o year_n after_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a 46._o and_o of_o seguin_n archbishop_n of_o sens_n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o hugh_n capet_n himself_o then_o whether_o the_o latin_a text_n of_o these_o epistle_n be_v a_o translation_n of_o the_o greek_a edition_n or_o whether_o the_o ancient_a latin_a original_a being_n come_v to_o our_o hand_n have_v be_v corrupt_v be_v it_o by_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o bookbinders_a or_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o doubt_n be_v that_o whereas_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o african_a canon_n the_o latin_a edition_n be_v much_o more_o correct_v then_o the_o greek_a in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o epistle_n contrariwise_o the_o greek_a edition_n be_v very_o correct_v and_o the_o latin_a most_o deprave_a and_o corrupt_a and_o the_o corruption_n be_v such_o as_o seem_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o ambiguity_n and_o misunderstanding_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n i_o will_v allege_v five_o pattern_n the_o first_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o epistle_n to_o pope_n boniface_n where_o the_o greek_a text_n speak_v of_o the_o canon_n that_o pope_n zozimus_n have_v send_v into_o africa_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n say_v these_o thing_n have_v be_v rigistre_v in_o the_o act_n till_o the_o more_o certain_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n shall_v come_v in_o which_o if_o they_o be_v couch_v in_o the_o same_o form_n as_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o instruction_n that_o our_o brother_n have_v show_v we_o send_v by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o that_o they_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o same_o fashion_n by_o you_o in_o italy_n we_o will_v make_v no_o more_o mention_n thereof_o nor_o further_o contest_v of_o the_o not_o suffer_v they_o which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n who_o have_v new_o before_o be_v seek_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o observe_v in_o the_o like_a case_n what_o shall_v be_v find_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o shall_v 138._o be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o eact_v and_o which_o be_v the_o sense_n also_o that_o have_v be_v follow_v by_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n in_o the_o last_o impression_n that_o they_o have_v make_v of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o latin_a text_n contrariwise_o say_v these_o thing_n have_v be_v insert_v into_o the_o act_n until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o more_o certain_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o if_o they_o be_v there_o contain_v so_o as_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o instruction_n as_o our_o brother_n send_v by_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a have_n allege_v and_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o same_o form_n among_o you_o in_o italy_n we_o shall_v be_v no_o way_n constrain_v to_o tolerate_v thing_n such_o as_o we_o will_v not_o now_o call_v to_o memory_n or_o to_o suffer_v they_o intolerable_a word_n that_o beside_o the_o impertinency_n of_o the_o construction_n in_o the_o alternative_a whereof_o there_o be_v no_o antithesis_fw-la be_v direct_o repugnant_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o be_v contrariwise_o to_o say_v that_o if_o the_o clause_n intend_v by_o the_o pope_n instruction_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o 101_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o shall_v come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o open_v their_o mouth_n to_o speak_v of_o it_o and_o will_v not_o contest_v of_o the_o not_o suffer_v they_o and_o whereof_o the_o corruption_n seem_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o two_o greek_a verb_n whereof_o the_o one_o signify_v to_o make_v mention_n or_o to_o commemorate_v and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v constrain_v and_o to_o contest_v the_o second_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o exordium_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o pope_n celestine_n where_o the_o greek_a text_n speak_v of_o apiarius_n say_v for_o first_o he_o have_v main_o resist_v all_o the_o council_n charge_v it_o with_o diverse_a contumely_n under_o pretence_n of_o pursue_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o willing_a to_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v receive_v into_o our_o communion_n because_o your_o holiness_n believe_v that_o he_o have_v appeal_v to_o you_o which_o he_o can_v not_o prove_v have_v restore_v he_o to_o the_o communion_n yet_o this_o do_v not_o succeed_v with_o he_o as_o you_o shall_v more_o at_o large_a understand_v by_o read_v the_o act_n which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o epistle_n and_o which_o also_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n have_v follow_v in_o the_o last_o impression_n that_o they_o have_v make_v of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o latin_a text_n contrariwise_o import_v refer_v these_o word_n to_o faustinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n for_o 〈◊〉_d how_o much_o he_o have_v resist_v all_o the_o assembly_n charge_v it_o with_o many_o 〈◊〉_d under_o colour_n of_o pursue_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o willing_a to_o 〈◊〉_d he_o to_o be_v receive_v into_o our_o communion_n because_o your_o holiness_n believe_v he_o have_v appeal_v to_o you_o which_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v have_v restore_v he_o to_o the_o commnnion_n which_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o lawful_a as_o you_o shall_v better_o discern_v by_o read_v the_o act_n which_o be_v three_o depravation_n one_o in_o the_o neck_n of_o a_o other_o the_o first_o in_o this_o that_o the_o latin_a text_n refer_v to_o faustinus_n that_o which_o the_o council_n say_v of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n for_o first_o which_o show_v that_o it_o speak_v of_o he_o of_o who_o it_o have_v begin_v and_o continue_v to_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o follow_a period_n and_o by_o this_o subsequent_a clause_n when_o we_o examine_v the_o crime_n that_o have_v be_v object_v to_o he_o which_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v but_o of_o apiarius_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o greek_a pronowne_n which_o be_v take_v in_o a_o reciprocal_a signification_n signify_v himself_o and_o oblige_v the_o reader_n to_o translate_v willing_a to_o make_v himself_o be_v receive_v which_o be_v the_o sense_n that_o the_o new_a edition_n of_o the_o prote_n stant_n of_o germany_n have_v embrace_v and_o be_v take_v in_o a_o direct_a signification_n 1614_o signify_v he_o and_o oblige_v the_o reader_n to_o translate_v willing_a to_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v receive_v the_o second_o in_o this_o that_o instead_o of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n notwithstanding_o this_o have_v not_o succeed_v to_o he_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o action_n of_o apiarius_n the_o latin_a text_n set_v down_o which_o yet_o be_v not_o lawful_a and_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o action_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o credit_n of_o this_o remitment_n as_o you_o shall_v better_o discern_v by_o the_o read_n of_o the_o act_n which_o show_v that_o the_o council_n speak_v of_o the_o issue_n of_o apiarius_n his_o cause_n and_o not_o of_o the_o pope_n action_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o greek_a verb_n which_o signify_v to_o succeed_v and_o to_o be_v lawful_a and_o the_o three_o in_o this_o that_o instead_o of_o the_o adverbe_n great_o which_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n the_o latin_a edition_n read_v how_o much_o a_o thing_n which_o deprive_v the_o construction_n both_o of_o sense_n and_o verb_n and_o make_v the_o speech_n suspense_n and_o defective_a the_o three_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o request_n of_o 105._o the_o same_o epistle_n where_o after_o these_o word_n premise_v then_o the_o office_n of_o a_o due_a salutation_n we_o beseech_v you_o affectionate_o that_o henceforward_o you_o will_v no_o more_o so_o easy_o admit_v to_o your_o ear_n those_o that_o come_v from_o these_o part_n nor_o restore_v to_o the_o communion_n those_o that_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o we_o for_o as_o much_o as_o your_o reverence_n will_v easy_o discern_v that_o this_o have_v be_v define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o 〈◊〉_d text_n add_v for_o although_o it_o seem_v that_o there_o shall_v only_o mention_v be_v make_v of_o clerk_n and_o layman_n by_o how_o much_o strong_a reason_n shall_v
this_o be_v observe_v of_o bishop_n that_o those_o which_o have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n in_o their_o province_n may_v not_o appear_v to_o be_v restore_v rash_o and_o due_o to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n and_o the_o greek_a text_n contrariwise_o make_v two_o diverse_a clause_n of_o this_o train_n whereof_o he_o refer_v the_o first_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o distinguish_v they_o by_o the_o word_n then_o which_o be_v a_o adverbe_n of_o illation_n in_o these_o term_n for_o if_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v have_v care_n to_o extend_v his_o caution_n even_o to_o clerk_n and_o layman_n by_o how_o much_o strong_a reason_n will_v he_o have_v be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o regard_n of_o bishop_n let_v not_o those_o then_o that_o have_v be_v suspend_v from_o the_o communion_n in_o their_o own_o province_n appear_v to_o be_v hasty_o and_o otherwise_o then_o be_v fit_a 〈◊〉_d restore_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n now_o that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o greek_a 138._o edition_n be_v the_o true_a one_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o branch_n follow_v which_o be_v likewise_o also_o the_o impudent_a flight_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n let_v your_o holiness_n as_o a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o you_o reject_v they_o which_o suppose_v a_o precedent_a prayer_n to_o 1615._o the_o pope_n particular_o make_v for_o the_o bishop_n the_o four_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o same_o petition_n where_o the_o greek_a text_n contain_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o want_v to_o every_o provision_n the_o latin_a exemplifier_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v there_o provision_n some_o of_o they_o have_v make_v providence_n and_o other_o some_o province_n for_o that_o there_o it_o must_v be_v read_v provision_n and_o not_o province_n mercat_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o clause_n that_o follow_v which_o say_v and_o principal_o since_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o every_o one_o if_o he_o find_v himself_o aggrieve_v at_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n to_o appeal_v to_o the_o synod_n of_o his_o province_n the_o five_o pattern_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n where_o the_o greek_a text_n say_v for_o as_o for_o the_o wretched_a 138._o apiarius_n have_v already_o be_v for_o his_o infamous_a crime_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o our_o brother_n faustinus_n we_o be_v no_o more_o in_o care_n for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o approbation_n and_o direction_n of_o your_o holiness_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o brotherly_a charity_n africa_n will_v suffer_v he_o no_o long_o which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o bpistle_n where_o the_o father_n intend_v to_o express_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v no_o long_o permit_v that_o apiarius_n to_o who_o by_o the_o first_o judgement_n of_o faustinus_n his_o 〈◊〉_d &_o of_o the_o african_a bishop_n review_v the_o cause_n with_o he_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v to_o remain_v in_o africa_n and_o so_o exercise_v there_o in_o any_o place_n he_o can_v or_o will_v the_o office_n of_o priesthood_n provide_v it_o be_v not_o at_o sicca_n have_v be_v by_o the_o second_o judgement_n condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v yea_o by_o the_o very_a month_n of_o faustinus_n his_o holiness_n legate_n shall_v remain_v in_o 105._o africa_n and_o exercise_v any_o priesthood_n there_o which_o sense_n also_o the_o protestant_n have_v follow_v as_o well_o in_o the_o greek_a as_o in_o the_o latin_a of_o the_o last_o impression_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n which_o they_o have_v make_v in_o germany_n 1614_o and_o the_o latin_a edition_n contrariwise_o say_v transfer_v the_o speech_n to_o 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o for_o our_o brother_n faustinus_n apiarius_n have_v be_v already_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o his_o enormous_a crime_n we_o be_v assure_v save_v the_o probity_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o your_o holiness_n that_o brotherly_a charity_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d long_o bear_v with_o in_o africa_n now_o this_o translation_n be_v both_o against_o the_o greek_a text_n which_o refer_v the_o speech_n to_o apiarius_n and_o not_o to_o faustinus_n and_o against_o the_o express_a intention_n of_o the_o council_n which_o may_v well_o &_o convenient_o desire_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o permit_v any_o long_o that_o apiarius_n shall_v remain_v in_o africa_n but_o not_o desire_v he_o no_o more_o to_o keep_v a_o legate_n in_o africa_n &_o principal_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o that_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o genetlins_n preside_v be_v celebrate_v under_o the_o empire_n of_o valentinian_n the_o three_o who_o begin_v to_o be_v emperor_n but_o the_o year_n after_o the_o consulship_n of_o victor_n and_o castinus_n under_o the_o which_o according_a to_o they_o this_o letter_n be_v write_v and_o that_o faustinus_n the_o episc._n pope_n legate_n assist_v at_o it_o and_o against_o the_o testimony_n of_o leo_n the_o first_o who_o be_v create_v pope_n eight_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o celestine_n who_o 85._o make_v mention_n of_o a_o bishop_n call_v potentius_fw-la who_o be_v his_o legate_n in_o africa_n for_o as_o for_o the_o clause_n we_o be_v no_o more_o in_o care_n of_o it_o which_o want_v in_o the_o greek_a print_a copy_n it_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n comment_v by_o zonara_n and_o by_o balsamon_n and_o as_o for_o the_o word_n probity_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o latin_a text_n it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v a_o depravation_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v 〈◊〉_d which_o also_o the_o german_n have_v retain_v in_o the_o new_a edition_n as_o well_o greek_n as_o latin_n of_o their_o conncell_n but_o it_o be_v already_o a_o long_a while_n since_o this_o digression_n begin_v to_o exceed_v the_o proportion_n of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o my_o work_n and_o therefore_o the_o fear_n to_o abuse_v the_o reader_n patience_n oblige_v i_o to_o conclude_v and_o to_o pray_v they_o to_o excuse_v i_o if_o i_o have_v suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v carry_v beyond_o what_o be_v my_o purpose_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n shall_v recompense_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o proportion_n which_o perchance_o in_o these_o kind_n of_o search_n will_v not_o be_v displease_v to_o spirit_n curious_a of_o antiquity_n of_o the_o question_n of_o appeal_v treat_v of_o in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n chapt_n x._o the_o five_o instance_n of_o calvin_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v take_v from_o the_o dispute_n that_o happen_v about_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v in_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o apiarius_n priest_n of_o the_o city_n of_o sicca_n in_o africa_n have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o a_o sentence_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v give_v against_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v complain_v of_o this_o appeal_v the_o pope_n send_v they_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o appeal_v make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o direct_v they_o to_o they_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o as_o 3._o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o african_n not_o find_v these_o canon_n in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n that_o they_o have_v with_o they_o depute_v some_o into_o the_o east_n to_o see_v if_o they_o can_v find_v they_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o not_o have_v find_v they_o there_o and_o beside_o find_v themselves_o much_o aggreeved_a as_o the_o frequent_a appeal_n which_o those_o that_o have_v bad_a cause_n cast_v in_o from_o their_o judgement_n beseech_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v not_o more_o so_o easy_o receive_v appeal_v from_o the_o churchman_n of_o their_o province_n now_o this_o instance_n have_v be_v after_o many_o age_n the_o principal_a engine_n of_o the_o adversary_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o use_n that_o the_o schismatickes_n of_o the_o mockcouncell_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 494._o make_v of_o it_o to_o the_o end_n to_o oppress_v the_o innocence_n of_o arnulphus_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n which_o the_o pope_n maintain_v and_o by_o the_o calumny_n where_o with_o zonar_n as_o and_o balsamon_n greek_n schismatickes_n unjust_o charge_v the_o memory_n 〈◊〉_d of_o pope_n zosimus_n for_o have_v allege_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o final_o by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o in_o this_o slander_n have_v follow_v balsam_n and_o surpass_v they_o for_o not_o only_o
in_o their_o province_n and_o nevertheless_o to_o manifest_v that_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o touch_v upon_o neither-the_a superiority_n nor_o ibid._n the_o evocation_n he_o add_v we_o know_v all_o aswell_o young_a as_o old_a that_o our_o church_n ibid._n be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o a_o little_a after_o it_o be_v fit_a and_o just_a that_o every_o bishop_n that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n shall_v send_v for_o to_o come_v to_o he_o to_o rome_n if_o sickness_n or_o any_o other_o more_o grievous_a necessity_n or_o impossibility_n hinder_v he_o not_o as_o the_o sacred_a canon_n prescribe_v shall_v do_v his_o devoyre_n to_o travel_v thither_o and_o elsewhere_o 〈◊〉_d 55._o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a from_o whence_o be_v derive_v the_o stream_n of_o 35._o religion_n ecclesiastical_a ordination_n and_o canonical_a judicature_n and_o even_o to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o appeal_v of_o minor_a and_o personal_a cause_n neither_o the_o cause_n nor_o person_n of_o the_o french_a clergy_n go_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v judge_v there_o neither_o do_v the_o pope_n send_v legate_n from_o rome_n in_o to_o france_n but_o name_n commissary_n take_v out_o of_o the_o province_n of_o france_n and_o dwell_v in_o france_n to_o judge_v they_o upon_o the_o place_n to_o avoid_v the_o cost_n and_o other_o inconvenience_n that_o the_o length_n and_o difficulty_n of_o the_o way_n will_v bring_v upon_o the_o witness_n and_o party_n which_o be_v that_o that_o principal_o do_v hurt_v the_o african_n the_o four_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o set_v purpose_n and_o of_o the_o first_o design_n that_o the_o african_a father_n move_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o beyond-sea_n appeal_v of_o bishop_n but_o by_o accident_n and_o in_o continuance_n of_o apiarius_n his_o appeal_n for_o the_o african_n have_v always_o till_o then_o observe_v this_o difference_n between_o bishop_n and_o simple_a priest_n that_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o priest_n not_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o declaration_n that_o saint_n augustine_n make_v that_o 162._o cecilianus_n may_v reserve_v the_o definition_n of_o his_o cause_n to_o the_o judgment_n beyond_o sea_n because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o simple_a priest_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o of_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n he_o give_v that_o many_o african_a bishop_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a judge_v they_o or_o confirm_v the_o judgment_n of_o other_o have_v be_v preserve_v to_o the_o title_n of_o their_o bishopric_n without_o retain_v the_o exercise_n thereof_o and_o by_o the_o tacit_a exception_n of_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o milevitan_n council_n have_v set_v into_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o appeal_v 22._o when_o they_o have_v ordain_v that_o the_o priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n can_v not_o appeal_n to_o the_o province_n beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o therefore_o when_o apiarius_n priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sicca_n in_o africa_n come_v to_o appeal_v beyond_o sea_n the_o african_a bishop_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o it_o and_o from_o thence_o by_o occasion_n the_o question_n of_o episcopal_a appeal_n take_v the_o original_n as_o a_o incident_a set_v on_o the_o back_n of_o a_o other_o affair_n for_o upon_o this_o opposition_n the_o pope_n send_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n concern_v appeal_n into_o africa_n which_o consist_v in_o two_o article_n whereof_o one_o treat_v of_o the_o appeal_v of_o bishop_n and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o appeal_n of_o priest_n now_o the_o pope_n send_v these_o two_o canon_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o as_o 3._o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o appendix_n and_o a_o supply_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o african_a prelate_n then_o not_o find_v the_o canon_n of_o bishop_n appeal_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n that_o they_o have_v with_o they_o no_o more_o than_o that_o of_o the_o priest_n appeal_v and_o beside_o be_v much_o vex_v with_o the_o frequent_a appeal_v of_o bishop_n from_o their_o province_n beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v please_v that_o they_o may_v send_v into_o the_o east_n to_o see_v if_o this_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o put_v in_o compromise_n the_o title_n which_o be_v produce_v to_o they_o of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v till_o then_o observe_v by_o custom_n in_o regard_n of_o episcopal_a appeal_v take_v occasion_n also_o to_o put_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o custom_n to_o compromise_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o contest_v not_o only_o the_o priest_n appeal_v but_o also_o to_o beeseeche_v the_o pope_n to_o reject_v or_o more_o rare_o to_o receive_v the_o appeal_v of_o bishop_n the_o five_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o allegation_n that_o pope_n zozimus_n make_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o 〈◊〉_d canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v not_o as_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v by_o fraud_n or_o to_o make_v a_o advantage_n of_o see_v contrariwise_o it_o have_v be_v more_o advantageable_a to_o he_o for_o the_o matter_n then_o in_o question_n to_o have_v allege_v they_o under_o the_o title_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n then_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o wit_n cecilianus_n whereas_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n there_o be_v thirty_o six_o bishop_n of_o africa_n present_a that_o subscribe_v it_o but_o that_o it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n because_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v be_v a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o allege_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n trullian_n under_o the_o title_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o general_n council_n because_o they_o pretend_v the_o council_n trullian_n to_o be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o six_o general_n council_n and_o as_o gregory_n of_o tours_n allege_n and_o that_o with_o much_o less_o reason_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n for_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n when_o he_o say_v then_o arrive_v at_o the_o monastery_n i_o read_v over_o again_o 33._o the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n wherein_o it_o be_v contain_v because_o that_o if_o any_o woman_n leave_v her_o husband_n and_o she_o despise_v the_o bed_n wherein_o he_o have_v live_v honest_o say_v there_o be_v no_o part_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o he_o that_o have_v be_v join_v in_o marriage_n let_v she_o be_v anathema_n for_o these_o word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n and_o not_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n be_v as_o a_o branch_n and_o a_o slip_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o that_o the_o same_o osius_n who_o have_v preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n assist_v there_o if_o we_o believe_v the_o ancient_a latin_a inscription_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n and_o the_o report_n of_o eunodius_n ancient_a bishop_n of_o pavia_n the_o six_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o whereas_o the_o african_a father_n do_v not_o perceive_v that_o these_o canon_n which_o they_o find_v not_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v in_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n happen_v from_o this_o that_o the_o donatist_n have_v suppress_v in_o africa_n all_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n at_o sardica_n and_o have_v substitute_v in_o their_o steed_n the_o copy_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o arrian_n near_o sardica_n for_o in_o the_o same_o time_n when_o the_o three_o hundred_o catholic_a bishop_n which_o represent_v all_o the_o catholic_a church_n hold_v their_o council_n at_o sardica_n where_o they_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n &_o the_o absolution_n of_o s._n athanasius_n the_o seventy_o arrian_n bishop_n which_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o hold_v their_o heretical_a mockcouncell_n which_o they_o false_o and_o impudent_o entitle_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n at_o philippopolis_n a_o city_n near_o sardica_n where_o they_o
condemn_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o the_o person_n of_o s._n ataanasius_n now_o it_o happen_v that_o in_o the_o address_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o this_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n the_o arrian_n among_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o communion_n insert_v the_o name_n of_o donatus_n bishop_n of_o the_o donatist_n of_o carthage_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o donatus_n beside_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v &_o also_o infect_v with_o that_o of_o the_o arrian_n the_o donatist_n then_o think_v they_o may_v infer_v from_o thence_o that_o their_o communion_n have_v in_o former_a 10._o time_n be_v spread_v out_o of_o africa_n &_o by_o this_o mean_n avoid_v the_o reproach_n that_o the_o catholic_n of_o africa_n make_v to_o they_o that_o their_o church_n be_v imprison_v 6._o within_o the_o lymitt_v of_o africa_n and_o consequent_o be_v not_o catholic_a advise_v themselves_o to_o call_v in_o and_o supprese_n secret_o in_o africa_n all_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v thither_o by_o gratus_n catholic_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o to_o sow_v in_o their_o steed_n the_o copy_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v address_v to_o donatus_n his_o competitor_n and_o wrought_v so_o in_o it_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o prove_v by_o many_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o africa_n none_o of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n but_o only_o those_o of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n the_o seven_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o african_a father_n never_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v any_o decision_n or_o any_o decree_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_v contrariwise_o before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o copy_n from_o the_o east_n all_o their_o proceed_n be_v to_o beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o cause_v their_o 101._o content_n to_o be_v observe_v with_o protestation_n the_o while_n to_o practice_v what_o be_v set_v down_o in_o his_o legate_n instruction_n and_o after_o the_o copy_n have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o east_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o make_v any_o decree_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o bishop_n appeal_v as_o they_o hinder_v not_o those_o of_o simple_a priest_n for_o after_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n boniface_n under_o who_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o east_n be_v bring_v into_o africa_n apiarius_n be_v fall_v into_o new_a crime_n for_o which_o he_o be_v again_o condemn_v by_o a_o council_n of_o africa_n and_o pope_n celestine_n upon_o a_o pretence_n of_o appeal_v have_v again_o send_v faustinus_n his_o legate_n into_o africa_n to_o cause_v a_o new_a council_n to_o be_v hold_v there_o where_o apiarius_n do_v not_o only_o forbear_v to_o hinder_v it_o but_o also_o to_o obey_v the_o pope_n bill_n of_o appeal_v assemble_v a_o new_a council_n where_o in_o his_o legate_n presence_n apiarius_n his_o cause_n be_v again_o put_v to_o trial_n and_o they_o do_v pap._n not_o awake_v the_o contention_n of_o appeal_v but_o upon_o the_o occasion_n that_o be_v give_v they_o by_o the_o subsequent_a and_o unexpected_a confession_n of_o apiarius_n 101._o who_o vanquish_v by_o the_o remorse_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n voluntary_o discover_v all_o the_o infamous_a crime_n whereof_o he_o be_v accuse_v this_o ibidem_fw-la confession_n then_o have_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o african_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o greevance_n that_o they_o receive_v by_o appeal_v which_o in_o steed_n of_o serve_v as_o they_o ought_v for_o a_o shield_n for_o innocence_n when_o the_o reins_n be_v let_v too_o loose_a serve_v for_o a_o shield_n for_o incorrigibilitie_n and_o impunity_n they_o take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o to_o write_v a_o epistle_n of_o ibid._n complaint_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o yet_o even_o then_o they_o pass_v not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v any_o decree_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n but_o contain_v themselves_o within_o the_o simple_a lymitt_n of_o complaint_n petition_n and_o remonstrance_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v trullian_n that_o the_o greek_n call_v the_o six_o general_a council_n 2._o acknowledge_v when_o they_o say_v we_o receive_v the_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n and_o at_o carthage_n word_n which_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n to_o have_v be_v disable_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o eight_o and_o last_o advertisement_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o end_n &_o issue_n of_o the_o affair_n be_v that_o after_o all_o these_o contention_n search_n and_o proceed_n the_o pope_n remain_v in_o full_a and_o entire_a possession_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_v of_o africa_n and_o that_o the_o african_n be_v satisfy_v that_o what_o they_o hadnot_v found_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n who_o canon_n upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o insert_v into_o the_o canon_n law_n of_o their_o province_n and_o in_o sum_n that_o all_o the_o african_a church_n continue_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o yield_v episcopal_a appeal_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o in_o the_o communion_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o long_o as_o christianity_n last_v in_o africa_n this_o be_v the_o history_n apiarius_n priest_n of_o sicca_n a_o city_n of_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n in_o africa_n after_o he_o have_v be_v condemn_v depose_v and_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o african_a bishop_n in_o a_o cause_n that_o he_o have_v against_o vrbanus_n bishop_n of_o sicca_n complain_v to_o pope_n zozimus_n that_o he_o have_v appeal_v to_o he_o &_o that_o the_o african_n will_v 3._o not_o suffer_v the_o cause_n to_o pass_v beyond_o sea_n pope_n zozimus_n upon_o this_o occasion_n send_v into_o africa_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n upon_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v which_o consist_v in_o two_o article_n whereof_o the_o one_o contain_v that_o the_o bishop_n after_o they_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o province_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o other_o contain_v that_o the_o priest_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o their_o province_n may_v have_v their_o cause_n review_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o next_o province_n which_o be_v the_o point_n that_o concern_v apiarius_n his_o controversy_n for_o whereas_o the_o 10._o rule_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n import_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o diocese_n and_o by_o six_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n and_o that_o in_o case_n they_o will_v appeal_v from_o it_o they_o may_v not_o appeal_v but_o to_o the_o primate_n and_o to_o the_o council_n of_o their_o province_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o cause_n may_v be_v determine_v within_o the_o lymitt_v of_o that_o particular_a province_n where_o it_o have_v be_v begin_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n ordain_v that_o after_o they_o have_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o primate_n and_o the_o council_n 14._o of_o their_o province_n they_o may_v appeal_v to_o the_o primate_n and_o to_o the_o council_n of_o one_o of_o the_o next_o province_n which_o thing_n be_v apply_v to_o africa_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o every_o priest_n of_o africa_n to_o appeal_v from_o the_o primate_n and_o from_o the_o council_n of_o his_o province_n to_o the_o primate_n and_o council_n of_o one_o of_o the_o next_o province_n apiarius_n pretend_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o dignity_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o he_o that_o be_v a_o numidian_a priest_n to_o choose_v among_o the_o church_n next_o the_o province_n of_o numidia_n the_o roman_a church_n although_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o continent_n of_o africa_n before_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n because_o beside_o the_o neighbourhood_n that_o tertullian_n express_v by_o these_o word_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o neighbour_n to_o italy_n thou_o have_v the_o roman_a 36._o church_n who_o authority_n be_v near_o and_o at_o hand_n to_o we_o she_o have_v the_o prerogative_n and_o pre-eminence_n of_o dignity_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n now_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o pope_n send_v into_o africa_n these_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n insert_v into_o some_o latin_a copy_n of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v a_o quotation_n of_o the_o copyist_n which_o slip_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o
the_o text_n as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o current_n of_o the_o discourse_n &_o by_o the_o latin_a collection_n of_o dionysius_n and_o by_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o greek_a edition_n where_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o to_o deceive_v as_o be_v above_o say_v but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n under_o the_o title_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_a to_o cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n entitle_v trullian_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o general_n council_n for_o that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o appendix_n and_o a_o supply_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n hold_v in_o the_o same_o age_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n with_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o greek_n yea_o even_o those_o that_o be_v schismatickes_n be_v of_o agreement_n with_o us._n it_o please_v say_v zonara_n the_o two_o emperor_n sardic_n to_o cause_v a_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v to_o decide_v those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n at_o sardica_n then_o assemble_v three_o hundred_o forty_o one_o bishop_n who_o make_v a_o decree_n confirm_v the_o synod_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n &_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o hold_v the_o contrary_n and_o balsamon_n it_o please_v the_o emperor_n that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v assemble_v at_o sardica_n to_o dispute_v balsam_n about_o those_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v decide_v at_o nicaea_n the_o assembly_n they_o be_v make_v of_o ibid._n three_o hundred_o forty_o one_o bishop_n &_o the_o holy_a creed_n of_o the_o father_n call_v at_o nicaea_n 4._o be_v confirm_v and_o glycas_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o council_n be_v assemble_v at_o sardica_n where_o there_o be_v three_o hundred_o forty_o one_o father_n who_o confirm_v the_o sacred_a and_o holy_a creed_n make_v at_o nicaea_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n who_o entitle_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n a_o general_a council_n yet_o nevertheless_o reckon_v but_o four_o general_n counsel_n as_o comprehend_v and_o confound_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o oneself_o same_o title_n with_o that_o of_o nicaea_n because_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v make_v no_o creed_n in_o chief_a like_o the_o other_o general_n counsel_n but_o have_v content_v itself_o with_o confirm_v 8._o and_o expound_v that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n likewise_o also_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v often_o to_o cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n aswell_o because_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v annex_v as_o a_o appendix_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o because_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o that_o of_o sardica_n have_v be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o latin_a edition_n by_o oneself_o same_o pen_n and_o bring_v to_o rome_n by_o one_o selfe-same_a messenger_n to_o wit_n by_o osius_n who_o have_v preside_v at_o both_o and_o they_o be_v write_v one_o follow_v a_o other_o yea_o in_o some_o copy_n where_o of_o they_o say_v one_o be_v to_o be_v find_v at_o arras_n without_o be_v distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o pope_n innocent_a and_o leo_n the_o first_o who_o allege_v the_o one_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o uictricius_fw-la report_v by_o charlemagne_n and_o by_o hincmarus_n and_o the_o other_o 15._o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o second_o annex_v to_o the_o front_n of_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o indeed_o if_o this_o extension_n of_o title_n have_v be_v a_o fallacy_n how_o come_v it_o that_o the_o capitul_n pelagian_n which_o bark_v with_o so_o much_o fury_n against_o pope_n zozimus_n his_o carol._n ash_n who_o have_v condemn_v they_o and_o slander_v and_o defame_v he_o of_o prevarication_n 4._o never_o reproach_v he_o of_o this_o falsehood_n and_o how_o can_v s._n praeam_n augustine_n and_o prosper_v who_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o his_o memory_n have_v qualify_v he_o after_o his_o death_n holy_a reverent_a and_o most_o bless_a and_o how_o can_v pope_n leo_n thirty_o year_n after_o have_v fall_v into_o the_o same_o crime_n and_o then_o what_o profitt_a can_v it_o have_v be_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o allege_v by_o fallacy_n 9_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n contrariwise_o if_o he_o have_v regard_v his_o own_o particular_a interest_n why_o have_v it_o not_o dvas_fw-la be_v of_o less_o advantage_n to_o he_o to_o conceal_v the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o in_o regard_n of_o general_a authority_n be_v as_o authentical_a and_o prosp._n in_o regard_n of_o the_o particular_a discipline_n of_o africa_n be_v more_o authentical_a and_o more_o obligatory_a than_o that_o of_o nicaea_n for_o first_o as_o for_o general_a authority_n there_o be_v these_o equality_n between_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n &_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d of_o sardica_n that_o they_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o time_n near_o and_o contiguous_a one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o celebrate_v the_o one_o for_o the_o explication_n and_o strengthen_n of_o the_o other_o &_o that_o the_o same_o osius_n which_o have_v preside_v at_o the_o one_o have_v preside_v at_o the_o other_o and_o that_o there_o be_v like_o number_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o one_o as_o in_o the_o other_o and_o that_o the_o one_o be_v call_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v so_o not_o only_a saint_n athanasius_n and_o after_o he_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n testify_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n there_o be_v more_o than_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n among_o which_o be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v saint_n athanasius_n athanas._n himself_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v maximus_n the_o 2._o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n according_a to_o sozomene_n who_o be_v paul_n the_o 20._o archbishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o be_v gratus_n and_o many_o of_o the_o same_o bishop_n which_o have_v assist_v at_o the_o conncell_n of_o nicaea_n as_o osius_n bishop_n of_o sozom._n cordua_n in_o spain_n nicasius_n bishop_n of_o dina_n in_o gaul_n protogenes_n bishop_n 12._o of_o sardica_n in_o illyria_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o aneyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n 2._o bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o high_a palestina_n aetias_n bishop_n of_o lydda_n in_o lowe_n palestina_n paphnutius_fw-la of_o egypt_n spyridon_n of_o cyprus_n and_o other_o but_o also_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d affirm_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v call_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o two_o emperor_n of_o east_n and_o west_n a_o thing_n which_o appertain_v only_o to_o general_a counsel_n and_o that_o it_o be_v compound_v of_o more_o than_o thirty_o five_o province_n and_o in_o this_o reckon_n count_a africa_n but_o for_o one_o spain_n but_o for_o one_o the_o gaul_n and_o almany_n but_o for_o one_o great_a britain_n but_o for_o one_o macedon_n but_o for_o one_o thrace_n burr_n for_o one_o galatia_n but_o for_o one_o egypt_n but_o for_o one_o and_o the_o three_o arabia_n and_o three_o palestinas_fw-la but_o for_o one_o as_o it_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v where_o we_o will_v treat_v of_o deliberate_a purpose_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o confute_v all_o the_o objection_n that_o the_o pope_n adversary_n make_v against_o it_o and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n and_o 〈◊〉_d as_o concern_v general_a authority_n for_o to_o the_o particular_a obligation_n of_o africa_n so_o far_o of_o be_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n from_o be_v less_o authentical_a than_o that_o of_o nicaea_n as_o contrariwise_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v this_o advantage_n above_o that_o of_o nicaea_n that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o wit_n cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n as_o the_o second_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n note_n in_o these_o word_n only_o cecilianas_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n come_v from_o all_o africa_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n whereas_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n there_o be_v thirty_o six_o african_a bishop_n among_o which_o be_v gratus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n of_o africa_n say_v s._n athanasius_n there_o sign_v at_o the_o
council_n of_o sardica_n nessus_n gratus_n magesius_fw-la coldeus_fw-la 5._o rogatianus_n consortius_fw-la raphinus_fw-la manninus_fw-la cecilianus_n erennianus_fw-la marianus_n ualerius_n dinamius_fw-la nyronius_fw-la justus_n celestine_n cypryan_n victor_n honour_n at_o 2._o marinus_n pantagathus_n felix_n baudeus_fw-la libre_fw-la capiton_n minersall_a cosmus_n 〈◊〉_d hesperion_n felix_n severian_n optantius_fw-la hesper_n fidetius_fw-la salustus_n paschasius_fw-la and_o osius_n speak_v to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n many_o bishop_n make_v a_o custom_n of_o travail_v to_o the_o court_n and_o principal_o the_o african_n that_o as_o we_o have_v understand_v by_o our_o well-beloved_a brother_n and_o colleague_n gratus_n receive_v not_o wholesome_a counsel_n and_o gratus_n himself_o cite_v in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o carthage_n concern_v 7._o the_o credit_n whereof_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v and_o which_o be_v allege_v by_o 〈◊〉_d archdeacon_n of_o carthage_n one_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n i_o remember_v say_v he_o that_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a council_n of_o sardica_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o none_o shall_v usurp_v a_o man_n of_o another_o diocese_n for_o his_o clerk_n by_o mean_n whereof_o not_o only_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v of_o more_o authority_n than_o the_o alibi_fw-la council_n of_o africa_n as_o zonarus_n himself_o acknowledge_v when_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o the_o intitul_a of_o the_o archbishopp_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n agree_v rather_o to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n then_o to_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n but_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o discipline_n be_v more_o strong_a and_o obligatorie_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o african_n than_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 5._o now_o it_o happen_v as_o we_o have_v already_o touch_v above_o that_o when_o the_o council_n pope_n send_v this_o rule_n to_o the_o african_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 42._o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o african_a province_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d have_v so_o wrought_v by_o craft_n as_o they_o have_v suppress_v and_o banish_v out_o of_o africa_n all_o the_o true_a act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n that_o have_v be_v bring_v thither_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gratus_n and_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o have_v suppose_v and_o slip_v into_o their_o steed_n the_o act_n of_o the_o anticouncelle_n of_o sardica_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n hold_v by_o the_o arrian_n at_o philopolis_n near_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n because_o that_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o this_o false_a council_n the_o 〈◊〉_d make_v mention_v of_o donatus_n bishop_n of_o the_o donatist_n of_o carthage_n this_o appear_v by_o confer_v the_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o 〈◊〉_d for_o s._n august_n testify_v that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v in_o his_o time_n currant_n in_o africa_n be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d council_n &_o which_o have_v conden_v s._n athanasius_n &_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n he_o offer_v i_o say_v s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o fortunius_n 163._o the_o donatist_n a_o certain_a book_n where_o he_o will_v show_v i_o that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v write_v to_o the_o african_a bishop_n of_o the_o commnnion_n of_o donatus_n and_o a_o little_a after_o then_o have_v take_v the_o book_n and_o consider_v the_o statute_n of_o the_o ibidem_fw-la same_o council_n i_o find_v that_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n etc._n etc._n and_o lulius_fw-la bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n no_o less_o catholic_a have_v be_v condemn_v by_o this_o council_n of_o sardica_n whereby_o i_o be_v assure_v that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o council_n of_o arrian_n and_o in_o the_o three_o book_n against_o cresconius_n the_o donatist_n who_o have_v allege_v the_o same_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n say_v he_o be_v 34._o a_o council_n of_o arrian_n as_o the_o copy_n that_o we_o have_v in_o our_o hand_n do_v manifest_a principal_o hold_v against_o athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n a_o catholic_a and_o all_o antiquity_n contrariwise_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n have_v confirm_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o justify_v s._n athanasius_n and_o be_v a_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o catholic_a council_n the_o holy_a synod_n of_o sardica_n say_v s._n athanasius_n who_o assist_v there_o in_o person_n compound_v of_o agent_n above_o thirty_o five_o province_n receive_v we_o in_o our_o iustifieable_a proceed_n and_o a_o little_a after_o they_o declare_v athanasius_n and_o those_o that_o be_v with_o he_o pure_a and_o free_a ibid._n from_o all_o crime_n and_o their_o adversary_n slanderer_n and_o wicked_a person_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o sardica_n our_o adversary_n be_v depose_v as_o slanderer_n apol_n and_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n subscribe_v to_o our_o justification_n and_o again_o the_o holy_a council_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n decree_v that_o therein_o nothing_o of_o faith_n shall_v be_v conclude_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v content_v themselves_o with_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o gratus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o be_v also_o there_o in_o person_n i_o remember_v say_v he_o that_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a council_n of_o sardica_n 5._o it_o be_v decree_v that_o none_o shall_v usurp_v a_o clerk_n of_o a_o other_o diocese_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o sardica_n we_o have_v declare_v our_o dear_a brethren_n athan._n and_o fellow-minister_n athanasius_n marcellus_n asclepas_n and_o other_o their_o adjunct_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n innocent_a and_o blameless_a and_o socrates_n the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n condemn_v before_o all_o thing_n the_o desertion_n of_o those_o of_o philopolis_n 2._o and_o then_o depose_v the_o accuser_n of_o athanasius_n and_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n 20_o of_o nicaea_n sozomene_n they_o answer_v that_o they_o will_v not_o separate_v themselves_o 1_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o paul_n and_o principal_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n and_o not_o have_v condemn_v they_o and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o father_n be_v assemble_v at_o sardica_n combat_v against_o the_o relic_n of_o arrius_n a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o the_o african_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o of_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v no_o other_o but_o the_o act_n of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n hold_v by_o the_o arrian_n at_o philopolis_n near_o sardica_n which_o have_v condemn_v s._n athanasius_n and_o overthrow_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o not_o those_o of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v justify_v s._n athanasius_n and_o confirm_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o our_o history_n the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n then_o find_v neither_o of_o these_o canon_n in_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o find_v they_o in_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n because_o they_o have_v they_o not_o they_o stretch_v out_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o question_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o which_o at_o the_o beginning_n the_o conclusion_n be_v move_v even_o to_o bishop_n and_o see_v that_o the_o title_n upon_o which_o that_o be_v ground_v which_o have_v until_o then_o be_v observe_v by_o custom_n concern_v bishop_n appeal_v do_v no_o more_o appear_v then_o that_o of_o priest_n take_v their_o time_n and_o opportunity_n to_o complain_v of_o the_o progress_n of_o this_o custom_n and_o of_o the_o greevance_n that_o the_o appeal_v aswell_o of_o the_o one_o as_o of_o their_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o well_o of_o the_o bishop_n as_o of_o the_o priest_n bring_v upon_o they_o not_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o appeal_n but_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n which_o be_v such_o as_o the_o gate_n can_v be_v open_v for_o appeal_v but_o there_o will_v happen_v great_a evil_n in_o the_o frequent_a execution_n of_o this_o remedy_n as_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o first_o judge_n the_o delay_n and_o prolong_n of_o justice_n the_o cost_n and_o vexation_n of_o the_o party_n the_o incommoditie_n of_o the_o transportation_n of_o witness_n of_o all_o sex_n and_o all_o age_n nor_o whole_o shut_v it_o up_o from_o they_o lest_o worse_o may_v come_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o they_o write_v to_o pope_n sozimus_n who_o their_o letter_n find_v already_o dead_a and_o after_o to_o 〈◊〉_d his_o successor_n a_o epistle_n by_o which_o after_o they_o have_v remonstrate_v to_o he_o the_o trouble_n that_o the_o past_a example_n of_o appeal_n have_v bring_v upon_o they_o and_o have_v represent_v to_o he_o that_o they_o have_v not_o
no_o more_o receive_v those_o to_o the_o communion_n that_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o we_o and_o a_o while_n after_o that_o so_o those_o that_o in_o their_o own_o province_n have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v rash_o and_o unfit_o restore_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n and_o this_o request_n they_o prop_v up_o with_o five_o reason_n the_o first_o that_o the_o 5._o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v forbid_v that_o those_o which_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v in_o one_o province_n shall_v be_v receive_v to_o communion_n in_o a_o 〈◊〉_d your_o reverence_n say_v they_o will_v easy_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o have_v be_v so_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o although_o it_o seem_v to_o restrain_v the_o caution_n to_o inferior_a clerk_n and_o to_o lay_v man_n by_o how_o much_o strong_a reason_n do_v they_o intend_v it_o also_o to_o bishop_n a_o thing_n that_o the_o heat_n of_o contention_n draw_v from_o their_o mouth_n and_o which_o be_v direct_o against_o s._n augustine_n who_o say_v speak_v of_o cecilianus_n archishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n of_o seventy_o african_a bishop_n assemble_v at_o carthage_n he_o may_v contemme_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v unite_v by_o communicatorie_a 162._o letter_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o from_o the_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n first_o come_v into_o africa_n and_o against_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n itself_o which_o precise_o limit_n the_o word_n to_o priest_n and_o layman_n which_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o their_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v receive_v to_o communion_n by_o any_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n for_o whereas_o the_o african_a father_n infer_v that_o if_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n speak_v these_o word_n of_o priest_n and_o layman_n they_o must_v be_v much_o more_o intend_a of_o bishop_n this_o be_v formal_o opposite_a to_o saint_n augustine_n foundation_n who_o say_v that_o cecilianus_n tymefellowe_n with_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n may_v have_v appeal_v beyond_o sea_n because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o of_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n they_o do_v not_o handle_v the_o cause_n say_v he_o of_o priest_n deacon_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o of_o bishop_n which_o may_v reserve_v their_o cause_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o sea_n ibid._n the_o second_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n commit_v the_o cause_n as_o 6_o well_o of_o bishop_n as_o of_o priest_n to_o the_o metropolitan_a which_o be_v true_a for_o the_o judgement_n of_o priest_n in_o the_o second_o instance_n and_o of_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o but_o not_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o last_o instance_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n who_o have_v assist_v in_o person_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o allege_n for_o his_o defence_n a_o epistle_n where_o pope_n julius_n write_v that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o other_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n can_v not_o depose_v athanasius_n from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o alexandria_n without_o expect_v the_o decision_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v you_o ignorant_a say_v he_o that_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v first_o write_v to_o we_o and_o so_o from_o hence_o shall_v proceed_v the_o just_a decision_n of_o cause_n and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o the_o bishop_n there_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o alexandria_n they_o must_v write_v to_o the_o church_n here_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o three_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o be_v want_v to_o every_o provision_n or_o to_o every_o province_n to_o discern_v the_o equity_n of_o cause_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o god_n shall_v inspire_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o trial_n to_o one_o only_a man_n what_o soever_o he_o be_v and_o deny_v it_o to_o a_o infinite_a number_n in_o a_o council_n a_o certain_a proof_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o equity_n and_o justice_n as_o well_o civil_a as_o criminal_a and_o not_o of_o cause_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o contrariwise_o they_o have_v write_v a_o year_n or_o two_o before_o to_o pope_n innocent_a upon_o the_o subject_n of_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la his_o cause_n 92_o which_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o faith_n we_o doubt_v not_o with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n mercy_n who_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v thou_o pray_v and_o to_o guide_v thou_o consult_v but_o those_o that_o hold_v these_o perverse_a thing_n will_v more_o easy_o yield_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o thy_o holiness_n derive_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o pope_n innocent_a 93_o to_o themselves_o always_o and_o as_o often_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v handle_v i_o conceive_v that_o all_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n can_v have_v no_o reference_n but_o to_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o author_n of_o their_o name_n and_o dignity_n the_o four_o that_o it_o be_v very_o hard_o to_o assure_v beyond_o sea_n judgement_n because_o of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o cause_v witness_n to_o pass_v the_o sea_n how_o can_v say_v they_o the_o judgement_n beyond_o sea_n be_v certain_a wherein_o the_o necessary_a person_n of_o witness_n for_o the_o debility_n of_o sex_n of_o age_n or_o many_o other_o hindrance_n interuening_n can_v appear_v a_o evident_a argument_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o particular_a and_o personal_a cause_n and_o the_o five_o that_o it_o have_v never_o be_v take_v from_o the_o african_a church_n by_o any_o decree_n of_o a_o council_n that_o appeal_v shall_v go_v out_o of_o africa_n and_o that_o to_o send_v legate_n from_o rome_n into_o africa_n to_o judge_v they_o upon_o the_o place_n it_o be_v not_o constitute_v by_o any_o council_n a_o thing_n the_o ignorance_n whereof_o they_o may_v well_o excuse_v forasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v no_o more_o than_o in_o africa_n the_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o only_o as_o have_v be_v above_o show_v those_o of_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n compose_v by_o the_o arrian_n and_o publish_v by_o the_o donatist_n which_o give_v ground_n to_o all_o this_o question_n the_o second_o request_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v no_o more_o grante_v they_o clerk_n executioner_n so_o be_v certain_a clerk_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n call_v committee_n to_o cause_v to_o be_v execute_v with_o the_o help_n of_o secular_a power_n and_o of_o the_o imperial_a force_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o usher_n sergeant_n and_o soldier_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o his_o legate_n a_o thing_n which_o provoke_v much_o murmur_n in_o africa_n for_o although_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o african_a poeple_n who_o after_o they_o be_v fasten_v in_o the_o hate_n of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n will_v hardly_o let_v go_v their_o hold_n do_v sometime_o make_v this_o remedy_n necessary_a nevertheless_o the_o abuse_n of_o those_o which_o do_v too_o violent_o apply_v it_o do_v often_o convert_v it_o into_o a_o pretence_n and_o occasion_n of_o complaint_n as_o s._n augusine_n testify_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o pope_n celestine_n when_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o anthony_n bishop_n of_o fussala_n in_o numidia_n who_o have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o judgement_n 261._o which_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o fussala_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v give_v against_o he_o he_o threaten_v they_o say_v he_o with_o secular_a power_n and_o with_o the_o fury_n of_o soldier_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o execute_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o miserable_a inhabitant_n be_v christian_n and_o catholics_n fear_v more_o grievous_a usage_n from_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n than_o they_o do_v when_o they_o be_v heretic_n from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o these_o cause_n then_o the_o african_a bishop_n beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o grant_v no_o more_o clerk_n executor_n to_o those_o which_o demand_v they_o that_o you_o will_v not_o also_o say_v they_o send_v your_o clerk_n for_o executor_n to_o all_o those_o which_o demand_v they_o nor_o permit_v that_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o introduce_v the_o typhe_n or_o smoky_a meteor_n of_o the_o age_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o propound_v the_o light_n of_o simplicity_n and_o the_o day_n of_o humility_n to_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v god_n call_v the_o force_n and_o military_a violence_n with_o which_o those_o executor_n do_v
execute_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a secular_a typhe_n for_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o marriage_n of_o these_o two_o word_n typhe_n of_o the_o age_n signify_v to_o wit_n the_o furious_a and_o violent_a manner_n with_o which_o the_o worldly_a and_o secular_a power_n be_v accustom_v to_o cause_v themselves_o to_o be_v obey_v as_o when_o the_o author_n of_o the_o life_n of_o fulgentius_n say_v that_o fulgentius_n command_v nothing_o with_o the_o typhe_n of_o secular_a dominion_n and_o as_o when_o 25._o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n call_v the_o use_n that_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n have_v make_v of_o the_o letter_n of_o dionysius_n governor_n of_o syria_n to_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o garrison_n and_o of_o the_o soldier_n of_o cyprus_n to_o hinder_v the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n from_o elect_v to_o themselves_o a_o archbishop_n without_o the_o permission_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n secular_a typhse_n and_o draw_v from_o this_o particular_a case_n a_o general_a law_n ordain_v that_o no_o bishop_n usurp_v the_o province_n which_o have_v not_o be_v from_o all_o antiquity_n appendic_n under_o his_o predecessor_n &c_n &c_n and_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o sacred_a thing_n introduce_v not_o the_o typhe_n of_o secular_a power_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o that_o all_o letter_n obtain_v to_o the_o contrary_a may_v remain_v disannul_v and_o of_o no_o effect_n and_o final_o the_o three_o and_o last_o request_n but_o express_v in_o term_n of_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o ibidem_fw-la apiarius_n to_o who_o by_o the_o first_o judgement_n it_o have_v be_v permit_v to_o remain_v in_o africa_n and_o exercise_v his_o priesthood_n where_o he_o will_v provide_v it_o be_v not_o at_o sicca_n shall_v remain_v any_o long_o in_o africa_n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v assist_v with_o secular_a authority_n to_o this_o effect_n behold_v the_o word_n of_o the_o clause_n which_o contain_v also_o the_o end_n and_o conclusion_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o i_o have_v translate_v from_o the_o greek_a text_n because_o the_o greek_a edition_n of_o the_o epistle_n as_o have_v be_v above_o show_v be_v more_o correct_a than_o the_o latin_a for_o as_o for_o the_o wretched_a 〈◊〉_d 138._o apiarius_n have_v already_o be_v condemn_v for_o his_o infamous_a crime_n by_o our_o brother_n faustinus_n we_o be_v no_o more_o in_o care_n for_o it_o as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o approbation_n and_o moderation_n of_o your_o holiness_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o brotherly_a charity_n africa_n will_v no_o long_o endure_v he_o now_o upon_o this_o what_o answer_v the_o pope_n make_v they_o we_o have_v it_o not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o success_n that_o he_o satisfy_v they_o of_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o that_o of_o sardica_n and_o make_v 8._o it_o appear_v to_o they_o that_o what_o they_o find_v not_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v be_v ordain_v yea_o even_o by_o their_o predecessor_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o the_o appeal_v of_o the_o african_a bishop_n to_o the_o pope_n continue_v as_o before_o as_o it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o rule_n that_o pope_n leo_n only_o eight_o year_n late_a than_o celestine_n make_v upon_o the_o appeal_n that_o lucifrinus_fw-la a_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o by_o the_o care_n that_o the_o african_n have_v afterward_o to_o insert_v into_o their_o canon_n law_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 60._o upon_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o fulgentius_n ferandus_fw-la deacon_n of_o carthage_n a_o little_o late_a than_o s._n augustine_n and_o tyme-fellow_n with_o s._n fulgentius_n register_n into_o the_o collection_n that_o he_o make_v of_o the_o canon_n these_o decree_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o fixth_n and_o sifth_v canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n that_o a_o condemn_a bishop_n may_v appeal_v if_o he_o will_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o that_o during_o the_o appeal_n a_o other_o can_v be_v ordain_v in_o his_o chair_n by_o mean_n whereof_o this_o question_n bring_v no_o interruption_n to_o the_o possession_n wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o appeal_n even_o in_o minor_a cause_n and_o by_o consequent_a much_o less_o in_o mayor_n cause_n as_o those_o of_o faith_n be_v for_o which_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z a_o city_n near_o upon_o persia_n appeal_v in_o the_o same_o time_n to_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v judge_v and_o restore_v by_o manuscr_n he_o all_o the_o general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n hold_v a_o while_n after_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n approve_v and_o confirm_v it_o for_o i_o will_v not_o allege_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n augustine_n to_o celestine_n which_o be_v in_o the_o supply_n of_o s._n augustins_n epistle_n imprint_v by_o plantine_n where_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n pursue_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o celestine_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o appeal_n make_v by_o anthony_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d to_o pope_n boniface_n and_o represent_v to_o theodor._n 261._o he_o to_o justify_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n who_o have_v leave_v he_o his_o title_n and_o deprive_v he_o of_o this_o bishop_n sea_n that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o like_a 〈◊〉_d in_o africa_n even_o the_o sea_n 〈◊〉_d judge_v it_o or_o confirm_v the_o judgement_n of_o other_o as_o particular_o of_o 〈◊〉_d victor_n and_o laurence_n bishop_n of_o the_o cesarian_a 〈◊〉_d because_o it_o seem_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n to_o celestine_n it_o suffice_v that_o neither_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o appeal_n from_o africa_n to_o rome_n be_v interrupt_v by_o this_o question_n neither_o 〈◊〉_d do_v the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n cease_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o communion_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a as_o they_o be_v before_o as_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_a to_o pope_n boniface_n write_v in_o the_o current_n of_o the_o difference_n great_a testify_v thou_o disdain_v not_o thou_o which_o presume_v not_o 〈◊〉_d though_o thou_o preside_v high_o to_o be_v a_o friend_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o these_o of_o pope_n celestine_n after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n augustine_n we_o have_v always_o have_v augustine_n of_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d in_o our_o communion_n which_o prosper_n cit_v to_o justify_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o gaul_n s._n augustins_n doctrine_n against_o the_o pelagians_n and_o these_o of_o capreolus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n &_o immediate_a successor_n to_o aurelius_n under_o who_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v hold_v write_v to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 〈◊〉_d pray_v you_o to_o resist_v 〈◊〉_d with_o such_o constancy_n actor_n at_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o the_o severltie_n of_o the_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o 〈◊〉_d seem_v not_o to_o permit_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o that_o the_o church_n have_v long_o since_o 11._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d come_v to_o be_v bear_v again_o and_o these_o of_o eugenius_n one_o of_o the_o other_o successor_n to_o the_o same_o aurelius_n to_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o hunnericus_n lord_n of_o africa_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o these_o of_o fulgentius_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africas_n the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n chapt_n xi_o i_o remember_v that_o i_o promise_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n to_o handle_v in_o this_o the_o truth_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o time_n summon_v i_o now_o to_o perform_v my_o promise_n and_o with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o need_n because_o the_o pope_n adversary_n have_v a_o while_n ago_o cause_v a_o greek_a code_n of_o canon_n to_o be_v imprint_v which_o they_o have_v entitle_v a_o code_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o whence_o 〈◊〉_d they_o have_v eclipse_v and_o cut_v off_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n against_o the_o credit_n of_o all_o the_o greek_a canonist_n photius_n zonara_n balsamon_n harmonopolus_fw-la and_o against_o the_o greek_a impression_n even_o of_o basle_n wittenbourg_n and_o other_o protestant_a city_n and_o in_o sum_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o greek_a code_o as_o well_o print_v as_o manuscript_n of_o all_o the_o western_a and_o eastern_a library_n then_o to_o compass_v this_o design_n with_o some_o method_n i_o will_v advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o there_o past_o two_o thing_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o give_v a_o occasion_n soon_o after_o for_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o one_o be_v
the_o decree_n of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o some_o and_o the_o other_o the_o decree_n of_o appeal_v the_o first_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o faith_n publish_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o second_o into_o the_o original_a act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n with_o which_o it_o have_v be_v lose_v only_o there_o remain_v to_o we_o some_o light_a tract_n of_o it_o in_o a_o epistle_n of_o pope_n julius_n report_v by_o s._n athanasius_n and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n where_o pope_n julius_n write_v to_o the_o arrian_n it_o have_v not_o be_v without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o 2._o the_o great_a council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v permit_v that_o the_o act_n of_o a_o former_a synod_n shall_v be_v examine_v in_o a_o other_o synod_n for_o that_o this_o decree_n be_v not_o the_o same_o which_o 〈◊〉_d be_v contain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n where_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o when_o a_o bishop_n have_v excommunicate_v any_o churchman_n or_o layman_n of_o his_o diocese_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o excommunicate_v person_n may_v be_v review_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o his_o province_n it_o appear_v both_o by_o this_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o review_v of_o the_o judgment_n give_v in_o the_o first_o instance_n by_o the_o synod_n &_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o s._n athanasius_n have_v be_v judge_v in_o the_o first_o instance_n in_o the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n and_o antioch_n may_v again_o have_v be_v judge_v at_o rome_n in_o a_o new_a council_n and_o because_o that_o he_o add_v that_o if_o this_o custom_n be_v of_o itself_o ancient_a and_o have_v be_v renew_v and_o set_v 〈◊〉_d down_o in_o write_v in_o the_o great_a synod_n you_o will_v not_o permit_v that_o it_o have_v place_n among_o you_o such_o a_o refusal_n be_v undecent_a a_o thing_n that_o show_v that_o this_o decree_n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v resist_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o reviewe_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n by_o the_o council_n of_o the_o province_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v that_o this_o decree_n have_v be_v insert_v not_o into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o contain_v but_o the_o twenty_o article_n which_o we_o have_v but_o into_o the_o very_a act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o have_v be_v lose_v and_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o decree_n insert_v not_o into_o the_o list_n of_o the_o can_v once_o of_o the_o counsel_n but_o into_o the_o act_n of_o the_o counsel_n there_o be_v many_o example_n and_o in_o the_o 1._o matter_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n itself_o for_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 82._o make_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o pasch_fw-mi and_o s._n ambro_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n make_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o exclusion_n of_o these_o that_o be_v in_o 〈◊〉_d from_o priesthood_n and_o the_o caluinist_n themselves_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n make_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o eucharist_n all_o which_o decree_n be_v not_o enrol_v into_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o nicaea_n but_o have_v be_v necessary_o insert_v into_o the_o acts._n now_o what_o the_o condition_n of_o these_o follow_a synod_n ought_v to_o be_v which_o judge_v by_o appeal_v of_o the_o judgment_n of_o former_a synod_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v find_v in_o pope_n julius_n his_o epistle_n only_o it_o be_v leave_v to_o we_o to_o conjecture_v that_o the_o subsequent_a synod_n shall_v be_v great_a than_o the_o former_a synod_n but_o wherein_o this_o maioritie_n consist_v that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o simple_a maioritie_n of_o number_n as_o the_o arrian_n have_v monopolise_v it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n or_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o maioritie_n as_o it_o seem_v the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n require_v when_o it_o say_v that_o when_o there_o have_v 10._o be_v a_o appeal_v from_o what_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n soever_o to_o other_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n where_o there_o be_v great_a authority_n the_o disannul_n of_o the_o former_a sentence_n hurt_v not_o the_o first_o judge_n there_o be_v nothing_o find_v in_o pope_n julius_n his_o epistle_n only_o we_o learn_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o antiquity_n that_o the_o maioritie_n of_o counsel_n do_v not_o always_o depend_v of_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n but_o be_v often_o measure_v by_o the_o quality_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o head_n thereof_o although_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n be_v few_o as_o the_o council_n of_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v repute_v great_a then_o that_o of_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o the_o province_n and_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n great_a then_o that_o of_o the_o primate_n and_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n yet_o great_a then_o that_o of_o the_o patriarch_n although_o there_o be_v four_o bishop_n for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n which_o judge_v saint_n athanasius_n solit._n his_o cause_n after_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n there_o be_v but_o fifty_o bishop_n whereas_o in_o that_o of_o antioch_n there_o be_v above_o ninety_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n balsamon_n a_o schismatical_a greek_a author_n who_o rank_n the_o 5._o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n above_o the_o pope_n pretend_v that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v be_v give_v chalced._n to_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v also_o communicate_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n alex._n for_o as_o much_o as_o constantinople_n bear_v the_o title_n of_o second_o rome_n and_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v chalced._n be_v esteem_v great_a then_o that_o of_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n although_o say_v he_o that_o the_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n 28._o be_v not_o universal_a for_o as_o much_o as_o other_o patriarch_n assist_v not_o there_o nevertheless_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o great_a than_o all_o the_o other_o synod_n and_o the_o patriarch_n 6._o thereof_o be_v call_v universal_a patriarch_n now_o it_o fall_v out_o a_o while_n after_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n that_o the_o arrian_n make_v two_o breach_n 〈◊〉_d in_o these_o two_o decree_n the_o one_o by_o abollish_v the_o word_n consustantiall_a which_o they_o eclipse_v from_o all_o their_o creed_n and_o the_o other_o by_o the_o resistance_n that_o they_o give_v to_o the_o restitution_n that_o the_o pope_n make_v of_o athanasius_n patriark_n of_o alexandria_n of_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 9_o of_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n and_o of_o lucius_n bishop_n of_o adrianopolis_n in_o thrace_n depose_v a_o 7._o little_a before_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n antioch_n and_o constantinople_n for_o diverse_a pretend_a crime_n some_o secular_a as_o athanasius_n for_o the_o crime_n of_o treason_n adultery_n and_o homicide_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a the_o history_n of_o the_o first_o contravention_n appear_v by_o all_o the_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o second_o by_o the_o report_n of_o sozomene_n who_o 7._o after_o he_o have_v say_v julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v hear_v the_o accusation_n attempt_v against_o athanasius_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n of_o constantinop_n le_fw-fr marce_z llus_fw-la of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n lucius_n bishop_n of_o adrianopolis_n in_o thrace_n and_o have_v find_v they_o all_o consent_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n receive_v they_o to_o his_o communion_n and_o because_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n apperteyn_v he_o restore_v they_o each_o one_o to_o his_o church_n and_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n chide_v they_o for_o not_o have_v observe_v the_o right_a form_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o man_n and_o that_o they_o have_v trouble_v the_o church_n with_o not_o have_v keep_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o command_v they_o to_o send_v a_o small_a number_n from_o among_o they_o all_o to_o appear_v at_o a_o day_n prefix_v and_o to_o justify_v their_o sentence_n add_v these_o thing_n julius_n write_v and_o athanasius_n and_o paul_n receive_v each_o one_o his_o ibid_fw-la church_n and_o send_v the_o letter_n of_o julius_n to_o those_o of_o the_o east_n who_o find_v themselves_o sharp_o touch_v therewith_o assemble_v themselves_o at_o antioch_n and_o write_v
back_o to_o pope_n julius_n a_o epistle_n adorn_v with_o flower_n of_o eloquence_n and_o compose_v in_o a_o orator_n style_v full_a of_o many_o figure_n and_o not_o free_a from_o grievous_a threaten_n for_o although_o they_o avouch_v by_o their_o letter_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n obtain_v the_o prize_n of_o honour_n from_o they_o all_o as_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n the_o school_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o religion_n although_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v come_v thither_o from_o the_o east_n nevertheless_o they_o do_v not_o think_v they_o ought_v to_o be_v put_v behind_o under_o colour_n that_o they_o be_v inferior_a in_o greatness_n and_o multitude_n of_o church_n since_o contrariwise_o they_o be_v much_o superior_a in_o virtue_n and_o election_n of_o opinion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o arianism_n and_o as_o for_o julius_n they_o reproach_v it_o to_o he_o for_o a_o crime_n that_o he_o have_v admit_v into_o his_o communion_n athanasius_n and_o his_o consorte_n and_o be_v offend_v at_o it_o pretend_v that_o by_o that_o act_n their_o council_n have_v be_v iniury_v and_o their_o sentence_n abrogate_a a_o thing_n that_o they_o calumniate_v as_o unjust_a and_o repugnant_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n for_o that_o the_o author_n of_o that_o epistle_n that_o sozomene_n argue_v of_o ironia_fw-la because_o they_o feign_v by_o their_o exordium_n to_o confess_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o they_o deny_v by_o their_o conclusion_n of_o slander_n because_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o abrogation_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v of_o their_o council_n be_v a_o thing_n outrageous_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o impudence_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o set_v upon_o he_o to_o who_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v alibi_fw-la be_v arrian_n it_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n athanasius_n who_o call_v they_o eusebian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o eusebius_n his_o sect_n the_o chief_a firebrand_n of_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n and_o by_o the_o reproache_v that_o julius_n make_v to_o they_o that_o they_o have_v alter_v the_o decision_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n 2._o and_o by_o the_o answer_n that_o themselves_o make_v to_o that_o reproach_n to_o wit_n that_o as_o for_o the_o thing_n they_o have_v do_v against_o the_o decision_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v assemble_v at_o nicaea_n they_o answer_v nothing_o although_o they_o signify_v that_o they_o have_v many_o cause_n to_o excuse_v their_o action_n but_o that_o it_o be_v superfluous_a then_o to_o enter_v into_o defence_n of_o it_o since_o they_o be_v suspect_v to_o have_v violate_v justice_n in_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o glory_n that_o they_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o to_o be_v more_o excellent_a in_o belief_n then_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o c._n finallly_n by_o the_o offer_n that_o they_o make_v to_o julius_n to_o enter_v again_o into_o peace_n and_o communion_n with_o he_o if_o he_o will_v admit_v the_o deposition_n of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o of_o his_o consorte_n and_o that_o sozomene_n call_v they_o those_o ibidem_fw-la of_o the_o east_n it_o be_v in_o part_n because_o the_o principal_a seat_n of_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n be_v the_o east_n and_o in_o part_n because_o they_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o other_o arrian_n their_o adherent_n who_o after_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v in_o the_o dedication_n reassembled_a themselves_o at_o antioch_n to_o answer_v pope_n julius_n which_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n be_v call_v the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o east_n because_o among_o the_o asian_a province_n which_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a empire_n the_o division_n of_o antioch_n hold_v the_o 22._o place_n of_o the_o east_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o cornelius_n tacitus_n &_o amianus_n marcellinus_n say_v that_o antioch_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o east_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarkshipp_n 2._o of_o antioch_n shall_v only_o rule_v the_o east_n and_o that_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n say_v in_o the_o schismatical_a council_n of_o ephesus_n speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n we_o that_o be_v call_v of_o the_o east_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v that_o julius_n in_o the_o answer_n that_o he_o send_v to_o danius_n it_o must_v be_v read_v dianus_fw-la and_o to_o phlacillus_fw-la it_o must_v be_v read_v placitus_n and_o to_o narcissus_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o maus_n and_o to_o other_o which_o have_v write_v to_o he_o from_o the_o second_o mockcouncell_n of_o antioch_n style_v they_o his_o brother_n for_o he_o call_v they_o his_o brother_n because_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o episcopal_a character_n 3._o as_o s._n augustine_n call_v the_o donatist_n his_o brother_n because_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o character_n of_o baptism_n but_o not_o but_o that_o all_o those_o bishop_n be_v arrian_n and_o the_o most_o impious_a of_o all_o the_o arrian_n for_o this_o dianius_fw-la be_v a_o bishop_n of_o cesaria_n in_o capadocia_n a_o arrian_n and_o this_o placitus_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o arrian_n of_o antioch_n and_o this_o narcissus_n be_v a_o arrian_n bishop_n of_o veroniade_n in_o cilisia_n and_o this_o eusebius_n be_v bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n ensign-bearer_n of_o the_o arrian_n faction_n who_o procure_v as_o s._n athanasius_n 2._o note_v the_o second_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o likewise_o the_o other_o but_o let_v we_o again_o pursue_v the_o course_n of_o our_o history_n of_o arrianisme_n upon_o the_o complaint_n propound_v by_o the_o catholic_n against_o the_o arrian_n of_o the_o wound_n make_v in_o these_o two_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o two_o emperor_n the_o one_o catholic_a and_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d agree_v upon_o the_o hold_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o call_v from_o the_o two_o empire_n to_o sardica_n a_o city_n situate_a in_o the_o confine_n of_o both_o the_o empire_n to_o decide_v it_o paul_n and_o athanasius_n say_v socrates_n demand_v to_o have_v 20._o a_o other_o council_n call_v to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o well_o their_o cause_n as_o that_o of_o faith_n may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o general_a council_n show_v that_o their_o deposition_n have_v be_v make_v with_o a_o purpose_n to_o destroy_v the_o faith_n then_o upon_o their_o request_n a_o general_a council_n be_v publish_v at_o sardica_n now_o of_o this_o council_n the_o issue_n in_o regard_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o the_o father_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n confirm_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n as_o harmenopolus_n a_o greek_a author_n and_o a_o schisrnatike_a can_v report_n after_o thousand_o other_o in_o these_o word_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o synod_n of_o sardica_n be_v assemble_v compose_v of_o three_o hundred_o forty_o one_o father_n which_o confirm_v the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o publish_v the_o canon_n for_o that_o which_o s._n athanasius_n say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o any_o thing_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v reduce_v into_o writing_n aught_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o it_o will_v not_o permit_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o new_a creed_n make_v but_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v hold_v themselves_o to_o that_o of_o nicaea_n which_o they_o amplify_v not_o by_o way_n of_o innovation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o exposition_n and_o as_o for_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v they_o approve_v the_o restitution_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v of_o paul_n of_o athanasius_n and_o of_o the_o other_o bishop_n with_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n and_o antioch_n and_o receive_v they_o into_o their_o communion_n under_o this_o title_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n have_v not_o condemn_v they_o they_o answer_v say_v sozomene_n that_o they_o will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 9_o the_o commnnion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o of_o paul_n for_o as_o much_o principal_o as_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n have_v not_o condemn_v they_o and_o to_o prevent_v the_o church_n trouble_v thereafter_o in_o like_a accident_n reduce_v into_o write_v three_o canon_n upon_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_n where_o of_o the_o first_o be_v propound_v by_o osius_n precedent_n of_o the_o council_n and_o conclude_v by_o all_o the_o council_n in_o these_o term_n 3._o if_o any_o bishop_n in_o any_o cause_n in_o likelihood_n ought_v to_o be_v condemn_v and_o that_o he_o presume_v to_o have_v not_o a_o evil_a but_o a_o good_a cause_n to_o the_o end_n the_o judgement_n may_v be_v renew_v if_o it_o
please_v your_o charity_n that_o we_o shall_v honour_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n let_v it_o be_v write_v to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o same_o bishop_n that_o have_v give_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o it_o be_v needful_a it_o may_v be_v renew_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n and_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n give_v the_o judge_n but_o if_o the_o affair_n be_v such_o as_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o new_a judgement_n let_v not_o the_o thing_n once_o judge_v be_v disable_v but_o remain_v firm_a the_o second_o be_v propound_v by_o gaudentius_n and_o authorize_v by_o all_o the_o council_n in_o these_o word_n if_o it_o seem_v to_o you_o necessary_a to_o add_v to_o this_o sentence_n full_a 4._o of_o sincere_a charity_n that_o you_o have_v propound_v that_o if_o any_o bishop_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n and_o say_v that_o his_o affair_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v a_o new_a let_v no_o other_o be_v install_v in_o his_o sea_n till_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v pronounce_v upon_o it_o with_o examination_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o canon_n be_v make_v as_o balsamon_n note_n to_o disannul_v the_o 4._o canon_n that_o the_o arrian_n have_v publish_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n against_o s._n athan_n which_o ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o bishop_n after_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o all_o the_o vote_n of_o a_o synod_n to_o exercise_v any_o episcopal_a function_n nor_o to_o hope_v for_o restitution_n and_o to_o condenne_v the_o intrusion_n the_o arian_n have_v make_v of_o gregory_n in_o steed_n of_o s._n athan_n without_o attend_v the_o review_v of_o the_o process_n and_o the_o three_o be_v again_o propound_v by_o osius_n and_o confirm_v by_o all_o the_o council_n in_o these_o word_n it_o have_v please_v that_o 7._o if_o a_o bishop_n have_v be_v accuse_v and_o that_o he_o have_v recourse_n by_o way_n of_o appeal_v to_o the_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o he_o will_v hear_v he_o and_o do_v esteem_v it_o just_a that_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o affair_n shall_v be_v renew_v let_v he_o vouchsafe_v to_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n neighbour_a that_o province_n that_o they_o shall_v careful_o and_o with_o diligence_n examine_v all_o thing_n and_o judge_v the_o affair_n according_a to_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o if_o any_o one_o demand_n that_o his_o cause_n shall_v be_v hear_v again_o and_o seem_v to_o move_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o his_o prayer_n that_o he_o shall_v send_v priest_n from_o his_o own_o side_n it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o do_v what_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a and_o if_o he_o conceive_v that_o he_o shall_v send_v to_o judge_v with_o the_o bishop_n person_n have_v the_o authority_n of_o he_o that_o send_v they_o let_v it_o be_v so_o do_v and_o if_o he_o think_v it_o will_v suffice_v that_o those_o that_o be_v already_o upon_o the_o place_n shall_v examine_v the_o affair_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n let_v he_o do_v what_o shall_v seem_v best_a in_o his_o most_o wise_a judgement_n now_o these_o word_n do_v so_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o pope_n adversary_n as_o they_o can_v support_v their_o light_n and_o therefore_o they_o attempt_v to_o resist_v and_o weaken_v they_o with_o seven_o objection_n the_o first_o that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n propound_v the_o overture_n of_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n not_o as_o a_o thing_n before_o practise_v but_o as_o put_v to_o deliberation_n and_o institute_v at_o that_o present_a time_n and_o in_o word_n of_o the_o future_a pope_n tense_n from_o whence_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o right_n of_o episcopal_a appeal_n be_v not_o from_o all_o antiquity_n yield_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o since_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o add_v that_o the_o council_n specify_v the_o name_n of_o pope_n julius_n and_o say_v ing_z let_v it_o be_v write_v to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n show_v that_o this_o instituntion_n begin_v only_o in_o the_o papacy_n of_o julius_n and_o have_v no_o place_n in_o his_o predecessor_n time_n to_o this_o objection_n than_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v ordinary_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n when_o they_o renew_v unwritten_a custom_n yea_o even_o the_o very_a write_v law_n of_o the_o church_n to_o propound_v they_o as_o if_o they_o do_v new_o institute_v they_o and_o to_o take_v the_o note_n of_o the_o assistant_n to_o conclude_v they_o and_o to_o declare_v they_o by_o word_n of_o the_o future_a tense_n as_o in_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d council_n of_o sardica_n the_o prohibition_n to_o pass_v from_o one_o city_n to_o a_o other_o renew_v because_o of_o eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n head_n of_o the_o arrian_n faction_n who_o be_v pass_v from_o the_o bishoprik_n of_o nicomedia_n to_o that_o of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o prohibition_n to_o a_o bishop_n to_o receaive_v a_o clerk_n from_o a_o other_o bishop_n 16._o excommunicate_v by_o he_o and_o other_o the_o like_a be_v propound_v in_o future_a word_n and_o with_o receive_v the_o vote_n of_o the_o assistant_n although_o the_o 6._o custom_n be_v time_n out_o of_o mind_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o have_v be_v even_o set_v down_o in_o write_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o pope_n julius_n after_o he_o have_v cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o the_o review_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o synod_n add_v that_o this_o canon_n have_v be_v former_o practise_v by_o custom_n in_o the_o church_n and_o after_o reduce_v into_o write_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o pope_n damasus_n do_v it_o not_o say_v of_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n by_o the_o metropolitan_n it_o be_v as_o you_o know_v both_o episc._n 〈◊〉_d ground_v upon_o ancient_a custom_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n for_o as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n julius_n which_o be_v specify_v in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n beside_o that_o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o ancient_a latin_a edition_n which_o be_v produce_v in_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n in_o saint_n augustine_n time_n where_o the_o text_n say_v simple_o as_o in_o the_o other_o follow_v canon_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o mean_n whereof_o there_o be_v a_o ground_n for_o suspicion_n that_o it_o be_v a_o quotation_n of_o the_o exemplifier_n which_o be_v slip_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o infer_v from_o it_o but_o this_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n insert_v the_o name_n of_o julius_n there_o to_o show_v that_o the_o council_n by_o this_o canon_n ratify_v not_o only_o in_o general_n appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o justify_v and_o ratify_v in_o particular_a the_o restitution_n that_o pope_n julius_n have_v make_v of_o saint_n athanasius_n paul_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n of_o 〈◊〉_d asclepas_n of_o gaza_n and_o other_o bishop_n that_o the_o arrian_n have_v depose_v in_o their_o false_a counsel_n agreeable_o to_o the_o answer_n that_o they_o have_v make_v to_o the_o arrian_n that_o they_o can_v not_o reject_v the_o comunion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n antioch_n and_o constantinople_n because_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n 3._o have_v not_o condemn_v they_o and_o indeed_o if_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v give_v beginning_n to_o the_o right_n of_o appeal_v how_o can_v pope_n julius_n many_o year_n before_o have_v write_v to_o the_o arrian_n be_v you_o ignorant_a that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n 2._o that_o we_o be_v first_o write_v to_o that_o from_o hence_o may_v proceed_v the_o just_a decision_n of_o thing_n and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n conceive_v against_o the_o bishop_n there_o that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n you_o shall_v have_v write_v to_o the_o church_n here_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o how_o can_v socrates_n 11._o &_o sozomene_n have_v say_v that_o pope_n julius_n many_o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n restore_v 〈◊〉_d patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 7._o marcellus_n primate_n of_o galatia_n and_o other_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n because_o to_o he_o for_o the_o diginty_a of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v the_o second_o objection_n be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n ground_n the_o canon_n appeal_v of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n not_o upon_o divine_a right_n but_o upon_o the_o
desire_n of_o honour_v of_o saint_n peter_n memory_n from_o whence_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o attribution_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a right_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o even_o this_o be_v to_o ground_v it_o upon_o divine_a right_n for_o tosaie_n that_o to_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o s._n peter_n it_o be_v to_o purpose_n to_o yield_v episcopal_a appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v s._n peter_n successor_n and_o that_o in_o this_o quality_n appeal_v aught_o to_o be_v yield_v to_o he_o as_o to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o succession_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o succession_n be_v himfelse_a make_v head_n thereof_o and_o in_o truth_n what_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n express_v in_o their_o canon_n by_o these_o word_n fragm_n that_o we_o may_v hovor_v the_o memory_n of_o peter_n let_v it_o be_v write_v to_o julius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v they_o not_o express_v in_o their_o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o julius_n by_o these_o it_o be_v very_o good_a and_o fit_a that_o from_o all_o the_o province_n the_o bishop_n have_v reference_n to_o their_o head_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o do_v it_o not_o from_o thence_o appear_v that_o to_o honour_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o galliar_n memory_n of_o peter_n and_o to_o ackdowledge_v the_o sea_n of_o peter_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o by_o consequent_a that_o the_o right_n of_o appeal_v which_o be_v implicit_o contain_v in_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o divine_a right_n from_o all_o antiquity_n although_o the_o custom_n have_v be_v first_o reduce_v into_o a_o express_a law_n but_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o all_o the_o prerogative_n that_o be_v implicit_o contain_v in_o any_o title_n belong_v to_o he_o to_o who_o the_o title_n be_v give_v from_o the_o very_a time_n it_o be_v give_v he_o though_o the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d canon_n be_v make_v for_o the_o explicit_a declaration_n of_o any_o of_o those_o prerogative_n 〈◊〉_d late_a the_o three_o objection_n be_v that_o saint_n hilary_n and_o saint_n epiphanius_n hilar._n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o constautinople_n call_v the_o council_n of_o cont_n sardica_n the_o council_n of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n from_o whence_o zonara_n hormenopolus_fw-la const._n and_o some_o other_o late_a greek_n and_o schismatic_n and_o the_o protestant_n aug._n cont_n who_o join_n with_o they_o conclude_v that_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o general_n to_o this_o objection_n than_o we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o west_n do_v then_o extend_v much_o far_o than_o it_o photinian_n do_v now_o for_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o west_n the_o father_n intend_v not_o only_o all_o council_n c5_n the_o province_n of_o africa_n of_o italy_n of_o spain_n of_o the_o gaul_n of_o england_n of_o germany_n of_o hungaria_n of_o dalmatia_n but_o also_o all_o the_o province_n of_o greece_n conc._n as_o achaia_n peloponesus_fw-la macedonia_n the_o isle_n of_o crete_n and_o leave_v nothing_o for_o 5._o the_o east_n but_o thrace_n egypt_n and_o asia_n and_o the_o other_o that_o their_o calling_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n be_v not_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o general_n counsel_n as_o some_o late_a greek_n have_v suppose_v but_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v call_v the_o council_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n for_o after_o the_o whole_a council_n compose_v of_o three_o hundred_o cotholicke_a bishop_n and_o of_o seventy_o six_o arrian_n bishop_n be_v arrive_v at_o sardica_n the_o seaventie_o six_o arrian_n separate_v themselves_o 10._o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n and_o retire_v themselves_o to_o philopopolis_n a_o city_n near_o sardica_n where_o they_o keep_v a_o anti-councell_n which_o be_v call_v the_o council_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n not_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n assist_v there_o but_o for_o two_o other_o cause_n the_o one_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o principal_a bishop_n of_o this_o mockcouncell_n be_v steven_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n which_o be_v call_v the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o other_o because_o of_o the_o two_o city_n whereinto_o this_o council_n be_v divide_v situate_a on_o the_o two_o side_n of_o the_o mountain_n of_o thuscis_fw-la which_o be_v the_o bind_v of_o the_o two_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n &_o of_o the_o west_n the_o city_n of_o sardica_n wherein_o the_o catholic_n remain_v be_v situate_a in_o the_o western_a side_n of_o the_o mountain_n and_o the_o city_n of_o philopopolis_n into_o which_o the_o arian_n retire_v themselves_o be_v situate_a on_o the_o eastern_a side_n for_o so_o far_o of_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n from_o assist_v at_o this_o antisynod_n as_o the_o arrian_n themselves_o confess_v that_o hold_v it_o that_o there_o be_v but_o eighty_o of_o they_o there_o and_o avow_a that_o the_o bishop_n decret_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n which_o be_v present_a at_o the_o true_a council_n of_o synod_n sardica_n be_v a_o immense_a number_n there_o come_v say_v they_o to_o sardica_n a_o 10._o immense_a number_n of_o wicked_a and_o lose_v bishop_n flow_v from_o constantinople_n and_o from_o alexandria_n who_o osius_n and_o protogenes_n hold_v assemble_v with_o they_o in_o their_o conventicle_n and_o yet_o even_o to_o take_v the_o east_n particular_o for_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n though_o take_v in_o this_o sense_n assist_v not_o at_o the_o false_a council_n of_o sardica_n contrariwise_o all_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n as_o well_o of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n as_o of_o the_o neighbour_a province_n as_o diodorus_n bishop_n of_o asia_n minor_n asterius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o arabia_n maximus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 〈◊〉_d bishop_n of_o lydda_n arius_n bishop_n of_o petra_n in_o judea_n theodosius_n germanus_n silvanus_n paul_n claudius_n patrick_n elpidus_fw-la germanus_n 〈◊〉_d zenobius_n paul_n and_o peter_n bishop_n of_o palestina_n assist_v and_o subscribe_v with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n at_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n by_o mean_n whereof_o this_o distraction_n consist_v in_o so_o small_a a_o number_n of_o bishop_n and_o be_v make_v by_o the_o arrian_n only_o can_v not_o hinder_v the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o represent_v all_o that_o be_v catholic_a bishop_n in_o the_o world_n from_o preserve_v the_o title_n of_o general_n which_o have_v be_v impose_v upon_o it_o at_o the_o call_n it_o no_o more_o than_o the_o distraction_n of_o those_o of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n which_o maintain_v nestorius_n and_o hold_v a_o antisynod_n in_o his_o favour_n at_o ephesus_n hinder_v the_o true_a council_n of_o ephesus_n from_o be_v perfect_o and_o absolute_o general_a and_o from_o take_v this_o quality_n even_o then_o when_o those_o of_o the_o east_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriar_n kship_n of_o antioch_n hold_v their_o mockcouncell_n a_o part_n and_o therefore_o saint_n athanasius_n not_o only_o call_v it_o the_o great_a council_n of_o sardica_n and_o socrates_n and_o justinian_n a_o general_n council_n but_o also_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o after_o he_o sulpitius_n 〈◊〉_d theodoret_n and_o vigilius_n ancient_a bishop_n of_o trent_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v compose_v from_o all_o the_o christian_n province_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o holy_a council_n of_o sardica_n say_v saint_n athanasius_n assemble_v from_o more_o than_o thirty_o five_o province_n know_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o arrian_n receive_v we_o in_o our_o justifiable_a act_n and_o elsewhere_o explicate_v ageut_fw-fr the_o list_n of_o the_o same_o province_n in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o sardica_fw-la call_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o religious_a emperor_n constantius_n and_o constans_n there_o subscribe_v for_o we_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n of_o libya_n ap_fw-mi of_o pentapolis_n of_o palestina_n of_o isauria_n of_o cyprus_n of_o phamphilia_n of_o licia_n of_o galatia_n of_o dacia_n of_o misia_n of_o thracia_n of_o dardaniae_n of_o micedonia_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o thessalia_n of_o achaya_n of_o crete_n of_o dalmatia_n of_o siccia_n of_o pannonia_n of_o horica_fw-la of_o italy_n so_o they_o call_v the_o provostship_n
of_o milan_n of_o picena_n of_o tuscany_n of_o campania_n of_o calabria_n apulia_n of_o brussa_n of_o sicilia_n of_o all_o africa_n entire_o of_o sardinia_n of_o spain_n of_o france_n and_o of_o the_o britain_n and_o theodoret_n register_n the_o inscription_n of_o the_o same_o council_n the_o holy_a synod_n assemble_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n at_o sardica_n from_o rome_n from_o spain_n from_o france_n from_o italy_n from_o 8._o campania_n from_o calabria_n from_o africa_n from_o sardinia_n from_o pannonia_n from_o misia_n from_o the_o first_o dacia_n from_o dardania_n from_o the_o second_o dacia_n from_o macedonia_n from_o thessalia_n from_o achaya_n from_o the_o epiruse_n from_o thracia_n from_o rhodope_n from_o asia_n from_o caria_n from_o bithynia_n from_o hellespont_n from_o the_o first_o phrigia_n from_o pisidia_n from_o capadocia_n from_o pontus_n from_o the_o second_o phrigia_n from_o cilicia_n from_o phamphilia_n from_o lydia_n from_o the_o cyclades_n jland_n from_o egypt_n from_o thebaidis_n from_o lybia_n from_o galatia_n from_o palestina_n and_o from_o arabia_n and_o elsewhere_o exagerate_v the_o obstinacy_n of_o acacius_n archbishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o palestina_n one_o of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o arrian_n faction_n the_o council_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n depose_v this_o acacius_n say_v he_o but_o he_o obey_v not_o the_o deposition_n 27._o despise_v so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o bishop_n and_o sulpitius_n severus_n describe_v the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n first_o project_v as_o he_o pretend_v by_o constantine_n and_o after_o execute_v by_o his_o child_n he_o command_v say_v 2._o he_o that_o from_o all_o the_o world_n the_o bishop_n shall_v assemble_v themselves_o at_o sardica_n and_o socrates_n report_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n paul_n and_o athanasius_n demand_v that_o their_o cause_n &_o that_o of_o faith_n may_v be_v examine_v in_o a_o general_a council_n by_o the_o ordinance_n then_o of_o the_o two_o emperor_n there_o be_v a_o 20._o general_n council_n call_v at_o sardica_n and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n in_o the_o edict_n of_o faith_n indict_v as_o hincmarus_n note_n by_o the_o second_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 26._o that_o we_o call_v the_o five_o general_n council_n they_o be_v say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o adversary_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n anathematise_v some_o while_o they_o live_v and_o some_o after_o their_o death_n by_o damasus_n of_o holy_a memory_n pope_n of_o 8._o old_a rome_n and_o by_o the_o general_n council_n of_o sardica_n and_o uigilius_n the_o old_a bishop_n of_o trent_n the_o holy_a bishop_n say_v he_o assemble_v at_o sardica_n from_o all_o the_o 5._o province_n that_o be_v from_o rome_n from_o spain_n from_o france_n from_o italy_n from_o campania_n from_o calabria_n from_o africa_n from_o sardinia_n from_o panonia_n from_o missiae_fw-la from_o dacia_n from_o dardania_n from_o the_o other_o dacia_n from_o macedonia_n from_o thessalia_n from_o achaya_n from_o epirus_n from_o thrace_n from_o rhodope_n from_o asia_n from_o caria_n from_o bithynia_n from_o hellespont_n from_o phrigia_n from_o pisidia_n from_o capadocia_n from_o pontus_n from_o cilicia_n from_o the_o other_o phrigia_n from_o pamphilia_n from_o lydia_n from_o the_o island_n of_o the_o cyclades_n from_o egypt_n from_o thebaide_n from_o lybia_n from_o galatia_n from_o palestina_n and_o from_o arabia_n expound_v this_o faith_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v above_o my_o bargain_n for_o a_o over_o measure_n that_o the_o title_n that_o saint_n hilary_n and_o saint_n epiphanius_n give_v to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n aug._n of_o the_o council_n of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n be_v so_o far_o from_o abate_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o quality_n and_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n as_o contrariwise_o hilar._n mounseur_fw-fr le_fw-fr feure_z a_o great_a reader_n and_o examiner_n of_o saint_n hillary_n write_n cause_v a_o new_a fragment_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n hillary_n to_o be_v print_v do_v iugeniouslie_o acknowledge_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o a_o general_a council_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o edition_n by_o these_o word_n athanasius_n approve_v his_o innocence_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o sardica_n the_o four_o objection_n be_v that_o in_o the_o code_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a appeal_v church_n which_o be_v produce_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o bassianus_n and_o steven_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o contain_v to_o this_o objection_n we_o bring_v three_o answer_n the_o first_o that_o there_o be_v two_o volume_n of_o canon_n produce_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o one_o where_o the_o counsel_n be_v set_v down_o in_o head_n and_o with_o the_o inscription_n of_o their_o title_n and_o the_o particular_a number_n of_o their_o canon_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o four_o and_o fifteen_o act_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n where_o the_o four_o and_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n be_v read_v with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o four_o and_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o father_n assemble_v at_o nicaea_n and_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o title_n of_o synodical_a of_o the_o second_o synod_n hold_v by_o the_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o father_n at_o constantinople_n under_o nectarius_n and_o the_o other_o where_o the_o canon_n be_v annex_v one_o after_o a_o other_o under_o a_o continue_a cypher_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o chain_n and_o of_o a_o rhapsody_n and_o without_o inscription_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o counsel_n whence_o they_o be_v take_v and_o without_o distinction_n of_o the_o particular_a number_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o every_o council_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o four_o and_o eleven_o act_n where_o the_o three_o forth_o sixteen_o and_o seaventeenth_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v read_v under_o a_o simple_a quotation_n of_o canon_n 84._o 85._o and_o 94._o and_o 95._o without_o any_o mention_n neither_o of_o the_o title_n or_o of_o the_o particular_a cypher_n of_o the_o council_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v take_v now_o it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o volume_n in_o head_n where_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v insert_v with_o inscription_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o title_n of_o their_o counsel_n but_o of_o this_o rapsodie_n where_o the_o canon_n be_v annex_v one_o at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o other_o without_o inscription_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o title_n of_o their_o counsel_n that_o the_o adversary_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a speak_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o the_o only_a copy_n of_o this_o rapsodie_n that_o raise_v all_o this_o question_n the_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o even_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o this_o rapsodie_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o comprehend_v with_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o other_o counsel_n for_o that_o the_o four_o canon_n which_o be_v cite_v of_o this_o copy_n which_o be_v the_o four_o the_o five_o sixteen_o and_o seaventeenth_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v cite_v under_o the_o title_n of_o rule_n eighty_o four_o eighty_o five_o nintie_a four_o nintie_a six_o be_v good_a to_o show_v that_o before_o those_o canon_n there_o be_v but_o the_o twenty_o canon_n in_o the_o same_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o twenty_o of_o the_o council_n of_o ansyra_n the_o fifteen_o of_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n the_o twenty_o 21._o one_o of_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n and_o the_o siftie_a nine_o of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n and_o therefore_o hincmarus_n ancient_a archbishop_n of_o rheims_n argue_v pertinentlie_o out_o of_o this_o copy_n that_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n have_v make_v but_o twenty_o canon_n but_o not_o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v be_v make_v after_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o volume_n and_o the_o supply_n of_o proof_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la be_v nothing_o as_o shall_v appear_v hereafter_o contrariwise_o there_o be_v many_o proof_n that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v both_o acknowledge_v and_o observe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o not_o only_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 5._o which_o be_v allege_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n confirm_v the_o tome_fw-mi of_o those_o of_o the_o west_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o we_o believe_v zonara_fw-mi 1._o and_o balsamon_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o not_o only_o the_o epistle_n 5._o of_o valentinian_n the_o three_o address_v to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o second_o for_o
the_o hold_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o insert_v with_o the_o balsam_n greek_a act_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v that_o flavianus_n bishop_n ibidem_fw-la of_o constantinople_n have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n which_o have_v principal_o reference_n to_o the_o council_n of_o 1._o sardica_n and_o not_o only_o the_o senate_n of_o constantinople_n depute_v to_o cause_n policy_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n receive_v theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z who_o have_v appeal_v to_o pope_n leo_n and_o make_v he_o enter_v and_o have_v a_o seat_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o council_n because_o pope_n leo_n have_v restore_v his_o bishopric_n to_o he_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v ground_v 6._o upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o also_o zonara_n explain_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o call_v metropolitan_n archbishop_n council_n and_o confer_v it_o with_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o reject_v the_o use_n of_o this_o word_n say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v 42._o retain_v it_o yield_v rather_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 5._o then_o to_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o balsamon_n nilus_n and_o other_o greek_a schismatik_n will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n yield_v the_o appeal_n of_o the_o eastern_a province_n to_o the_o patriarch_n 2._o of_o constantinople_n pretend_v that_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o give_v the_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o they_o have_v extend_v this_o right_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o as_o much_o as_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n for_o as_o for_o the_o supply_n of_o proof_n that_o the_o pope_n adversary_n pretend_v to_o collect_v from_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la it_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v hereafter_o the_o three_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o very_a copy_n of_o this_o rapsodie_n which_o be_v produce_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v a_o falsify_v code_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o canon_n thereof_o that_o be_v produce_v in_o the_o same_o council_n for_o the_o four_o canon_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n under_o the_o title_n 5._o of_o rule_v eighty_o four_o eighty_o fifht_n nintie_a fourht_n and_o nintie_a six_o be_v four_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n celebrate_v under_o constantius_n etc._n now_o this_o council_n be_v a_o heretical_a council_n hold_v by_o the_o arrian_n and_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o constantius_n a_o arrian_n against_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o of_o these_o four_o canon_n that_o which_o be_v quote_v under_o the_o cypher_n of_o the_o canon_n eighty_o five_o that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o the_o cypher_n of_o the_o canon_n correspondent_a to_o the_o fowrth_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v partycular_o frame_v against_o saint_n athanasius_n this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o history_n of_o socrates_n which_o report_n that_o the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n of_o antioch_n have_v be_v produce_v against_o s._n chrisostome_n when_o the_o emperor_n arcadius_n 18._o will_v have_v cause_v he_o to_o be_v depose_v s._n chrisostome_n answer_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v come_v out_o of_o the_o shop_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o have_v be_v forge_v by_o they_o against_o s._n athanasius_n john_n say_v socratès_n answer_v 20._o that_o this_o canon_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o arrian_n for_o those_o that_o assemble_v themselves_o at_o antioch_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o consubstantiality_n publish_v this_o canon_n out_o of_o hate_n to_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o by_o that_o of_o sozomene_n who_o write_v and_o for_o that_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n john_n refuse_v it_o they_o receive_v not_o his_o apology_n but_o depose_v he_o although_o he_o insist_v for_o it_o must_v be_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o be_v a_o canon_n of_o heretic_n and_o by_o the_o epistle_n of_o bope_n innocent_n the_o first_o to_o the_o constantinopolitan_o report_v in_o the_o same_o sozomene_n be_v pope_n innocent_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counncell_n of_o antioch_n that_o werè_fw-la produce_v against_o saint_n chrisostome_n these_o canon_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v 26._o receive_v by_o catholic_a bishop_n for_o we_o must_v not_o patch_v up_o the_o invention_n of_o heretic_n with_o the_o canon_n of_o catholic_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o paladius_fw-la a_o greek_a author_n and_o time_n mate_n with_o saint_n chrisostome_n who_o say_v chryst._n in_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n and_o upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n theophilus_n have_v send_v canon_n compose_v by_o forty_o of_o the_o complice_n of_o arrius_n so_o speak_v he_o because_o that_o of_o nintie_a bishop_n which_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n there_o be_v but_o forty_o or_o according_a to_o the_o epistle_n of_o julius_n thirty_o six_o which_o actual_o condemned_a saint_n athanasius_n but_o these_o forty_o do_v so_o oppress_v the_o rest_n by_o the_o force_n and_o tyranny_n of_o constantius_n a_o arrian_n emperor_n who_o be_v there_o present_a that_o they_o alone_o cause_v to_o be_v ordain_v and_o publish_v what_o they_o list_v and_o a_o little_a after_o elpidius_n bishop_n of_o laodicea_n and_o tranquillus_n ibid._n show_v the_o emperor_n arcadius_n that_o these_o canon_n be_v heretical_a and_o final_o this_o appear_v by_o all_o the_o author_n of_o saint_n chrisostomes_n life_n who_o say_v that_o his_o defendor_n offer_v the_o emperor_n arcadius_n to_o quit_v his_o protection_n if_o his_o adversary_n will_v sign_n that_o they_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o those_o that_o frame_v these_o canon_n and_o this_o be_v alsoe_o acknowledge_v videtur_fw-la by_o the_o minister_n of_o germany_n who_o in_o the_o last_o greek_a impression_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n that_o they_o have_v make_v at_o witenberge_n say_v upon_o the_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v that_o that_o be_v read_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n under_o the_o name_n of_o canon_n eighty_o three_o this_o canon_n seem_v to_o be_v make_v in_o hate_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o pious_a athanasius_n est_fw-la and_o upon_o the_o eleven_o this_o canon_n be_v likewise_o frame_v against_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o upon_o the_o fifteent_n this_o canon_n be_v also_o undoubted_o make_v against_o the_o good_a athanasius_n to_o take_v from_o he_o the_o power_n of_o appeal_n to_o a_o other_o synod_n and_o upon_o the_o twenty_o five_o this_o council_n of_o antioch_n not_o only_o neglect_v etc._n the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n touch_v christ_n divinity_n but_o also_o strive_v cautelouslie_o to_o disannul_v it_o by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o rapsodie_n which_o be_v produce_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o bassian_n and_o steven_n where_o these_o canon_n be_v insert_v be_v not_o the_o true_a universal_a code_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o have_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o episcopal_a bibliotheque_fw-fr of_o constantinople_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o that_o of_o saint_n chrisostome_n but_o be_v the_o same_o falsify_v code_n that_o cyrinus_n bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n who_o be_v a_o egyptian_a by_o extraction_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n a_o partaker_n which_o theophilus_n and_o a_o cruel_a adversary_n to_o sainr_v chrisostome_n and_o other_o asian_o enemy_n to_o saint_n chrisostome_n studuit_fw-la conspire_v and_o assemble_v with_o theophilus_n have_v produce_v against_o the_o same_o saint_n chrisostome_n and_o which_o remain_v after_o the_o death_n of_o cyrinus_n in_o the_o episcopal_a bibliotheque_fw-fr of_o chalcedon_n a_o thing_n whereto_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedom_n take_v no_o heed_n because_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v insert_v into_o this_o rapsodie_n be_v there_o insert_v without_o in_o scription_n of_o title_n and_o without_o distinction_n of_o counsel_n and_o with_o suppression_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o against_o this_o it_o avail_v not_o to_o say_v that_o s._n hilary_n speak_v of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n hold_v in_o 11._o the_o dedication_n call_v it_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o he_o say_v it_o to_o accommodate_v synod_n himself_o to_o the_o infirmity_n of_o eleusius_n bishop_n of_o cyzica_n and_o other_o secret_a catholic_n of_o the_o asian_a province_n among_o who_o he_o inhabit_v for_o foundation_n whereof_o you_o must_v know_v that_o eleusius_n and_o the_o other_o covert_n catholic_v of_o the_o asian_a province_n that_o be_v call_v demy_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d for_o
as_o much_o as_o to_o shun_v the_o emperor_n persecution_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o be_v different_a from_o they_o in_o belief_n see_v themselves_o constrain_v by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o constantius_n a_o arrian_n emperor_n to_o adhere_v to_o some_o one_o of_o the_o form_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n that_o he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v publish_v rather_o choose_v to_o adhere_v to_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n then_o to_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n as_o be_v the_o least_o pestilent_a and_o the_o least_o estrange_v from_o catholic_a doctrine_n for_o of_o all_o the_o counsel_n hold_v by_o the_o arrian_n the_o most_o moderate_a in_o impiety_n be_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v in_o the_o dedication_n whereinto_o the_o arrian_n have_v infuse_v no_o other_o thing_n of_o their_o venom_n but_o that_o they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o word_n consubctantiall_a which_o have_v be_v insert_v into_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o have_v set_v in_o steed_n thereof_o inviolable_a image_n of_o the_o substance_n and_o one_o in_o concord_n without_o instil_v into_o it_o any_o proposition_n which_o beside_o the_o omission_n of_o the_o word_n consubstantial_a may_v not_o be_v avow_a by_o the_o catholic_v for_o those_o cause_n then_o when_o the_o arrian_n and_o among_o other_o acacius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o palestina_n will_v in_o the_o council_n follow_v and_o namely_o in_o that_o of_o seleucia_n propound_v other_o creed_n wherein_o they_o do_v more_o plain_o express_v their_o impiety_n eleusius_n and_o the_o other_o covert_n catholic_v of_o the_o asian_a province_n oppose_v themselves_o to_o it_o cry_v out_o that_o they_o must_v hold_v to_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n with_o such_o word_n say_v 40._o sabinus_n and_o after_o he_o socrates_n eleusius_n oppose_v himself_o to_o acacius_n call_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n the_o faith_n publish_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n and_o therefore_o saint_n hilary_n desire_v to_o suffer_v the_o infirmity_n of_o eleusius_n and_o of_o the_o other_o covert_a catholic_n of_o the_o asian_a province_n among_o who_o he_o be_v confine_v and_o which_o he_o maintain_v against_o the_o other_o asian_o who_o be_v complete_a arrian_n as_o himself_o testify_v in_o synod_n these_o word_n except_o the_o bishop_n eleusius_n and_o a_o few_o other_o with_o he_o the_o ten_o asian_a province_n among_o who_o i_o inhabit_v know_v not_o god_n true_o and_o choose_v rather_o to_o retain_v they_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o to_o provoke_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o asian_o by_o their_o example_n to_o return_v to_o it_o and_o to_o come_v one_o step_n near_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n then_o to_o let_v they_o fall_v into_o the_o precipice_n of_o the_o other_o more_o impious_a cree_v of_o the_o arrian_n speak_v less_o hardly_o of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n and_o call_v it_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o other_o arrian_n synod_n the_o synod_n of_o the_o saint_n because_o there_o be_v in_o this_o synod_n some_o catholik_o for_o who_o respect_n although_o they_o be_v oppress_v by_o the_o force_n and_o violence_n of_o the_o arrian_n who_o command_v there_o and_o hold_v there_o both_o the_o sceptre_n and_o the_o pen_n and_o by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o constantius_n the_o arrian_n seleu._n emperor_n who_o be_v there_o present_a the_o arrian_n dare_v not_o at_o the_o first_o blow_n vomit_v up_o all_o their_o impiety_n but_o not_o that_o the_o arrian_n have_v not_o be_v the_o sole_a master_n author_n and_o director_n of_o this_o council_n and_o have_v frame_v the_o draught_n and_o indict_v all_o that_o be_v there_o ordain_v for_o not_o only_a saint_n athanasius_n who_o be_v he_o against_o who_o the_o council_n seleu._n have_v proceed_v and_o who_o shall_v better_o know_v the_o history_n than_o any_o other_o witness_v that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o dedication_n be_v a_o arrian_n council_n and_o celebrate_v by_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o 8_o constantius_n the_o arrian_n emperor_n but_o he_o also_o affirm_v and_o socrates_n after_o he_o that_o those_o that_o indite_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n publish_v in_o the_o dedication_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o whereof_o saint_n hillary_n speak_v be_v eusebius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n and_o acasius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o palestina_n the_o two_o principal_a maintainer_n of_o arrian_n heresy_n and_o their_o complice_n the_o eusebian_n say_v saint_n athanasius_n after_o they_o have_v in_o supra_fw-la the_o synod_n of_o tyre_n extol_v all_o the_o perverse_a doctrine_n of_o arius_n and_o after_o they_o have_v ordain_v to_o receive_v the_o arrian_n to_o the_o communion_n and_o have_v themselves_o first_o execute_v it_o esteem_v nevertheless_o that_o there_o yet_o want_v some_o thing_n to_o their_o intention_n hold_v a_o new_a synod_n at_o antioch_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o a_o while_n after_o the_o bishop_n agree_v to_o the_o dedication_n be_v ibid._n nintie_a under_o the_o consulship_n of_o marcellus_n and_o probinus_n the_o impious_a constantius_n be_v present_a and_o again_o with_o what_o face_n can_v eusebius_n and_o acasius_n ibidem_fw-la and_o their_o complice_n after_o they_o have_v use_v word_n not_o former_o write_v and_o have_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o first_o of_o all_o creature_n be_v the_o invariable_a image_n of_o the_o substance_n power_n council_n and_o glory_n murmur_n against_o the_o father_n for_o make_v use_n of_o word_n not_o former_o write_v and_o that_o they_o use_v the_o word_n substance_n and_o socrates_n answer_v by_o way_n of_o apostrophe_n to_o the_o same_o eleusius_n of_o who_o s._n hilary_n speak_v how_o say_v he_o o_o eleusius_n do_v thou_o call_v those_o that_o assemble_v 40._o at_o antioch_n father_n and_o abjure_v those_o that_o have_v be_v their_o father_n for_o the_o bishop_n that_o meet_v at_o nicaea_n and_o decree_v consubstantiality_n ought_v more_o proper_o to_o be_v father_n aswell_o for_o have_v be_v before_o they_o as_o because_o they_o have_v promote_v they_o to_o priest_n hood_n then_o if_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n root_v out_o their_o father_n do_v not_o they_o forget_v themselves_o that_o follow_v they_o they_o follow_v parricide_n for_o father_n as_o little_o do_v it_o avail_n to_o say_v that_o john_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v syrian_n that_o be_v with_o he_o at_o the_o mock_n council_n of_o ephesus_n erect_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o among_o other_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyr_n allege_v against_o saint_n cyrill_n the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o have_v be_v frame_v against_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o after_o produce_v against_o saint_n chrisostome_n and_o that_o theodoret_n also_o in_o the_o collection_n of_o counsel_n that_o he_o have_v make_v insertes_fw-la the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n with_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o other_o counsel_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n for_o malesius_fw-la patriarch_n of_o antioch_n in_o who_o branch_n john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n have_v succeed_v and_o to_o who_o successor_n theodoret_n and_o the_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n that_o be_v at_o ephesus_n adhere_v have_v be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o covert_a catholic_n which_o communicate_v with_o the_o arrian_n and_o even_o when_o he_o be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v join_v in_o external_a communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n although_o he_o hold_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n by_o reason_n whereof_o to_o have_v mean_n to_o resist_v the_o arrian_n under_o pretence_n of_o some_o confession_n of_o faith_n authorise_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o arrian_n emperor_n under_o who_o tyranny_n asia_n groan_v they_o protect_v and_o defend_v the_o council_n of_o antioch_n against_o the_o other_o council_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o give_v it_o the_o great_a authority_n they_o can_v in_o their_o patriarkshpp_n to_o the_o end_n that_o weak_a catholic_n may_v have_v mean_n to_o shadow_v themselves_o under_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o council_n against_o the_o arrian_n emperor_n that_o persecute_v they_o and_o from_o thence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o catholic_a religion_n have_v be_v restore_v in_o the_o east_n this_o council_n yet_o remain_v in_o authority_n among_o the_o covert_a catholic_n of_o syria_n who_o during_o their_o oppression_n have_v make_v use_n of_o it_o as_o a_o bulwark_n against_o the_o arrian_n and_o other_o asian_a province_n near_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n less_o avail_v it_o to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o great_a the_o council_n of_o antioch_n
there_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o more_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n have_v be_v before_o observe_v by_o a_o unwritten_a law_n as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n alios_fw-la testify_v when_o they_o say_v speak_v of_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ordination_n it_o be_v as_o you_o know_v both_o a_o law_n descend_v from_o antiquity_n and_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n now_o that_o this_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o justinian_n to_o wit_n to_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n it_o appear_v both_o because_o he_o say_v that_o he_o receive_v their_o dogma_n as_o the_o holy_a ep_n scripture_n a_o phrase_n since_o practise_v by_o s._n gregory_n upon_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n and_o which_o can_v be_v stretch_v to_o any_o of_o the_o other_o counsel_n hold_v before_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n and_o by_o this_o that_o he_o add_v that_o he_o receive_v their_o canon_n as_o law_n we_o receive_v say_v he_o the_o dogma_n of_o the_o four_o synod_n above_o name_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o receive_v their_o canon_n as_o law_n and_o by_o this_o that_o he_o conclude_v for_o these_o cause_n we_o ordain_v that_o according_a to_o their_o distinction_n the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o that_o the_o bles._n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o second_o rome_n have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n and_o be_v perfer_v before_o all_o the_o sea_n a_o thing_n which_o evidentlie_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v precise_o of_o the_o four_o general_n counsel_n only_o where_o the_o order_n of_o the_o patriarch_n have_v be_v observe_v and_o not_o of_o the_o particular_a counsel_n where_o there_o have_v be_v no_o concurrence_n of_o patriarch_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v justinian_n have_v pretend_v to_o have_v give_v by_o this_o constitution_n the_o force_n of_o a_o imperial_a law_n to_o all_o the_o canon_n of_o particular_a counsel_n he_o that_o disanull_v and_o infringe_n the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n have_v make_v a_o canon_n by_o which_o it_o ordain_v that_o according_a to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o act_n there_o shall_v be_v but_o seven_o deacons_n in_a one_o city_n how_o great_a soever_o it_o be_v where_o justinian_n ordain_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o hundred_o deacon_n in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v of_o which_o balsamon_n say_v that_o justinian_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trullio_n after_o he_o interpret_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n for_o they_o do_v indeed_o interpret_v the_o place_n of_o the_o act_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v evil_o understand_v by_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n 15._o and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o dispenser_n of_o alm_n and_o not_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o they_o correct_v and_o abrogate_v the_o canon_n 6._o of_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n as_o zonora_n acknowledge_v in_o these_o term_n 〈◊〉_d from_o before_o the_o council_n trullian_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n be_v no_o more_o observe_v for_o justinian_n institute_v sixty_o priest_n and_o a_o hundred_o deacons_n and_o forty_o deaconess_n in_o the_o great_a church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o therefore_o balsamon_n be_v constrain_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o council_n trullian_n correct_v 16._o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n the_o present_a canon_n say_v he_o interprete_v or_o rather_o correct_v the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o neovesarea_n and_o then_o if_o justinian_n in_o say_v we_o ordain_v that_o the_o canon_n constitute_v or_o confirm_v by_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n shall_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o a_o law_n have_v pretend_v conc._n to_o mean_v not_o only_o the_o canon_n contain_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o four_o first_o counsel_n but_o also_o those_o of_o the_o other_o counsel_n which_o they_o 8._o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v confirm_v in_o gross_a by_o these_o four_o first_o what_o caution_n can_v they_o give_v that_o he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o comprehend_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n that_o he_o and_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 5._o call_v a_o general_a council_n comprehend_v it_o consequent_o under_o the_o title_n 5._o of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o whereof_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n canonise_v the_o authority_n in_o these_o term_n we_o receive_v the_o council_n of_o those_o ibid._n of_o the_o west_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o we_o believe_v zonara_n and_o balsamon_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o first_o head_n let_v we_o examine_v the_o second_o to_o the_o proof_n then_o of_o the_o second_o head_n which_o be_v that_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la a_o scythian_a monk_n but_o habituate_v at_o rome_n and_o verse_v in_o the_o greek_a and_o roman_a letter_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n in_o translate_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n say_v that_o he_o have_v take_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n from_o the_o latin_a edition_n and_o have_v not_o take_v it_o from_o the_o greek_a 1610._o text_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a edition_n a_o proófe_n that_o have_v seem_v so_o strong_a to_o the_o pope_n adversary_n that_o two_o year_n since_o they_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v print_v a_o greek_a code_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o which_o they_o have_v eclipse_v and_o cut_v of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n against_o the_o credit_n of_o all_o the_o greke_n edition_n of_o the_o counsel_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n we_o answer_v that_o the_o greek_a copy_n that_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la have_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v a_o maim_a and_o defective_a copy_n as_o appear_v beside_o many_o other_o lameness_n by_o the_o omission_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v want_v there_o for_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la pass_n immediate_o from_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o omitt_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n a_o thing_n which_o manifest_o show_v that_o the_o greek_a copy_n that_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o which_o he_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o scythia_n be_v lame_a and_o imperfect_a for_o as_o much_o as_o not_o only_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v the_o three_o of_o the_o first_o general_a counsel_n and_o that_o in_o this_o quality_n the_o canon_n thereof_o be_v insert_v into_o all_o the_o collection_n and_o mention_n of_o the_o greek_a collection_n as_o in_o the_o greek_a collection_n of_o theodoret_n and_o into_o the_o concordance_n of_o john_n scholasticus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o council_n trullian_n and_o into_o the_o nomocanon_n of_o photius_n and_o into_o the_o greek_a copy_n of_o zonara_n balsamon_n alexius_n blestares_n simon_n logotheta_n harmenopolus_n and_o other_o but_o also_o that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n quote_v and_o express_v they_o by_o name_n in_o the_o law_n produce_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o head_n which_o have_v these_o word_n we_o ordain_v 131._o that_o the_o holy_a ecclesiastic_a all_o canon_n that_o have_v be_v constitute_v or_o confirm_v by_o the_o four_o holy_a counsel_n shall_v hold_v the_o place_n of_o a_o law_n to_o wit_n those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n celebrate_v by_o the_o three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o father_n and_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n celebrate_v by_o the_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o father_n and_o those_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o convert_v our_o defence_n into_o a_o act_n we_o will_v arm_v it_o with_o seven_o counter-battery_n which_o do_v not_o only_o destroy_v the_o proof_n draw_v from_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la but_o also_o show_v express_o that_o in_o the_o emperor_n justinian_o age_n and_o long_o before_o he_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o insert_v intò_fw-la the_o greek_a collection_n of_o counsel_n the_o first_o be_v that_o paladius_fw-la bishop_n of_o helenopolis_n in_o bithynia_n a_o author_n greek_a in_o stile_n and_o asian_a in_o nation_n who_o live_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n year_n ago_o that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n before_o justinian_n and_o who_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o
constantinople_n call_v alex._n a_o most_o diligent_a writer_n of_o the_o life_n of_o s._n chrisostome_n and_o george_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o live_v a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o witness_v not_o only_o as_o have_v above_o appear_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n that_o the_o schismatickes_n of_o the_o east_n produce_v against_o s._n chrisostome_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o shop_n of_o the_o arrian_n but_o also_o that_o it_o have_v be_v abrogate_a with_o the_o common_a voice_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a bishop_n by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n this_o canon_n say_v palladius_n and_o after_o palladius_n george_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o after_o chris._n george_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v as_o impious_a and_o the_o work_n of_o impious_a man_n abrogate_a in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n by_o the_o roman_n italian_n illyrian_n macedonian_n and_o greek_n the_o second_o that_o sozomene_n a_o ancient_a greek_a historian_n and_o who_o live_v near_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o justinian_n report_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o s._n chrisostome_n a_o epistle_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o first_o to_o the_o constantinopolitan_o 20._o where_o he_o write_v speak_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n we_o say_v not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v but_o also_o that_o they_o must_v be_v condemn_v with_o heretic_n all_o and_o schismatical_a doctrine_n as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n by_o the_o bishop_n that_o have_v be_v before_o us._n the_o three_o that_o balsamon_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o guardian_n of_o the_o charter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n note_n after_o all_o they_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o fowrth_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n note_v say_v balsamon_n comment_v the_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 4._o sardica_n that_o by_o this_o canon_n the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v abrogate_a and_o coment_v the_o fifteen_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n this_o 15._o canon_n say_v he_o be_v disannul_v by_o the_o four_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o fowrth_a counterbattery_n be_v that_o the_o greek_a edition_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o ancient_a latin_a edition_n which_o be_v current_a whether_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n zosimus_n or_o whether_o since_o in_o the_o time_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o greek_a edition_n primitive_a and_o original_a which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o whereof_o as_o hold_v upon_o the_o confine_n between_o both_o empire_n the_o canon_n be_v publish_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o both_o tongue_n this_o appear_v by_o many_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o old_a latin_a edition_n and_o the_o greek_a edition_n nor_o in_o substance_n but_o in_o the_o order_n in_o the_o phrase_n form_n and_o circumstance_n and_o among_o other_o in_o the_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o latin_a edition_n which_o be_v the_o fourteen_o in_o the_o greek_a for_o the_o latin_a edition_n produce_v by_o pope_n zosimus_n his_o legate_n in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o insert_v into_o the_o collection_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la and_o into_o that_o of_o isidorus_n mercator_n have_v 6._o osius_n say_v if_o a_o bishop_n move_v with_o choler_n against_o a_o priest_n or_o deacon_n of_o he_o will_v 17._o cast_v he_o forth_o of_o the_o church_n it_o must_v be_v provide_v that_o be_v innocent_a he_o be_v not_o condemn_v or_o excommunicate_v and_o therefore_o the_o excommunicate_v person_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o interpeale_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o next_o province_n and_o procure_v his_o cause_n to_o be_v hear_v by_o they_o and_o the_o greek_a edition_n beside_o many_o other_o difference_n have_v it_o thus_o the_o excommunicate_v person_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o bishop_n metropolitan_a of_o the_o same_o province_n and_o if_o the_o bishop_n metropolitan_a be_v absent_a to_o address_v himself_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o the_o next_o province_n and_o to_o require_v that_o his_o cause_n may_v be_v diligent_o examine_v a_o thing_n which_o evident_o show_v that_o the_o greek_a edition_n be_v not_o take_v from_o the_o latin_a edition_n which_o be_v curret_fw-la be_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n zosimus_n be_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la but_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a original_n greek_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o which_o some_o clause_n be_v lose_v in_o the_o latin_a edition_n from_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n zozimus_n and_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la the_o five_o counterbatterie_n be_v that_o not_o only_o all_o the_o greek_a edition_n as_o that_o of_o photius_n simon_n logotheta_n zonara_n balsamon_n alexius_n and_o other_o greek_a canonist_n contain_v the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o also_o all_o the_o other_o eastern_a edition_n aswell_o russian_a as_o syrian_n armenian_a egyptian_a and_o ethiopian_a as_o it_o appear_v for_o the_o syrian_a edition_n by_o the_o syriack_n collection_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o bibliotheque_fw-fr of_o the_o great_a duke_n cosmo_n yet_o live_v whither_o the_o great_a duke_n ferdinand_n his_o father_n make_v to_o be_v bring_v all_o the_o syrian_a book_n that_o he_o can_v recover_v in_o the_o east_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o ethiopian_a edition_n by_o the_o code_n of_o the_o ethiopian_a canon_n which_o be_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o for_o the_o rest_n by_o the_o copy_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o east_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n must_v have_v be_v currant_n in_o the_o east_n long_o before_o justinian_o time_n the_o natural_a egyptian_a church_n which_o we_o call_v cophtich_n and_o ethiopian_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o have_v have_v since_o the_o time_n no_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o final_o the_o six_o counterbatterie_n be_v that_o theodoret_n who_o live_v near_o one_o hundred_o year_n before_o justinian_n and_o that_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o live_v in_o the_o same_o age_n with_o justinian_n insert_v into_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o greek_a counsel_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o sardica_n with_o the_o other_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o in_o the_o greek_a library_n of_o queen_n catherine_n of_o medicis_n which_o be_v bring_v from_o constantinople_n to_o floremce_n by_o demetrius_n gara_n lascaris_n &_o other_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o sack_n of_o conctantinople_n and_o which_o be_v now_o unite_a with_o the_o library_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n there_o be_v find_v a_o old_a synagogue_n a_o manuscript_n of_o the_o canon_n reduce_v into_o fifty_o title_n by_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z under_o which_o there_o be_v annex_v a_o concordance_n of_o the_o imperial_a law_n of_o justinian_n with_o the_o canon_n contain_v in_o these_o fistie_a title_n make_v by_o john_n scolasticus_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o both_o which_o work_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o cowncell_n of_o sardica_n be_v quote_v and_o insert_v equal_o with_o the_o other_o canon_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n now_o that_o this_o synagogue_n which_o be_v the_o name_n that_o they_o give_v to_o the_o ancient_a collection_n of_o counsel_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o report_n of_o socrates_n who_o cite_v the_o collection_n of_o counsel_n make_v by_o sabinus_n under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o synagogue_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v true_o ancient_a and_o certain_o theodoret_n be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v for_o beside_o this_o that_o the_o manuscript_n which_o be_v very_o ancient_a bear_v this_o title_n synagogue_n of_o the_o canon_n reduce_v into_o fifty_o title_n by_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z and_o beside_o that_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o author_n be_v whole_o agreeable_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o theodoret_n there_o be_v many_o ec._n thing_n to_o show_v that_o this_o collection_n can_v not_o but_o be_v make_v in_o theodoret_n time_n that_o it_o be_v so_o first_o the_o author_n testify_v in_o his_o exordium_n that_o there_o be_v but_o ten_o synod_n celebrate_v since_o the_o apostle_n to_o his_o time_n there_o have_v be_v say_v he_o ten_o great_a synod_n of_o the_o father_n since_o the_o apostle_n and_o propound_v a_o while_n after_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o table_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o ten_o counsel_n whereof_o his_o work_n be_v compile_v he_o place_v that_o of_o
justinian_n himself_o in_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o steed_n of_o eutychius_n and_o decease_v twelve_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o justinian_n and_o it_o derogate_v not_o from_o this_o that_o balsamon_n reject_v all_o the_o nomocanon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o marriage_n of_o law_n and_o canon_n which_o have_v be_v make_v before_o that_o of_o photius_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n one_o nomocanon_n which_o distribute_v the_o law_n and_o canon_n into_o fifty_o title_n for_o be_v it_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v scholasticus_n be_v it_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o other_o late_a he_o reject_v it_o not_o for_o not_o have_v be_v ancient_a enough_o but_o for_o be_v too_o ancient_a for_o as_o much_o as_o many_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n which_o be_v there_o insert_v have_v cease_v to_o be_v in_o use_n have_v be_v abrogate_a by_o the_o late_a emperor_n yet_o less_o be_v this_o repugnant_a to_o it_o that_o the_o canon_n entitle_v from_o the_o apostle_n be_v quote_v in_o this_o synagogue_n under_o the_o number_n of_o eigthie_a five_o canon_n whereas_o doonisius_fw-la exiguus_fw-la and_o after_o he_o cresconius_n report_v but_o of_o fifty_o for_o dionys._n bsiedes_o this_o that_o the_o greek_a code_n of_o dionysius_n as_o have_v be_v above_o note_v can._n be_v very_o lame_a and_o defective_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o greek_n both_o before_o theodoret_n and_o before_o dionysius_n exiguus_fw-la retain_v eighty_o five_o as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n surname_v trullian_n we_o ordain_v that_o the_o eighty_o five_o canon_n which_o have_v be_v receive_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o have_v precede_v we_o and_o have_v be_v give_v we_o by_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o glorious_a apostle_n remain_v from_o hence_o forward_a 〈◊〉_d and_o unmoveable_a and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n hold_v under_o nectarius_n 2._o in_o the_o cause_n of_o agapius_n and_o of_o bagadius_fw-la more_o than_o sixty_o year_n before_o theodoret_n that_o the_o council_n trullian_n canonise_v in_o these_o word_n we_o seal_v also_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o reassembled_a themselves_o anew_o in_o this_o religious_a &_o imperial_a city_n under_o nectoirius_fw-la archbishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n &_o under_o theophilus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n which_o council_n hold_v under_o nectarius_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o agapius_n and_o bagadius_fw-la cite_v the_o seventy_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o i_o will_v not_o renew_v the_o difference_n that_o have_v be_v since_o pope_n gelasius_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o these_o canon_n entitle_v from_o the_o apostle_n it_o suffice_v to_o defend_v the_o antiquity_n of_o this_o synagogue_n that_o from_o before_o the_o time_n of_o theodoret_n the_o greek_n hold_v eigthie_a five_o canon_n for_o apostolical_a canon_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o six_o objection_n let_v we_o dispatch_v the_o two_o other_o the_o seven_o objection_n that_o the_o pope_n adversary_n propound_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v that_o pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o in_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n that_o he_o address_v to_o charlemagne_n say_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o greek_n and_o that_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d phot._n write_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o you_o say_v you_o have_v not_o to_o this_o obection_n then_o we_o answer_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o if_o photius_n who_o be_v author_n of_o the_o schism_n which_o last_v to_o this_o day_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n shall_v have_v say_v by_o malice_n and_o to_o cover_v his_o intrusion_n in_o to_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n which_o he_o have_v usurp_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d true_a and_o lawful_a patriarch_n that_o the_o greek_n have_v not_o or_o receive_v not_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o be_v no_o great_a marvel_n no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n leo_n to_o cover_v their_o heresy_n that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o hundred_o &_o fifteen_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o first_o general_a synod_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o which_o nevertheless_o timothy_n the_o first_o their_o patriarch_n have_v assist_v and_o preside_v for_o photius_n have_v intrude_v into_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constanstinople_n against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o forbid_v layman_n to_o usurp_v ecclesiastical_a charge_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o he_o will_v willing_o have_v avoid_v that_o which_o condemn_v he_o and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mistake_n in_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d who_o deceive_v himself_o upon_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o pope_n adrian_n who_o be_v deceive_v upon_o dionysius_n his_o collection_n for_o not_o only_o the_o council_n of_o constanstinople_n surname_v trullian_n that_o the_o greek_n entitle_v the_o six_o general_a council_n &_o which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o 〈◊〉_d before_o pope_n adrian_n &_o more_o they_o two_o hundred_o before_o pope_n nicolas_n 〈◊〉_d before_o photius_n &_o that_o photius_n himself_o canonise_v &_o register_n it_o in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d as_o a_o universal_a ecumenical_a council_n write_v we_o seal_v also_o the_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d that_o have_v be_v publish_v by_o the_o father_n assemble_v at_o sardica_n &_o carthage_n &_o by_o those_o which_o reassembled_a themselves_o the_o second_o time_n in_o this_o religious_a and_o imperial_a 〈◊〉_d under_o nectarius_n archbishop_n of_o this_o imperial_a city_n and_o theophilus_n 〈◊〉_d of_o alexandria_n but_o photius_n himself_o in_o his_o nomocanon_n insertes_fw-la almost_o 〈◊〉_d every_o title_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n &_o those_o particular_o of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a &_o after_o photius_n simon_n 〈◊〉_d zonara_n balsamon_n alexius_n blastares_n harmenopolus_n &_o other_o late_a 〈◊〉_d canonist_n the_o eigteenth_n &_o last_o objection_n that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n make_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o practice_n of_o episcopal_a appeal_n which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o three_o four_o and_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v be_v long_a 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o eastern_a church_n for_o proof_n whereof_o they_o allege_v six_o 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o be_v that_o socrates_n speak_v of_o cyrill_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 40._o who_o have_v appeal_v from_o the_o council_n of_o palestina_n hold_v under_o acacius_n archbishop_n of_o caesarea_n to_o a_o great_a judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n say_v that_o cyrill_n practise_v the_o first_o and_o 〈◊〉_d one_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o proceed_v make_v use_n against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n of_o appeal_n as_o in_o a_o lie_v judgement_n the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o be_v call_v the_o c._n 〈◊〉_d general_a one_o ordain_v that_o after_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o patriarkship_n may_v examine_v in_o the_o second_o instance_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o bishop_n but_o that_o if_o after_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n any_o one_o 〈◊〉_d dare_v to_o importune_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o emperor_n or_o of_o secular_a prince_n 〈◊〉_d disquiet_v the_o general_a synod_n that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o receive_v to_o pursue_v his_o 〈◊〉_d the_o three_o that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n say_v that_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n no_o more_o then_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o pretory_n the_o four_o that_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n ordain_v that_o if_o a_o clerk_n attempt_v any_o cause_n against_o his_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d be_v judge_v by_o his_o metropolitan_a and_o in_o case_n the_o one_o of_o the_o party_n 〈◊〉_d to_o obey_v the_o judgement_n the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o diocese_n shall_v end_v 〈◊〉_d the_o five_o that_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o constantine_n declare_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v as_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n and_o the_o six_o that_o photius_n in_o his_o nomocanon_n say_v there_o be_v no_o appeal_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n to_o the_o first_o then_o of_o those_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o socrates_n say_v that_o cyrill_a bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o only_a and_o
first_o man_n who_o against_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n make_v use_v of_o a_o appeal_n we_o bring_v two_o answer_n the_o one_o that_o those_o word_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o socrates_n but_o the_o word_n of_o a_o heretical_a author_n from_o who_o socrates_n report_v they_o to_o wit_n from_o sabinus_n who_o to_o calumniate_v saint_n cyrill_n who_o although_o for_o fear_n of_o constantius_n the_o arrian_n emperor_n he_o do_v then_o communicate_v outward_o with_o the_o arrian_n nevertheless_o be_v in_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n a_o catholic_a reproach_n it_o to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v appeal_v rome_v the_o council_n of_o cesarta_n in_o palestina_n wherein_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o arrian_n and_o have_v put_v in_o his_o appeal_n to_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n hold_v by_o the_o arrian_n but_o wherein_o there_o be_v many_o covert_n catholic_v and_o which_o communicate_v not_o with_o the_o arrian_n but_o in_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o differ_v whole_o from_o they_o in_o faith_n the_o truth_n of_o his_o answer_n appear_v both_o by_o this_o that_o socrates_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o history_n say_v that_o he_o 39_o have_v abridge_v it_o from_o the_o collection_n of_o sabinus_n let_v the_o reader_n say_v he_o curious_a to_o know_v thing_n in_o particular_a search_v they_o in_o the_o collection_n of_o sabinus_n where_o they_o be_v at_o large_a set_v down_o we_o run_v over_o they_o have_v but_o extract_v head_n and_o by_o the_o canon_n whereto_o this_o author_n say_v that_o cyrill_n contradicte_v which_o be_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v in_o the_o dedication_n which_o council_n socrates_n be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v it_o lawful_a as_o contrariwise_o not_o only_o in_o the_o same_o history_n he_o make_v a_o apostrophe_n against_o the_o memory_n of_o eleusius_n who_o have_v qualify_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n with_o the_o title_n of_o father_n and_o ask_v 18._o he_o how_o o_o eleusius_n do_v thou_o call_v those_o father_n that_o be_v assemble_v at_o antioch_n and_o deny_v that_o title_n to_o their_o elder_n and_o a_o little_a after_o that_o if_o those_o that_o be_v assemble_v at_o antioch_n have_v root_v out_o their_o father_n those_o that_o follow_v they_o follow_v parricide_n but_o also_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n he_o say_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v produce_v against_o 8._o he_o have_v be_v forge_v by_o the_o arrian_n and_o in_o deed_n how_o can_v socrates_n have_v hold_v the_o bishop_n appeal_n for_o a_o new_a thing_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n he_o that_o allege_v for_o a_o reproach_n of_o nullity_n against_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n import_v that_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n consent_n be_v nullity_n and_o who_o have_v say_v speak_v of_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n of_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n of_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n 15._o and_o other_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o other_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n and_o yet_o have_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o church_n arm_v they_o with_o confident_a letter_n and_o write_v into_o the_o east_n and_o restore_v they_o every_o man_n to_o his_o place_n and_o that_o a_o long_a while_n before_o the_o action_n of_o cyrill_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n the_o other_o answer_n be_v that_o sabinus_n himself_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o say_v by_o that_o that_o cyrill_n have_v do_v a_o new_a thing_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n or_o as_o the_o word_n of_o sabinus_n import_v from_o a_o less_o tribunal_n to_o a_o great_a that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o council_n of_o palestina_n to_o that_o of_o seleucia_n in_o appeal_n from_o one_o synod_n to_o a_o other_o for_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n itself_o upon_o which_o sabinus_n ground_n himself_o ordain_v that_o a_o bishop_n còden_v may_v have_v recourse_n to_o a_o great_a synod_n but_o for_o this_o that_o he_o have_v in_o his_o appeal_n follow_v the_o form_n of_o secular_a appeal_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v take_v to_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o this_o time_n a_o relief_n of_o appeal_n from_o the_o imperial_a chancery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v take_v letter_n from_o the_o emperor_n to_o oblige_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n and_o particular_o the_o acacian_o who_o be_v arrian_n and_o favour_v by_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d will_v not_o have_v suffer_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o cyrill_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o council_n of_o palestina_n shall_v again_o have_v be_v put_v to_o trial_n to_o receive_v his_o appeal_v and_o to_o renew_v the_o examination_n of_o his_o cause_n this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 40._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o diverse_a letter_n of_o the_o emper_n over_o be_v bring_v where_o of_o some_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v first_o treat_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o other_o that_o they_o shall_v first_o handle_v the_o cause_n of_o accuse_a bishop_n and_o by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o sabinus_n against_o cyrill_n which_o be_v as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v have_v send_v a_o libel_n of_o appeal_n to_o those_o that_o have_v depose_v he_o he_o appeal_v to_o a_o great_a judgement_n to_o which_o appeal_n the_o emperor_n constantius_n add_v his_o suffrage_n and_o this_o cyrill_n do_v only_o &_o the_o first_o against_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d canon_n make_v use_n of_o appeal_v as_o in_o lay_v judgment_n by_o which_o word_n sahinus_fw-la intend_v not_o to_o say_v that_o cyrill_n be_v the_o first_o that_o appeal_v from_o a_o lesser_a synod_n to_o a_o great_a but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o the_o use_v the_o form_n of_o secular_a appeal_n in_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n to_o cause_v his_o appeal_n to_o be_v accept_v and_o therefore_o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o use_v appeal_n but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o use_v they_o as_o in_o laie-iudgment_n and_o this_o final_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o transgression_n whereof_o 〈◊〉_d object_n to_o saint_n cyrill_n which_o canon_n forbid_v not_o that_o we_o may_v appeal_v from_o a_o lesser_a synod_n to_o a_o great_a contrariwise_o ordain_v it_o in_o express_a word_n but_o forbid_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n authority_n and_o set_v down_o the_o deffence_n in_o these_o word_n if_o any_o priest_n depose_v by_o his_o own_o bishop_n 12._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bishop_n depose_v by_o a_o synod_n presume_v to_o importune_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o emperor_n whereas_o he_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o a_o great_a synod_n and_o refer_v the_o right_a that_o he_o 〈◊〉_d he_o have_v to_o a_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n let_v he_o not_o be_v receive_v to_o 〈◊〉_d from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o that_o sabinus_n reprehend_v in_o cyrill_n be_v not_o that_o he_o have_v appeal_v from_o the_o synod_n of_o palestina_n to_o a_o great_a synod_n to_o wit_n to_o that_o of_o seleucia_n which_o be_v compound_v of_o all_o the_o east_n but_o for_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n &_o for_o have_v obtain_v letter_n from_o he_o to_o cause_v his_o appeal_n to_o be_v accept_v which_o be_v that_o that_o he_o call_v to_o use_v appeal_n as_o in_o lay_v judgment_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o lay_v judgment_n the_o emperor_n give_v letter_n to_o oblige_v the_o second_o judge_n to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o appeal_n and_o the_o first_o to_o yield_v to_o it_o to_o the_o second_o instance_n which_o be_v that_o in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o council_n constantinople_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o those_o that_o will_v accuse_v a_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d shall_v accuse_v he_o to_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n and_o if_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o 6._o province_n do_v not_o content_v they_o they_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n and_o that_o after_o it_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v lawful_a neither_o to_o importune_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o emperor_n nor_o to_o disquiet_v a_o general_a council_n we_o answer_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o accuser_n of_o bishop_n and_o not_o of_o bishop_n accuse_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v
perron_n reply_v to_o the_o king_n of_o great_a britain_n the_o four_o book_n the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o east_n chapt_n i._o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n have_v any_o one_o presume_v to_o alter_v or_o disguise_n ever_o so_o little_a the_o faith_n approve_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v easy_a even_o for_o a_o child_n to_o surprise_v and_o discover_v in_o his_o novelty_n he_o that_o shall_v bring_v in_o a_o different_a doctrine_n and_o the_o robber_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v surprise_v all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o world_n if_o it_o be_v needful_a rouse_v themselves_o up_o and_o be_v once_o stir_v up_o give_v themselves_o no_o rest_n till_o they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a from_o among_o they_o and_o have_v provide_v for_o the_o security_n of_o christ_n flock_n this_o be_v heretofore_o the_o designation_n and_o felicity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o which_o endure_v nont_v many_o age_n the_o reply_n appelles_n answer_v one_o day_n to_o one_o of_o this_o scholar_n that_o have_v paint_v a_o venus_n load_v with_o pearl_n carcanet_n and_o jewel_n because_o thou_o can_v not_o paint_v her_o fair_a thou_o have_v paint_v her_o rich_a so_o though_o this_o description_n be_v not_o adorn_v with_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o simple_a naked_a and_o natural_a beauty_n of_o history_n it_o be_v eloquent_a and_o adorn_v with_o rich_a and_o magnificent_a word_n but_o s._n basill_n and_o s._n hierom_n paint_v out_o the_o estate_n of_o religion_n in_o their_o time_n in_o the_o east_n much_o otherwise_o s._n basill_n when_o he_o say_v to_o what_o shall_v we_o compare_v basil._n magn._n the_o state_n of_o the_o present_a time_n certain_o to_o a_o sea-fight_n when_o sea_n captain_n chase_v with_o the_o war_n and_o inflame_v to_o the_o combat_n set_v one_o upon_o a_o other_o with_o a_o violent_a hate_n and_o nourish_v with_o old_a injury_n and_o a_o while_n after_o the_o trouble_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n swallow_v up_o the_o people_n more_o horrible_o than_o all_o kind_n of_o 〈◊〉_d wind_n and_o tempest_n and_o a_o dark_a and_o sad_a night_n possess_v the_o church_n the_o light_n that_o god_n have_v place_v to_o illuminate_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v banish_v from_o their_o sea_n and_o s._n hierome_n when_o he_o write_v because_o the_o east_n strike_v against_o itself_o by_o the_o ancient_a fury_n of_o the_o people_n tear_n in_o little_a morsel_n the_o undevided_a coat_n of_o our_o lord_n weave_v on_o high_a and_o that_o the_o fox_n destroy_v the_o vine_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o damas._n it_o be_v difficult_a among_o the_o dry_a pit_n that_o have_v no_o water_n to_o discern_v where_o the_o seal_a fowtaine_n and_o the_o enclose_a garden_n be_v for_o this_o cause_n i_o have_v think_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o consult_v which_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d and_o a_o while_n after_o now_o in_o the_o west_n the_o sun_n of_o justice_n be_v rise_v and_o in_o the_o east_n ibidem_fw-la that_o lucifer_n which_o be_v fall_v have_v set_v up_o he_o throne_n above_o the_o star_n you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n you_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n you_o be_v the_o vessel_n of_o gold_n &_o of_o silver_n and_o the_o vessel_n of_o earth_n or_o wood_n do_v here_o attend_v the_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o the_o eternal_a and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o follow_a age_n do_v even_o the_o same_o for_o when_o 〈◊〉_d rise_v up_o and_o after_o he_o have_v be_v judge_v in_o the_o first_o instance_n by_o flanianus_fw-la bishop_n of_o constantinople_n appeal_v or_o pretend_v to_o have_v appeal_v praeamb_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v again_o judge_v and_o depose_v in_o the_o second_o instance_n by_o he_o what_o come_v of_o it_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n govern_v 4._o by_o 〈◊〉_d a_o abettor_n of_o eutyches_n cause_v a_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o title_n of_o general_n at_o ephesus_n where_o by_o force_n and_o by_o strong_a hand_n he_o cause_v dioscorus_n the_o patron_n of_o eutyches_n heresy_n to_o preside_v the_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o this_o cause_n quit_v the_o place_n flee_v in_o that_o council_n eutyches_n be_v restore_v flavianus_n depose_v and_o slay_v after_o he_o have_v nevertheless_o appeal_v from_o his_o condemnation_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o eutychian_a heresy_n 25._o be_v subscribe_v by_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n maximus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n juutnall_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o almost_o by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n some_o by_o their_o good_a will_n and_o other_o by_o force_n the_o pope_n again_o take_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o hand_n pursue_v the_o hold_n of_o a_o new_a council_n which_o be_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n be_v that_o heresy_n be_v condemn_v and_o dioscorus_n and_o eutyches_n and_o all_o his_o abettor_n depose_v and_o excommunicate_v and_o in_o dioscorus_n steed_n there_o be_v substitute_v in_o the_o patriarkshipp_n of_o alexandria_n proterius_n a_o catolicke_a and_o partaker_n with_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o proterius_n there_o succeed_v timothy_n a_o 〈◊〉_d and_o parricide_n of_o his_o predecessor_n who_o again_o set_v on_o foot_n the_o eutychian_a heresy_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o alexandria_n and_o in_o egypt_n and_o disannul_v there_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n a_o while_n after_o into_o the_o sea_n of_o antioch_n there_o enter_v peter_n surname_v the_o tanner_n likewise_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o 〈◊〉_d likewise_o there_o come_v to_o constantinople_n acacius_n who_o communicate_v with_o peter_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o there_o be_v install_v in_o the_o empire_n zeno_n a_o eutychian_a and_o disannuller_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n miserable_o rend_v by_o the_o faction_n of_o those_o that_o hold_v some_o for_o the_o council_n and_o some_o against_o it_o and_o other_o neither_o for_o nor_o against_o it_o who_o they_o call_v neuter_n so_o long_o that_o after_o some_o change_n of_o patriarch_n sometime_o catholic_n and_o some_o time_n eutychian_o all_o the_o natural_a church_n of_o egypt_n and_o those_o of_o ethiopia_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o egyptian_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v remain_v and_o persevere_v still_o to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o eutychian_a heresy_n such_o be_v then_o in_o the_o east_n under_o the_o emperor_n abuse_v their_o authority_n the_o designation_n and_o felicity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o such_o be_v the_o facility_n even_o for_o child_n except_o those_o that_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o know_v the_o robber_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o pastor_n to_o drive_v away_o the_o evil_a from_o among_o they_o for_o as_o for_o the_o west_n the_o patriarshipp_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o have_v this_o particular_a blessing_n that_o within_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o extent_n thereof_o the_o catholic_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o infidelity_n of_o the_o emperor_n have_v be_v without_o comparison_n more_o visible_a and_o more_o eminent_a as_o be_v the_o ensign_n colonel_n and_o that_o where_o to_o the_o other_o ought_v to_o have_v regard_n and_o under_o which_o they_o shall_v gather_v themselves_o then_o in_o the_o other_o patriarkship_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o what_o s._n hierom_n write_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o history_n of_o former_a time_n 57_o when_o he_o say_v to_o pope_n damasus_n the_o wicked_a child_n have_v disperse_v their_o patrimony_n among_o you_o 〈◊〉_d be_v preserve_v uncorrupted_a the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d s._n leo_n seem_v to_o say_v it_o inform_v of_o a_o prophecy_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o follow_v who_o pronounce_v that_o none_o of_o the_o patriarchall_a 〈◊〉_d save_v that_o of_o rome_n shall_v remain_v firm_a and_o stable_a what_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v wrought_v to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n ii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n for_o after_o the_o empire_n be_v overthrow_v and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n change_v new_a government_n have_v rise_v up_o many_o in_o number_n different_a in_o manner_n distinct_a in_o language_n law_n and_o institution_n the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v draw_v after_o it_o the_o division_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o say_v now_o to_o have_v serve_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o union_n and_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v cease_v by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o reply_n the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n have_v not_o
cause_v the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o in_o the_o west_n for_o whatsoever_o multitude_n of_o government_n have_v have_v place_n there_o under_o the_o title_n of_o empire_n kingdom_n principality_n and_o common_a wealth_n and_o whatsoever_o difference_n of_o manner_n language_n law_n and_o institution_n that_o have_v reign_v there_o the_o church_n have_v be_v no_o more_o visible_a in_o the_o time_n when_o the_o empire_n be_v one_o and_o rule_v over_o all_o the_o east_n and_o west_n than_o it_o have_v be_v under_o this_o diversity_n of_o prince_n and_o government_n also_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n only_o for_o the_o time_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v but_o one_o temporal_a monarch_n in_o the_o world_n if_o ever_o that_o title_n can_v have_v belong_v to_o any_o prince_n but_o also_o for_o that_o time_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v several_a king_n and_o administrator_n of_o estate_n according_a to_o this_o prophecy_n 101._o of_o the_o psalmist_n the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v agree_v in_o one_o to_o serve_v our_o 〈◊〉_d lord_n which_o cause_v s._n augustine_n to_o say_v under_o colour_n that_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n kingdom_n be_v often_o divide_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o christian_a unity_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v on_o either_o part_n and_o indeed_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v not_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o from_o the_o relation_n to_o a_o visible_a centre_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n it_o appear_v sufficient_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a unity_n and_o extent_n of_o the_o empire_n when_o the_o christian_n which_o be_v under_o firmus_n king_n of_o the_o barbarian_n in_o africa_n under_o mania_n queen_n of_o the_o saracen_n under_o cosroes_n king_n of_o persia_n state_n all_o distinct_a yea_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o time_n enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o after_o in_o damascus_n and_o other_o neighbour_a province_n under_o the_o king_n of_o the_o agarenians_n do_v all_o agree_n in_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o as_o for_o the_o devision_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o east_n every_o one_o know_v that_o that_o of_o egypt_n and_o ethiopia_n have_v begin_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o of_o the_o armenian_n likewise_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o decision_n make_v against_o they_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v under_o justinian_n 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o of_o the_o nestorian_n and_o jacobite_n which_o have_v yet_o to_o this_o day_n their_o sect_n in_o mesopotamia_n &_o other_o part_n of_o asia_n likewise_o and_o as_o for_o the_o greek_a church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o although_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v divide_v since_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o empire_n nevertheless_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o division_n be_v not_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n under_o which_o it_o persevere_v yet_o many_o year_n in_o unity_n with_o the_o latin_a but_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o two_o competitor_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n ignatius_n and_o photius_n to_o which_o to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o last_a heresy_n be_v add_v and_o which_o the_o emperor_n according_a as_o they_o have_v be_v good_a or_o evil_n have_v endeavour_v themselves_o to_o foment_n or_o stop_n and_o there_o have_v not_o want_v general_a counsel_n even_o of_o the_o two_o several_a church_n to_o extinguish_v this_o division_n when_o they_o have_v desire_v it_o for_o history_n be_v full_a of_o these_o example_n witness_n that_o which_o be_v hold_v at_o constantinople_n under_o the_o emperor_n basilius_n for_o the_o restitution_n of_o ignatius_n that_o which_o be_v hold_v under_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o which_o we_o call_v the_o great_a council_n of_o lateran_n to_o reunite_v the_o greek_a church_n with_o the_o latin_a and_o that_o which_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o same_o effect_n at_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o at_o which_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o greece_n assist_v in_o person_n as_o also_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o greek_a emperor_n &_o after_o of_o the_o mahometan_a prince_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o church_n that_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o syrian_a tongue_n who_o we_o call_v maronites_n from_o persevere_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o this_o variety_n and_o division_n of_o sect_n in_o the_o east_n can_v not_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o empire_n since_o in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o empire_n be_v most_o unite_v these_o trouble_n and_o innovation_n have_v such_o place_n therein_o as_o socrates_n and_o sozomene_n do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n set_v the_o mount_n tuscis_fw-la in_o illiria_n for_o a_o bind_v between_o the_o quiet_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tempest_n and_o turbulencie_n of_o heretic_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o want_n of_o constancy_n of_o the_o eastern_a people_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o will_v show_v that_o this_o prophecy_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v 16_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o have_v have_v some_o more_o special_a effect_n for_o the_o sea_n of_o s._n peter_n then_o for_o those_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n according_a to_o that_o oracle_n of_o the_o great_a leo_n beside_o the_o stone_n 52._o that_o our_o lord_n hat_n set_v for_o a_o foundation_n no_o other_o building_n shall_v be_v steadfast_a of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n chapt_n iii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n since_o that_o time_n the_o catholic_a church_n in_o truth_n have_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v for_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o who_o be_v found_v on_o christ_n the_o true_a stone_n and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n and_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o reply_n that_o some_o time_n the_o father_n expound_v these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o that_o some_o time_n they_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n and_o say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v found_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n they_o be_v not_o contrary_a exposition_n the_o one_o exclude_v the_o other_o but_o conjoint_n the_o one_o include_v the_o other_o for_o they_o intend_v the_o church_n to_o speak_v the_o school_n language_n be_v build_v causallie_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o formal_o upon_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o confession_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o cause_n werefore_o christ_n choose_v he_o to_o constitute_v he_o for_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o church_n by_o that_o say_v saint_n hilary_n the_o bless_a confession_n have_v obtain_v his_o reward_n and_o 16._o that_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n have_v be_v that_o upon_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v proper_o build_v his_o church_n so_o as_o to_o say_v that_o his_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o confessio_fw-la of_o peter_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n 61._o but_o it_o be_v to_o express_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o he_o no_o more_o than_o to_o sale_n with_o saint_n hierome_n that_o peter_n walk_v not_o upon_o the_o water_n but_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o saint_n peter_n walk_v true_o proper_o and_o formal_o upon_o the_o water_n but_o it_o be_v to_o express_v that_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v he_o walk_v there_o be_v not_o the_o activity_n or_o natural_a virtue_n of_o his_o person_n but_o the_o faith_n that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n and_o therefore_o as_o these_o two_o proposition_n the_o faith_n of_o peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n and_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n be_v both_o true_a but_o in_o a_o different_a sense_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n causallie_o as_o the_o schooleme_a sare_z that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n walk_v there_o and_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n walk_v there_o true_o proper_o and_o formal_o so_o these_o two_o proposition_n the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o
the_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n be_v both_o joint_o true_a but_o in_o different_a sense_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o causal_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n rather_o than_o upon_o that_o of_o any_o other_o apostle_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o primacy_n of_o this_o confession_n not_o proceed_v nor_o prevent_v from_o or_o by_o any_o humane_a instruction_n but_o proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o pure_a revelation_n of_o god_n the_o other_o apostle_n be_v silent_a &_o not_o know_v what_o to_o answer_v be_v the_o cause_n in_o favour_n whereof_o christ_n choose_v prefer_v he_o before_o all_o other_o saint_n peter_n to_o constitute_v he_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o upon_o who_o ministry_n by_o prefer_v he_o before_o all_o other_o christ_n have_v build_v and_o edify_v his_o church_n but_o the_o differenc_n of_o these_o two_o exposition_n be_v that_o the_o one_o be_v immediate_a and_o the_o other_o mediate_v the_o one_o direct_a and_o the_o other_o collateral_a the_o one_o literal_a and_o the_o other_o moral_a the_o one_o original_a and_o perpetual_a and_o the_o other_o accessory_a and_o temporal_a the_o one_o consign_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o other_o introduce_v by_o occasion_n for_o before_o the_o arrian_n be_v rise_v up_o that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o the_o age_n of_o constantine_n and_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nicaea_n the_o interpretation_n that_o be_v current_n in_o the_o church_n be_v that_o not_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n but_o of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n as_o when_o 〈◊〉_d say_v in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n against_o heretic_n be_v there_o 32._o any_o thing_n conceal_v from_o peter_n who_o be_v call_v the_o stone_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n and_o origen_n see_v what_o be_v say_v to_o the_o great_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o solid_a stone_n upon_o which_o christ_n have_v build_v his_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o peter_n upon_o who_o the_o 5._o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v build_v against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o in_o the_o comentarie_a upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n translate_v by_o saint_n 15._o hierome_n when_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n and_o that_o upon_o he_o as_o upon_o a_o stone_n the_o church_n be_v build_v the_o confession_n of_o any_o other_o virtue_n be_v not_o exact_v of_o he_o but_o only_o that_o of_o charity_n and_o s._n cyprian_n 5._o peter_n who_o the_o lord_n choose_v first_o and_o upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o again_o god_n be_v one_o and_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o chair_n be_v one_o build_v by_o 71._o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o peter_n but_o after_o the_o come_n of_o constantine_n when_o 4._o the_o arrian_n have_v lift_v themselves_o up_o against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n find_v no_o passage_n in_o the_o scripture_n more_o express_a to_o prove_v unto_o they_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n not_o by_o adoption_n but_o 16._o by_o nature_n than_o this_o confession_n of_o saint_n peter_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n in_o which_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o word_n live_v have_v be_v express_o insert_v to_o show_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n by_o generation_n for_o as_o much_o as_o to_o engender_v as_o say_v the_o philosopher_n be_v proper_a to_o live_a thing_n they_o take_v care_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o dignity_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o because_o that_o in_o favour_n thereof_o and_o for_o it_o s._n peter_n have_v be_v constitute_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o license_v themselves_o to_o call_v it_o by_o metonimy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o translation_n of_o the_o name_n from_o the_o effect_n to_o the_o cause_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o more_o occasion_n to_o declaim_v against_o those_o that_o destroy_v it_o in_o reproach_v they_o that_o they_o ruin_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o confession_n in_o favour_n whereof_o and_o for_o who_o cause_n he_o that_o have_v make_v it_o have_v be_v constitute_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o nevertheless_o to_o show_v that_o they_o intend_v not_o in_o do_v this_o to_o exclude_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n from_o be_v the_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o the_o same_o father_n have_v say_v in_o one_o place_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n as_o causal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o say_v it_o in_o a_o other_o yea_o often_o time_n in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n as_o formal_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o appear_v by_o saint_n hilary_n who_o 6_o dispute_v in_o his_o work_n of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o arrian_n after_o he_o have_v say_v this_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o faith_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v disable_v against_o she_o this_o faith_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n add_v immediate_o after_o to_o declare_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v intend_v of_o the_o say_v of_o saint_n peter_n causallie_o and_o meritoriouslie_o but_o of_o his_o person_n formal_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o confession_n have_v only_o be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n for_o which_o saint_n peter_n have_v receive_v these_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n that_o have_v proper_o and_o formal_o receive_v ibidem_fw-la they_o this_o be_v he_o that_o in_o the_o silence_n of_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n acknowledge_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o human_a infirmity_n the_o sonn_n of_o god_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o bless_a faith_n a_o supereminent_a place_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o have_v confess_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o sonn_n of_o god_n and_o for_o that_o he_o be_v call_v bless_a this_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o assurauce_n of_o eternity_n from_o hence_o he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o 〈◊〉_d from_o hence_o his_o earthly_a judgment_n become_v heavenly_a and_o a_o little_a before_o after_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o bless_a simon_n be_v submit_v 10_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o very_a place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n 16._o christ_n the_o confession_n of_o peter_n have_v receive_v a_o true_o worthiereward_n ibidem_fw-la and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o title_n of_o a_o new_a name_n bless_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o worthy_a stone_n of_o her_o edification_n that_o destroy_v the_o law_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o deep_n and_o all_o the_o prison_n of_o death_n o_o bless_a porter_n of_o heaven_n to_o who_o arbitrement_n the_o key_n of_o the_o eternal_a entry_n be_v deliver_v who_o judgment_n on_o earth_n have_v authority_n to_o prejudge_v in_o heaven_n and_o elsewhere_o christ_n have_v so_o great_a a_o zeal_n to_o suffer_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o human_a kind_n as_o peter_n the_o first_o confessor_n of_o the_o sonn_n of_o god_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o porter_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n the_o judge_n of_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n dissuade_v he_o he_o call_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o satan_n and_o so_o saint_v chrysostome_n 13._o interpret_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v sometime_o of_o his_o faith_n upon_o this_o stone_n say_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o sometime_o 6._o of_o his_o person_n he_o promise_v say_v he_o to_o make_v a_o fisherman_n more_o solid_a than_o any_o kind_n of_o stone_n and_o upon_o the_o fiftith_n psalm_n hear_v what_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n that_o pillar_n that_o foundation_n and_o therefore_o call_v peter_n as_o make_v a_o rock_n by_o faith_n and_o again_o that_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n that_o basis_n of_o 4_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v add_v of_o the_o apostolic_a flock_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n do_v even_o the_o same_o sometime_o of_o his_o faith_n he_o have_v say_v he_o call_v the_o immutable_a faith_n of_o peter_n his_o disciple_n a_o rock_n and_o sometime_o of_o his_o
and_o root_n of_o this_o unity_n and_o by_o relation_n and_o adherence_n whereto_o all_o the_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v manitain_v in_o unity_n for_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v plural_a by_o themselves_o and_o be_v not_o one_o with_o local_a unity_n can_v without_o lose_v their_o undivided_a plurality_n be_v reduce_v to_o a_o visible_a unity_n unless_o by_o relation_n to_o some_o thing_n which_o by_o itself_o may_v be_v visible_o one_o and_o secondlie_o to_o maintain_v this_o unity_n it_o be_v necessary_a further_o beside_o the_o internal_a authority_n essential_a to_o the_o apostleship_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o other_o external_a authority_n and_o accessary_a to_o the_o apostleship_n which_o may_v have_v the_o superintendencie_n over_o the_o care_n of_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n to_o cause_v the_o apostle_n to_o exercise_v their_o apostleship_n in_o unity_n and_o as_o the_o office_n of_o the_o cause_n be_v to_o rule_v his_o effect_n he_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o beginning_n and_o original_n of_o this_o unity_n shall_v likewise_o have_v the_o superintendencie_n over_o the_o rest_n for_o what_o concern_v the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o to_o he_o shall_v belong_v the_o supereminent_a jurisdiction_n over_o thing_n necessary_a to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o unity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v over_o thing_n necessary_a to_o prevent_v schism_n and_o hinder_v the_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o be_v the_o distinction_n and_o distribution_n either_o mediate_v or_o immediate_a ofiurisdiction_n the_o suspension_n &_o limitation_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o other_o such_o like_a not_o that_o the_o apostle_n for_o their_o maintenance_n in_o unity_n have_v need_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o authority_n shall_v be_v practise_v so_o evident_o over_o they_o as_o over_o their_o successor_n because_o of_o the_o assistance_n that_o they_o have_v every_o one_o in_o particular_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o to_o the_o end_n to_o propound_v to_o the_o church_n a_o form_n and_o a_o model_n of_o the_o order_n that_o she_o shall_v keep_v after_o their_o decease_n 〈◊〉_d as_o although_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o council_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o decide_v question_n of_o religion_n whereof_o every_o particular_a apostle_n may_v be_v inform_v with_o all_o fullnes_n and_o certainty_n nevertheless_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v that_o they_o shall_v use_v this_o form_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o legal_a thing_n to_o leave_v it_o for_o a_o pattern_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o succeed_a age_n in_o like_a occurrence_n it_o be_v then_o the_o internal_a authority_n and_o essential_a to_o the_o apostleship_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o reveal_v matter_n of_o faith_n with_o assurance_n of_o infallibility_n to_o make_v canonical_a write_n to_o institute_v the_o first_o mission_n of_o pastor_n remit_v sin_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o other_o the_o like_a that_o saint_n cyprian_n speak_v of_o when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v endue_v with_o equal_a authority_n and_o not_o of_o the_o external_a authority_n and_o accidental_a to_o the_o apostleship_n which_o be_v institute_v to_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v exercise_v in_o unity_n this_o appear_v first_o because_o he_o touch_v before_o and_o after_o the_o original_n eccl._n of_o unity_n the_o lord_n say_v he_o build_v the_o church_n upon_o he_o be_v one_o and_o command_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o although_o he_o confer_v like_o power_n after_o his_o resurrection_n unto_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o say_v to_o they_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o &c_n &c_n yet_o to_o manifest_a unity_n he_o constitute_v the_o chair_n one_o and_o dispose_v by_o his_o authority_n that_o the_o original_n thereof_o shall_v take_v beginning_n from_o one_o that_o certain_o that_o peter_n be_v the_o other_o apostle_n be_v also_o endue_v with_o a_o like_a share_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n but_o the_o original_n take_v his_o beginning_n from_o one_o that_o the_o church_n &_o the_o chair_n may_v appear_v to_o be_v one_o and_o a_o little_a after_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a manuscript_n ibidem_fw-la and_o the_o citation_n of_o juon_n and_o gratian_n he_o that_o abandon_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v can_v he_o be_v confident_a of_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o elsewhere_o peter_n upon_o who_o one_o god_n have_v build_v the_o church_n and_o from_o who_o he_o have_v institute_v the_o original_n of_o unity_n this_o appear_v second_o because_o he_o 55._o call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n proceed_v this_o appear_v three_o because_o saint_n hierome_n after_o he_o have_v repeat_v the_o same_o sentence_n of_o s._n cyprian_n 2._o in_o these_o word_n thou_o will_v tell_v i_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o peter_n though_o the_o like_v be_v do_v in_o a_o other_o place_n upon_o other_o and_o that_o the_o fortitude_n of_o the_o church_n do_v lean_a equal_o upon_o all_o add_v but_o among_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v to_o the_o end_n that_o a_o head_n be_v appoint_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a to_o saint_n peter_n except_o in_o those_o that_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o prevention_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n for_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o he_o have_v be_v constitute_v head_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o final_o because_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la countryman_n to_o the_o one_o to_o wit_n saint_n cyprian_n and_o timefellowe_n to_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n saint_n hierome_n cry_v out_o thou_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o at_o rome_n the_o episcopal_a chair_n have_v be_v place_v by_o the_o apostle_n peter_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o the_o unity_n be_v observe_v by_o all_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n shall_v not_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o to_o each_o one_o his_o chair_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o sinner_n and_o schismatic_n who_o against_o the_o only_a chair_n shall_v erect_v a_o other_o and_o a_o little_a after_o from_o whence_o be_v it_o then_o that_o you_o will_v usurp_v to_o yourselves_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n you_o that_o by_o your_o presumption_n and_o audacious_a sacrilege_n combat_n against_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n to_o the_o eleven_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o eusebius_n ill_o translate_v by_o russinus_n report_v from_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n that_o peter_n james_n and_o john_n establish_v james_n brother_n to_o our_o lord_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v from_o a_o faulty_a grammar_n a_o faultie-divinitie_n for_o the_o greek_a text_n say_v of_o jerusalem_n and_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v he_o james_n and_o john_n contest_v not_o for_o glory_n or_o opinion_n for_o greek_a word_n signify_v 2._o either_o but_o unanimouslie_o constitute_v james_n brother_n of_o our_o lord_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v to_o say_v james_n and_o john_n do_v no_o more_o stand_n upon_o it_o to_o dispute_v for_o honour_n with_o s._n peter_n as_o they_o have_v forme_o do_v but_o unite_a themselves_o with_o he_o to_o consecrate_v james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n whereto_o the_o word_n of_o chrisostome_n agree_v about_o the_o jealousy_n that_o james_n and_o john_n former_o have_v of_o the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n harken_v say_v he_o how_o this_o same_o john_n that_o late_o demand_v these_o thing_n afterward_o whole_o yield_v the_o primacy_n to_o peter_n to_o the_o twelve_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o proposition_n make_v by_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o act_n to_o substitute_v a_o other_o apostle_n in_o steed_n of_o judas_n write_v see_v the_o modesty_n of_o james_n he_o have_v be_v make_v the_o greek_a say_v he_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o he_o say_v not_o a_o word_n upon_o this_o occasion_n consider_v also_o the_o singular_a modesty_n of_o the_o other_o disciple_n how_o they_o yield_v the_o throne_n to_o he_o and_o debate_v not_o more_o among_o themselves_o 1_o we_o answer_v that_o this_o objection_n be_v andabates_n fence_n for_o this_o concession_n of_o a_o throne_n have_v reference_n not_o to_o s._n james_n but_o to_o s._n peter_n who_o whilst_o he_o speak_v s._n james_n be_v so_o modest_a as_o although_o he_o be_v so_o excellent_a that_o he_o be_v after_o make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n as_o james_n and_o john_n son_n of_o zebedeus_n which_o have_v former_o be_v jealous_a of_o s._n
peter_n debate_v the_o primacy_n with_o he_o no_o long_o but_o yield_v he_o presidencie_n this_o appear_v as_o well_o by_o the_o text_n of_o the_o history_n where_o there_o be_v no_o track_n of_o respect_n give_v to_o saint_n james_n but_o to_o s._n peter_n only_o as_o by_o the_o time_n wherein_o s._n james_n be_v create_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o first_o act_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o substitution_n of_o mathias_n instead_o of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o history_n whereof_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v these_o word_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n and_o eusebius_n testify_v that_o the_o promotion_n of_o saint_n james_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o jerusalem_n happen_v afterward_o by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o in_o that_o action_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n yield_v presidencie_n to_o saint_n james_n because_o of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v both_o by_o this_o that_o saint_n chrisostome_n have_v write_v upon_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o 66._o saint_n matthew_n mark_v say_v he_o how_o this_o same_o john_n that_o late_o make_v such_o demand_n after_o whole_o yield_v the_o primacy_n to_o saint_n peter_n and_o by_o this_o that_o he_o add_v present_o after_o the_o place_n object_v this_o man_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o 3._o saint_n peter_n first_o constitute_v a_o doctor_n and_o say_v not_o we_o be_v enough_o to_o teach_v far_o be_v he_o from_o vain_a glory_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o take_v the_o first_o authority_n of_o the_o affair_n ibid._n as_o he_o that_o have_v all_o other_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n for_o to_o he_o christ_n have_v say_v and_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brother_n and_o by_o this_o that_o he_o protest_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o discourse_n peter_n say_v he_o both_o as_o full_a of_o 〈◊〉_d &_o as_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n the_o flock_n into_o his_o keep_n and_o as_o the_o first_o of_o the_o college_n always_o first_o begin_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o thirteen_o objection_n which_o be_v that_o saint_n chrisostome_n write_v upon_o the_o fifteen_o of_o the_o act_n that_o the_o principality_n be_v commit_v to_o james_n it_o be_v true_a but_o he_o speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o hierosolomitan_a church_n if_o indeed_o the_o greek_a word_n do_v in_o that_o place_n intend_v principality_n and_o not_o beginning_n and_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v not_o that_o james_n have_v be_v establish_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o ancient_a apostle_n and_o not_o of_o the_o new_a as_o saint_n paul_n and_o nevertheless_o that_o he_o take_v no_o exception_n to_o s._n paul_n for_o speak_v between_o s._n peter_n and_o he_o for_o what_o soever_o that_o greek_a word_n signify_v it_o be_v certain_a it_o can_v signify_v nothing_o but_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o not_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o s._n chrisostome_n himself_o testify_v elsewhere_o to_o have_v be_v grant_v to_o saint_n peter_n in_o these_o word_n for_o if_o any_o one_o ask_v i_o say_v he_o how_o do_v james_n 87._o obtain_v the_o sea_n of_o jerusalem_n i_o will_v answer_v that_o christ_n have_v constitute_v peter_n master_n not_o of_o that_o sea_n but_o of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o again_o christ_n have_v foretell_v peter_n great_a thing_n and_o have_v put_v the_o whole_a world_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o have_v pronounce_v martyrdom_n to_o he_o and_o she_o wed_v he_o great_a love_n than_o to_o the_o rest_n and_o indeed_o s._n chrisostome_n allege_v not_o this_o principality_n to_o show_v the_o modesty_n of_o saint_n james_n in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v not_o offend_v that_o saint_n peter_n have_v speak_v before_o he_o but_o to_o show_v the_o modesty_n of_o saint_n james_n in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v not_o offend_v that_o saint_n paul_n speak_v between_o saint_n peter_n and_o he_o a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o he_o treat_v not_o of_o the_o universal_a principality_n but_o of_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o which_o he_o make_v mention_n in_o this_o place_n because_o those_o that_o have_v move_v the_o trouble_n for_o which_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v be_v the_o jew_n and_o pharisee_n of_o jerusalem_n convert_v to_o christianity_n who_o be_v jealous_a to_o see_v that_o the_o gentile_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n without_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o because_o saint_n james_n have_v more_o especial_a credit_n in_o their_o behalf_n because_o he_o be_v not_o only_o their_o bishop_n but_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n which_o but_o a_o while_n before_o be_v metropolitan_a of_o the_o law_n and_o consequent_o it_o seem_v he_o shall_v be_v touch_v with_o a_o more_o strict_a interest_n to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n than_o any_o other_o and_o also_o that_o he_o have_v not_o go_v about_o with_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n to_o receive_v the_o gentile_n into_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n have_v not_o lose_v his_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o legalist_n it_o be_v say_v saint_n chrysostome_n a_o profitable_a providence_n that_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o those_o that_o be_v not_o to_o reside_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o he_o that_o teach_v the_o hierosolomitan_n be_v not_o refusable_a and_o that_o his_o opinion_n may_v not_o be_v depart_v from_o for_o these_o cause_n than_o saint_n james_n have_v by_o accident_n a_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o author_n of_o this_o scandal_n than_o the_o other_o apostle_n to_o preserve_v the_o which_o he_o do_v say_v saint_n chrisostome_n that_o which_o those_o aught_o to_o do_v that_o be_v constitute_v in_o great_a authority_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o suffer_v saint_n peter_n to_o speak_v more_o severelie_o and_o himself_o speak_v more_o gentle_o but_o that_o compare_v simple_o with_o saint_n peter_n he_o be_v either_o equal_a or_o superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n saint_n chrisostome_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v ever_o think_v it_o that_o contrariwise_o he_o cry_v out_o a_o loud_a peter_n be_v 87._o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o college_n and_o for_o this_o occasion_n paul_n go_v up_o to_o visit_v he_o let_v the_o rest_n alone_o and_o a_o little_a after_o christ_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o provostship_n of_o his_o brother_n ibid._n and_o upbraid_v he_o not_o with_o his_o denial_n of_o he_o nor_o reproach_v he_o with_o what_o be_v pass_v but_o say_v to_o he_o if_o thou_o love_v i_o be_v precedent_n of_o they_o brother_n and_o the_o same_o love_n that_o thou_o have_v in_o all_o thing_n show_v to_o i_o and_o whereof_o thou_o have_v boast_v show_v it_o now_o and_o that_o life_n that_o thou_o have_v say_v thou_o will_v lay_v down_o for_o i_o lie_v it_o down_o for_o my_o sheep_n and_o in_o the_o homily_n thirtith_v three_o upon_o saint_n mathew_n the_o first_o and_o the_o corypheos_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o man_n ignorant_a and_o without_o learning_n and_o in_o the_o homily_n fifty_o five_o not_o only_o the_o apostle_n be_v scandalize_v but_o also_o the_o corypheos_n that_o be_v to_o say_v sovereign_a of_o they_o all_o peter_z 2._o and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o priesthood_n christ_n commit_v the_o care_n of_o his_o sheep_n to_o peter_n and_o peter_n successor_n and_o in_o this_o do_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n agree_v aswell_o greek_a as_o latin_a thou_o see_v say_v saint_n gregory_n 26._o nazianzen_n among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n all_o sublime_a and_o worthy_a of_o election_n that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v call_v the_o rock_n and_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o and_o the_o other_o be_v more_o belove_a and_o lean_v upon_o the_o bosom_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o rest_n suffer_v the_o difference_n and_o saint_n ambrose_n the_o lord_n say_v he_o by_o 24_o these_o word_n love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o ask_v the_o question_n not_o to_o learn_v but_o to_o teach_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v himself_o exalt_v into_o heaven_n which_o be_v he_o who_o he_o will_v leave_v to_o we_o for_o the_o vicar_n of_o his_o love_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o because_o that_o of_o they_o all_o he_o only_o protest_v he_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o all_o and_o elsewhere_o with_o a_o full_a flood_n of_o tear_n the_o church_n rock_n diluit_fw-la do_v cleanse_v his_o crime_n at_o crowinge_v of_o the_o cock_n and_o s._n epiphanius_n christ_n have_v appoint_v peter_n to_o be_v the_o guide_n and_o leader_n of_o his_o
and_o not_o our_o mother_n as_o the_o first_o eve_n be_v who_o engender_v her_o child_n dead_a to_o salvation_n but_o as_o the_o second_o eve_n who_o engender_v her_o child_n live_v from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o saint_n hierome_n 3._o call_v the_o church_n the_o true_a eve_n mother_n of_o the_o live_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o heretical_a sect_n who_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o 9_o which_o they_o receive_v man_n into_o their_o communion_n oblige_v they_o to_o hold_v kill_v doctrine_n shall_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n he_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o earth_n will_v not_o give_v their_o child_n a_o scorpion_n for_o a_o egg_n or_o a_o serpent_n for_o a_o fish_n and_o how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v give_v she_o poison_n instead_o of_o wholesome_a food_n or_o that_o heretical_a sect_n who_o wine_n say_v saint_n hierom_n be_v the_o fury_n of_o dragon_n and_o the_o incurable_a fury_n of_o asp_n shall_v be_v church_n he_o teach_v 11_o we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o way_n the_o gate_n and_o entry_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yea_o for_o this_o cause_n himself_o often_o call_v it_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v then_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v therein_o obtain_v and_o the_o way_n how_o to_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o consequent_o that_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o who_o obligation_n she_o receive_v man_n into_o her_o communion_n there_o be_v none_o repugnant_a to_o salvation_n now_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a society_n that_o among_o the_o condition_n under_o which_o they_o receive_v man_n into_o their_o communion_n there_o be_v condition_n repugnant_a to_o salvation_n otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o be_v heretical_a &_o schismatical_a and_o so_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v heretical_a and_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o heretical_a society_n contrariwise_o not_o to_o be_v church_n nor_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o can_v be_v call_v church_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o false_o and_o equivocallie_o as_o a_o dead_a member_n that_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n be_v no_o member_n but_o equivocallie_o and_o by_o abuse_n of_o speech_n of_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n or_o a_o man_n either_o form_v in_o picture_n or_o raise_v in_o a_o sculpture_n be_v no_o man_n but_o equivocal_o &_o by_o abuse_n of_o speech_n by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o be_v to_o err_v against_o the_o essence_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o hold_v they_o for_o church_n or_o to_o reckon_v they_o in_o the_o totalitie_n of_o the_o catholic_a 73._o church_n and_o to_o this_o all_o the_o father_n agree_v heresy_n say_v clemens_n alexandrinus_n be_v equivocallie_o call_v church_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n novatianus_n do_v as_o ape_n do_v who_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v man_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o so_o will_v he_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o church_n though_o he_o have_v none_o and_o again_o when_o the_o novatian_n demand_v 22._o believe_v thou_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o holy_a church_n they_o lie_v in_o their_o interrogatory_n for_o they_o have_v no_o church_n and_o the_o elibertine_n council_n if_o any_o one_o pass_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n unto_o heresy_n and_o return_n again_o to_o the_o church_n episc._n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n we_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o limtt_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n those_o that_o affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o not_o very_a god_n and_o saint_n hierome_n heretic_n make_v in_o their_o church_n by_o false_a appellation_n that_o which_o they_o make_v when_o they_o be_v yet_o heathen_a and_o again_o no_o heretical_a congregation_n can_v be_v call_v advers._n the_o church_n os_fw-la christ._n and_o elsewhere_o in_o what_o church_n have_v he_o believe_v in_o that_o luciferian_n of_o the_o arrian_n but_o they_o have_v none_o and_o in_o the_o same_o work_n if_o thou_o hear_v in_o ibid._n any_o place_n of_o man_n denominate_v from_o any_o other_o then_o from_o christ_n as_o marcionites_n ualentinian_o montagnier_n or_o campite_n know_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n and_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la out_o of_o the_o only_a church_n which_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n other_o among_o heretic_n be_v esteem_v to_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o again_o there_o be_v one_o only_a church_n which_o can_v be_v among_o you_o and_o among_o we_o it_o remain_v then_o that_o she_o must_v be_v in_o one_o place_n and_o s._n augustine_n you_o be_v with_o we_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o in_o the_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n &c_n &c_n but_o you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o there_o be_v one_o catholic_a church_n upon_o which_o other_o 〈◊〉_d impose_v other_o name_n although_o themselves_o be_v all_o call_v by_o particular_a name_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o disavow_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o judge_n not_o preoccupate_v with_o favour_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a whereof_o they_o be_v all_o ambitious_a aught_o to_o be_v attribute_v and_o elsewhere_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n 149._o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o heretic_n she_o have_v be_v predesign_v before_o she_o be_v see_v and_o have_v be_v exhibit_v that_o she_o may_v be_v see_v and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o creed_n neither_o do_v the_o heretic_n belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o she_o love_v god_n nor_o the_o schismatickes_n because_o she_o love_v her_o neighbour_n and_o in_o the_o book_n against_o the_o fundamental_a epistle_n in_o this_o church_n final_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a detain_v i_o which_o this_o church_n alone_o among_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a heresy_n have_v so_o preserve_v as_o when_o a_o stranger_n ask_v where_o they_o assemble_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n there_o be_v no_o heretic_n dare_v she_o we_o his_o temple_n or_o his_o house_n and_o in_o his_o treatise_n upon_o saint_n john_n 4._o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v go_v out_o from_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v go_v out_o from_o the_o church_n faustinus_n be_v not_o precedent_n to_o a_o church_n but_o to_o a_o faction_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o glorify_v christ_n with_o a_o true_a glory_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o elsewhere_o add_v he_o be_v it_o among_o heretic_n be_v it_o among_o pagan_n his_o true_a glory_n upon_o earth_n can_v be_v and_o upon_o saint_n matthew_n verb._n jew_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n which_o do_v indeed_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n but_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o only_a church_n no_o other_o certain_o but_o only_o the_o catholic_a be_v without_o doubt_n like_o the_o pharisee_n who_o though_o they_o euang._n do_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v in_o christ._n and_o in_o 11._o the_o book_n of_o the_o method_n to_o cathecise_a the_o not_o instruct_v we_o must_v say_v he_o garnish_n and_o animate_v the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n against_o temptation_n and_o scandal_n c_o be_v it_o without_o or_o be_v it_o within_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d against_o gentile_n or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o heretic_n and_o within_o against_o the_o straw_n in_o the_o barn_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o 27._o again_o let_v not_o the_o enemy_n seduce_v thou_o not_o only_o by_o those_o that_o be_v without_o the_o conc._n church_n whether_o pagan_n or_o jew_n or_o heretic_n but_o even_o by_o those_o that_o thou_o see_v 71._o in_o the_o church_n evil_a liver_n and_o in_o the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n where_o he_o assist_v in_o person_n let_v not_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n be_v call_v church_n cod._n but_o mock-councell_n and_o the_o very_a law_n of_o the_o emperor_n heretic_n rash_o presume_v to_o call_v their_o conventicle_n church_n now_o if_o this_o have_v place_n in_o other_o 2._o heresy_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o be_v and_o title_n of_o a_o church_n be_v deny_v to_o they_o how_o much_o more_o in_o that_o of_o the_o eutychian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n which_o destroy_v not_o the_o wall_n the_o roof_n and_o the_o cover_n only_o but_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o edifice_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o which_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v build_v to_o wit_n christ_n the_o corner_n stone_n and_o maintain_v
church_n the_o privilege_n to_o conquer_v hell_n and_o to_o deliver_v mankind_n from_o the_o tyranny_n and_o oppression_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o name_n be_v become_v consecrate_v and_o affect_v to_o she_o alone_o and_o it_o have_v be_v forbid_v to_o communicate_v it_o any_o more_o to_o any_o other_o society_n either_o paga_n heretical_a or_o schismatical_a let_v not_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n say_v the_o fowrth_a council_n of_o carthage_n be_v call_v church_n but_o mock-councell_n and_o the_o very_a law_n of_o 71._o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o donation_n make_v to_o heretical_a conventicle_n which_o they_o presume_v rash_o to_o call_v church_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o reverend_a catholic_n church_n 5._o the_o second_o that_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o galatian_n and_o to_o the_o corinthian_n call_v their_o society_n church_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o galatian_n err_v in_o faith_n embrace_v the_o circumcision_n with_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o corinthian_n in_o not_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n but_o the_o snare_n here_o be_v manifest_a for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o particular_a person_n which_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o church_n the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o body_n of_o that_o church_n &_o under_o the_o codition_n whereof_o either_o express_a or_o tacit_a she_o receive_v man_n into_o her_o comunion_n &_o not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o every_o particular_a man_n stray_v fro_o the_o commo_fw-la doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o church_n hold_v against_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o body_n now_o it_o can_v be_v find_v that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n do_v ever_o hold_v that_o the_o dead_a do_v not_o rise_v again_o nor_o that_o she_o have_v exact_v that_o belief_n from_o those_o that_o enter_v into_o her_o communion_n but_o only_o that_o among_o the_o corinthian_n there_o be_v some_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a if_o christ_n say_v s._n paul_n be_v preach_v to_o have_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a how_o be_v it_o that_o there_o be_v some_o among_o you_o that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o s._n paul_n make_v his_o remonstrance_n in_o common_a it_o be_v to_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v seduce_v by_o they_o which_o speak_v this_o language_n suffer_v not_o yourselves_o say_v he_o to_o be_v seduce_v evil_a word_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n but_o not_o that_o he_o suppose_v they_o believe_v it_o contrariwise_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o remain_v firm_a in_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v and_o therefore_o my_o brother_n say_v he_o be_v steadfast_a and_o unmoveable_a and_o for_o the_o galatian_n so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o that_o error_n which_o saint_n paul_n cry_v out_o against_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o galatian_n as_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o which_o rebel_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o galatian_n which_o doctrine_n saint_n paul_n dispute_v as_o if_o all_o the_o galatian_n have_v embrace_v it_o not_o that_o they_o do_v do_v so_o but_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o do_v so_o as_o he_o testify_v to_o they_o in_o these_o word_n i_o have_v this_o confidence_n of_o you_o in_o our_o lord_n that_o 6._o you_o will_v have_v no_o other_o belief_n but_o that_o he_o that_o trouble_v you_o shall_v bear_v his_o judgement_n whosoever_o he_o be_v and_o again_o if_o a_o man_n be_v find_v in_o any_o crime_n do_v you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a instruct_v he_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n and_o that_o this_o be_v 48_o the_o true_a intent_n of_o saint_n paul_n saint_n augustine_n teach_v we_o when_o he_o write_v to_o vincentius_n rogatist_n thou_o may_v say_v even_o as_o well_o that_o many_o of_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n be_v not_o when_o the_o apostle_n cry_v out_o o_o foolish_a galatian_n who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o and_o a_o while_n after_o the_o canonical_a ibid._n scripture_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o make_v their_o reprehcnsion_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v the_o word_n be_v address_v to_o all_o and_o nevertheless_o it_o concern_v but_o some_o few_o the_o three_o be_v that_o saint_n augustine_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n contr_n write_v that_o the_o church_n beget_v all_o christian_n by_o baptism_n from_o whence_o they_o will_v infer_v that_o all_o those_o then_o that_o be_v baptize_v as_o well_o catholik_o 14._o as_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o he_o bring_v with_o it_o express_o this_o distinction_n either_o in_o herself_o or_o without_o herself_o to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n beget_v none_o but_o catholic_n only_a in_o herself_o as_o sara_n beget_v but_o isaac_n only_o in_o herself_o and_o that_o the_o rest_n the_o church_n beget_v without_o herself_o for_o although_o ishmael_n be_v not_o beget_v in_o the_o body_n of_o sara_n but_o in_o the_o body_n of_o agar_n yet_o he_o be_v in_o a_o sort_n beget_v by_o sara_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v beget_v by_o she_o that_o belong_v to_o sara_n and_o be_v saras_n nuptial_a right_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o than_o the_o heretic_n be_v beget_v by_o baptism_n out_o of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v the_o church_n that_o beget_v they_o even_o out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o baptism_n whereby_o they_o be_v beget_v and_o which_o those_o that_o baptise_v they_o have_v carry_v out_o of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n and_o be_v of_o the_o conjugal_a right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o heresy_n by_o which_o mean_n when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v baptise_v supra_fw-la they_o again_o the_o church_n say_v he_o beget_v all_o christian_n by_o baptism_n be_v it_o in_o herself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o her_o bowel_n or_o without_o herself_o that_o be_v to_o be_v to_o say_v of_o her_o husband_n seed_n be_v it_o in_o herself_o or_o in_o the_o bond-woeman_n whereby_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o teach_v that_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o contrariwise_o he_o plain_o affirm_v hereby_o that_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o thing_n wherein_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n be_v at_o agreement_n be_v that_o heretic_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o thing_n where_o about_o they_o disagree_v be_v that_o the_o donatist_n hold_v that_o baptism_n can_v not_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o heretic_n can_v not_o have_v it_o and_o catholic_v contrariwise_o maintain_v that_o baptism_n may_v to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o heretic_n though_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n leave_v not_o to_o have_v it_o the_o church_n say_v saint_n augustine_n compare_v to_o paradise_n teach_v we_o that_o baptism_n 1._o may_v be_v have_v without_o she_o but_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o beatitude_n none_o can_v receive_v or_o have_v out_o of_o she_o for_o the_o flood_n of_o the_o fountain_n of_o paradise_n run_v abowdantlie_o forth_o of_o it_o and_o in_o the_o book_n follow_v what_o be_v say_v he_o this_o doctrine_n that_o a_o heretic_n be_v pretend_v to_o have_v no_o baptism_n because_o he_o have_v no_o church_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o there_o be_v some_o that_o say_v that_o baptism_n and_o the_o church_n can_v be_v separate_v and_o divide_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o elsewhere_o but_o of_o the_o church_n and_o against_o the_o church_n they_o have_v hold_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o in_o a_o civil_a war_n they_o have_v fight_v bear_v our_o own_o banner_n against_o us._n from_o whence_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o impertinency_n of_o those_o that_o conclude_v that_o because_o heretical_a sect_n have_v baptism_n therefore_o they_o be_v church_n the_o fowrth_a 〈◊〉_d be_v that_o saint_n hierome_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n say_v to_o hilary_n a_o luciferian_a deacon_n i_o be_o a_o harlott_n but_o yet_o i_o be_o thy_o mother_n i_o commit_v adultery_n with_o arius_n and_o i_o do_v so_o before_o with_o praxea_n 〈◊〉_d cerinthus_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o manifest_v that_o this_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a equivocation_n by_o which_o they_o attribute_v that_o to_o s._n hierome_n as_o speak_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n which_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o adversary_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o heretic_n against_o who_o he_o dispute_v for_o to_o this_o that_o some_o add_v that_o a_o lie_a man_n leave_v to_o be_v true_o a_o man_n although_o he_o be_v not_o a_o true_a
alone_o and_o from_o belong_v to_o she_o alone_o no_o more_o than_o when_o in_o a_o common_a weal_n the_o factious_a part_n and_o which_o separate_v itself_o from_o the_o state_n and_o revolte_n against_o the_o true_a preserver_n of_o the_o estate_n come_v to_o be_v divide_v from_o that_o which_o remain_v in_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o estate_n this_o division_n hinder_v not_o the_o part_n which_o rest_v unite_v with_o the_o estate_n from_o preserve_v the_o right_a and_o title_n of_o the_o universallitie_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v by_o it_o alone_o from_o be_v account_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n who_o whole_a be_v be_v preserve_v in_o this_o part_n alone_o the_o other_o by_o the_o desertion_n thereof_o have_v lose_v all_o the_o part_n it_o have_v in_o the_o name_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a chap._n ix_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n to_o attribute_n to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a as_o proper_a to_o themselves_o alone_o the_o reply_n when_o we_o use_v this_o train_n of_o epithet_n the_o catholic_a apostolic_a roman_a church_n we_o intend_v not_o by_o the_o word_n roman_n the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o the_o church_n which_o adhere_v and_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o as_o by_o the_o jewish_a church_n we_o intend_v not_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n only_o but_o the_o line_n of_o levi_n and_o benjamin_n and_o many_o relic_n of_o the_o line_n which_o be_v join_v therewith_o for_o saint_n john_n baptist_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levy_n and_o saint_n paul_n of_o that_o of_o benjamin_n &_o anna_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o the_o jewish_a church_n but_o they_o be_v call_v jew_n and_o jewish_a people_n because_o of_o the_o adherence_n and_o communion_n that_o they_o have_v with_o the_o principal_a tribe_n which_o be_v that_o of_o juda_n so_o all_o the_o other_o church_n which_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a in_o what_o soever_o part_n they_o be_v constitute_v be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o common_a word_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o we_o say_v the_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o roman_a church_n because_o they_o hold_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o centre_n and_o original_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n saint_n ambrose_n say_v that_o his_o brother_n inquire_v if_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o of_o the_o city_n of_o sardica_n where_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v baptize_v consent_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v add_v he_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n saint_n hierome_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n glorify_v herself_o that_o she_o participate_v with_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o pope_n hormisdas_n we_o promise_v not_o to_o recite_v among_o the_o sacred_a mistiry_n the_o name_n of_o those_o which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cathoick_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o consent_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n beda_n use_v these_o word_n our_o mother_n the_o roman_a church_n in_o this_o same_o sense_n they_o comprehend_v under_o the_o greek_a church_n not_o only_o the_o natuaall_a greek_n but_o the_o russian_n and_o muscovite_n although_o they_o be_v distinct_a in_o nation_n and_o in_o language_n from_o the_o greek_n yea_o even_o have_v their_o service_n in_o a_o tongue_n quite_o different_a for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o adhere_v to_o the_o creek_n church_n not_o that_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n may_v not_o also_o in_o a_o certain_a regard_n be_v call_v catholic_a for_o the_o word_n catholic_a be_v take_v in_o three_o sort_n to_o wit_n either_o formal_o or_o causallie_o or_o participativelie_a formal_o the_o only_a universal_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o society_n of_o all_o the_o true_a particular_a church_n unite_v in_o ourselves_o same_o communion_n be_v call_v catholic_a causallie_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a for_o as_o much_o as_o she_o infuse_v universality_n into_o all_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o it_o be_v so_o to_o constitute_v universality_n there_o must_v be_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o may_v analogicallie_o be_v instead_o of_o matter_n thereto_o to_o wit_n the_o multitude_n for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o multitude_n there_o can_v be_v no_o universality_n and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v instead_n of_o form_n thereto_o to_o wit_n unity_n for_o a_o multitude_n without_o unity_n make_v no_o universality_n take_v away_o say_v saint_n augustine_n the_o unity_n from_o the_o multitude_n and_o it_o be_v a_o tumult_n but_o bring_v in_o unity_n and_o it_o be_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o 26._o the_o roman_a church_n which_o as_o centre_n and_o beginning_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n infuse_v unity_n which_o be_v the_o form_n of_o universality_n into_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o by_o consequent_a cause_v universality_n in_o she_o may_v be_v call_v catholic_a causallie_n though_o in_o she_o own_o be_v she_o be_v particular_a no_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o the_o galley_n to_o which_o all_o the_o other_o galley_n of_o a_o fleet_n have_v relation_n of_o dependency_n and_o correspondency_n be_v call_v the_o general_n although_o she_o be_v but_o one_o particular_a galley_n because_o it_o be_v she_o that_o by_o the_o relation_n that_o all_o other_o have_v to_o she_o give_v unity_n to_o the_o total_a and_o general_a body_n of_o the_o fleet_n and_o final_o particular_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_a participative_o because_o they_o agree_v and_o participate_v in_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n address_v her_o epistle_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o philomilion_n and_o to_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v throughout_o the_o world_n of_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v cut_n of_o the_o rest_n from_o her_o communion_n chap._n x._o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o to_o exclude_v from_o their_o communion_n all_o the_o rest_n which_o dissent_n from_o they_o in_o any_o thing_n or_o refuse_v the_o yoke_n of_o slavery_n the_o reply_n the_o most_o excellent_a king_n may_v be_v please_v to_o remember_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o ancient_a author_n have_v write_v that_o oftentimes_o for_o one_o only_a word_n contrary_a to_o faith_n many_o heresy_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o ethiopian_n have_v not_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o refuse_v that_o which_o his_o majesty_n call_v the_o yoke_n of_o slavery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o superintendencie_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o for_o have_v embrace_v the_o sect_n of_o eutyches_n who_o with_o all_o his_o partaker_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o that_o even_o to_o this_o day_n they_o be_v all_o ready_a and_o have_v often_o offer_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n without_o oblige_v they_o to_o anathematise_v eutiche_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o as_o for_o the_o division_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o true_a cause_n thereof_o have_v be_v the_o schism_n fall_v out_o between_o ignatius_n lawful_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o the_o pope_n preserve_v in_o his_o communion_n and_o photius_n intrude_v into_o the_o patriarkship_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o which_o schism_n the_o greek_n add_v for_o a_o obstacle_n of_o reunion_n as_o the_o crabb_n cast_v the_o stone_n into_o the_o oyster_n to_o hinder_v it_o from_o shut_v itself_o again_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o schismatickes_n become_v flat_a heretic_n this_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o not_o the_o yoke_n of_o slavery_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o the_o which_o neither_o jgnatius_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o catholic_a predcessor_n have_v ever_o complain_v of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o heretic_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n chap._n xi_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v and_o so_o on_o the_o sudden_a to_o pronounce_v presumptuous_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n this_o denial_n be_v
that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o perish_v for_o since_o the_o excellent_a king_n will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o only_o assure_a mark_n to_o discern_v which_o either_o of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o call_v english_a or_o of_o we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v it_o that_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v doctrine_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o church_n that_o he_o call_v english_a and_o we_o be_v question_n which_o take_v away_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o that_o of_o the_o one_o or_o other_o society_n which_o err_v in_o these_o point_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o essential_a 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o church_n and_o destitute_a from_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o then_o if_o when_o luther_n come_v into_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o society_n neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a which_o hold_v that_o that_o the_o english_a church_n hold_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o point_n dispute_v between_o she_o and_o we_o it_o follow_v there_o be_v then_o no_o church_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o work_n entitle_v imperfect_a chap._n xvii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v and_o therefore_o the_o excellent_a king_n think_v that_o he_o ought_v with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o care_n in_o 124_o so_o great_a a_o flood_n of_o different_a opinion_n withdraw_v himself_o into_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o reply_n when_o nauplius_n king_n of_o the_o island_n of_o euboea_n now_o call_v negrepont_n will_v at_o the_o return_n from_o the_o siege_n of_o troy_n cause_n the_o fleet_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o be_v shipwrack_v to_o revenge_v the_o death_n of_o his_o sonn_n palamedes_n he_o set_v by_o night_n torch_n in_o form_n of_o a_o beacon_n upon_o one_o of_o the_o mountain_n of_o his_o island_n at_o the_o foot_n whereof_o the_o sea_n be_v full_a of_o bank_n cliff_n and_o rock_n so_o to_o draw_v their_o ship_n by_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o safe_a haven_n to_o run_v hazard_n and_o perish_v in_o those_o shore_n so_o whenantient_a heretic_n who_o saint_n augustine_n call_v mountain_n for_o shipwreck_n will_v cause_v the_o catholic_n to_o make_v shipwreck_n in_o faith_n the_o more_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v pernicious_a and_o mortal_a the_o more_o they_o have_v adorn_v and_o illustrate_v they_o with_o text_n and_o lamp_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o appear_v in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arrian_n who_o paint_v and_o colour_v their_o error_n with_o more_o than_o forty_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o by_o this_o art_n attempt_v to_o call_v man_n back_o from_o the_o external_a and_o sensible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v pretend_v by_o false_a ensign_n by_o those_o who_o have_v they_o not_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o only_a mark_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o interpretation_n whereof_o by_o their_o subtlety_n they_o make_v subject_a to_o as_o many_o deceit_n as_o there_o be_v word_n but_o above_o all_o this_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o writer_n from_o who_o his_o majesty_n borrow_v this_o language_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o passionate_a champion_n of_o the_o arrian_n for_o though_o he_o cite_v these_o word_n without_o name_v the_o father_n nevertheless_o both_o the_o term_n wherein_o they_o be_v couch_v and_o the_o track_n of_o those_o who_o have_v allege_v they_o before_o he_o to_o wit_n calvin_n in_o some_o of_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o institution_n &_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o work_n can_v suffer_v we_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v take_v from_o the_o author_n of_o the_o work_n entitle_v imperfect_a false_o attribute_v to_o saint_n chrysostome_n now_o that_o this_o author_n be_v not_o only_o a_o open_a arrian_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o eager_a and_o violent_a champion_n of_o the_o arrian_n it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o he_o call_v the_o trinity_n triangular_a impiety_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o homousian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 19_o of_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n heresy_n not_o but_o that_o i_o know_v well_o that_o he_o be_v sometime_o allege_v even_o by_o catholic_n with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n chrisostome_n under_o who_o name_n he_o have_v be_v first_o print_v at_o basle_n but_o because_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o allege_v he_o in_o place_n where_o he_o dispute_v not_o against_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v excellent_a and_o above_o all_o in_o the_o discourse_n of_o manner_n and_o a_o other_o to_o allege_v he_o in_o the_o place_n where_o he_o combat_n with_o deliberate_a purpose_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o his_o age_n as_o he_o do_v in_o that_o from_o whence_o the_o word_n be_v take_v which_o his_o majesty_n produce_v for_o behold_v the_o express_a term_n of_o the_o passage_n when_o you_o shall_v 49._o see_v the_o impious_a heresy_n which_o be_v the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n set_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n then_o let_v they_o which_o be_v in_o judea_n fly_v into_o the_o mountain_n that_o be_v to_o say_v let_v they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o christian_n society_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o lord_n then_o know_v that_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n of_o thing_n shall_v arrive_v in_o the_o last_o day_n for_o this_o cause_n command_v that_o the_o christian_n who_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a society_n be_v willing_a to_o receive_v the_o steadfastness_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o the_o scripture_n otherwise_o if_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n elsewhere_o they_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v and_o perish_v not_o discern_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n now_o that_o by_o this_o impious_a heresy_n and_o by_o this_o army_n of_o antichrist_n he_o intend_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v the_o equality_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n he_o plain_o show_v when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o homily_n that_o the_o great_a spiritual_a evil_n which_o have_v come_v upon_o the_o church_n have_v happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n and_o theodosius_n and_o that_o the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n be_v the_o heresy_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o have_v since_o they_o possess_v the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o basilicke_n that_o theodosius_n command_v to_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o the_o catholic_n and_o when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o former_a homily_n that_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o homousian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o that_o hold_v christ_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a which_o his_o father_n fight_v not_o only_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o even_o against_o the_o other_o heresy_n which_o hold_v not_o the_o like_a and_o in_o the_o nineten_v homily_n when_o he_o call_v the_o worshipper_n 3._o the_o trinity_n those_o that_o honour_v the_o triangular_a impiety_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o passage_n if_o so_o far_o from_o give_v favour_n to_o his_o majesty_n 48._o intention_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o manifeste_n how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v to_o reduce_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o only_a doctrine_n draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n since_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o point_n which_o of_o all_o other_o shall_v be_v most_o express_a in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o catholic_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n cleree_a in_o a_o testament_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o testator_n refuse_v all_o the_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o other_o way_n of_o disputation_n and_o burn_v with_o desire_n to_o fight_v by_o the_o only_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n disarm_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n to_o seek_v the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n chap._n xviii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_n and_o to_o seek_v according_a to_o the_o council_n that_o saint_n augustine_n heretofore_o give_v to_o the_o devatist_n the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n the_o reply_n when_o s._n augustine_n say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o 21._o church_n there_o be_v a_o question_n between_o the_o donatist_n and_o we_o where_o the_o church_n be_v what_o shall_v we_o they_o do_v shall_v we_o seek_v she_o
king_n answer_v to_o the_o first_o observation_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o hipothesis_n propose_v without_o many_o defect_n for_o so_o far_o be_v this_o english_a church_n from_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n which_o she_o honour_v and_o reverence_n as_o she_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o as_o much_o as_o she_o consent_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o reply_n i_o appeal_v from_o philip_n to_o philip_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n to_o himself_o for_o what_o do_v my_o first_o observation_n import_n yea_o according_a to_o the_o abridgement_n that_o this_o majesty_n have_v make_v of_o it_o but_o that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a do_v not_o only_o denote_v faith_n but_o also_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n will_v not_o suffer_v those_o to_o be_v call_v catholic_n who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n although_o they_o retain_v the_o faith_n thereof_o now_o how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n allege_v to_o show_v that_o this_o observation_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o his_o hypothesis_n without_o many_o error_n that_o he_o be_v not_o depart_v neither_o he_o nor_o his_o church_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o the_o observation_n wherein_o it_o be_v handle_v be_v that_o to_o be_v catholic_a it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a not_o to_o be_v separate_a from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o also_o not_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v it_o not_o fussicient_a to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o hipothesis_n and_o to_o except_v the_o most_o excellent_a king_n from_o the_o title_n of_o catholic_a that_o his_o majesty_n have_v separate_v himself_o not_o from_o the_o faith_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v not_o do_v so_o but_o from_o the_o only_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o the_o most_o excellent_a king_n say_v that_o she_o from_o who_o he_o have_v separate_v himself_o be_v not_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n as_o she_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o the_o father_n say_v that_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_a nor_o the_o reward_n of_o salvation_n can_v not_o be_v obtain_v must_v he_o not_o show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o alteration_n happen_v in_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o without_o which_o the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v preserve_v and_o beside_o this_o that_o he_o must_v find_v out_o and_o cause_n to_o appear_v a_o other_o society_n wherein_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o ministry_n both_o of_o the_o communion_n and_o of_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholieke_a church_n have_v continue_v and_o whereto_o he_o have_v range_v himself_o to_o the_o end_n that_o adhere_v thereto_o he_o may_v say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n but_o be_v return_v into_o it_o of_o the_o personal_a suceession_n of_o the_o bishop_n chap._n xxii_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v if_o we_o seek_v for_o the_o succession_n of_o person_n we_o have_v in_o be_v the_o name_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o succession_n uninterrupt_a from_o the_o first_o the_o reply_n it_o suffice_v not_o to_o constitute_v the_o personal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o some_o be_v enter_v in_o the_o steed_n of_o other_o but_o they_o must_v be_v enter_v with_o the_o same_o form_n and_o with_o the_o same_o condition_n essential_a to_o a_o bishopric_n that_o their_o predecessor_n enter_v withal_o no_o more_o than_o it_o suffice_v to_o make_v the_o priest_n of_o jeroboa_n successor_n to_o the_o true_a leviticall_a priest_n that_o he_o have_v drive_v away_o that_o they_o come_v into_o their_o place_n not_o be_v come_v in_o with_o condition_n necessary_a to_o succeed_v they_o and_o therefore_o whether_o the_o mission_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o england_n be_v a_o true_a ecclesiastical_a mission_n &_o make_v by_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n and_o with_o the_o just_a ecclesiastical_a form_n or_o rather_o a_o politic_a mission_n i_o forbear_v to_o dispute_v only_o i_o will_v say_v that_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o succession_n in_o the_o personal_a continuance_n of_o a_o bishop_n sea_n the_o one_o the_o succession_n of_o authority_n and_o the_o other_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o character_n whereof_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o english_a according_a to_o the_o principle_n common_a to_o they_o and_o we_o have_v not_o the_o one_o and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o according_a to_o their_o own_o particular_a principle_n they_o can_v have_v the_o other_o for_o there_o do_v meet_v together_o or_o concur_v according_a to_o we_o two_o condition_n in_o episcopal_a mission_n the_o one_o concern_v the_o collation_n of_o authority_n the_o other_o concern_v the_o impression_n of_o the_o character_n which_o come_v from_o the_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n which_o we_o conceive_v to_o imprint_v a_o seal_n which_o can_v be_v blot_v out_o now_o the_o condition_n which_o concern_v the_o character_n which_o we_o will_v here_o call_v sacramental_a mission_n may_v well_o be_v preserve_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o character_n can_v be_v blot_v out_o and_o consequent_o may_v be_v give_v though_o unlawfullie_o yet_o real_o out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o they_o that_o have_v carry_v it_o out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o which_o concern_v authority_n which_o we_o will_v call_v notwithstanding_o the_o barbarism_n of_o the_o word_n authoritative_a mission_n although_o it_o can_v be_v give_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o other_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v carry_v away_o nor_o give_v with_o the_o other_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o church_n from_o they_o to_o who_o she_o have_v give_v it_o when_o she_o shall_v judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o depose_v or_o degrade_v they_o as_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n depose_v narcissus_n menophantus_n and_o other_o who_o notwithstanding_o leave_v not_o to_o preserve_v the_o character_n of_o the_o sacrament_n even_o as_o the_o officer_n of_o a_o prince_n when_o they_o join_v themselves_o with_o a_o faction_n of_o rebel_n may_v carry_v with_o they_o the_o seal_n and_o the_o character_n of_o the_o patent_n of_o their_o office_n and_o preserve_v it_o out_o of_o the_o state_n and_o out_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o they_o can_v carry_v 〈◊〉_d the_o authority_n of_o their_o office_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o when_o they_o that_o have_v be_v degrade_v by_o the_o church_n or_o ordain_v out_o of_o the_o church_n return_v to_o the_o church_n the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o exercise_v their_o function_n must_v be_v restore_v to_o they_o either_o by_o a_o particular_a rehabilitation_n or_o by_o a_o public_a declaration_n that_o the_o church_n make_v to_o receive_v they_o into_o her_o communion_n with_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o charge_n which_o serve_v they_o for_o a_o general_a rehabilitation_n as_o when_o the_o arrian_n return_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o church_n restore_v to_o their_o bishop_n the_o lawful_a authority_n to_o administer_v the_o bishop_n rick_v whereof_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n have_v deprive_v they_o and_o rehabilitated_a they_o all_o at_o once_o by_o the_o public_a declaration_n that_o she_o make_v to_o admit_v they_o with_o the_o function_n of_o their_o charge_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o that_o be_v ordain_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o a_o other_o society_n then_o by_o the_o true_a church_n although_o they_o be_v indeed_o bishop_n as_o for_o the_o character_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nevertheless_o they_o be_v not_o bishop_n as_o for_o the_o function_n of_o authority_n and_o as_o many_o time_n as_o they_o shall_v pretend_v to_o use_v their_o authority_n without_o be_v rehabilitated_a by_o the_o church_n so_o often_o they_o commit_v sin_n and_o sacrilege_n let_v we_o consider_v say_v s._n hilary_n speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n what_o we_o do_v do_v we_o that_o anathematise_v they_o &c_n &c_n for_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v bishop_n synod_n we_o can_v be_v none_o and_o s._n athanasius_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o ordination_n of_o secundus_fw-la as_o make_v by_o the_o arrian_n shall_v have_v any_o force_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o 2._o s._n hierome_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n no_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n save_v those_o that_o lucifor_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o synod_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n
therefore_o the_o arrian_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o polonia_n or_o in_o transiluania_n may_v well_o pretend_v similitude_n of_o doctrine_n without_o the_o ancient_a arrian_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n but_o not_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n for_o as_o much_o as_o their_o doctrine_n have_v not_o be_v transmit_v by_o a_o live_a perpetual_a chain_n of_o teacher_n and_o p●●●●ons_n teach_v from_o the_o ancient_a arrian_n to_o they_o for_o as_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o high_a place_n be_v indeed_o one_o in_o similitude_n with_o that_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o serve_v for_o a_o begin_v to_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o mosaicell_n sacrifice_n but_o not_o one_o in_o unity_n of_o succession_n there_o be_v but_o the_o only_a fire_n preserve_v for_o this_o effect_n in_o the_o altar_n of_o jerusalem_n whicb_n be_v one_o in_o unity_n of_o succession_n with_o that_o so_o a_o subsequent_a doctrine_n may_v well_o be_v one_o in_o unity_n of_o similitude_n with_o a_o precedent_a doctrine_n without_o any_o flux_n of_o continuance_n to_o have_v be_v between_o they_o but_o a_o subsequent_a doctrine_n can_v be_v one_o in_o unity_n of_o succession_n with_o a_o precede_a doctrine_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v derive_v from_o it_o by_o a_o perpetual_a channel_n of_o instruction_n and_o by_o a_o uninterrupt_a train_n of_o teacher_n and_o person_n teach_v which_o be_v that_o that_o the_o father_n as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v call_v consanguinity_n or_o genealogy_n of_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n a_o propagation_n of_o doctrine_n derive_v without_o interruption_n from_o father_n to_o son_n as_o by_o a_o tree_n of_o consanguinity_n even_o as_o child_n be_v derive_v by_o a_o perpetual_a train_n of_o generation_n from_o their_o father_n from_o their_o grandfather_n and_o from_o their_o great_a grandfather_n blood_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n s._n athnasius_n after_o he_o have_v combat_v the_o arrian_n by_o the_o scrpture_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o their_o obstinancie_n make_v they_o indocill_n to_o his_o argument_n make_v use_v of_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n behold_v say_v he_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o doctrine_n deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o father_n to_o decret_a sonn_n you_o new_a jew_n and_o child_n of_o caiphas_n what_o predecessor_n can_v you_o show_v for_o synod_n your_o word_n and_o saint_n pacian_n against_o the_o novatian_n i_o hold_v myself_o assure_v contra_fw-la upon_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n content_v myself_o with_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o ancient_a arian_n congregation_n have_v never_o study_v discord_n and_o so_o whether_o she_o which_o be_v at_o this_o contra_fw-la day_n call_v the_o english_a church_n have_v similitude_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o father_n 3._o of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n in_o the_o point_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o she_o and_o we_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o question_n and_o which_o we_o deny_v that_o she_o can_v prove_v but_o that_o she_o have_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o four_o counsel_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o challenge_v for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o dare_v say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n that_o the_o english_a church_n hold_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o point_n contest_v between_o she_o and_o we_o be_v come_v by_o a_o perpetual_a and_o uninterrupt_a chain_n of_o teacher_n and_o person_n teach_v from_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o four_o coucell_n unto_o she_o see_v that_o without_o go_v high_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eigth_n she_o hold_v direct_o contrary_a to_o what_o she_o hold_v now_o i_o omit_v to_o say_v that_o beside_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o other_o three_o succession_n which_o be_v that_o of_o communion_n by_o which_o from_o age_n to_o age_n the_o most_o ancient_a in_o the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n receive_v into_o their_o communion_n those_o that_o come_v in_o after_o they_o and_o by_o this_o continuance_n and_o chain_n of_o communion_n the_o faithful_a of_o subsequent_a age_n communicate_v with_o they_o of_o precede_a age_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v not_o be_v between_o the_o member_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n and_o the_o member_n of_o she_o which_o at_o this_o day_n call_v herself_o the_o english_a church_n because_o their_o predecessor_n have_v exclude_v disinherit_v and_o excommunicate_v they_o for_o not_o only_o in_o the_o more_o ancient_a age_n the_o general_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v excommunicate_v by_o retail_v those_o which_o hold_v some_o one_o point_n other_o some_o a_o other_o of_o this_o rapsodie_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o puritan_n call_v reformation_n but_o particular_o the_o english_a church_n excommunicate_v in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o eigth_n those_o that_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n that_o she_o which_o be_v call_v the_o english_a church_n now_o hold_v of_o the_o hold_n of_o a_o council_n chap._n xxiv_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o king_n answer_v give_v we_o a_o free_a council_n and_o which_o shall_v not_o depend_v of_o the_o will_n of_o one_o 〈◊〉_d the_o reply_n if_o by_o the_o word_n alone_o his_o majesty_n intend_v the_o pope_n what_o council_n be_v ever_o more_o free_a in_o this_o regard_n than_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n which_o be_v celebrate_v in_o bythinia_n a_o province_n of_o asia_n out_o of_o the_o west_n and_o out_o of_o the_o patriarkshipp_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o in_o a_o other_o empire_n and_o where_o there_o be_v none_o of_o all_o the_o latin_a church_n but_o only_o two_o priest_n which_o represent_v the_o pope_n person_n or_o what_o council_n be_v ever_o more_o free_a in_o the_o same_o regard_n than_o the_o council_n off_o constance_z wherein_o then_o when_o the_o difference_n of_o faith_n be_v treat_v of_o because_o the_o papacy_n be_v in_o question_n not_o only_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o assist_v there_o but_o even_o all_o the_o three_o pretend_a pope_n where_o depose_v for_o what_o be_v practise_v against_o john_n husse_n &_o hierome_n of_o prage_n after_o they_o have_v again_o fall_v into_o the_o doctrine_n that_o they_o have_v abjure_v be_v do_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o competitor_n in_o the_o papacy_n be_v absent_a and_o while_o they_o proceed_v in_o contumacy_n against_o he_o even_o when_o they_o publish_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n or_o what_o council_n final_o be_v ever_o more_o free_a than_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n whereat_o there_o assist_v the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o greek_a bishop_n who_o all_o have_v liberty_n to_o determine_v and_o give_v their_o voice_n and_o even_o those_o that_o give_v they_o against_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o council_n persist_v in_o their_o obstinancie_n as_o mark_v of_o ephesus_n return_v safe_o into_o their_o country_n and_o nevertheless_o in_o those_o three_o counsel_n there_o be_v decide_v almost_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n question_v in_o christian_a religion_n for_o if_o to_o make_v a_o council_n free_a it_o must_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o prince_n which_o favour_v neither_o party_n of_o the_o contestor_n what_o council_n can_v be_v exempt_a from_o calumny_n for_o do_v not_o the_o arrian_n put_v it_o among_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nicaea_n and_o of_o the_o first_o of_o const_n that_o they_o be_v hold_v under_o constantine_n and_o theodosius_n who_o be_v abettor_n of_o their_o own_o party_n and_o who_o authority_n prevail_v there_o and_o do_v not_o the_o eutychian_o reproach_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n marcian_n that_o have_v there_o favour_v say_v they_o their_o adversary_n from_o whence_o even_o to_o this_o day_n they_o call_v those_o that_o hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n melchites_n that_o be_v to_o say_v rogalist_n or_o imperialist_n but_o if_o his_o majesty_n intend_v by_o a_o free_a council_n a_o council_n where_o the_o pope_n neither_o assist_v personalie_a nor_o representative_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o in_o a_o time_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o papacy_n a_o council_n shall_v perfect_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n if_o the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v neither_o there_o personal_o representative_o or_o confirmative_o and_o what_o will_v become_v of_o those_o ancient_a maxim_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o rule_v the_o church_n or_o call_v the_o counsel_n without_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o again_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n anull_v all_o decree_n make_v
optat._n contr_n parm._n l._n 1._o c_o 72._o aug._n 〈◊〉_d lit_fw-fr petil._n l._n 2_o c._n 92._o aug._n open_fw-mi 166._o optat._n l._n 1._o capitul_n carol._n magn._fw-la 1._o 6._o ambros._n epist_n 32._o &_o capit_fw-la car._n magn._n ibid._n athan._n ep_n ad_fw-la solit._n ibidem_fw-la sulpit._n hist_o sacr_n l._n 2._o euseb._n hist._n eccles._n l._n 10_o c._n 5._o optat._n contr_n parm._n l._n 1._o jul._n ep_n ad_fw-la euscbian_n apud_fw-la athan._n see_v above_o sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o see_v above_o opt._n cont_n parm._n l._n 1._o instit._fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 7._o opt._n cont_n parm._n l._n 2_o aug._n ep_n 162._o id._n ep_n 171._o id._n ep_n 166_o de_fw-fr unic_n bapt_v cont_n petil._n c._n 16_o august_n de_fw-mi ago_o chr._n c._n 29._o aug._n ep_n 161._o optat._n contr_n parm._n l._n 1._o const._n ep._n ad_fw-la episc._n cathol_n ad_fw-la calc_n gestor_n purgat_fw-la 〈◊〉_d &_o foelic_n epist._n 〈◊〉_d t._n ad_fw-la ablau_n aug_n ep_n 68_o &_o lib._n de_fw-fr unic_n bapt_v c._n 16._o aug._n ep_n 162._o aug_n contr_n parm._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o epist._n con_n 〈◊〉_d arelat_n 1._o ibid._n ibid._n ibidem_fw-la zonar_n annal_n tom_fw-mi 3._o in_o constant_a &_o iren._n inst._n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o epist._n council_n arelat_n 1_o the_o author_n of_o the_o tract_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 8._o edit_fw-la 2._o cypr._n ad_fw-la steph._n ep_n 67._o ep._n 162._o ep._n 162._o aug._n ibid._n ep._n 162._o ep._n 166._o aug._n ep_n 162._o aug._n contr_n litter_n 〈◊〉_d l._n 2._o cap._n 92._o ep_n 166_o optat._n count_n 〈◊〉_d l._n 1._o ibidem_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la aug._n ep_n 162._o calvin_n inst._n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o the_o author_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n c._n 8._o calu._n inst._n l._n 4_o c._n 7._o council_n milevit_fw-la can_v 22._o conc_fw-fr const_n 1._o c._n 6._o conc._n charth_n 〈◊〉_d c_o 7._o conc._n eph._n act._n 1._o exod._n 18._o innoc_n ep_n ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d conc._n turon_n 2._o c._n 21_o leo_fw-la ep_n 82_o 〈◊〉_d l_o 2._o ep._n 〈◊〉_d cap._n carol_n 〈◊〉_d gn_n l_o 6._o 〈◊〉_d 287._o hincm_n ep_n ad_fw-la nicol._n 〈◊〉_d apud_fw-la flodoard_v hist._n eccl._n rem_fw-la l._n 3._o gers._fw-la de_fw-la protest_v eccl._n consid_n 8._o edit_fw-la graec_fw-la conc._n carth_n c._n 26._o conc_fw-fr const_n 1._o c._n 6_o conc_fw-fr carth_n 3._o c._n 7._o epist._n council_n mil._n ad_fw-la innoc._n inter_fw-la ep._n aug._n ep_n 〈◊〉_d prosp._n de_fw-fr ingr._n aug._n ep_n 95_o innoc_n ep_n ad_fw-la victiic_fw-la inter._n ep_n aug._n ep_n 93._o aug._n ep_n 106._o aug_n de_fw-fr pecc_fw-la orig_n cont_n pelag_n &_o celest._n c._n 7._o aug._n ep_n 157._o prosper_n in_o chronic._n id_fw-la contr_n collator_n nicol._n 1._o ep_n ad_fw-la episc._n gallic_n conc._n milevit_fw-la c._n 22._o ibid._n refut_n de_fw-fr l'obiect_n 1._o du_fw-fr decret_a aug_n ep_n 162._o 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d bap._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hist_o eccl._n 〈◊〉_d c._n 〈◊〉_d aug._n ep_n 16._o conc._n 〈◊〉_d levit_n c._n 22_o edit_fw-la graec._n conc._n carthag_n c._n 28._o vel_fw-la secundum_fw-la alios_fw-la 31._o impress_n paris_n apud_fw-la gallict_n du_fw-fr prè_n 1524._o &_o francisc_n regnaut_n 1553_o &_o guillel_n thibout_n 1555._o impress_n basil._n per_fw-la joan_n opoporin_n 1535._o impress_n venet_fw-la 1585._o decret_n grat._n c._n 2._o q._n 6_o &c_n &c_n 21._o q._n 3._o centur._n magdeburg_n centur_fw-la 5._o col_fw-fr 839._o conc_fw-fr afric_n c_o 93._o edit_fw-la graec._n conc_fw-fr carth_n c._n 126._o vel_fw-la secundum_fw-la alios_fw-la 127._o aug._n ep_n 162._o conc._n hippon_n c._n 7._o conc._n carthag_n 3_o c._n 7._o edit_fw-la graec._n council_n carth._n c._n 26_o hincm_n in_o ep_n 〈◊〉_d cap._n 17._o centur._n magdeb._n cent_n 10._o coll_n 494._o edit_fw-la graec._n conc._n carth._n c._n 26._o conc_fw-fr afric_n c._n 105._o beneath_n chap._n 10._o cresc_n in_o 〈◊〉_d can_v capit_fw-la 285._o see_v beneath_o chap._n 7._o conc_fw-fr carthag_n 6._o c._n 9_o conc._n carthag_n 6._o c._n 7._o beneath_n chap._n 49._o fulg._n ferr._n in_o breu._n can._n art_n 4._o 24._o 123._o &_o alibi_fw-la edit_fw-la conc._n colon._n 1606._o annal._n tom_fw-mi 5_o 〈◊〉_d 397._o et_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d appendic_fw-la 〈◊〉_d tom_n 5._o ann_n 397._o et_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d epito_n d._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o in_o 〈◊〉_d conc._n col_fw-fr ex_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d binn_n tom_n 1_o aug._n ep_n 8._o conc._n afric_n c._n 53._o praefat_fw-la in_o frag._n hallar_n fulg._n ferr._n in_o breviar_n can_n c._n 4._o &_o alibi_fw-la capit._fw-la carol_n magn._n add_v 4._o pref._n in_o frag._n hilar_n in_o council_n afric_n of_o it_o c._n 1._o collat._n carth._n act._n 1._o conc._n carthag_a 2._o c._n 1._o ambr_n ep_n 32_o &_o 82._o conc._n carthag_n 3._o c._n 48._o &_o conc._n afric_n c._n 14_o conc._n zellen_v vulg._n vocat_fw-la telens_n in_o prooem_n conc._n afric_n c._n 43._o etc._n etc._n 57_o edit_fw-la graec_fw-la conc_fw-fr carth_n c._n 90._o council_n carthag_a 1._o c._n 10._o &_o 13._o ful._n ferr._n in_o breu._n cor._n art_n 24_o &_o 123._o council_n aquisgran_n c._n 61._o council_n dict_z carthag_n 6_o c._n 5._o council_n 〈◊〉_d honour_n 12._o &_o theodos_n 8._o coss_n in_o council_n afric_n c._n 76_o &_o deinceps_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la cap._n 94._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 2_o c._n 7._o 〈◊〉_d dict_z carth._n 6._o c._n 9_o conc_fw-fr carth_n 2._o c._n 11._o 12._o &_o 13._o fulg._n ferr._n in_o breviar_n can_v artic_a 4._o 96._o 194_o &_o alibi_fw-la conc_fw-fr carth_n 4._o ad_fw-la marg_n c._n 2._o praefat._n in_o frag_n hilar._n conc_fw-fr carth_n 1._o c._n 2._o act._n design_n erad_n apud_fw-la august_n ep_n 110._o possid_n in_o vit_fw-fr august_n conc_fw-fr carth_n 3._o c._n 3._o ep._n capreol_n episc._n carth._n ad_fw-la council_n ephes._n victor_n vtic._n persec_fw-la vandal_n l_o 1_o id._n ibidem_fw-la eulg_n ferrand_n ju_n breviar_n can._n art_n 4._o 〈◊〉_d ferrand_n in_o breviar_n can._n artic_a 24._o conc_fw-fr afric_n in_o conc._n hab_o 6._o cal._n september_n sub_fw-la coss._n caesar._n &_o attic._n conc_fw-fr carth_n 3._o c._n 44._o conc_fw-fr carth_n sub_fw-la cypr._n art_n 16._o vict._n vtic._n de_fw-fr persecut_fw-la vand._n l._n 2._o ptolem._n greg._n l._n 4._o aug._n de_fw-fr vict._n ep_n 217._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 7._o in_o cata_fw-la log_n &_o in_o subscrip_n et_fw-fr conc_fw-fr afric_n ante_fw-la c._n 95_o &_o post_n c._n 100_o conc_fw-fr carth_n 2._o in_o process_n verbal_a &_o conc._n afric_n in_o procèss_n ver_fw-la bal._n council_n sub_fw-la cesar._n &_o artic._n council_n carth._n 2._o c._n 7_o &_o conc._n carth._n 3._o c._n 42._o 44_o &_o 50._o coll._n carth_n act._n 1._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 2._o c._n 1._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 2._o c._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d conc_fw-fr carth_n 5._o c._n 3._o conc_fw-fr zellens_n male_a inscript_n telens_n in_o prooem_n pulg_n ferrand_n ju_n breu._n can._n art_n 4._o 6._o &_o alibi_fw-la conc._n tolet_n 12._o c._n 4._o ibidem_fw-la conc_fw-fr hippon_n c._n 30._o cone_n 〈◊〉_d 3._o c._n 48._o innoc_n 1._o ep_n ad_fw-la exup_n conc_fw-fr tolet_n 12._o c._n 4._o conc_fw-fr afric_n c._n 13._o annal_n tom_n 5._o add_v ann_n 401._o beneath_o in_o the_o chapt._n of_o the_o african_a council_n fulg._n ferrand_n in_o 〈◊〉_d can._n art_n 228._o &_o 229._o aug._n ep_n 235._o conci_fw-la carthag_n c._n 21._o aug._n ibidem_fw-la conc_fw-fr carth_n 5._o c._n 13._o fulg._n ferr_n in_o breu._n can_v art_n 2._o id._n art_n 11._o id_fw-la art_n 44._o id._n art_n 23._o id_fw-la art_n 76._o id._n art_n 65._o id._n art_n 61._o id._n art_n 26._o fulg_n feraud_n in_o breu._n can._n artic_a 13._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 4._o c._n 1._o ibidem_fw-la c._n 84._o ibid._n cap._n 44._o ibid._n cap._n 52._o aug_n the_o op_n monath_n isidor_n de_fw-fr offic_n ecci_n l._n 2._o cap_n the_o exorcist_n hincmar_n opusc_fw-la 55._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 5._o c._n 15._o cod._n theod._n l._n 16._o titul_n de_fw-fr pag._n l._n 16._o ibid._n l._n 18._o conc_fw-fr carth_n 5._o c._n 15._o instit._fw-la orat_fw-la l._n 10._o council_n afric_n c._n 25._o council_n afric_n in_o praefat._n council_n celebr_n post_fw-la consul_n honour_n &_o eutych_n council_n afric_n c._n 35_o august_n ad_fw-la quintian_n ep._n 235_o august_n ad_fw-la xanthip_n ep_n 236._o pro._n &_o legendum_fw-la ut_fw-la council_n afric_n in_o praef._n council_n hab_fw-mi 5._o calend_n sept_fw-fr sub_fw-la 〈◊〉_d cesar._n &_o attic._n collatine_n car_fw-fr thag_fw-mi act._n 1._o conc_fw-fr afric_n in_o praef._n c._n 53._o conc._n turon_n 2._o cap._n 21._o edit_fw-la council_n colon._n 1606._o pag._n 619._o &_o 621._o conc_fw-fr carthag_n 6._o c._n 10._o epist._n council_n afric_n ad_fw-la caelest_n praef._n council_n carth._n 7_o coccil_n afric_n c._n 94._o conc_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 6_o in_o 〈◊〉_d &_o cap._n 1._o fulg._n ferand_n in_o 〈◊〉_d can_v art_n 4._o ibid._n art_n 16_o collect._n dionys._n in_o conc._n dict_z afric_n c._n 99_o c._n 100_o edit_fw-la graec._n conc_fw-fr carth._n c._n 133._o fulg_n ferand_n in_o 〈◊〉_d can_v art_n 73._o council_n
the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 437_o xxvi_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o order_n in_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o reformation_n before_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o deformation_n 438_o xxvii_o of_o the_o indefectibilitie_n of_o the_o church_n 439_o xxviii_o of_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o father_n have_v intend_v that_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v hold_v from_o the_o beginning_n 441_o xxix_o of_o the_o exception_n that_o the_o king_n produce_v to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v not_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n 442_o xxx_o of_o the_o demand_v make_v for_o reformation_n since_o the_o five_o last_o age_n 443_o xxxi_o of_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o english_a reformer_n with_o the_o donatist_n 444_o xxxii_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n which_o deny_v to_o the_o church_n the_o title_n of_o catholic_n 446_o xxxiii_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o writer_n 447_o xxxiv_o of_o the_o beg_n of_o the_o principle_n contain_v in_o this_o hypothesis_n ibid._n xxxu_o of_o the_o temporal_a cause_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o england_n 448_o xxxvi_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o english_a church_n with_o the_o judaical_a ibid._n xxxvii_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o charity_n of_o the_o ancient_a african_a church_n and_o the_o modern_a roman_a church_n 462_o xxxviii_o of_o the_o innocence_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o his_o majesty_n ibid._n thirty-nine_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o illustrious_a cardinal_n bellarmin_n 463_o a_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n for_o so_o i_o will_v esteem_v of_o thou_o whosoever_o out_o of_o a_o true_a desire_n of_o understand_v the_o truth_n take_v this_o learned_a work_n into_o thy_o hand_n to_o peruse_v it_o with_o judgement_n and_o yet_o without_o prejudice_n vouchsafe_v before_o thou_o begin_v the_o perusal_n thereof_o to_o take_v these_o few_o observation_n from_o i_o first_o whereas_o the_o most_o eminent_a author_n thereof_o have_v project_v to_o divide_v it_o into_o twelve_o several_a book_n or_o partial_a treatise_n and_o die_v before_o he_o can_v make_v a_o complete_a end_n thereof_o be_v often_o divert_v from_o it_o by_o manifold_a employment_n which_o his_o high_a estate_n &_o calling_n be_v subject_a unto_o &_o by_o some_o more_o necessary_a dispute_n &_o write_n which_o the_o condition_n of_o france_n do_v then_o afford_v his_o friend_n either_o not_o mark_v this_o his_o project_n or_o because_o all_o the_o work_n be_v not_o end_v neglect_v that_o division_n set_n be_v forth_o repart_v into_o six_o book_n only_o and_o those_o so_o unequal_o sort_v that_o the_o first_o book_n alone_o be_v in_o the_o french_a edition_n far_o big_a than_o all_o the_o other_o ensue_v five_o book_n take_v together_o this_o unproportionable_a partition_n we_o have_v amend_v in_o this_o english_a translation_n as_o we_o may_v easy_o do_v by_o the_o citation_n or_o quotation_n with_o which_o the_o author_n himself_o border_v his_o margin_n for_o in_o they_o he_o sometime_o refer_v himself_o to_o such_o a_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o seven_o eleven_o twelve_o book_n whereby_o he_o sufficient_o insinuate_v into_o how_o many_o book_n he_o intend_v to_o divide_v this_o his_o excellent_a work_n &_o at_o what_o matter_n every_o book_n shall_v take_v its_o beginning_n which_o his_o intention_n we_o have_v observe_v in_o this_o that_o now_o we_o present_v to_o thy_o view_n that_o the_o fit_a division_n of_o matter_n therein_o handle_v may_v make_v it_o more_o intelligible_a and_o less_o tedious_a second_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o french_a demand_v for_o their_o satisfaction_n that_o the_o many_o place_n which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o learned_a holy_a and_o classical_a autour_n hold_v not_o only_o be_v faithful_o translate_v in_o the_o text_n but_o also_o place_v at_o large_a in_o their_o original_a language_n in_o the_o margin_n that_o the_o learned_a reader_n may_v without_o recourse_n to_o the_o several_a volume_n which_o require_v a_o copious_a library_n whereof_o few_o be_v furnish_v out_o of_o hand_n examine_v the_o faithfullnes_n of_o the_o translation_n &_o consequent_o how_o fit_o the_o allege_a authority_n make_v for_o the_o purpose_n but_o this_o humour_n not_o yet_o for_o aught_o i_o have_v see_v much_o reign_v in_o our_o country_n we_o have_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o cite_v the_o place_n only_o in_o the_o margin_n which_o be_v full_o express_v in_o the_o text_n the_o rather_o because_o the_o excellent_a translatresse_n copy_n which_o we_o have_v faithful_o express_v contain_v no_o more_o and_o more_o beseem_v not_o her_o translation_n as_o not_o desire_v to_o make_v show_n of_o skill_n in_o greek_n and_o other_o such_o learned_a language_n but_o only_o of_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o her_o assumpt_n that_o it_o be_v of_o a_o faithful_a translation_n according_a to_o the_o significant_a expressement_n of_o the_o french_a three_o we_o have_v not_o presume_v to_o alter_v or_o change_v any_o one_o word_n of_o her_o translation_n but_o in_o some_o few_o place_n where_o the_o french_a allusion_n can_v not_o be_v so_o well_o understand_v if_o they_o be_v express_v in_o english_a proper_o correspond_v thereunto_o for_o every_o tongue_n have_v some_o peculiar_a grace_n and_o elegancy_n which_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o translation_n if_o they_o be_v put_v word_n for_o word_n and_o yet_o this_o have_v we_o do_v as_o we_o say_v very_o seldom_o and_o that_o especial_o in_o the_o word_n church_n which_o we_o english_a man_n use_v derive_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o house_n dedicate_v to_o our_o lord_n service_n which_o tropical_o we_o use_v also_o to_o signify_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a most_o solemn_o and_o usual_o make_v in_o the_o church_n the_o french_a express_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o eglise_fw-fr from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vocatus_fw-la ad_fw-la professionem_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a call_v by_o christ_n to_o profess_v his_o law_n by_o which_o word_n they_o secundary_o or_o tropical_o understand_v and_o call_v the_o church_n or_o house_n of_o prayer_n so_o in_o the_o name_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o french_a s._n pierre_n which_o word_n also_o signify_v a_o rock_n or_o stone_n in_o french_a as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_n and_o cephas_n in_o syriak_n do_v but_o in_o our_o english_a we_o have_v no_o such_o allusion_n no_o other_o change_n but_o in_o these_o few_o and_o such_o like_a have_v we_o make_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a the_o translatresse_n have_v so_o fit_o and_o significant_o express_v the_o autours_n meaning_n that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v lose_v labour_n to_o strive_v to_o do_v it_o better_o and_o rather_o mar_v then_o mend_v so_o perfect_a a_o expression_n last_o i_o desire_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n to_o bear_v with_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o press_n the_o printer_n be_v walloon_n and_o our_o english_a strange_a unto_o they_o it_o be_v incredible_a to_o see_v how_o may_v fault_n they_o commit_v in_o set_v so_o that_o in_o overlook_v the_o proof_n for_o the_o print_n the_o margin_n have_v not_o room_n enough_o to_o hold_v our_o correction_n and_o do_v what_o we_o can_v yet_o the_o number_n of_o our_o correction_n be_v so_o many_o a_o great_a many_o of_o they_o remain_v uncorrect_v by_o the_o fastidious_a fantasy_n of_o our_o workman_n yet_o we_o judge_v there_o be_v no_o fault_n that_o may_v hinder_v or_o change_v the_o sense_n but_o be_v amend_v and_o for_o the_o rest_n we_o desire_v thou_o to_o pardon_v we_o consider_v how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o make_v a_o stranger_n here_o to_o express_v our_o orthography_n farewell_n in_o our_o lord_n and_o he_o of_o his_o goodness_n give_v thou_o grace_n to_o take_v profit_n by_o read_v these_o learned_a discourse_n thy_o wellwisher_n in_o christ_n jesus_n f._n l._n d._n s._n m._n approbatio_fw-la translatio_fw-la haec_fw-la operis_fw-la excellentissimi_fw-la quod_fw-la eminentissimus_fw-la cardinalis_fw-la perronius_n pro_fw-la fides_fw-la catholicae_fw-la doctrina_fw-la ad_fw-la potentissimum_fw-la regem_fw-la ac_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la jacobum_fw-la totius_fw-la britanniae_fw-la francia_fw-la &_o hiberniae_fw-la monarcham_n summa_fw-la cum_fw-la cruditione_n pariter_fw-la &_o modestia_fw-la conscripsit_fw-la facta_fw-la a_fw-la nobilissima_fw-la quadam_fw-la heroina_fw-la provinciae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la &_o serenissimae_fw-la reginae_fw-la domine_fw-la nostrae_fw-la mariae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d borboniae_fw-la dicata_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la fideliter_fw-la concordat_fw-la cum_fw-la ipsa_fw-la autoris_fw-la ment_fw-la verbis_fw-la &_o sententiis_fw-la qua_fw-la propter_fw-la dignan_n eam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quae_fw-la typis_fw-la tradatur_fw-la utex_fw-la tanti_fw-la praeceptoris_fw-la accuratissimis_fw-la cloquentiaque_fw-la incomparabili_fw-la vestitis_fw-la disputationihus_fw-la fructum_fw-la copiosum_fw-la capiatur_fw-la anglia_fw-it nostra_fw-la qualem_fw-la universa_fw-la gallia_n cum_fw-la perpetua_fw-la magni_fw-la autoris_fw-la veneratione_n se_fw-la percepisse_fw-la protestatur_fw-la
s._n gregory_n allege_v this_o law_n it_o be_v not_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o steven_n cause_n but_o to_o show_v that_o steven_n ought_v to_o be_v draw_v in_o judgement_n before_o the_o council_n of_o his_o province_n and_o not_o before_o the_o council_n of_o a_o other_o province_n and_o indeed_o how_o can_v saint_n gregory_n have_v pretend_v that_o in_o mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v wherein_o there_o be_v handle_v either_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o bishop_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o patriarch_n sentence_n 82._o not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o appeal_v he_o that_o cry_v out_o do_v not_o you_o know_v that_o in_o the_o cause_n that_o john_n the_o priest_n have_v he_o mean_v john_n a_o priest_n of_o chalcedon_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n at_o conctantinople_n against_o our_o brother_n and_o colleague_n john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n he_o have_v have_v recourse_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v define_v by_o our_o judgement_n to_o the_o five_o instance_n which_o be_v that_o the_o emperor_n leo_n and_o constantine_n leun_n say_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v retract_v by_o a_o other_o judge_n as_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n we_o say_v that_o those_o two_o emperor_n who_o have_v write_v since_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n speak_v of_o the_o patriarch_n by_o excellency_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o they_o believe_v to_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o pope_n in_o the_o east_n for_o they_o esteem_v the_o sentence_n of_o other_o patriarch_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o appeal_n but_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o patriarch_n universal_a that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o they_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinoplee_n who_o they_o associate_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o right_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n for_o as_o much_o as_o constantinople_n be_v a_o second_o rome_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n for_o this_o occasion_n according_a to_o they_o a_o second_o pope_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v this_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o ten_o article_n of_o the_o six_o title_n be_v they_o say_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o metropolitanshipp_n and_o bishopric_n belong_v to_o their_o proper_a patriarch_n but_o to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o confirm_v and_o reform_v and_o determine_v the_o contestation_n breed_v in_o other_o sea_n and_o by_o balsamon_n who_o write_v upon_o the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n that_o this_o comdemnation_n be_v mean_v of_o synod_n not_o subject_a to_o appeal_v as_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o six_o and_o last_o instance_n which_o be_v that_o photius_n say_v that_o from_o the_o nomocan_n patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o photius_n that_o speak_v for_o photius_n insert_v not_o in_o his_o nomocanon_n but_o the_o only_a text_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o emperor_n without_o mingle_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o but_o that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o constitution_n of_o justine_n uncle_n to_o justinian_n to_o which_o we_o have_v above_o answer_v who_o say_v allude_v to_o the_o eight_o law_n of_o the_o four_o title_n of_o the_o code_n for_o against_o such_o episcopal_a sentence_n as_o it_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o our_o elder_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n of_o which_o word_n the_o greek_a bookebinders_n or_o exemplifier_n have_v make_v for_o against_o the_o sentence_n of_o such_o bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o patriarch_n there_o be_v no_o appeal_n together_o that_o if_o photius_n the_o author_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o still_o continue_v between_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n have_v write_v these_o word_n to_o defend_v the_o invasion_n make_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o ignatius_n true_a and_o lawful_a patriarch_n then_o alive_a and_o to_o hinder_v the_o appeal_n that_o ignatius_n have_v put_v in_o against_o photius_n and_o his_o pretend_a synod_n to_o the_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d take_v effect_n it_o will_v have_v bear_v no_o weight_n but_o so_o far_o 〈◊〉_d it_o from_o be_v so_o as_o not_o only_a photius_n but_o after_o he_o simon_n logothetae_n zonara_n balsamon_n alexios_fw-la blastares_n harmenopolus_n and_o other_o greek_a canonist_n insert_v into_o their_o collection_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o cowcell_n of_o sardica_n and_o particular_o the_o three_o four_o five_o &_o by_o which_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n of_o all_o the_o province_n be_v yield_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o that_o under_o the_o very_a title_n of_o the_o retractation_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o bishop_n under_o which_o he_o register_n this_o constitution_n of_o justine_n he_o quote_v three_o four_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n shall_v be_v remit_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o to_o this_o that_o zonara_n to_o preserve_v the_o eastern_a appeal_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o conctantinople_n say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n in_o make_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o episcopal_a appeal_n intend_v to_o yield_v no_o more_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o western_a appeal_v we_o say_v beside_o this_o that_o this_o exception_n 5._o defaulk_v not_o africa_n which_o make_v a_o part_n of_o the_o western_a province_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o provost_n of_o the_o pretory_n of_o italy_n it_o be_v against_o the_o precise_a intention_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o publish_v this_o rule_n expresselie_o to_o abrogate_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o to_o justify_v the_o restitution_n that_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d have_v make_v of_o saint_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n &_o of_o marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n and_o of_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o sea_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o tyre_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o antioch_n &_o other_o eastern_a counsel_n julium_n say_v zosom_n receive_v athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o palestina_n and_o lucius_n bishop_n of_o andrinople_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o because_o that_o to_o he_o for_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o sea_n the_o care_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v he_o restore_v to_o each_o of_o they_o his_o church_n 7_o and_o elsewhere_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n they_o answer_v that_o they_o will_v not_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o of_o paul_n and_o principal_o for_o as_o much_o as_o 10._o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n and_o have_v not_o condemn_v they_o and_o therefore_o balsamon_n see_v that_o this_o evasion_n can_v not_o subsist_v have_v invent_v a_o other_o which_o be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v indeed_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o appeal_n of_o all_o bishop_n but_o that_o constantinople_n have_v since_o be_v erect_v to_o the_o title_n of_o the_o second_o rome_n the_o right_a of_o appeal_n have_v be_v divide_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o patriarcke_n of_o constantinople_n those_o thing_n say_v balsamon_n comment_v the_o three_o canon_n of_o 3._o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v here_o define_v of_o the_o pope_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n because_o by_o diverse_a canon_n he_o mean_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o of_o the_o conncell_n surname_v 5._o trullian_n by_o which_o he_o pretende_v that_o he_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v make_v equal_a to_o the_o pope_n except_v precedence_n he_o have_v be_v honour_v with_o privilege_n in_o all_o thing_n equal_a to_o those_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o again_o comment_v the_o five_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n of_o sardica_n this_o privilege_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n alone_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a that_o every_o condemn_a bishop_n have_v recourse_n 2._o to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n and_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n the_o twenty_o eight_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedom_n and_o the_o thirty_o six_o of_o the_o six_o synod_n honour_v the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o same_o privilege_n as_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n yield_v also_o manifest_o the_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n cardinal_n